'Rival enlightenments' is a major reinterpretation of early modern German intellectual history. Ian Hunter treats civil philosophy of Pufendorf and Thomasius and metaphysical philosophy of Leibniz and Kant as rival intellectual cultures or paideia. This landmark study reveals for the first time in English the extra-ordinary historical self-consciousness of the civil philosophers.
'Rival enlightenments' is a major reinterpretation of early modern German intellectual history. Ian Hunter treats civil philosophy of Pufendorf and Thomasius and metaphysical philosophy of Leibniz and Kant as rival intellectual cultures or paideia. This landmark study reveals for the first time in English the extra-ordinary historical self-consciousness of the civil philosophers.
'Rival enlightenments' is a major reinterpretation of early modern German intellectual history. Ian Hunter treats civil philosophy of Pufendorf and Thomasius and metaphysical philosophy of Leibniz and Kant as rival intellectual cultures or paideia. This landmark study reveals for the first time in English the extra-ordinary historical self-consciousness of the civil philosophers.
Civil and Metaphysical Philosophy in Early Modern Germany
Rival Enlightenments is a major reinterpretaton of early modern German intellectual history. Ian Hunter approaches philosophical doctrines as ways of fashioning personae for envisaged historical circumstances, here of confessional conict and political desacral- isation. He treats the civil philosophy of Pufendorf and Thomasius and the metaphysical philosophy of Leibniz and Kant as rival intel- lectual cultures or paideia, thereby challenging all histories premised on Kants supposed reconciliation and transcendence of the eld. This landmark study reveals for the rst time in English the extra- ordinary historical self-consciousness of the civil philosophers, who repudiated university metaphysics as inimical to the intellectual for- mation of those administering desacralised territorial states. The book argues that the marginalisation of civil philosophy in post- Kantian philosophical history may itself be seen as a continuation of the struggle between the rival enlightenments. Combining careful and well-documented scholarship with vivid polemic, Hunter presents penetrating insights for philosophers and histori- ans alike. i \x ntx+rn is Professor of Humanities and Founding Director of the Centre for Advanced Studies in the Humanities at Grith University, Queensland, Australia. He is the author of Culture and Government: The Emergence of Literary Education (:q88) and Rethinking the School (:qq), as well as numerous articles dealing with the historical conditions and roles of moral and political thought. This Page Intentionally Left Blank i nr\s i x cox+rx+ Edited by Qtrx+i x Ski xxrn (General Editor), Lonn\i xr D\s +ox, Dono+nv Ross, and J\xrs Ttrrv The books in this series will discuss the emergence of intellectual traditions and of related new disciplines. The procedures, aims, and vocabularies that were generated will be set in the context of the alternatives available within the con- temporary frameworks of ideas and institutions. Through detailed studies of the evolution of such traditions, and their modication by dierent audiences, it is hoped that a new picture will form of the development of ideas in their concrete contexts. By this means, articial distinctions between the history of philosophy, of the various sciences, of society and politics, and of literature may be seen to dissolve. The series is published with the support of the Exxon Foundation. A list of books in the series will be found at the end of the volume. This Page Intentionally Left Blank RIVAL ENLIGHTENMENTS Civil and Metaphysical Philosophy in Early Modern Germany IAN HUNTER
PUBLISHED BY CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY PRESS (VIRTUAL PUBLISHING) FOR AND ON BEHALF OF THE PRESS SYNDICATE OF THE UNIVERSITY OF CAMBRIDGE The Pitt Building, Trumpington Street, Cambridge CB2 IRP 40 West 20th Street, New York, NY 10011-4211, USA 477 Williamstown Road, Port Melbourne, VIC 3207, Australia
http://www.cambridge.org
Ian Hunter 2001 This edition Ian Hunter 2003
First published in printed format 2001
A catalogue record for the original printed book is available from the British Library and from the Library of Congress Original ISBN 0 521 79265 7 hardback
ISBN 0 511 01358 2 virtual (netLibrary Edition) Contents Preface page ix Acknowledgements xiv List of abbreviations and texts used xvi Note on conventions xix Introduction : r\n+ i ni \\r rxri on+rxxrx+s : University metaphysics :.: Introduction :.. Metaphysics as the philosophical subsumption of theology :. The return of metaphysics to the Protestant academy o :. The metaphysical ethos . :. Political metaphysics 8 . Civil philosophy 6 ..: Introduction 6 ... Reductions of the civil: society and reason 66 .. Sources of the civil: politics and law .. Civil philosophy and profane natural law 8 r\n+ i i ci \i r \xn xr+\rnvsi c\r rni rosornv Leibnizs political metaphysics q .: Introduction q .. From Protestant Schulmetaphysik to rationalist metaphysics q8 . The subject of metaphysics :o. . Philosophical theology :: . The metaphysics of law :.6 vii Pufendorf s civil philosophy :8 .: Introduction :8 .. Moral philosophy and political obligation : . From moral personality to civil personae :6 . From transcendent reection to chastened observation :6q . Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :8o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics :q .: Introduction :q .. Thomasius and the history of moral philosophy .o. . The attack on metaphysical scholasticism .oq . Detranscendentalising ethics .. . Natural law . .6 From moral philosophy to political jurisprudence .: Afterword: Thomasius, Wol, and the Pietists .6 6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics . 6.: Introduction . 6.. The morals of metaphysics .q 6. Kants metaphysical ethos .8 6. Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia .q 6. The metaphysics of law :6 6.6 The pure religion of reason Postscript: The kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom 6 List of references Index q. viii Contents Preface The prime objective of this work is to reinstate a marginalised intellec- tual culture to its proper place in the intellectual history of early modern Germany. Although the civil philosophy of Samuel Pufendorf and Christian Thomasius is not unknown in the modern humanities academy, sympathetic treatment of their work is largely conned to the history of political philosophy, jurisprudence, and theology. To the extent that they feature in intellectual history and the history of philos- ophy more broadly, however, they appear as superseded gures, destined to be absorbed by the great oscillations between rationalism and volun- tarism, idealism and empiricism which would reach their culminating reconciliation in the epochal philosophy of Immanuel Kant. We shall see that this reigning dialectical historiography is itself the oshoot of a second, rival intellectual movement, centred in the culture of university metaphysics. In order to recover early modern civil philosophy, there- fore, it has proved necessary to criticise and reject a dialectical historiog- raphy designed to erase its historical existence and political signicance. In place of this reconciliatory history, this book oers an account of two independent intellectual cultures the rival enlightenments of civil and metaphysical philosophy which remain unreconciled today. Retrieving civil philosophy from the all-assimilating, all-unifying mill of dialectical philosophical history is no straightforward task. For, by drawing its impetus from the arranged mutual deciencies of opposed viewpoints, this historiography gives shape not just to history but also to the historian. It treats history as the medium in which the unreconciled dimensions of human subjectivity move towards their harmonisation, in the nal recovery of the a priori conditions of experience and morality the moment of Kants critical philosophy. Under these intellectual con- ditions, the historian views the past in terms of the unreconciled opposi- tions between rationalism and voluntarism, intellectualism and empiricism and nds his or her own ethical impulse in the need to ix repeat the moment of their Kantian reconciliation. This is the moment in which human subjectivitys imagined journey towards self-knowledge terminates, with the recovery of the cognitive and moral laws responsi- ble for the organisation of subjectivity itself. Considering that it was Kant himself who rst viewed the history of philosophy in these terms, dialec- tical philosophical history is uniquely suited to demonstrating the epochal signicance of Kantianphilosophy, andmay indeedbe regarded as a sub-species of that philosophy. By showing that Pufendoran and Thomasian civil philosophy did not in fact undergo this dialectical assimilation by uncovering its inde- pendent cultural basis and autonomous political viewpoint this book departs fundamentally from the post-Kantian intelligibility of early modern intellectual history. Many readers will no doubt nd the intel- lectual terrain to be traversed unfamiliar and potentially hostile. The moral world in which Pufendorf and Thomasius lived was not the one whose laws Kant recovered. Further, the forms of personhood they cul- tivated were not ones governed by the norms of pure practical reason. Their world had its own moral cosmology, unlike the quasi-Platonic one that organised Kants cosmos, yet one whose Epicurean bleakness was suited to a Europe still dealing with the aftermath of a period of pro- tracted religious warfare. Similarly, their sense of self was shaped by a pessimistic moral anthropology far removed from ChristianPlatonic pursuit of pure rational being that drove metaphysical philosophy from Leibniz through Wol to Kant and beyond. In sketching the relation between civil and metaphysical philosophy in these terms in treating the worlds they envisaged and the persons they posited as grounded in free-standing rival anthropologies and cosmologies we begin to measure the distance to be travelled from post-Kantian conceptions of a unied humanity or reason. In recasting the landscape of early modern intellectual history into these unreconciled and unfamiliar shapes, I have drawn on two main intellectual instruments. Firstly, and fundamentally, I have drawn on a particular approach to the history of philosophy. This is one which focuses on the ascetic or self-transformative work that certain philoso- phies require their adherents to perform on themselves, only then addressing the objects of knowledge to which they promise access. This approach holds the key to retrieving civil philosophy from its dialectical assimilation, and to placing civil and metaphysical philosophy on the same historical footing as rival alternative modes of philosophical cul- tivation. It does so principally by treating their dierent anthropologies x Preface and cosmologies not in terms of the self they uncover or the cosmos they reveal, but in terms of the self they seek to shape for a world they envis- age. The objective of this approach is not to explain the philosophies by reducing them to a dierent order of reality to the structures of society or the forms of subjectivity but to redescribe the operations of the philosophical discourses themselves, treating them as autonomous and irreducible spiritual exercises. Secondly, I have made use of a particular view of the political and religious history of early modern Germany. This is a view that focuses on the role of confessionalisation in precipitating the Thirty Years War (:6:88); the role of the deconfessionalising or desacralising of pol- itics in ending this war; and the central role of political law (Staatsrecht, jus publicum) and its jurisprudence in this process of deconfessionalisa- tion. I argue that the post-Westphalian intellectual civil war between metaphysical and civil philosophy rst encountered in Leibnizs unre- strained attack on Pufendorf s natural law doctrine is properly under- stood as a clash between rival ways of responding to this profound historical process. Responding positively to the uncoupling of civil and religious governance, Pufendorf developed a doctrine of natural law in which the exercise of political power (the civil kingdom) was segregated from the sphere of life in which the pursuit of moral perfection took place (the kingdom of truth). He thus sought to reconstruct moral phi- losophy by replacing the unied moral personality with a plurality of personae suited to the diverse oces religious and civil, private and public, ecclesiastical and political of citizens in desacralised states. Leibniz, however, responded to the post-Westphalian separation of pol- itics and religious morality by seeking their reconciliation at a higher level, through metaphysics. Here it was envisaged that law and politics could once again be grounded in the sacralising pursuit of moral per- fection, with all of lifes oces nding their point of unity in the meta- physical recovery of their transcendent intellection. If these rival intellectual cultures were not destined for reconciliation in Kants discovery of the subject or in a history tracing the dialec- tical patterns of such a discovery then we must look elsewhere for the terrain on which they clashed. We nd this in a cluster of religious, polit- ical, legal, and cultural institutions housed in the early modern German Empire and the territorial sovereign states which were emerging from its shell. For our immediate concerns, the early modern university plays the key role here. It was responsible for articulating the rival cultures to the religious, juridical and political institutions of Empire and state, through Preface xi the manner in which it formed particular intellectual elites. At the very centre of this nexus, we nd the competing anthropologies and cos- mologies of civil and metaphysical philosophy; for the personae they cultivated were those suited to the moral callings of a particular institu- tional array, even as the profound dierences between their modes of cultivation bear witness to the deeply divergent ways in which they envis- aged this institutional world. Pufendorf s civil philosophy thus sought to complete the desacralisa- tion of civil governance by transforming the pedagogies through which young Protestant intellectuals jurists in particular acquired their sense of self and relation to the world. His Epicurean anthropology was designed to form civil intellectuals who would conne the pursuit of moral truth to a private domain, while placing their political rights and expertise at the disposal of a sovereign who governed without regard for such truth. Conversely, Leibnizs (Platonic) metaphysical anthropology envisaged a person whose self-perfecting ascent to the domain of tran- scendent concepts (perfections) qualied them to exercise an integral moralcivil authority, in the persona of the sageprince. In other words, if early modern civil and metaphysical philosophy were not conicting theories destined to be reconciled and superseded in Kants discovery of the transcendental conditions of subjectivity, that is because they were independent rival intellectual cultures. Each represented a programme for reconguring the relations between religious and civil governance in its own way, through the ascetic fashioning of the personages it deemed suited to the world it envisaged. Rather than reconciling and supersed- ing these conicting cultures, Kantian philosophy may be regarded as an extension of the metaphysical one oering its own critical version of the ascent to the domain of transcendent perfections. In recasting the topography of early modern German intellectual history in this way, this book does not of course pretend completeness. It is rather a sketch of an alternative kind of historical intelligibility for the period, an essay in reinterpretation and redescription. The Introduction oers further clarication of our points of departure from existing accounts, while the two chapters of Part i provide overviews of the available ways of approaching Schulmetaphysik and civil philosophy. In Part ii we oer detailed reconstructions of the major civil philoso- phers, Pufendorf and Thomasius, and their metaphysical rivals, Leibniz and Kant. Here of course we are not referring to personal rivalry between the philosophers although that perspective partially applies to the relationship between Pufendorf and Leibniz but to the cultural xii Preface rivalry between the philosophical styles they personied. In exploring this rivalry through the work of some of its central protagonists, our essay takes an interdisciplinary form, centred in intellectual and philo- sophical history, but drawing on the history of politics, jurisprudence, and theology, with excursions into the history of religion and church law. Although this essayistic strategy might bring discomfort to specialists in these elds, no disrespect for their work is intended. On the contrary, in bringing their several domains together, in order to refashion a part of intellectual history too long under the domination of a particular view- point, I pay homage to them. Should this book be regarded as seeing any further than those it challenges, that would be due to the stature of the works on whose shoulders it stands. Preface xiii Acknowledgements Thanks to the award of a Queen Elizabeth II research fellowship, I have been able to devote four years undistracted labour to the research and writing of this book. I therefore gratefully acknowledge the generous support of the Australian Research Council, without which such a long, intensive, and single-minded project would have been dicult to con- template and impossible to complete in a reasonable period of time. I am also pleased to acknowledge the continuing support of Grith Universitys School of Humanities, where I have worked for so long and so happily, and to thank the sta of the Universitys Inter-Library Loan service for their tireless searching after obscure volumes. My nal insti- tutional appreciation is for the hospitality of the English Department of Johns Hopkins University, where I spent an enjoyable and productive semester in the spring of :qq. During the writing of this work many colleagues were interested or kind enough to discuss its contents and read sections for me. I have probably not mentioned all of them if I oer my thanks in this regard to Tony Bennett, Natalie Brender, John Frow, Stephen Gaukroger, Wayne Hudson, Je Malpas, Thomas Mautner, Alec McHoul, Douglas Magendanz, David Owen, and Dugald Williamson. I am also indebted to Dieter Freundlieb, who oered me both philosophical conversation and linguistic expertise, when my grasp of seventeenth-century German reached its limits. During my visit to Johns Hopkins I was fortunate enough to share the company and conversation of William Connolly and Jane Bennett, enjoying their hospitality and insights in equal measure. At that time I was also fortunate in meeting John Pocock, enjoying one of his seminars on Edward Gibbon and later a conversa- tion on the varieties of Enlightenment, both memorable occasions for me. Among the colleagues with whom I have worked closely, I owe special thanks to Denise Meredyth and to Jerey Minson and Barry Hindess, both of whom have read several chapters, responding with xiv unfailingly helpful commentary and advice. Finally in this regard I take special pleasure in tallying the debt of gratitude owed to my colleague and friend of many years, David Saunders. He has been a constant dis- cussant throughout the development of this project, providing unerring guidance on everything from basic intellectual premises to the transla- tion of early modern academic Latin. In addition to these friends and colleagues, I owe thanks to several scholars whom I rst encountered through their published works, but who were kind enough to oer advice and encouragement to an acade- mic stranger. In addition to all I have learned from their writings, James Tully and Knud Haakonssen have been very helpful in allowing me to see the project from the perspective of the international community of scholars working on similar issues. I owe a similar debt of thanks to Horst Dreitzel, who went out of his way to provide me with extensive and bracing commentary on the Thomasius and Kant chapters, and to Jerome Schneewind, with whom I had several memorable discussions in the northern spring of :qq, even if these resulted in both of us realis- ing how dierently we approached the question of Kant. Finally, during :qqq, I was fortunate in meeting several scholars who have recently com- pleted doctorates or books on topics closely associated with the subject of this book. Although the revision process has not permitted me to take full advantage of it, I should nonetheless like to record my appreciation for the work of Thomas Ahnert, Robert von Friedeburg, Frank Grunert, Timothy Hochstrasser, Michael Seidler, and Peter Schrder. Needless to say, few, if any, of these colleagues and friends agreed with everything they encountered in my arguments, and none of them is responsible for the errors that remain in this book, which are all my own doing. Acknowledgements xv Abbreviations and texts used KANT Except for the Critique of Pure Reason, for which I use the standard Aand B pag- ination of the rst and second editions, all references to Kant are to Kants Gesammelte Schriften, edited by the German (formerly the Royal Prussian) Academy of Sciences in twenty-nine volumes (Walter de Gruyter, :qo.). In referencing Kants texts I have adopted the convention of rst citing the rel- evant passage in the Akademie edition, by volume and page number, pairing this with the relevant reference to the Cambridge Edition of the Works of Immanuel Kant. I have adjusted the Cambridge translations wherever this seemed nec- essary. Abbreviations of the relevant volume titles from the Cambridge Edition follow. CPR Critique of Pure Reason, ed. Paul Guyer and Allen W. Wood. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, :qq8. LE Lectures on Ethics, ed. Peter Heath and J. B. Schneewind. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, :qq. LM Lectures on Metaphysics, ed. Karl Ameriks and Steve Naragon. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, :qq. PP Practical Philosophy, ed. Mary J. Gregor and Allen Wood. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, :qq6. RRT Religion and Rational Theology, ed. Allen W. Wood and George Di Giovanni. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, :qq6. TP Theoretical Philosophy , ed. David Walford and Ralf Meerbote. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, :qq.. LEIBNIZ CP Confessio Philosophi/Das Glaubensbekenntnis des Philosophen. (Kritische Ausgabe mit Einleitung, Ubersetzung, Kommentar von Otto Saame.) .nd edn. Frankfurt am Main: Vittorio Klostermann, :qq. DM Discourse on Metaphysics, in Lm, pp. oo. Ge C. I. Gerhardt (ed.) Die philosophischen Schriften von Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz. vols. Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :q8. xvi Gr Gaston Grua (ed.) G. W. Leibniz: Textes Indits. . vols. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France, :q8. Gu G. E. Guhrauer (ed.) Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz: Deutsche Schriften. :q66 edn, . vols. Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :88. Lm Leroy E. Loemker (ed.) Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz: Philosophical Papers and Letters. .nd edn. Dordrecht: D. Reidel, :q6q. Mo The Monadology, in Lm, pp. 6. PW Political Writings, ed. Patrick Riley. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, :q.. Th Theodicy: Essays on the Goodness of God, the Freedom of Man, and the Origin of Evil, ed. Austin Farrer. La Salle: Open Court, :q8. TS Theologisches System/Systema Theologicum, ed. C. Haas. Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :q66 PUFENDORF DJN De Jure Naturae et Gentium Libri Octo/On The Law of Nature and of Nations in Eight Books. Trans. C. H. Oldfather and W. A. Oldfather. Oxford: Clarendon Press, :q. DOH De Ocio Hominis et Civis juxta Legem Naturalem Libri Duo/On the Duty of Man and Citizen According to Natural Law. Trans. Michael Silverthorne, ed. James Tully. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, :qq:. DHR De Habitu Religionis Christianae ad Vitam Civilem/Of the Nature and Qualication of Religion in Reference to Civil Society. London: Roper and Bosvile, :6q8. DSH De Statu Hominum Naturali/Samuel Pufendorf s On the Natural State of Men, the Latin Edition and English Translation, ed. Michael Seidler. Lewiston N.Y.: Edwin Mellen Press, :qqo. GW Gesammelte Werke, ed. Wilhelm Schmidt-Biggemann. Berlin: Akademie Verlag, :qq6. THOMASIUS ADS Auserlesene deutsche Schriften (Selected German Writings, . vols.). AW, vols. xxiiixxi\. ASL Ausbung der Sittenlehre (Practice of Ethics). Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :q68. AW Ausgewhlte Werke, ed. Werner Schneiders. Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :qq EHP Einleitung zur Hof-Philosophie (Introduction to Court Philosophy). AW, vol. ii. ESL Einleitung zur Sittenlehre (Introduction to Ethics). AW, vol. x. FJN Fundamenta juris naturae et gentium ex sensu communi deducta, / Grundlehren des Natur- und Vlker-Rechts, nach dem sinnlichen Begri aller Menschen vorgestellet (Foundations of the Law of Nature and Nations, Deduced from Common Sense). Halle: Rengerischer Buchhandlung, :oq. IJD Institutiones jurisprudentiae divinae, / Drey Bcher der Gttlichen List of abbreviations and texts used xvii Rechtsgelahrtheit (Institutes of Divine Jurisprudence). Halle: Rengerischer Buchhandlung, :oq. KPK Kurzer Entwurf der politischen Klugheit, sich selbst und andern in allen men- schlichen Gesellschaften wohl zu Raten und zu einer gescheiten Conduite zu gelan- gen (Brief Outline of Political Prudence, for the good counsel and sensible conduct of oneself and others in all human societies, ::o). Frankfurt am Main: Athenum, :q:. KTS Kleine Teutsche Schriften (Shorter German Writings). AW, vol. xxii. PD Preliminary Dissertation (to the Institutiones jurisprudentiae divinae), in IJD, pp. :66. RFM Vom Recht evangelischer Frsten in Mitteldingen oder Kirchenzeremonien (Of the Right of Protestant Princes in Middle-Things/Adiaphora or Religious Ceremonies, :6q), in ADS, AW, vol. xxiii, pp. 6:8. RFS Das Recht evangelischer Frsten in theologischen Streitigkeiten (The Right of Protestant Princes in Theological Controversies). Halle: Christoph Salfeld Verlag, :6q6. SEG Summarischer Entwurf der Grundlehren, die einem Studioso Iuris zu wissen und auf Universitten zu Lernen ntig sind (Summary Outline of the Basic Doctrines Necessary for a Student of Law to Know and Learn in the Universities, :6qq). Aalen: Scientia Verlag, :qq. VG Vorrede (Foreword to Grotius), in Hugo Grotius: De Jure Belli ac Pacis Libri Tres/Drei Bcher vom Recht des Krieges und des Friedens Paris , ed. Walter Schtzel. Tbingen: J. C. B. Mohr, :qo, pp. :.8. VKR Vollstndige Erluterung der Kirchenrechts-Gelahrtheit oder Grndliche Abhandlung vom Verhltni der Religion gegen den Staat (Complete Explanation of the Jurisprudence of Church Law or Fundamental Treatise on the Relation of Religion to the State), .nd edn. :o. Aalen: Scientia Verlag, :q8:. WOLFF GE Vernnftige Gedanken von der Menschen Tun und Lassen, zu Befrderung ihrer Glckseeligkeit (German Ethics :.o), ed. H. W. Arndt. Reprint, Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :q6. GL Vernnftige Gedanken von den Krften des menschlichen Verstandes (German Logic ::), ed. H. W Arndt. Reprint, Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :q6. GM Vernnftige Gedanken von Gott, der Welt und der Seele des Menschen, auch allen Dingen berhaupt (German Metaphysics ::q), ed. C. A. Corr. Reprint, Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :q8. GP Vernnftige Gedanken von dem gesellschaftlichen Leben der Menschen und inson- derheit dem gemeinen Wesen (German Politics :.:), ed. H. W. Arndt. Reprint, Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :q. VRW Von den Regenten die sich der Weltweisheit beeistigen, und von den Weltweisen die das Regiment fhren (On Princes who Cultivate Philosophy, and Philosophers who Direct Government), in Gesammelte Kleine Philosophische Schriften \i. Hildesheim: Georg Olms, :q8:, pp. .q66.. xviii List of abbreviations and texts used Note on conventions The word economics is spelled in two dierent ways: oeconomics indi- cates the early modern discipline concerned with household manage- ment, while the standard spelling economics is used for more general reference. Where bracketed interpolations occur in quoted text, round brackets indicate the original authors or translators interpolations, square brack- ets indicate mine. xix This Page Intentionally Left Blank Introduction I now believe that it would be right to begin my book with some remarks on metaphysics as a kind of magic . . . For, when once I began to speak of the world (and not of this tree or table), what did I wish if not to conjure something of the higher order into my words . . . Of course, here the elimination of magic itself has the character of magic. Work in philosophy like work in architecture in many respects is really more work on oneself. On ones own conception. On ones way of seeing things. (And what one asks of it.) Ludwig Wittgenstein Despite the recognition of dierent national, cultural, and religious enlightenments, and regardless of recurrent doubts about the utility of the concept itself, a dominant form of intellectual history remains com- mitted to the reality of a single process or project of Enlightenment, even if this is something that has to be synthesised from diverse intellec- tual expressions, institutional settings, and historical locales. Horst Stuke oers a classic instance of this historiography in his Begrisgeschichte of Aufklrung, written for that great encyclopedia of German conceptual history, the Geschichtliche Grundbegrie (Stuke :q.). Despite his illuminat- ing sketch of a variety of dierent forms of enlightenment ranging from the Pietists doctrine of spiritual rebirth to the Wolan conception of conceptual self-clarication Stukes history is one of the progressive unication and conceptualisation of these programmatic enlighten- ments. The key stages on the way are Kants formalisation of the concept of Aufklrung which treats it as human reasons recovery of its own intellectual and moral laws and Hegels dialectical historicisation of the concept, which allows reasons self-clarication to occur in time, : as the transcending reconciliation of a series of fundamental historical oppositions. Not the least remarkable aspect of Stukes discussion is the manner in which it transforms the retrospective unication of early modern enlightenments into a methodological and theoretical imperative. For Begrisgeschichte regards dialectical reconciliation and conceptual formal- isation as the condition of human reasons own historical self- clarication the latest episode of which is in fact Stukes article. If, however, we wished to recover the early modern enlightenments in their full programmatic diversity and were we to contend that two of the most important forms of enlightenment remain as unreconciled today as they did in early modernity then our discussion would have to move in the opposite direction to Stukes. We would have to strip the Kantian formalisation and Hegelian reconciliation of Aufklrung from our histor- ical imaginations, and plunge into the turbulence of bitterly opposed programmes for the cultivation of human reason. Norbert Hinske also presumes the existence of a single Enlightenment, arguing that the German Aufklrung was unied by a small number of fundamental ideas. According to Hinske, the fundamental character of these ideas means that they arose not from an historical ethos or mythos, an ideology or faith and not from the theological, pedagogical, juris- prudential, and political disciplines in which they occasionally found expression but from the work of thought itself: philosophy (Hinske :qqo, :o). This philosophical Aufklrung, Hinske argues, is characterised by three programmatic ideas. First is the idea of Aufklrung itself which, despite its varied formulations, is rooted in the doctrine of intellectual clarication the recovery of the concepts underlying historical experi- ence. This doctrine was formulated by Descartes and Leibniz, systemat- ised by Wol, and then given its denitive critical form by Kant. Next comes a group of concepts eclecticism, thinking for oneself, and maturity (Eklektik, Selbstdenken, Mndigkeit) which nds its unity in the fact that those possessing enlightened intellects make their own judg- ments, thereby restricting the tutelage of the state to the provision of external security. Finally, there is the notion of perfectibility which, despite its several uses in various reform agendas, found its original expression in the LeibnizWol doctrine of intellectual and moral per- fection, and its nal form in Kants conception of the never-ending pursuit of intellectual and moral purity. Hinske concludes his explica- tion of a philosophically unied Aufklrung by arguing that its basic ideas . Introduction are not simply a result of the great technical discoveries and improve- ments of modernity, or a mere consequence of the economic, social, political or religious changes, even if presumably the division of the con- fessions in Germany, with their irreconcilable controversies, contributed not a little to their articulation (Hinske :qqo, ). Instead, all of the programmatic ideas are grounded in a single basic idea, the idea of a universal anthropology the end or destiny of man (Bestimmung des Menschen) which, in its turn, is identied with a universal human reason. From this notion of human being as rational being the notion of a reason that is self-grounding and self-acting in all spheres of life Hinske derives what he regards as the fundamental rights and duties of a rational society: the right to publish ones thoughts (entlichkeit, press- freedom), and the duty to respect the judgments of others (liberality, tolerance). Hinskes conception of a philosophical Aufklrung certainly nds an historical correlate in the :8os debate over What is Enlightenment?, which had been sparked by articles in the Berlinische Monatsschrift, and selections from which have been republished by Hinske and James Schmidt (Hinske :q; J. Schmidt :qq6a). But this correlation arises because only the philosophical contributions to this debate are now treated as signicant, allowing the contributions of jurists and statesmen to drop from historical sight. The central doctrine of F. H. Jacobis inter- vention that political and moral freedom have a common grounding in mans spontaneous intellectual being is typical of the philosophical essays, especially those by Kant, Reinhold, Tieftrunk, and Bergk. The conclusions that Jacobi draws from this doctrine are also broadly repre- sentative: Where there is a high degree of political freedom in fact, not just in appearance, there must be no less a degree of moral freedom present. Both are grounded exclusively in the rational nature of man, and their power and eect is thus to make men ever more human, ever more capable of self-government, of ruling their passions, of being happy and without fear (Jacobi :8., .:o). No less signicant in this regard is Jacobis Kantian armation that human reason and morality are realised through freely self-imposed laws. His adherence to Kantian autonomy means that Jacobi regards externally prescribed laws laws formulated by jurists and statesmen as intrinsically corrupting of humanity. Displaying an uncanny gift for rewriting history in accor- dance with the Kantian spirit of his times, he asserts that it was not law and the state that put an end to the destructive wars of religion but the ceaseless striving of reason (.o). Finally, in concluding his defence of Introduction society as a self-regulating organism of individual rights and duties, Jacobi pays a back-handed compliment to the monstrous mechanical states designed by Machiavelli and Hobbes; for they at least honestly show the political consequences of viewing man as a creature of pas- sions requiring external juridical and political governance. The success of this rewriting of history can be measured not just in Hinskes assumption of an anti-statist philosophical Aufklrung, but also in James Schmidts comment that Jacobis essay should be interpreted as part of a liberal critique of enlightened absolutism ( J. Schmidt :qq6b, :). So well had the Kantian philosophers of the :8os done their work burying all signs of the role of law and state in achieving a liberal set- tlement to the religious civil wars that their descendants of the :q8os no longer have to bother with any other enlightenment. It is, however, just this success of the philosophical Aufklrung in rewriting history in its own image that makes it unsuited to understanding a dierent concep- tion of enlightenment, one which had emerged a century earlier and had never gone away. Christian Thomasius Institutiones Jurisprudentiae Divinae had been pub- lished in :688, with the German translation appearing in :oq under the title Drey Bcher der Gttlichen Rechtsgelahrtheit (Three Books of Divine Jurisprudence), which is the edition I have used. In his Foreword to this translation, On the Obstacles to the Spread of Natural Jurisprudence, Ephraim Gerhard was also convinced that he stood on the threshold of a new enlightened epoch; yet his conception of the source and direction of enlightenment diers markedly from that of the philosophers of the :8os and their modern descendants: We live in a time when, over the last several years, things in the empire of scholarship have so altered, that from now onwards those who served in it a hundred years earlier would scarcely nd their right way so dierent is the shape that the sciences have assumed since then . . . I believe, though, that this kind of transfor- mation is to be remarked not just in the zones of philosophy, as some like to imagine, but also and in fact principally in our jurisprudence (IJD, Fwd, :). For Gerhard it is not philosophy in the line that would run from Leibniz through Wol to Kant that is responsible for enlighten- ment, but the rebirth of jurisprudence and natural law, which he ascribes to a dierent intellectual trio: Certainly those possessing a somewhat enlightened understanding [aufgeklhrtern Verstand] could only take pleasure in the lights which Grotius, Pufendorf, Thomasius and others have displayed for us through their industry; because through this the true ground of all laws has been revealed to us much more clearly Introduction than before ( ). In fact, Gerhard regards philosophy as impeding the spread of the new jurisprudence through the universities and court- rooms of Germany; for the academic moral philosophers teach the dis- cipline of natural law in such a subtle and abstract manner that it becomes all but useless for the aairs of the state and the needs of daily life ( 8). This problem, Gerhard argues, is compounded by the uni- versitys curricular and faculty structure. In compelling law students to study moral philosophy before beginning their legal studies, this struc- ture leads many to misunderstand the specic nature of the law, bring- ing forth instead either mere philosophical and abstractive chimeras or a mish-mash of moral philosophy, decorum, and even theological prin- ciples ( q). Gerhards Foreword belongs to the genre of histories of morality. As Timothy Hochstrasser has shown, this genre was intended to support the spread of the new doctrines of natural law those of Grotius, Pufendorf, and Thomasius by making them central to overturning Protestant neo- scholasticism (Hochstrasser .ooo). In his own Preliminary Dissertation to the Institutiones another instance of this genre Thomasius spells out the enlightening role of jurisprudence and natural law in more detail than Gerhard and with greater lan. Treating his own enlightenment as symptomatic of the new path, Thomasius recalls that during his student years at the University of Leipzig his theology and philosophy professors Valentin Alberti in particular had attempted to keep him in the dark, teaching their own metaphysical version of natural law, and warning him o the works of Samuel Pufendorf, whom they branded an innova- tor and heretic. Thomasius read Pufendorf anyway, and his account of the eect this had on him is worth quoting in full: At that time I began to dispel some of the dark clouds which had previously obscured my understanding. Before then I had imagined that all things com- monly defended by the theologians were purely and simply good theological matters, which an honorable man must by all means hold in respect, so that no- one would brand himas a heretic or innovator, honorics which then amounted to the same thing. After I had rightly considered how theology diers fromphi- losophy though, and also read with greater care that which was written about politics and political law [Frsten Recht] ( jus publicum), I learned to recognise that commonly all kinds of things were unanimously defended by the theologians which have nothing to do with theology, but belong in ethics or jurisprudence. But these things were commonly passed o as theology because the philosophers make do with the number of their eleven Aristotelian virtues and the jurists with their glossing. And the theologians rst in fact the Catholics and then our [Lutheran] ones gave cause and opportunity [for this], because no-one took Introduction responsibility for claiming this noble area of wisdom, just as if a thing had no owner. [I also recognised] that the power and right of someone to declare another a heretic belonged to no private person even if they were great and famous but only to the prince. Finally [I saw] that an innovator is no heretic, and that this title, like the name heretic, had suered great misuse. And I saw that through these propositions Pufendorf convinced his opponents, who had not the slightest hope of basing their victory on their false principles. I therefore began to hesitate and to hold the moral philosophy of the aca- demics [Sittenlehre der Schul-lehrer] in contempt. (PD, :o::, 6) Thomasius sketch of his civil enlightenment makes two points which are in fact symptomatic of a fundamental parting of the ways in the academic culture of early modern Germany. In the rst place, Thomasius records that through his reading of politics and political jurisprudence (Frstenrecht, Staatsrecht, jus publicum) he discovered that theologians and Christian natural jurists were guilty of mixing theology and philosophy that is, revealed and natural knowledge. In mixing revealed biblical truths and the naturally known truths of jurisprudence, ethics, and politics, they obscured the autonomy of jurisprudence and intruded on intellectual domains that were none of their business. We shall see that Thomasius laid this miscegenation of revealed and natural knowledge squarely at the door of university metaphysics a discipline oering philosophical explication of religious doctrine and transcendent foundations for philosophical concepts, to the detriment of both faith and knowledge. Next, says Thomasius, he realised that, in laying the charge of heresy, university theologians like Alberti were claiming to exercise civil power on the basis of their religious capacity. This was com- pletely unacceptable to Pufendoran natural law and Staatskirchenrecht (the political jurisprudence of church law). For Pufendorf holds that all civil power and right belong solely to the prince that is, to the secular state and may on no account be shared with or exercised on behalf of the church. In Thomasius case, therefore, the divergence between Schulphilosophie and the civil sciences was marked not just by intellectual dierences, but by his sense of their mutually opposed roles in the cultural politics of early modern Germany. Through his reading of Pufendorf s natural law and political jurisprudence, Thomasius had come to a conclusion that would prove decisive for his whole intellectual outlook: namely, that the mixing of theology and philosophy in university metaphysics was com- plicit with the disastrous mixing of religious and civil authority in the confessional state (Dring :qqb, :6). For such neoscholastic opponents 6 Introduction as Alberti, the synthesis of theology and the civil sciences (ethics, politics, jurisprudence) in university metaphysics provided the institutionalintel- lectual basis for the churchs participation in civil authority. For this made it possible to argue that political power should be exercised to defend the purity of the moral community as well as to guard the security of the civil community. Conversely, the radical separation of moral theology from politics and law in Pufendoran natural law was premised on the intellectual and institutional destruction of Schulmetaphysik. Nothing less was required if religion was to be denied all competence in the civil domain to be transformed into a matter of private faith rather than public knowledge thereby allowing the state to emerge as a desacral- ised exercise of sovereign power, concerned exclusively with the security of the citizen. The jurisprudential or civil enlightenment of the :68os thus diers in almost every regard from the (Kantian) philosophical enlightenment of the :8os which, in the :q8os, Hinske characterises in terms of its phil- osophical basis; its subjection of politics, law, and theology to universal reason; and its absorption of mythos and ethos into the universal anthro- pology of rational being. In the rst place once we have set aside the question-begging claim that all knowledge is philosophical in the sense of being based on transcendental concepts it is clear that Thomasius enlightenment is not grounded in a new form of philosophy (Leibniz WolKant) but in a new civil science. This science is Pufendorf s natural law, with its component sciences of political jurisprudence (Staatsrecht), political history, and statist sovereignty doctrine. As we shall see (..), Thomasius was familiar with the new rationalist metaphysics, particularly in its Cartesian and Wolan forms. But he regarded the notion of intellectual enlightenment through recovery of the pure forms of thought as committing the same cardinal error as scholastic metaphysics: the mixing of theology and philosophy. For Thomasius, synthetic metaphysical reection on the intellectual forms had been dis- credited by its use in the defence of rival confessional theologies. It had to be replaced by the dierentiated (eclectic) mastery of specic civil sciences. Next we can observe that while Thomasius may be regarded as an eclectic and Selbstdenker, his conception of intellectual independence is not based on a notion of the primacy of the individuals universal reason over the specic reasons of state. On the contrary, Thomasius Epicurean anthropology and statist (BodinianPufendoran) concep- tion of sovereignty mean that he regards individuals as incapable of Introduction rational self-governance and sees the state as governing on the basis of reasons irreducible to those held by private individuals. For Thomasius, the state nds its limits not in the absolute moral and intellectual judg- ments of free rational beings judgments whose democratic expression it might one day become but in the fact that it cultivates a systematic neutrality with regard to such judgments. Despite Jacobis claim that it was not law and state but the ceaseless striving of reason that had created a sphere of religious toleration and moral freedom, Thomasius was acutely aware that this domain had indeed been constructed by the state. Moreover, he knew that the state had secured this domain only by declaring itself indierent to the private moral strivings of its citizens, thereby expelling religion from the political sphere. This transformation of political culture demanded intellectual independence in the sense that it required jurists and politici to detach themselves from all those sec- tarian philosophies that insisted on unifying morality and politics, church and state, within a single moral philosophy. Despite Hinskes claims to the contrary, it thus becomes clear that Thomasius civil enlightenment was indeed wedded to a particular ethos the ethos of a caste of confessionally neutral political jurists and, moreover, that he was developing this ethos precisely to cope with the circumstances of confessional division and religious civil war. For Thomasius and Pufendorf, the period of confessional conict was some- thing quite other than a theatre of the intellect in which reason could display its transcendence of historical conditions and passions. It was instead a theatre of social warfare, fuelled in part by a reason whose passion for transcendence made its claims non-negotiable (Koselleck :q88). This meant that the forms of reasoning themselves had to be modied in order to meet the catastrophic historical circumstances in which they participated. This is what animated Pufendorf s and Thomasius attack on university metaphysics and drove their elabora- tion of a new intellectual ethos for jurists and statesmen. Finally, for this reason, Thomasius jurisprudential enlightenment is not based in a universal anthropology assimilable to a universal human reason the notion of man as a rational being (Vernunftwesen). On the contrary, Thomasius vehemently rejects the doctrine that human being is rational or intelligible being, correctly identifying this doctrine as a scholastic improvisation on Aristotelian and Platonic metaphysics, and regarding it as wholly unsuited to modelling the intellectual deportment of jurists and statesmen. For many of todays intellectual historians, the metaphysical doctrine of man as a free rational being refurbished in 8 Introduction Leibnizs monadology, systematised in Wols metaphysics, and passed on to us in the form of Kants conception of autonomous reason lies close to the process and goal of history as such. They therefore overlook the degree to which this doctrine was both highly polemical and itself the object of historical contestation. So conscious was Thomasius, though, of the intellectualist ethos contained in this doctrine, that he made it the central focus of his attack on sectarian philosophy or Schulmetaphysik. In fact a curricular programme-statement of :6qq the Summarischer Entwurf der Grundlehren, die einem Studioso Iuris zu wissen und auf Universitten zu lernen ntig sind (Summary Outline of the Basic Doctrines Necessary for a Student of Law to Know and Learn in the Universities) he expli- citly warns his students against the intellectualist anthropology, itemis- ing its central doctrines for elimination: Regarding the rst principles of all or most sectarian philosophy: (:) That God and matter were two co-equal principles. (.) That Gods nature consists in think- ing. () That mans nature consists in thinking and that the welfare and happi- ness of the whole human race depends on the correct arrangement of thought. () That man is a single species and that what is good for one [person] is good for another. () That the will is improved through the understanding. (6) That it is within human capacity to live virtuously and happily. (SEG, 8) In other words, far from pointing towards a single German philosoph- ical Aufklrung that would eventually subsume Thomasius himself, the intellectualist anthropology of early modern metaphysics was something that Thomasius targeted for elimination, as inimical to the civil enlight- enment that he sought to bring to his students. This enlightenment required a quite dierent anthropology, the Epicurean image of man as a dangerous creature of his uncontrollable passions. This is the anthro- pology that Thomasius deemed necessary to model the self-restrained intellectual deportment of those charged with clearing the confessional mineelds. In seeking to comprehend the historical autonomy and ethical dignity of civil philosophy in proposing to treat it as the unreconciled cultural rival and alternative to an anti-political and anti-juridical metaphysical philosophy this book must nd its place in a complex eld of works moving in a broadly similar direction. In the world of Anglophone schol- arship, Richard Tuck was one of the rst to call for a renewed attention to the modern theory of natural law Grotius, Hobbes, Pufendorf in order to overcome its marginalisation and assimilation in post- Kantian philosophical history (Tuck :q8; Tuck :qqa; Tuck :qqb). Introduction q This call has in part been answered by important surveys undertaken by Knud Haakonssen and J. B. Schneewind, and by the work of a new gen- eration of scholars, including Timothy Hochstrasser, Thomas Ahnert, and Peter Schrder (Ahnert :qqq; Haakonssen :qq6; Hochstrasser .ooo; Schneewind :qq8; Schrder :qq). It has also been answered by some revealing specialist studies, such as Steven Lestitions account of the teaching of jurisprudence and natural law at Knigsberg during the eighteenth century. Lestitions study is particularly germane to this book as it reaches for a broad heuristic concept capable of capturing the cul- tural and political signicance of early modern natural and political jurisprudence, nding this in the notion of a juristic civic conscious- ness. This term, says Lestition, will be understood to refer to the way in which important elements of the educated and governing classes of :th and :8th century Germany were able to derive a highly developed intellectual orientation, professional or corporate identity, and set of norms for their social and political behaviour, self-representation and self-understanding from their training or work as learned jurisconsu- lates (Lestition :q8q, o). We have already glimpsed the broad outlines of this orientation and identity, in Thomasius demand for an intellec- tual ethos suited to the jurists and politici of the desacralised state. Lestition sources this notion to J. G. A. Pocock and Quentin Skinner. Closely identied with the Cambridge-school history of political thought, their work provides the context for Tucks reinstatement of modern natural law, although Pocock and Skinner typically tie early modern civic consciousness to a non-juristic political tradition of civic republicanism and civic virtue, rather than to continental natural law (Pocock :q8, o; Skinner :q8). Hence, while Skinners studies of Hobbes treat his natural law as developing a civil science in opposition to incendiary confessional political theologies, they derive the secular pacicatory character of this science from humanisticrhetorical sources rather than politicaljurisprudential ones (Skinner :qq; Skinner :qq6). In this regard, Donald Kelleys jurisprudential genealogy of an early modern civil philosophy which focuses on the non-theological construction of civil life oered by Roman or civil law may be regarded as a counterbalance to Skinner and Pococks stress on non-juristic civic humanism (Kelley :q8; Kelley :q6; Kelley :qq:). Nonetheless, Pococks recent work on Edward Gibbon is suggestive of the ways in which the present work intersects with the Cambridge schools approach. For Pocock treats Gibbons anti-Platonic, anti- enthusiast civil history of religion as indicative of a distinctively English- :o Introduction Protestant variant among the diversities of Enlightenment. This was a variant whose moderate Arminian theology grounded a strategy for lim- iting the civil power of the clergy in order to avert the catastrophe of religious civil war (Pocock :qq). Even closer to our present concerns is an earlier essay on the conditions of early modern religious toleration; for here Pocock sees the desacralisation of politics arising from an alli- ance between latitudinarian Protestantism and Erastian politics, held together by their common rejection of political enthusiasm and sacer- dotalism (Pocock :q88). Finally in this vein, we may mention James Tullys important introduction to his new edition of Pufendorf s De Ocio and Richard Tucks study Philosophy and Government .,:.., whose discussion of Grotius and Hobbes integrates the perspectives of civic humanism and natural law (Tuck :qqa; Tully :qq:). These works may be seen as signs of the degree to which the Cambridge schools initial focus on the civic republican sources of a civic consciousness is being expanded through attention to the role of jurisprudence and natural law. This book, however, is also indebted to a distinctively German recov- ery of an early modern civil philosophy and political thought, one in which the disciplines of natural and political law (Naturrecht, Staatsrecht) play a central role. Perhaps the leading and certainly the most contro- versial representative of this school is Carl Schmitt, whose work is signicant for our present concerns in a number of regards. First Schmitt provides an important account of the historical signicance of political or public law European jus publicum whose restriction of sovereignty to the purely worldly domination of a territory he regards as eecting a fundamental detheologisation of politics (Schmitt :qo, :::86). Next, his discussion of the autonomising of politics under- taken by the early modern political jurists their separation of the security state from the spheres of morality and economy oers a further pointer to the central dierence between the civil and metaphys- ical enlightenments (Schmitt :qq6). Finally, Schmitts work is also symp- tomatically signicant, for the way in which it continues the intellectual civil war between civil and metaphysical philosophy. Here, Schmitt deliberately targets post-Kantian political Romanticism for its treat- ment of historical politics as the manifestation of transcendentalsub- jective categories, thereby reducing the contestation between political enemies to an a-political debate over the good life (Schmitt :q86). Similar themes reappear in the work of Schmitts former student, Reinhart Koselleck. Koselleck argues that the detheologisation of politics brought Introduction :: about by early modern natural law and political jurisprudence meant that the state developed a reason for its existence the preservation of social peace that oated free of the moral reason of its theological and philosophical elite. He thus treats the advent of the Aufklrung as indica- tive of cultural and political crisis. This is a crisis in which the states focus on worldly security renders it incapable of claiming a broadly acceptable moral legitimacy, and in which the Enlightenment intelli- gentsias pursuit of moral perfection pushes it beyond the detheologised political sphere. Fromhere arises the anti-political enclave politics of the Aufklrung, dedicated to the moral delegitimation of the state (Koselleck :q88). In its treatment of early modern statist jurisprudence as an autonomous and indispensable cultural response to the catastrophe of religious civil war, and in its uncompromising rejection of all post- Kantian attempts to resacralise politics by turning it into rational debate over the good, Schmitts and Kosellecks work is an important precondition of the present book. Adding a distinctively French perspective to the history of natural and political law, Blandine Kriegel has argued the need to renew political history through a recovery of early modern doctrines of law and sove- reignty, as the only ones capable of dealing with the reality of the state (Kriegel :qq). Drawing on French work on the history of political thought, including studies by Michel Foucault, Franois Furet, and Alain Besanon, Kriegels work contains a timely polemic. She argues against social theories of the political theories whose sociological character is a thin disguise for their moral zeal and in favour of grounding politi- cal thought in the history of political institutions: the institutions of administration, law, and sovereignty. Despite her apparent antipathy to Schmitt, Kriegels work intersects with his on several axes: rst, in her insistence that the political-juristic (Bodinian) concept of territorial sov- ereignty is a modern doctrine, developed as a weapon against the church, the Empire, and the estates; next, in her argument that this concept can only be understood through early modern political jurispru- dence itself, which permitted power to be juridied (secularised and his- toricised) and the law to be turned into the key form in which sovereign power was exercised; and nally in her vivid polemic against the German Romantics. Like Schmitt, Kriegel regards the Romantics anti- political and anti-juridical conceptions of society as united by love not law, and governed by the people not the state as secularisations of relig- ious mysticism and eschatology, leading to a divinisation and totalisation of the state. We have already glimpsed these proto-Romantic views in :. Introduction Jacobis claim that it was the ceaseless striving of reason rather than law and state that put an end to religious civil war. Finally I should mention the work of a group of German historians of political, juridical, philosophical, and religious thought which, while not ocially dedicated to the recovery of an early modern civil philos- ophy or civic consciousness, has nonetheless proved helpful to my own eorts in this regard. While I presume this group to be assembled more by the needs of this book than by any objective aliation, their special- ist studies can be brought into a productive relation to the more general theses of Schmitt, Koselleck, and Kriegel. Like Blandine Kriegel, Horst Dreitzel stresses the (early) modernity of seventeenth-century theories of absolute sovereignty. Far from being throwbacks to feudalism or the ancien rgime, these theories, Dreitzel argues, responded to a distinctively early modern set of circumstances: the need to defend the emergence of the princely territorial state against the Empire above and the estates below. Dreitzels emphasis however falls more on the politicisation of law than the juridication of politics, particularly in his ground-breaking study of neo-Aristotelian political science (Henning Arnisaeus) (Dreitzel :qo). Here, it is the scientic objectication of politics that plays the key role in the desacralising and instrumentalising of sovereign power. Despite his tendency to understate the role of natural and political law in this process, Dreitzels essays on this theme represent a decisive chal- lenge to Habermasian attempts to locate a socio-moral basis for politics, in the debating contests of middle-class entlichkeit (Dreitzel :q:; Dreitzel :q; Dreitzel :q8o; Dreitzel :q88; Dreitzel :qqb). There is no understatement of the juridical in the work of Martin Heckel, the leading historian of that particularly German discipline, Staatskirchenrecht, or the political jurisprudence of church law. In a series of indispensable studies, Heckel has argued that the secularisation of politics in early modern Germany was not the reex expression of an epochal philosophical breakthrough or general rationalisation of society. Rather, it arose when, under the circumstances of religious civil war, Protestant jurists, working within the framework of the Imperial legal apparatus, developed a series of crucial politicallegal doctrines. The most important of these were civil parity between the three main con- fessions; primacy of the secular prince in religious aairs; and indierence to religious and moral truth in political settlements to con- fessional conicts (Heckel :q6; Heckel :q68). These doctrines embod- ied in the Peace of Augsburg in : and reiterated more successfully in the Treaty of Westphalia in :68 made worldly political power Introduction : supreme in all matters pertaining to social peace. They nonetheless pre- served a free space for transcendent religions and philosophies inside the envelope of civil security, which now lay beyond their moral and theo- retical reach (Heckel :q8; Heckel :q8; Heckel :qq.). Although he does not speak of a jurisprudential or civil enlightenment, Heckels work clearly suggests that the core liberal rights of religious freedom and tol- eration did not arise from a rationalist philosophy of intellectual self- clarication and self-governance. They emerged instead from the juridical desacralisation of politics, carried out in the domain of positive Staatsrecht and subsequently surfacing in practical philosophy as the modern theory of natural law Grotius, Pufendorf, Thomasius. Something like this view seems to inform Christoph Links treatment of the right to religious freedom as a right created by the states politi- caljurisprudential pacication of society in the seventeenth century. According to Link, it was not until the end of the eighteenth century when its origins had been actively repressed by Kantian theories of ina- lienable subjective rights that religious freedom came to be seen as a right of society or the individual against the state (Link :q8). In this light, Jacobi, Kant, and the other philosophers of the :8os appear less like intellectual architects of the desacralised liberal state and more like belated political theologians seeking this states resacralisation. Writing in a similar vein, Diethelm Klippel takes us back to our point of depar- ture, arguing that the eighteenth century witnessed the overlapping of two kinds of natural law and two conceptions of enlightenment: one associated with Pufendorf and Thomasius which operated through the enlightenment (juridifying and secularising) of the prince or state; and the other associated with Kant which came to see state power itself as the problem, relocating enlightenment in individual reason and freedom (Klippel :qqo). Signicantly, and unusually, Klippel argues that both of these conceptions of enlightenment passed into the nineteenth century, which means that if we are to avoid suppressing one or the other of them we must give up the idea of a single German Aufklrung (Klippel :qq). Our initial sketch of a civil enlightenment pre-dating the philo- sophical Aufklrung by a century or more, and arising from sources quite other than the work of thought would therefore seem to nd its moor- ings in a substantial body of historical work. Here, there is a signicant consensus that a civil enlightenment that is, the rst moves to establish religious toleration, detheologise politics, separate civil society from religious community emerged as a response to the devastation of relig- ious civil war. Further, despite signicant disagreement over the primacy : Introduction of law or politics in the process, and notwithstanding some unresolved questions regarding the contribution of moderate Protestantism, there is broad agreement that the desacralisation of politics was formulated through an ensemble of civil sciences modern natural law, political law, neo-Aristotelian and neo-Stoic political sciences, civic republican- ism rather than through university metaphysics or moral philosophy. Finally, although we might lose some members of the Cambridge school at this point, there is some agreement that this civil enlightenment, with its juristic civic consciousness, was grounded in something quite other than the self-governing individual or the moral community: namely, in the measures by which early modern political jurists sought to put an end to religious civil war, by restricting the ends of the state to security. From this broad body of works and themes this book thus draws important pointers to the historical autonomy of early modern civil phi- losophy. From here we learn that the pacication of the war-torn German states, and the appearance of the rst liberal freedoms, were not the result of a politics grounded in the ceaseless striving of reason or the sheer work of thought. The state envisaged by Pufendorf and Thomasius was one that pursued external security through diplomacy and war, and internal security through the development of a novel and powerful double strategy. This strategy required the states indierence to the transcendent values of its constituent moral communities an indierence they would experience as civil freedom and its readiness to suppress all conduct threatening social peace, no matter what its source. In proposing to return the civil enlightenment to the centre of our historical concerns and civic imaginations and in treating it as a culture autonomous of and rival to the metaphysical Aufklrung this book will thus be centrally concerned with Pufendorf and Thomasius as inheritors of the political-juristic desacralisation of politics. Given the prima facie existence of such a civil enlightenment, docu- mented and discussed in a sizeable and diverse secondary literature, we must now confront the striking fact that it either remains largely invis- ible in post-Kantian intellectual historiography, or else appears there in a scarcely recognisable form. This historiography remains transxed by the image of a single philosophical Aufklrung whose unity is secured through Kants philosophy of the subject, and whose central character- istic is the normative extension of rationally self-governing subjecthood into all areas of society religious, moral, political. Clearly, a self-gov- erning society grounded in reason would have little need for a political Introduction : state grounded in security, which, according to post-Kantian anti- politics, should be left to wither away. There can be little doubt that this image of the progressive social expansion of philosophical reason dom- inates arguments for and against the Enlightenment in the humanities academies of Europe and America, forming one of the chief reasons why, in Kriegels words, the history of political institutions must contin- ually ght uphill battles against hostile attitudes (Kriegel :qq, :.). In the Anglophone scholarly world this conception of a philosophical or metaphysical enlightenment has provided the framing principle for such standard works as Henry Allisons Lessing and the Enlightenment and Lewis White Becks Early German Philosophy aptly subtitled Kant and His Predecessors (Allison :q66; Beck :q6q). It continues to inform recent work composed in the register of American Kantianism, such as J. B. Schneewinds The Invention of Autonomy: A History of Modern Moral Philosophy (Schneewind :qq8). In Germany, the immediate context for Hinskes conception of a philosophical Aufklrung is provided by such scholars as Michael Albrecht, Wilhelm Schmidt-Biggemann, Werner Schneiders, and others now grouped around the journal Aufklrung (Albrecht :qq; Schmidt-Biggemann :q88a; Schmidt-Biggemann :qq; Schneiders :q; Schneiders :qqo). But this work leads back, via such early-twentieth-century neo-Kantians as Heinz Heimsoeth and Max Wundt, to their nineteenth-century predecessors Kuno Fischer and Karl Rosenkranz (Fischer :8.; Heimsoeth :q.; Heimsoeth :q6a; Rosenkranz :8o; Wundt :q.; Wundt :qq; Wundt :q). From here it is a short step to the philosophical histories of Kants contemporaries J. G. Buhle, W. G. Tennemann, and C. F. Studlin which, as Hoch- strasser has argued, were the rst to erase civil philosophy from the historical map, replacing it with the LeibnizWolKant canon (Hochstrasser .ooo, .o6:.). This is the line through which todays post-Kantian intellectual history has inherited its characteristic conception of a philosophical Aufklrung: the notion of enlightenment as the transcendental self- clarication of an intellectual being whose recovery of spontaneous rational self-governance forms the basis of a free society under moral laws (Ritzel :q.). Given the evident conict between this conception and the prima facie existence of a very dierent civil enlightenment grounded in juridical pacication rather than metaphysical self- clarication, and in the sovereignty of a morally indierent state rather than that of a morally self-governing people post-Kantian intellectual history has adopted two strategies, those of exclusion and assimilation. :6 Introduction In seeking to exclude civil philosophy from their story of Enlighten- ment philosophy, post-Kantian intellectual historians have argued that it belongs to the history of law and politics. Wundt thus classies Pufendorf s work as jurisprudence while Beck treats it as politics, both writers admitting the great natural jurist to their work only eetingly, as the precursor of Thomasius, whose work they can more easily treat as philosophy (Wundt :q, .6; Beck :q6q, .8). The eect of this, of course, is retrospectively to transformthe history of philosophy into the history of metaphysics. Philosophy comes to signify the particular line of metaphysical philosophy that runs from Leibniz through Wol to Kant, and from Kant through the Romantics and Hegel into modern metaphysics, dialectics, and critical theory. The problemwith this strat- egy is that in early modern German universities what was to count as phil- osophia typically translated as Weltweisheit was itself a matter of explicit and bitter contestation. We have already seen Thomasius warning his students othe intellectualist anthropology of university metaphysics, on the grounds that its pursuit of transcendent rationality is wholly unsuited to the formation of those destined for legal and political careers. Conversely, we shall see that in defending the metaphysical conception of natural law as the transcendent recovery of the pure concept of justice Leibnizs philosophy of law is no less a polemical attempt to capture the terrain of philosophy than Thomasius. For modern histo- rians to describe the civil sciences and their enlightenment as non-philo- sophical in order to preserve the unity of a philosophical Aufklrung is thus itself both anachronistic and polemical, symptomatic in fact of the continuing struggle to capture and congure the terrain of philosophy. It is, however, the tactics of assimilation employed by post-Kantian intellectual and philosophical history that are of more immediate concern to us. There are three of these, the rst and most important of which is the dialectical method itself. By positioning metaphysical and civil philosophy as mutually opposed and mutually decient theories intellectualism versus empiricism, rationalism versus voluntarism this method uproots the conicting intellectual cultures from their historical circumstances, transforming them into subjective ideas, and preparing them for absorption into Kants discovery of the transcendental grounds of subjectivity. If this method is denitive of the classic studies by Wundt and Beck, then it remains powerfully present in the most recent historiography of the Aufklrung, particularly in the work of Werner Schneiders, Wilhelm Schmidt-Biggemann, and many of the writers associated with the journal Aufklrung. Introduction : For Schneiders, it is Thomasius and Wol who are the bearers of the opposed styles of philosophy. Treating him as the harbinger of German Brgerphilosophie, Schneiders characterises Thomasius as developing an ethical and existential style of philosophy, by limiting philosophy to knowledge benecial to mans civil life, and by grounding it in a practi- cal knowledge of the good rather than a speculative knowledge of the truth (Schneiders :q8b, 6.8; Schneiders :qqo, ::..6). Wol, on the other hand, is (not inaccurately) treated as renewing the scholastic meta- physical conception of philosophy as the recovery of the intelligible forms underlying empirical things which he modernises using Leibnizs Scotist construction of possibility in terms of non-contradic- tory concepts. Wol thus treats merely historical (empirical) knowledge as vulgar, while regarding philosophy as a rational science of the pos- sible as possible (Schneiders :q8b, 68; Schneiders :qqo, :.6). Again, the mutually decient philosophies are destined for reconcilia- tion, at rst in the Popularphilosophen who mix Thomasian civics and Wolan metaphysics without transcending them and then in Kant, who transcends the oppositions by turning history itself into the ground of rational possibility (Schneiders :q8b, 8q). At rst sight, Schmidt- Biggemanns version of this history would seem closer to our own; for he treats the metaphysics of Leibniz and Wol and the Brgerphilosophie of Thomasius as indicative of rival conceptions of Aufklrung, the one oriented to intellectual self-clarication, the other to social improvement (Schmidt-Biggemann :q88a, ). Such is the power of the dialectical method, however, that Schmidt-Biggemann is forced to treat these phi- losophies as mutually decient the former failing to ground reason in history, the latter failing to ground historical reform in reason pointing towards Kants reconciliatory conception of history as the arena for reasons unfolding in time. If the rst tactic of assimilation thus involves converting civil philos- ophy into a subjective theory destined for absorption by the Kantian dialectic, then the second involves the deployment of an epochal peri- odisation based on this supersession. This periodisation identies the leading gures of civil philosophy, Pufendorf and Thomasius, as repre- sentatives of the early Enlightenment (Frhaufklrung) rather than of a rival enlightenment hence as destined to be eclipsed by or folded into an evolving mature, high, or late Enlightenment, identied with the advent of Kantian philosophy. In Schneiders standard version, the supposed dominance of Thomasian voluntarism in the rst two decades of the eighteenth century characterises the Frhaufklrung. The :8 Introduction eclipse of Thomasius Brgerphilosophie by Wolan rationalism in the :os marks the onset of a middle Enlightenment, which peters out into the melding of Thomasian and Wolan perspectives in mid-century Popularphilosophie. Finally, the high or late Enlightenment emerges with Kants denitive reconciliation and transcendence of all prior opposed philosophies in the :8os (Schneiders :q8b). Schmidt-Biggemann has recently improvised on this dialectical periodisation in order to provide a schema for the evolution of knowledge in the early modern German university, treating the sixteenth-century university as dominated by theology and the seventeenth by political jurisprudence (Schmidt- Biggemann :qq6). Following the standard dialectical schema, however, Schmidt-Biggemann treats the reciprocal deciencies of these disci- plines theological dogmatism on one side, political utilitarianism on the other as destining them for eclipse by the philosophical university of the eighteenth-century Aufklrung. The post-Kantian assimilation of civil philosophy is completed by a third tactic: the doctrine that in recovering the transcendental conditions of experience, Kantian philosophy oats free of historical conditions altogether, and represents in fact the transcendental conditions of his- torical reality. For, if Kantian philosophy has indeed recovered the forms of experience prior to the manifestation of experience as history, then we must accept Hinskes claims that this philosophy depends on no his- torical mythos or ethos; that, as the pure work of thought itself , it is the only true vehicle of enlightenment; and that the theological and civil sci- ences are themselves only empirical outworkings of Kantian philosoph- ical concepts. It would of course be foolhardy to doubt the assimilative power of post-Kantian dialectical historiography, backed as it is by the widely held belief that Kant actually uncovered the transcendental conditions of subjectivity, or at least prepared the way for Hegels historicised version of them. Yet Thomasius attack on the intellectualist image of man con- tained in early modern metaphysics his stigmatisation of the doctrine that mans nature consists in thinking and that the welfare and happi- ness of the whole human race depends on the correct arrangement of thought already provides us with an historical anchor-point from which to preserve civil philosophy against its dialectical assimilation. For Thomasius polemical rejection of it enables us to formulate a funda- mental conjecture regarding this intellectualist anthropology: namely, that this anthropology is central not just to early modern university metaphysics, but also to post-Kantian dialectical historiography. After Introduction :q all, in purporting to pre-empt pre-Kantian civil philosophy by positing Kants recovery of the conditions of subjectivity as such, it would seem that this historiography is also committed to the metaphysical image of man as an intelligible being capable of pre-empting empirical history through transcendental self-reection. We will return to this conjecture below. For the moment, we can use it to shed some light on the three tactics of assimilation just outlined. First, its indebtedness to this anthropology helps to explain the dialecti- cal character of post-Kantian philosophical history. For in the funda- mental oppositions required and imposed by this historiography, it is possible to discern a projection of the divided lineaments of the meta- physicians homo duplex. Through its fundamental positing of man as a being of pure reason temporarily mortgaged to the experiences and inclinations of his sensible nature, university metaphysics sought to pro- gramme an ethos of intellectual self-purication and clarication. It is the normative lineaments of homo duplex that show through in the dialec- tical historians exemplary oppositions: between a pure intellectualism cut o from empirical experience, and a brute empiricism lacking insight into its transcendental conditions; between a pure rationalism incapable of providing sensible man with motivating norms, and an impure vol- untarism incapable of providing such norms with a rational basis. Not only does this clarify why dialectical historiography is driven to treat metaphysical and civil philosophy as reciprocally decient theories, it also illuminates the subjectivising tendency of this historiography. For, in making the rival academic cultures go proxy for the intellectual and sensible natures of homo duplex, this method treats them as open to rec- onciliation in thought in fact in Kants thinking of the transcenden- tal conditions of the empirical. We may propose, then, that in treating civil and metaphysical philosophy as reciprocally decient theories, des- tined for reconciliation in the Kantian moment, post-Kantian dialecti- cal historiography is less an account of the history of the rival cultures and more a practice of metaphysics by other means. There is thus good reason to suspend our commitment to the epochal periodisation based on this historiography. If civil and metaphysical phi- losophy are related not as reciprocally decient ideas but as indepen- dent cultural movements, then their history will not be a series of stages on the way to Kantianism. This applies no less to Schneiders division of eighteenth-century enlightenment philosophy into an early, middle, and late Aufklrung, than it does to Schmidt-Biggemanns allocation of theology, jurisprudence, and philosophy to the sixteenth, seventeenth, .o Introduction and eighteenth centuries, respectively. For, despite Schmidt-Biggemanns attempt to conne natural and political law to the seventeenth century, and despite Schneiders claim that Thomasian Brgerphilosophie under- went metaphysical eclipse during the :.os, Steven Lestition has shown that PufendoranThomasian natural lawcontinued to function as a key academic discipline well into the second half of the eighteenth century. Moreover, he has shown that it maintained this role in the law faculty of Kants own university (Lestition :q8q). It may indeed be that, with the Kantian capture of German philosophical faculties from the :8os, the teaching of civil philosophy was increasingly conned to the faculties of law and politics. But the fact that the civil sciences of natural and polit- ical law continued to play a key role in forming the juristic civic con- sciousness suggests that the alleged eclipsing of these sciences reects only the viewpoint of their metaphysical rival, now safely in possession of the Kantianised arts faculties. Lastly, this indicates that we should give up the view that in reconcil- ing the oppositions between idealism and empiricism, rationalism and voluntarism, Kants philosophy broke the bonds of mythos and ethos tying thought to history, recovering the conditions of subjectivity itself. This will enable us to look for the mythos and ethos of Kantian philos- ophy itself, to investigate its anthropological commitments and its ethical demands. In this way we can begin to redescribe Kantianism, as a par- ticular historical culture of the self, neither more nor less fundamental than the cultures of civil and metaphysical philosophy. It is in redescribing early modern civil and metaphysical philosophy as autonomous intellectual cultures that this book makes its own contribu- tion to the body of works on whose shoulders it stands. For, in the course of this study I augment those political and juridical histories of the civil sciences with a particular approach to the history of philosophy. This approach investigates philosophies in terms of the ascetic relation to the self they impose, and the spiritual exercises that they require. In drawing sources for this kind of investigation one may range quite widely, from Wittgensteins remark that work in philosophy . . . is really more work on oneself , to Foucaults more historically oriented comment that philosophy may be regarded as an ascesis, askesis, an exercise of oneself in the activity of thought (Foucault :q8, q; Wittgenstein :q8o, :6). Here, rather than being restricted to the narrow meaning of self-denial, the term ascetic qualies all those intellectual practices or spiritual exercises whose special role is to permit attention Introduction .: to and transformation of the self. Characteristically, histories of philos- ophy in this manner focus on the anthropologies, psychologies, and cos- mologies through which the members of specic intellectual elites acquire the capacity to take up a particular relation to themselves and their world. This is typically a relation that imbues such individuals with a conviction of their deviation from an ideal way of thought or life a relation of self-problematisation. In this way they are inducted into a particular intellectual regimen or practice of self-cultivation, through which they may reshape themselves in the image of this ideal. In a recently translated work, Pierre Hadot provides a pointer to the investigation of philosophies in terms of the spiritual exercises they impose: We have seen that, at rst glance, [the spiritual exercises] appear to vary widely. Some, like Plutarchs ethismoi, designed to curb curiosity, anger or gossip, were only practices intended to ensure good moral habits. Others, particularly the meditations of the Platonic tradition, demanded a high degree of mental con- centration. Some, like the contemplation of nature as practiced in all philosoph- ical schools, turned the soul toward the cosmos, while still others rare and exceptional led to a transguration of the personality, as in the experiences of Plotinus. We also saw that the emotional tone and notional content of these exercises varied widely from one philosophical school to another: from the mobilisation of energy and consent to destiny of the Stoics, to the relaxation and detachment of the Epicureans, to the mental concentration and renuncia- tion of the sensible world among the Platonists. Despite this variety, Hadot continues, the dierent modes of self-culture are joined by commonalities of form and function: Beneath this apparent diversity . . . there is a profound unity, both in the means employed and in the ends pursued. The means employed are the rhetorical and dialectical techniques of persuasion, the attempts at mastering ones inner dia- logue, and mental concentration. In all philosophical schools, the goal pursued in these exercises is self-realisation and improvement. (P. Hadot :qq, :o:) While successfully applied to ancient philosophy (Annas :qq; Brown :q88a; Brown :q88b; Nussbaum :qq; Rabbow :q), this approach has not been widely exploited in the broader history of philosophy. There is, however, at least one study of late medieval university metaphysics in these terms, which will constitute an important resource for us (Thomassen :q8). There are also some important kindred discussions of early modern Stoicism and Epicureanism (Kimmich :qq; Kimmich :qq; Osler :qq:), and we might add Oestreichs account of Lipsian neo- Stoicism to the same series (Oestreich :q8.). Until now, this approach has not been applied to Kantian philosophy. .. Introduction Notwithstanding their disparate topics, and despite some signicant dierences in method and emphasis, these studies are joined by a common historiographic approach to the investigation of school phi- losophies. They treat the anthropologies, psychologies, and cosmologies contained in such philosophies as reexive ethical instruments that is, as means by which individuals are inducted into new existential relations to themselves and their world rather than as quasi-scientic theories of the subject or the cosmos. In short, these studies investigate philosophies as paideia rather than as theoria. As such, they open the door to a funda- mentally non-Kantian approach to the self, treating this not in terms of a subjectivity transcendentally presupposed by experience, but in terms of one historically cultivated to meet the purposes of a particular way of life. As a-rational modes of fashioning persons for envisaged circum- stances, philosophical anthropologies formed the link between academic philosophies and the larger religious and political forces that converged on the early modern university. In attacking his metaphysical rivals, Thomasius thus focuses on their intellectualist anthropology. For he regards it as implicated in the sacerdotalism of the confessional state, and as inimical to the juristic civic consciousness he sought to form via his Epicurean anthropology. In focusing on the uncontrollable passions rather than a quasi-divine reason, Thomasius anthropology would allow man to be seen as a dangerous creature in need of civil restraint and political control. This cultural role of rival anthropologies is what Schmitt has in mind when, in the course of discussing competing opti- mistic and pessimistic political anthropologies, he remarks that: phi- losophy and anthropology, as specically applicable to the totality of knowledge, cannot, like any specialised discipline, be neutralised against irrational life decisions (Schmitt :qq6, 6o). It is by attending to the self- formative functions of the rival philosophies and anthropologies that we shall thus come to understand the manner in which their rivalry was informed by larger historical conicts, in particular that over the desa- cralisation and resacralisation of politics. This shifting of the methodo- logical axis of the history of philosophy enables us to identify six themes that will be central to our study of the conict between civil and meta- physical philosophy in early modern Germany. First and foremost, it enables us to place the rival moral anthropolo- gies in a single space of historical description, thereby acquiring the neu- trality needed to treat them as objects of historical investigation. We shall encounter several such anthropologies. In Pufendorf s natural law we discover a political anthropology of man as a creature whose violent Introduction . passions threaten his capacity for sociality, thereby necessitating the creation of a sovereign power capable of imposing the rules of sociabil- ity as law. Leibnizs practical philosophy, however, is grounded in his Platonic monadology, treating man as an intellectual soul capable of participating in the divine intellection of the substances, and thereby perfecting himself through contemplation. Following in Pufendorf s footsteps, Thomasius quasi-Epicurean anthropology of passional man necessitates an ethics of self-restraint and a jurisprudence of sovereign command. Finally, in Kants anthropology of mans dual intelli- giblesensible natures, we encounter a further elaboration of the meta- physical homo duplex, driving Kant to construct an ethics and politics in terms of mans self-purifying recovery of his self-governing rational being. In none of these instances shall we be approaching the relevant anthropology as a philosophical theory that might be true or false to the moral nature of the human being. Rather, each anthropology will be investigated as an ethical instrument capable of impelling individuals to relate to themselves as beings possessing a particular nature this being the precondition of their fashioning selves suited to dierently envisaged worlds. By treating the various anthropologies as optional and equiva- lent means through which certain individuals forge the relation to the self that is, as dierent forms in which individuals cross the threshold of subjectivity and learn to deport themselves as subjects of particular kinds we suspend all normative commitment to them. Instead, we regard them as instruments for the cultivation of particular intellectual deportments, whose historical circumstances, purposes and distribution are matters of historical investigation and description. Second, by placing the notion of enlightenment in this methodologi- cal context we can provide an appropriate grounding for the theme of rival enlightenments. For this recontextualisation suggests that enlight- enment refers to a condition of the self attained and valorised through the spiritual exercises of a particular ethos. In this regard the worldly self-restraint and indierence to transcendence of the Epicurean jurists has just as much claim to be considered enlightened as the exalted par- ticipation in divine intellection of the Platonic metaphysicians. All notions of the Enlightenment may be regarded as nominalisations of the adjective qualifying those who are deemed enlightened. In its turn, enlightened is the self-valorising term that the members of a particu- lar philosophical school apply to themselves in honour of their attain- ment of a particular comportment of the self, regarded as an ideal way of thought or life. For this reason we must give up the post-Kantian . Introduction notion of a true enlightenment, characterised by the enlightenment of enlightenment, or the recovery of a basic set of philosophical ideas absorbing and unifying the dierent forms of enlightenment (Hinske :qqo; Schneiders :q; Stuke :q.). In fact, this notion which presumes that the Enlightenment consists in rational beings recovery of its own forms of intellection may itself be regarded as a variant of the meta- physical enlightenment. For it is designed to drive scholars to dissatisfac- tion with diverse empirical-historical enlightenments, impelling them to posit a unifying origin in the work of thought, and thereby participate in a higher form of intellection. Since the :q8os, having recognised that their central period-concept was too indebted to the vision and ethos of a particular group, the historians of religion have been relegating the concept of the Reformation in favour of a history of multiple waves of confessionalisation (Schilling :q88; Schilling :qq; Zeeden :q8). Perhaps it is time for intellectual historians to move in the same direc- tion, to dissolve the monolithic Aufklrung into histories of the diverse enlightenments sought within particular early modern intellectual cultures. Third, attending to the self-formative functions of the enlightenment philosophies provides an appropriate setting for a theme long discussed by historians of theology and, more recently, by cultural and intellectual historians: namely, that there is no sharp break between these philoso- phies and Christian theology, and no epochal shift from a religious age to a secular age of reason (Grnder and Rengstorf :q8q). For a long time it has been held that the Aufklrung witnessed the progressive eclips- ing of theology by philosophy a progressive secularisation of thought and society typically seen in Kantian terms as human reasons recov- ery of its capacity for autonomous self-legislation. More recently, however, historians have begun to show how deeply enmeshed enlight- enment thought remains in religion, both at the level of the problems it was confronted by, and the intellectual instruments it used to solve them. Challenging the view of Pufendorf and Thomasius as secular statists, Detlef Dring has renewed attention to them as lay theologians, preoc- cupied by the problems of confessional division, and deeply indebted to a certain kind of Protestant spiritualist theology for their solutions to these problems (Dring :qq.; Dring :qq8). If the civil philosophers thus reveal an unexpected debt to a certain kind of theology, then the depen- dency of so-called early modern rationalism on a dierent kind of theol- ogy is perhaps even more surprising. Yet a number of studies suggest that metaphysical rationalism (Leibniz, Wol, Kant) is inseparable from a Introduction . specic theological anthropology (Honnefelder :qqo; Kondylis :q8:; Sparn :q86; Thomassen :q8). This is one that gures forth God as a pure mind spontaneously intelligising the conceptual forms of things, and man as the sensibly aected rational being capable of partial par- ticipation in this intellection, giving rise to the gure of homo duplex. Rather than signifying an epochal break with religion and theology, therefore, the rival enlightenments represented two divergent attempts to recongure religion, using opposed theological means. In drawing on voluntarist theology to place the divine mind beyond human reason hence beyond credal formulation and civil enforcement the civil phi- losophers sought to conne salvic religion to private life. For their part, in oering rational explications of the central Christian mysteries, the metaphysical philosophers regarded their natural theologies as new moral theologies for public life, shifting the locus of salvation to meta- physics itself. The divergent ways in which the two intellectual cultures addressed the religious question were thus deeply informed by the opposed anthropologies in which they were grounded. Fourth, if, however, attending to the ascetic grounding of the rival enlightenments reveals their theological dimensions, then it simultane- ously holds the key to understanding their secularising roles. This is par- ticularly the case for civil philosophy. Through its voluntaristtheological exclusion of transcendent intellection from the domains of ethics, poli- tics, and jurisprudence, Pufendoran natural law eected a profound detranscendentalising of civil governance. For this allowed politics and the state to be conceived solely in terms of the worldly preservation of a being with mans empirical (social but vicious) nature, to the exclusion of all concern with his morality and salvation (Tully :qq:). We have already indicated that in this profound reconstruction of practical philosophy, the civil philosophers were the bearers not of a general phil- osophical rationalisation of society, but of the specic kinds of secular- isation eected by political science and political jurisprudence (Heckel :q8; Kriegel :qq). In this regard their kind of secularisation diered decisively from that of the metaphysical philosophers. For, rather than restricting religion to the private sphere in order to eect the desacral- isation of politics, Leibniz, Wol, and Kant all attempted to provide a secular equivalent for religion in the form of their own natural theol- ogies through which they hoped to provide a moral basis for a resac- ralised state. Shocked by the central political construct of the early modern civil sciences the secular security state the metaphysicians sought to preserve their conception of a world still governed by the .6 Introduction transcendent justice of the heavenly city. They did so by refurbishing a longstanding Christian conception of political order the gure of the church as the kingdom of God on earth thereby initiating a power- ful anti-political, anti-juridical theory of society. Fifth, we are now in a position to appreciate the key role played by the discipline of natural law (Jus naturae, Naturrecht) in organising the conict between civil and metaphysical philosophy. As a sub-branch of theology treating of mans natural knowledge of the moral laws inscribed in human nature by the creator natural law reached back to the great scholastic systems, yet had been refurbished by the early modern Jesuits, Vitoria and Surez, as part of the second scholasticism (Haakonssen :qq6, :.6). In the neoscholastic form imposed on it by Surez, natural law retained most of its core Thomist features, in particular the concep- tion of rights as arising from subjective moral capacities (mans rational and social being) whose teleological completion forms the purpose of civil laws and the basis of political sovereignty (Tierney :qq, o::). In thus treating civil rule as if it were grounded in a higher moral order, neoscholastic natural law was perfectly suited to the politicaltheologi- cal conception of society as church, providing the basis, for example, of Surezs defence of the Popes power to determine the heretical status of Protestant princes. It was precisely this politicaltheological role of neoscholastic natural law that led Hobbes, Grotius, and Pufendorf to transform it from within. By replacing the Aristotelian anthropology of mans rational and social being with an Epicurean conception of man as a passion-driven self-destructive being, and by using a voluntarist theology to exclude theo-rational conceptions of justice from the civil domain, the civil philosophers literally (Hobbes) or in eect (Pufendorf) identied natural law with the commands of the civil sovereign (Wyduckel :qq6). Moreover, they did so not just in order to immunise Protestant princes against religious subversion by political Catholicism, but, more importantly, to allow the state to oat free of all religious claims on its civil authority (Dring :qqb). It was not only Catholic political theologians who therefore attacked the natural law of Pufendorf and his follower Thomasius. As we have seen, Pufendorf s detranscendentalised natural law provoked heresy accusations from Lutheran theologians such as Alberti, who continued to elaborate neo- scholastic versions, not least to defend the civil powers of the church against the fundamental attacks of Hobbes and Pufendorf (Palladini :q8). As a result, seventeenth-century German universities provided the battle-ground for two modern doctrines of natural law: the civil Introduction . natural law of Grotius, Hobbes, Pufendorf, and Thomasius; and the Christian natural law of Althusius, Alberti, Prasch, Veltheim, Placcius, Rachel, and, most famously (restrospectively), Leibniz, who attacked the civil philosophers from the high ground of Protestant scholasticism (Schneider :q6). This intellectual civil war provides one of the central instances of the conict between the two enlightenments. Finally, we are in a position to observe that if the rival enlightenments were not competing theories evolving towards their Kantian Aufhebung, that is because they were in fact competing ways of conguring the pow- erful religious and political forces that converged on the early modern university. Civil philosophy, we have noted, was not so much a philo- sophical doctrine as a series of attempts to provide a small group of civil sciences political jurisprudence (Staatsrecht and Staatskirchenrecht), Bodinian sovereignty doctrine, civil law with a conguration suited to the formation of a juristic civic consciousness. For its part, university metaphysics may be regarded as a series of attempts to congure a largely dierent group of academic disciplines theology, Roman law, logic, ethics in accordance with the Christian metaphysical view of the world as a unity arising from its (divine) intellection; that is, to provide a conguration suited to the formation of a metaphysical supra-civic con- sciousness. In each case the cultivation of a specic academic ethos was central to the undertaking. Through the metaphysical anthropology of homo duplex that permitted them to explicate the Christian mysteries and reveal the pure concepts of morality and justice underlying the civil order the university metaphysicians cultivated a particular intellectual purity and prestige. On this basis, they claimed the authority to limit the governance of the earthly city in accordance with the laws of its divine archetype, thereby advancing the interests of the academicclerical estate. The civil philosophers cultivated a dierent ethos in accordance with divergent ends. Through its anti-metaphysical voluntarism and Epicurean anthropology, civil natural law enabled its bearers to separ- ate their own deepest religious and moral convictions from the formula- tion of laws aimed solely at civil security. It was thus instrumental in grounding the new doctrines of territorial sovereignty and desacralised politics in a specic intellectual deportment, one characterised by private piety and public acceptance of the civil sovereigns political supremacy. If, therefore, metaphysical and civil philosophy came into profound conict in early modern Germany especially on the terrain of natural law this was not because they represented reciprocally decient epis- .8 Introduction temologies or ethics, soon to be reconciled and transcended in Kantian critical philosophy. Rather, it was because they represented divergent cultures for conguring the relations between religious and civil govern- ance. Each was grounded in a powerful ascetic philosophy, and each was dedicated to using this philosophy to place certain academic sciences at the disposal of the state but in very dierent ways and in accordance with fundamentally dierent conceptions of politics. The studies of Leibniz and Pufendorf, Thomasius and Kant in Part ii of our essay are not therefore intended as a narrative history of early modern philosophy, governed by the theme of the progressive discovery of the laws of human reason or the autonomy of the moral subject. Rather, they are to be viewed as a series of proles outlining the manner in which these gures attempted to impose either a civil or a metaphys- ical signature on a specic array of academic sciences, each in accor- dance with a distinctive ethos, and as part of larger attempts to recongure early modern Germanys religious and political culture. Before embarking on these particular studies, however, we require an overview of the role of metaphysical and civil philosophy in the early modern German university, which is the task of Part i of this book. Introduction .q This Page Intentionally Left Blank r\n+ i Rival enlightenments This Page Intentionally Left Blank cn\r+rn oxr University metaphysics :. : i x+nontc+i ox We have suggested that, rather than representing the path taken by human reasons recovery of its own transcendental conditions, German university metaphysics was itself polemically enmeshed in the religious and political conicts of the early modern period. This chapter provides an overview of this approach to the history of German university meta- physics. We argue that in its anthropology and cosmology Schulmetaphysik gave shape not to a universal rational being, but to a particular kind of moral personage. Through his self-purifying recovery of the pure con- cepts of things, this personage was groomed for the exercise of a quasi- sacral power in the civil domain. This spiritual grooming, carried out in the teaching of metaphysics itself, created the prestige and authority required to judge civil aairs in accordance with transcendent concepts in particular, the concepts of mans rational being and the natural laws required for its realisation. One of our central concerns will be to sketch a genealogy for the prestige of enlightenment metaphysics by showing its indebtedness to seventeenth-century Protestant Schulmetaphysik. The enlightenment defence of the intelligible conditions of empirical experience, we argue, may be regarded as an historical improvisation on the neoscholastic defence of the divine intellection of the supersensible forms and sub- stances. This lays the groundwork for our non-standard approach to the metaphysical philosophy of Leibniz, Wol, and Kant in Part ii. For here, rather than viewing them as moving ever closer to the recovery of human subjectivitys transcendent(al) conditions, we treat the enlighten- ment metaphysicians as exponents of a quasi-religious ethos in which this recovery is the objective of a spiritual exercise. Needless to say, while the relation between enlightenment metaphys- ics and seventeenth-century Schulmetaphysik remains under-researched, it has not gone unnoticed. With very fewexceptions, however, this relation
is discussed in terms of metaphysics throwing oits theological past. This
view of enlightenment metaphysics as the rational subsumption of its theological predecessor can take a negative or positive form. Beck, for example, treats the neoscholastic theory of being as too scholastic and dogmatic as insuciently epistemological to function as a vehicle for autonomous human reason, hence as destined to be eclipsed by the emergence of enlightenment epistemology (Beck :q6q, :..). Petersen and Wundt, however, regard seventeenth-century Schulmetaphysik as playing a key role in the emergence of enlightenment metaphysics, through the manner in which it preserved the doctrine of transcendent rational being against the threats of English empiricism and German Pietism(Petersen :q.:; Wundt :qq; Wundt :q). Inbothcases, however, enlightenment metaphysics is viewed as the rational transcendence of its theological predecessor either as the emancipator of philosophy from theology, or as the means of their harmonisation in a rational theory of transcendent being. In other words, in both cases the history of meta- physics is seen in terms of the progressive rationalisation of human reasons (initially theological) pursuit of its transcendent(al) conditions. Before discussing this view in a little more detail, we may observe that there are prima facie reasons for thinking that the history of metaphys- ics is far more turbulent far more deeply enmeshed in the history of religious and political conict than such an account can allow. Here the crucial thing to observe is that with the onset of Lutheran confes- sionalisation (the Reformation), university metaphysics was targeted for elimination. Pointers to this anti-metaphysical campaign can be found in Luthers Disputation Against Scholastic Theology of ::, where we nd his wholesale rejection of the Aristotelian way: It is false to state that the will can by nature conform to a correct precept. This is said in opposition to Scotus and Gabriel . . . Virtually the entire Ethics of Aristotle is the worst enemy of grace. This in opposition to the scholastics . . . It is an error to say that no man can become a theologian without Aristotle. Indeed, no one can become a theologian unless he becomes one without Aristotle. In vain does one fashion a logic of faith, a substitution brought about without regard for limit and measure. This in opposition to the new dialecticians. (Luther :q8q, :, :6) Luthers hostility was driven in part by the key role that Scotist Aristotelian university metaphysics had played in dening and defend- ing Catholic orthodoxy against the rst waves of reform (Shank :q88). University metaphysics But it was also driven by his Occamite repudiation of the rationalist character of this metaphysics that is, of its claims to provide natural knowledge of the Christian mysteries via transcendent concepts common to God and man. From Luthers voluntarist perspective, the Thomist and Scotist programmes teaching that man could accede to knowledge and love of God through cultivation of a quasi-divine (meta- physical) reason were completely inimical to the true grounding of religion in a biblically based faith. Taken to its conclusion, Luthers rejection of the metaphysical recon- ciliation of reason and faith, philosophy and theology, resulted in the two truths doctrine. In elaborating this doctrine in his De Usu et Applicatione Notionum Logicorum ad Res Theologicus (On the Use and Application of Logical Concepts in Relation to Theological Matters, :q6), Daniel Hofmann argues that philosophy and theology give rise to irreconcilably dierent kinds of truth, on the basis of the dierence between the natural (corrupt) and regenerate conditions of the intellect that accedes to truth. This doctrine is so hostile to the metaphysical reconciliation of philosophy and theology that even modern metaphysicians attack it on sight: Common to all the scholastic metaphysicians was the rejection of a two-fold truth in fact, the metaphysical movement arose to meet the theological irrationalism enshrined in this ancient bugbear (Beck :q6q, :.). As soon, however, as we reinstate the specic anthropology under- pinning Luthers and Hofmanns position that is, the Occamite anthro- pology of fallen mans corrupted intellect and his consequent incapacity for acceding to transcendent ideas then the true character of the two truths doctrine becomes apparent. In restricting knowledge of theolog- ical truth to an intellect regenerated through faith and grace, Hofmann was not irrationally rejecting philosophy. Rather he was attempting to exclude philosophers (university metaphysicians) from the role of medi- ating the Christian mysteries, treating their rationalist pursuit of salva- tion through ascent to transcendent knowledge as incompatible with the mode of acceding to salvation through biblical faith (Schorn-Schtte :qq.). In other words, the battle over the two truths doctrine is symp- tomatic not of the role of metaphysics in the emancipation of reason from religion, but of the quasi-religious role of metaphysics itself; that is, of its role as a mode of spiritual formation in competition with the voluntarist and deist one that was central to early Lutheran confession- alism (Sparn :qq). This is the historical light in which we should view the exclusion of metaphysics from the curricula of Protestant universities in the rst Introduction decades of the sixteenth century. The University of Wittenberg (:o.) proved to be the model in this regard, with the old scholastic cur- riculum grounded in logic and metaphysics being replaced by the Melanchthonian curriculum centred on rhetoric, ethics, natural law, biblical exegesis and the Aristotelian sciences (Kusukawa :qq.). Far from representing an irrational cul-de-sac, Wittenberg was indicative of a new and far-reaching alliance between the state-building aspirations of territorial princes and the confessionalising objectives of religious acti- vists (Heinrich :q8). In fact, Wittenberg broke with the old form of the university that of an urban corporation under Imperial and Papal patent. Instead, it drew its legal form and funding from the territorial state, and its governance from a council of state ocials and religious reformers including Luther, Jonas, Melanchthon, and Bugenhagen (Scheible :q8). In this setting, Melanchthons model curriculum was required to full the same key functions as its scholastic predecessor to provide the religious and political elite with a suitably orthodox intellec- tual comportment (Kaufmann :qq, 6q8.). Melanchthon, however, could not use the metaphysics of transcendentrational being as his means of harmonising the theological and philosophical sciences into a single formative curriculum. Instead, as Kusukawa has shown, he har- nessed the (Aristotelian) natural sciences themselves to this end, teach- ing them as the key to reading the signs of Gods ordering presence in nature, and thereby maintaining the normative unity of the Christian academic curriculum (Kusukawa :qq). It is all the more remarkable therefore that during the closing decade of the sixteenth century and the opening one of the seventeenth, the banished gure of the metaphysician suddenly reappeared in the philos- ophy and theology faculties of the Protestant academy. In the Lutheran universities we can mention Daniel Cramer (Wittenberg, :q), Cornelius Martini (Helmstedt, :q), Henning Arnisaeus (Helmstedt, :6o), Jacob Martini (Wittenberg, :6o), Johann Gerhard (Jena, :6o), Balthasar Meisner (Wittenberg, :6o6), and Christoph Scheibler (Gieen, :6:o). In the Calvinist world the most prominent of the new metaphysi- cians were Rudolf Goclenius (Marburg, :q8), Bartholomaeus Keckermann (Heidelberg, :6oq), Johann Alsted (Herborn, :6:o), and Clemens Timpler (Heidelberg and Steinfurt, :6o) (Sparn :q6, q; Wundt :qq). Considering our larger concerns, the return of a full- blooded metaphysics to Protestant universities from the nal decade of the sixteenth century presents us with an important historicalintellec- tual problem. Given that the central tasks of philosophia Christiana could, 6 University metaphysics apparently, be fullled by a non-metaphysical scholasticism, what was driving the return of metaphysics to the Protestant academy almost a century after Luther and Melanchthon had shown it the door? As we shall see, the answer to this question holds the key to understanding the relation between seventeenth-century Schulmetaphysik and its enlighten- ment successor. :. . xr+\rnvsi cs \s +nr rni rosorni c\r stnstxr+i ox or +nroroov For a long time the standard answer to this question was Petersens (Petersen :q.:). Identifying metaphysics with Aristotelianism, Petersen treats its expulsion from the Protestant academy as a religious aberration that would be reversed through human reasons natural desire to uncover the transcendentrational grounds of the empirical world. This is the desire that Petersen sees behind the return of Protestant Schulmetaphysik and as ultimately nding its full satisfaction in Leibnizs metaphysical rationalism. In short, in ignoring the religious and politi- cal forces driving the banishment of metaphysics from the Protestant curriculum, and in presuming that its return represents the resumption of reasons pursuit of its own transcendent conditions, Petersens account is a typical instance of the history of metaphysics as the ratio- nal subsumption of theology. We can identify two versions of this history. According to the rst, metaphysics leads to the rational preservation of religious belief in the form of Kants recovery of the transcendental conditions of human experience and morality. Wundt and Beck oer classic histories of meta- physics written in these terms. While they dier over whether it is Lutheranism or Calvinism that contains the germs of a rational future, and while they disagree over whether reason is best served by metaphys- ics or epistemology, both of them treat Kants critical metaphysics as preserving mans longing for the transcendent in a rational form (Beck :q6q, 8o:; Wundt :q., qo::q). Similarly, Schmidt-Biggemann identies two forms in which seventeenth-century metaphysics (natural theology) preserved mans desire for the transcendent against theologi- cal dogmatism and juridical positivism. The rst of these is the neo- Aristotelian metaphysics of Surez, whose reduction of religious statements to a common language of being made it possible to treat Christs presence in the sacrament or . . . the incarnation of Christ, as problems of logic and metaphysics and in this way to show the scientic Metaphysics as the subsumption of theology character of theology and its convergence with nature and reason (Schmidt-Biggemann :qq6, :8). The second is the HermeticPlatonic metaphysics of the neo-Platonists, which locates the intelligibility of history in divinely intelligised perfections (transcendent essences of things). This, Schmidt-Biggemann argues, would eventually bear fruit in Leibnizs grounding of natural law in trans-religious and trans-confes- sional rational concepts of justice, and in Kants nal recovery of the autonomy of reason as a legal principle (.o). In characterising the cul- mination of seventeenth-century metaphysics in this manner, Schmidt- Biggemann ignores both the polemical construction of Leibnizs transcendent conception of natural law its vehement opposition to Pufendorf s political conception and the degree to which this construc- tion depended on the explicitly confessional doctrines of the Lutheran natural jurists and political theologians (Schneider :q6). We will return to this set of issues in Chapter . According to the second version of this historiography, Protestant Schulmetaphysik is less the seed-bed of Kantian epistemology and more a by-product of a truly fundamental reconciliation of theology and philos- ophy: namely, that undertaken by the Jesuit metaphysician Francisco Surez (:8:6:) at the advent of the second scholasticism. Here, Surezs metaphysics of intelligible being the sphere of timeless logical substances existing prior to their materialisation as things is made central to the harmonisation of theology and philosophy, hence to the self-development of human reason. Written under Catholic auspices, this history of early modern metaphysics brings out the (de facto) Protestant character of the Kantian one. In his early attempt to account for the success of Jesuit metaphysics in Protestant universities, Eschweiler appeals to the centrality of Surezs practical intellectual- ism, and to his conception of the intelligible ground of empirical being in particular. Scarcely mentioning the facts of intra- and extra-Protestant confessional conict, Eschweiler sees Surezs doctrine as answering the need of Protestant academics for a unifying foundation for the academic sciences, so that the return of metaphysics is driven by a need of the time or Zeitgeist (Eschweiler :q.8, .86). While paying more attention than Eschweiler to the circumstances of intra-Protestant confessional conict, Ernst Lewalter also ascribes the return of metaphysics to a purely intellectual dynamic, in fact arising fromthe tension between phi- losophy and theology. Lewalter thus depicts Protestant metaphysics as divided between a philologicalhumanist wing (Arnisaeus, Helmstedt) and a formal onto-theological wing (Scheibler, Gieen), the latter being 8 University metaphysics grounded in Surezs onto-theology of divine being and dedicated to reconstructing Aristotle for the purposes of confessional theology (Lewalter :q, .:, :). He then presents Cornelius Martini (Helmstedt) as resolving this tension, by developing a metaphysics in which God is treated as part of ontology (rather than as its foundation), but in which natural theology is not allowed to replace revealed. The ground of this reconciliation, however, remains the theory of intelligible being, which Lewalter regards as driving German metaphysics from Leibniz through Wol to Kant and the idealists (q). The most inuential rendering of this version of the history of meta- physics, however, is Charles Lohrs. Lohr posits the existence of two forms of metaphysics. On the one hand there is the neo-Platonic science of God Lull, Nicholas of Cusa, the Florentine Platonists. This meta- physics pursues the unity of philosophy and theology by treating divine intellection of the forms as the goal of a practice of philosophical con- templation in which even the unconsecrated may participate (Lohr :q88, 88). Opposed to this is the Thomistic, scholastic-Aristotelian science of being, whose subordination of philosophical to revealed knowledge of God Lohr regards as dictated by clericalism and the hier- archical nature of medieval church and society (6, 88). By presenting both versions of metaphysics as under threat from a deistic nominal- ism and an empiricist (Averroistic) version of Aristotelianism, Lohrs account organises itself around the imperative of a fundamental recon- ciliation of the philosophical science of God and the theological science of being: An approach was needed which avoided the deism of the nominalists, the secularism of the Averroists and the clericalism behind the Christian Aristotelianism of the Thomists (:). Lohr regards Duns Scotus as taking the decisive step along this path, by reconstructing the notion of innite immaterial being (God) in terms of the non-contradictory intelligising of possible things. For, in doing so, Scotus was able to free metaphysics from Aristotles physics while simultaneously maintaining the subordination of the physical world to the domain of transcendent being, which now appeared as this worlds intelligible or rational grounds (88qo). Surez is then described as completing Scotus reconciliation of philosophy and theology, which he does by superimposing the distinction between uncreated and created being on Scotus pairing of innite and nite being. This allowed Surez to distinguish real being, as the pure concepts or intelligibilia intelligised by God, from actual being, as the empirical things whose existence was wholly dependent on Gods decision to realise some of the intelligibles Metaphysics as the subsumption of theology q (6:). Lohr thus regards Surez as harmonising philosophy and theology and outanking the disintegrative forces of empiricism and deism through his new metaphysical construction of man and the world as nite beings bearing innite principles of intelligibility. Placing it in this context, Lohr treats the return of metaphysics to Germanys Protestant universities as a theatre for a smaller version of the same intellectualhistorical drama. The main dierence in the German case is that Reformation voluntarism and deism intensied the threats to Christian metaphysics arising from secular medical empiricism. These threats were nonetheless countered in the familiar way, through the adaptation of Surezs new theory of intelligible being to German circumstances: Surez work was well suited to the purposes of the Lutheran thinkers. He understood metaphysics as a general science of being and rejected the idea of an independent natural theology. He provided the philosophical basis for the treatment of the Incarnation. Most importantly, he provided a foundation for a refutation of the theory of double truth proposed by some extremist theolo- gians. Surez Disputationes describe a confessionally neutral, possible world to which all those who accepted the doctrine of creation could subscribe. (Lohr :q88, 6.q) Despite several signicant dierences therefore focused in the gap between Jesuit metaphysics and Kantian epistemology these two ver- sions of the history of metaphysics share a common core. Above all, by locating the reconciliation of theology and philosophy in the theory of intelligible being, both versions equate metaphysics with human reasons recovery of its transcendent(al) foundations. It is on this basis that they can treat the return of metaphysics to the Protestant academy as the resumption of reasons journey of self-discovery. This is the journey that would culminate in the subsumption of theology within a philosophical knowledge of the rational (intelligible) grounds of the empirical world. From here arose a confessionally neutral language for addressing the transcendent-rational intellect housed in the human subject, which would be spoken albeit in dierent dialects by Leibniz, Wol, and Kant. :. +nr nr+tnx or xr+\rnvsi cs +o +nr rno+rs +\x+ \c\nrxv We can indicate the limitations of this historiographic consensus, and outline an alternative genealogy for university metaphysics, by making o University metaphysics four observations. We can begin by observing that the return of meta- physics was driven more by the needs of confessional religion than by the destiny of reason. Salomon Geners edition of Johann Versors Epitome Metaphysicae Aristotelicae (:q:) published at Wittenberg in :q gives symptomatic expression to these needs. After complaining about the rude and ignorant students emerging from Melanchthons curricu- lum, Gener approaches his central concerns by reminding his readers that the Calviniani have used the slogan nitum non est capax inniti the nite cannot contain the innite in order to attack the Lutheran account of the communication of properties (communicatio idiomata) between Christs human and divine natures. If the Lutheran doctrine of the union of nite and innite being is to be claried and defended, says Gener, then Lutheran universities must re-embrace the discipline of metaphysics. He continues: For how disgracefully today many stumble or falter when they have to speak about principles, about causes, about the elements of something, about the nature of something, about something such as unity, being and essence, iden- tity and dierence, opposition, ground and consequence, possibility and reality, about completion, about the relation of whole and parts, about the truth and error of something or about necessity and contingency and similar questions, whether in theology or in other disciplines this we experience daily, with pain. (Gener in Lewalter :q, :) Geners complaint testies to the central force that was driving the return of metaphysics to the Protestant universities: namely, the manner in which the conict between the rival confessions was being played out in the spiritual formation of their intellectual elites. After a period of rel- atively peaceful coexistence in the rst half of the sixteenth century, the second half was marked by an intensication of the process of confes- sionalisation in various German territories, principalities, and cities. By the beginning of the seventeenth century the alliance of territorial princes and confessional theologians had given rise to archipelagoes of religiously opposed, mutually hostile states (Schilling :q88). The fact that Geners demand for the return of the theory of being was issued at the height of the confessional period, from the academic headquarters of Lutheran orthodoxy, leads us to suspect that the characteristic of meta- physics most responsible for its second coming was the spiritual author- ity that it bestowed on academic philosophers and theologians. If the Calvinist attack on the union of human and divine being was to be repulsed, and if the poorly formed Melanchthonian students were to be transformed into a philosophically literate religious intelligentsia The return of metaphysics : capable of mounting such defences, then they would have to be trained in the only discipline that permitted them to accede to the exalted domain where human and divine being overlapped: metaphysics. This observation of the confessionaltheological character of Protes- tant Schulmetaphysik provides the appropriate context in which to intro- duce Walter Sparns remarkable Wiederkehr der Metaphysik: Die ontologische Frage in der lutherischen Theologie des frhen .,. Jahrhunderts (The Return of Metaphysics: The Ontological Question in the Lutheran Theology of the Early ., th Century), to which I am indebted throughout this section. Sparns over- turning of all those histories of metaphysics written in terms of the phil- osophical subsumption of theology hinges on a single fundamental reorientation. Rather than accepting it as the goal of an emancipatory history of philosophy, Sparn argues that the reconciliation of philoso- phy and theology in university metaphysics was in fact a cultural task imposed by academic theology itself, in accordance with theological ends, and using theological means (Sparn :q6, :6:8). Sparn shows that in early seventeenth-century universities the imper- ative to reconcile philosophy and theology was formulated in theologi- cal rather than philosophical terms (:q6, ::6). Here it was argued that the disciplines must agree because of the singularity of truth, which is grounded in the self-identity of things created by a single God. This view was also reected in the two books topos the book of nature and the holy book whose interpretations must agree because they were written by the same divine hand, which makes natural and revealed knowledge into alternative ways of knowing God in his works. In fact, Sparn argues, the very distinction between natural and revealed knowledge is a theo- logical construct. For it was used to impose a highly abstract category of philosophy on a wide range of academic sciences that is, all the sci- ences deemed grounded in the unaided or natural use of mans faculties with a view to subordinating them to the one revealed science, theology. The consequences of formulating the imperative to reconcile philos- ophy and theology in theological terms can be seen in the doctrine employed to handle any conicts arising between them. Such conicts were to be treated as indicative of a personal failing in the philosopher as symptomatic in fact of the corruption and impairment of all post- lapsarian uses of the natural faculties hence as requiring correction through revealed truths: In this way, despite the principled separation of its scientic domain from that of philosophy, theology charged the philosopher in the role of the Christian philosopher with responsibil- . University metaphysics ity for proving philosophically the non-contradictory character of the limitation of philosophical principles demanded by theology (:q6, :). In short, as the academic discipline designed to maintain agreement between philosophy and theology, the objective of early-seventeenth- century metaphysics was not to rationalise theology but to keep poten- tially secular (empiricist) knowledges and their subjects within the orbit of Christian academic culture. In continuing to see metaphysics as the harmonisation of philosophy and theology, its modern historians may remain more indebted to this objective than they realise. Our second observation is that, as a para-theological discipline dedi- cated to conguring academic sciences in accordance with Christian culture, university metaphysics was itself subject to profound confes- sional division. We can gain some insight into the character of this divi- sion through a text of Christoph Scheibler. Scheibler belonged to the Gieen school of Lutheran theology, characterised by the strong uptake of Surezs theory of intelligible being in fact he was tagged the Protestant Surez. He should therefore be an exponent of Lohrs con- fessionally neutral metaphysics. This is not, however, the face we encounter in Scheiblers Foreword to his Opus Metaphysicum of :6:. In the course of dedicating his work to count Ludwig of Hessen- Darmstadt, Scheibler provides an epitome of his arguments for the necessity of metaphysics, which is worth quoting in full: In any case, it will be recalled that Boethius tells how at the Nicenian Council everyone said that in Christ there are two natures and one person, but no-one knew what this one person was. And from this ignorance regarding the concept of person it then came about that some said it was the three persons of the divinity while others would not say this. Hence it is clearly very necessary that metaphysics contain a doctrine in which it explained what a suppositum or persona generally is. Equally, the wise will have often inquired into the dierentiation of the three persons of the Godhead. Damascenus said they diered only in relation to our [human] knowledge; others responded that they were really dierent. What does it mean though: to dier in relation to our knowledge (ratione) or really (realiter)? Again, one can only discover this through metaphysics. If, further, divine providence comes into consideration then often with it come the expressions necessity and actuality (contingentia). If, though, the meaning of these expressions is not correctly recognised, then not only the infal- libility of divine foreknowledge, but also the freedom and actuality of human decisions, can only be inadequately analysed. In the doctrine of the sacraments sign is spoken about often enough. From whence though should one know what a sign (signum) is, if not from metaphys- ics? Once this is known though then all the stupidities of the Calvinists collapse The return of metaphysics together; because the sacraments are not, as the Calvinists teach, bare tokens (signa nuda) but have a signication (signicant). Hence therefore when, in relation to the eucharistic bread and body of the Lord, sign (signum) is spoken of, one is to understand by this that the body of the Lord is present (while they think that he is only in heaven). In the conicts with the Socinians (Photiniani) over the Trinity, arguments must often be developed from the nature of such things as cause, innity, indi- vidual and universal, simple and composite. Only metaphysics though explains what all these are. Further, after Luther had restored the priesthood to its original condition, the church was brought into grave tumult through the opinion of Flacius Illyricus, who claimed that original sin is the substance of human nature and not just an accidental attachment. The error arose from the fact that Flacius knew nothing of the details comprehended in [the expression] accidental attachment (accid- ens). (Scheibler in Lewalter :q, o:) Despite the assurances of modern historians regarding the confes- sional neutrality of Surezs doctrine of intelligible being, we nd that this doctrine was itself caught up in bitter and often bloody theological conict. Scheiblers view is that a metaphysics of intelligible being is nec- essary because only those possessing the true (Lutheran) version of it will be able to destroy the false Calvinist doctrines regarding the union of Christs two natures, the Trinity, predestination, the mode of Christs presence in the eucharistic host, and the character of original sin. Rather than emerging as a confessionally neutral way of addressing the domain of intelligible being, it would appear that the language of meta- physics was being forged in accordance with rival theological viewpoints. In his discussion of the conict between Lutheran and Calvinist meta- physics, Sparn treats them as two opposed ways of conguring the rela- tion between innite intelligible being and nite human being, representing in fact two opposed ways of relating theology and philoso- phy. For Sparn, Lutheran metaphysics which he expounds largely through the works of Balthasar Meisner and Jacob Martini of Wittenberg is characterised by a particular disposition of its general and special parts (Sparn :q6, :.8q). General metaphysics, which Abraham Calov named Ontologia in :6o, deals with being in general, including divine being. Special metaphysics deals with the three kinds of being divine, cosmic, and human eventually giving rise to the three sub-disciplines of rational theology, cosmology, and anthropology. The distinctiveness of Meisners and Martinis Lutheran construction of general metaphysics lies in their stress on the unbridgeable gulf between Gods radically autarkic innite being and mans radically dependent University metaphysics nite being. This is a gulf so great that it cannot even be spanned by human concepts, which means that God can be understood as a being or substance only in an analogical sense (analogia entis). Here, in the ana- logical application of philosophical concepts to God we nd a charac- teristic expression of the joining of philosophical and theological perspectives, and Sparn comments that: In consciousness of the conver- gence of these perspectives, metaphysics assumed not only the terminol- ogy of creation doctrine but also the attitude of pietas (:q). The Lutheran construction of general metaphysics or ontology thus meant that divine being could only be analogically included under human concepts. But, conversely, it also meant that to the extent that God was known in ontology then he appeared in a purely (Aristotelian) scientic manner as the physical cause of motion his divine nature remaining inscrutable to natural philosophy. Meisners and Martinis refusal to allow natural knowledge of the divine nature in ontology or general metaphysics is not, as Beck has argued, a symptom of Lutheran anti-intellectualism (Beck :q6q, :.8). Rather, it indicates that they reserved this knowledge for the domain of special metaphysics. Here it would occur not through natural philosophical means, but via the medi- ation of the gulf between the human and the divine that only Christian theology may perform in fact via the gure of Christ, whose two natures form the nexus between divine and human being (Sparn :q6, :.8). Sparn thus characterises Lutheran metaphysics as consisting of a dualist or analogical general part where the conict between logic and Christology could be treated as symptomatic of the gulf between human and divine understanding and a mediational special part, where this conict would be overcome not in philosophy but via a meta- physical theology and sacramental actions (:). Despite the fact that he discusses it largely as a foil, Sparn argues that the Calvinist metaphysics developed by Keckermann, Timpler, and Alsted took a very dierent form to the Lutheran. According to Sparn, by drawing on a monistic Platonic conception of the intelligibility of divine being, this metaphysics denied any absolute gulf between human and divine being (:q6, :q). In treating creation in terms of the divine beings intellection of the essences, Calvinist metaphysics could view humans as participating in the divine intellection of the universe in a natural or philosophical manner. This was made possible by their residual possession of an uncorrupted spark of the divine intellect their rational being which was regarded as the source of mans imago Dei or God-likeness (:88q.). For Calvinist metaphysicians, therefore, The return of metaphysics general metaphysics or ontology was also natural (philosophical) theol- ogy approximating in fact to the rational theory of intelligible being that modern historians identify with metaphysics as such. Hence, Sparn argues, rather than reserving knowledge of the divine nature for Christian theology, Calvinist metaphysics began to treat philosophy itself as a kind of theology (:q.). It taught that the metaphysician himself could rise to a quasi-sacral knowledge of God. This would take place through such Platonic practices as anamnesis the contemplative remembering of the divine minds continuous sub-conscious thinking of the forms of things; or via the contemplative ascent from empirical appearances of things to the pure intellection of their forms or intelli- gences. Through these practices Calvinist metaphysics prepared the ground for enlightenment rationalism. Our third observation concerns the manner in which a philosophical theology (or theological philosophy) emerged from the hybridising of Christian mysteries and philosophical concepts in metaphysics. If the way in which Schulmetaphysik formulated the relation between philosophy and theology was determined by conicting theologies and ecclesiolo- gies, then this refurbished metaphysics simultaneously provided these conicting theologies and ecclesiologies with philosophical articulation and armoury. From this reciprocity between its theological and philo- sophical organs, university metaphysics gave birth to a philosophical theology. Here, the rational explication of the Christian mysteries was accompanied by a profound theological investment of philosophical concepts and doctrines, such that philosophical theology was always theological philosophy. This process took place through the continuous elaboration of a series of conicting theologicalphilosophical doctrines in the crucial areas of Christology and soteriology as the rival con- fessions battled to delineate Protestant orthodoxy and to groom its intel- lectual bearers in the university. The crucial forms of these doctrines are clearly visible in Scheiblers list. What is not so clear is the degree to which the early-seventeenth-century metaphysical explications of the Christian mysteries would ow into the philosophical theologies of the enlightenment rationalists. In order to prepare the ground for our sub- sequent discussion of this question, we shall draw on Sparn for three key instances. We have already mentioned the rst of these, the rival metaphysical elaborations of the doctrine of Christs two natures and one person. This doctrine was central to all the Christian confessions; for it was through the sacramental union of Christs human and divine natures 6 University metaphysics that the churches could oer mediation and redemption to the faithful, making the gure of Christ into such an intense object of worship and speculation (Baur :qq.). University metaphysics entered the domain of Christology in order to reconcile a conict with Paduan logic. This arose because Christs saving oce requires the transfer of essential properties between his two natures (communicatio idiomata), which entails the a-logical doctrine that a single supposite or person could be the bearer of two conicting sets of dening properties or natures. Sparns erudite discussion of this problem focuses on the conicting solutions proposed by Lutheran and Calvinist metaphysicians, in accordance with their rival Christologies (Sparn :q6, 66). Briey, Lutheran metaphy- sicians such as Meisner insisted that Christs natures should be under- stood as two distinct substances at the philosophical level in order to posit their perichoretic union involving the complete reciprocal exchange of divine and human properties in the concrete perfor- mances of the incarnation and eucharist. Conversely, Calvinist meta- physicians taught that Christs true substance was his divine nature or Logos. This meant that he assumed his human nature accidentally for the purposes of its regeneration a solution more in keeping with the standard logic of substances and dening properties. For our present purposes, however, it is not the dierences between the rival metaphysical Christologies that matter, but the manner in which they both give rise to a moral anthropology oriented to personal unity. For, in tying moral regeneration to the unication of the persons divine and human natures, these Christologies gave rise to a redempti- vist conception of personal unity that would ow directly into the meta- physical ethics of Leibniz and Kant. Sparn has thus argued that the central contours of Leibnizs monadology the relation between the monads active rational soul and the passive corporeal body to which it is attached may be seen as a generalisation of the Lutheran metaphys- ical conception of Christs two natures (Sparn :q86). Even more point- edly, however, we shall see that Kant makes extensive use of the gure of Christs two natures and one person in order to give shape to his con- ception of moral regeneration (see 6.6.: below). In fact Kant superim- poses the Christological doctrine of Christs divine and human natures onto the metaphysical doctrine of mans noumenal and phenomenal natures, thereby conceiving of moral renewal as a kind of secular spiri- tual rebirth taking place via philosophy within the person. We nd a similarly unsettling continuity between Christian and ratio- nalist metaphysics in our second instance of doctrinal elaboration that The return of metaphysics occasioned by conicting theologies of Christs mode of presence in the eucharistic host. Here a longstanding problem that of accounting for Christs simultaneous presence in a foreign substance at dierent times and places was exacerbated by the replacement of Aristotelian physics with a new cosmology: the GalileanNewtonian conception of the uni- verse as a set of spatio-temporal relations between physical bodies. In his discussion of this issue, Sparn concentrates on the manner in which Lutheran metaphysicians defended their conception of Christs real presence in dierent places simultaneously the so-called ubiquity doctrine against the Calvinist conception of a merely symbolic pres- ence in the host (:q86, 6:). Meisners solution was to draw on pneu- matological and eschatological doctrines, in particular those associated with the non-spatial presence of the body in the soul, and of gloried bodies in space during the time of the apocalypse. This enabled him to declare that the property of lling space (extension) was accidental for bodies rather than real, while simultaneously reconceiving place in a non-spatial manner, via the notion of relations within a spiritual com- munity. He could thus defend the doctrines of real presence and ubiq- uity by appealing to the capacity of Christs gloried body to suspend the accident of lling physical space, thereby being present everywhere in the community of immaterial beings. For our present concerns, the striking feature of this defence is the manner in which it gives rise to a doctrine that would be central to enlightenment metaphysics: namely, the doctrine of the subjectivity of space and time (Beck :q6q, ::). In order to maintain Gods real pres- ence in the physical universe thereby preserving it as the locale for redemption Meisners pneumatology and eschatology permitted him to treat the spatio-temporal localisation of physical bodies as imagi- nary. By this he meant that it arose fromthe manner in which their sub- stantial (immaterial) relations appeared to beings possessing mans sensory apparatus. Leibnizs metaphysical explication of trans-substan- tiation in his (posthumously titled) Systema Theologicum (:686) shows how directly this conception passed into rational philosophical theology. For here Leibniz dedicates his metaphysical physics his doctrine of unex- tended point forces that give the appearance of occupying space due to their impenetrability to the same end as Meisners pneumatology and eschatology. He seeks, that is, to treat Christs occupancy of the euchar- ist host as the accidental manifestation of his immaterial substance in the spatio-temporal world (TS, :.8). Leibnizs metaphysics of the eucharist through which he hoped to restore the divided confessions to 8 University metaphysics rational unity may thus be regarded as an updating of the initial Christianmetaphysical attempts to preserve the redemptive potential of the universe against its Newtonian spatialisation (Fouke :qq.). We may suggest that Kants doctrine of the subjective character of space and time his conception of the Newtonian universe as the formin which a non-spatial community of intelligences appears to a creature with mans sensibility constitutes a similar act of preservation, as Wundt has argued in detail (Wundt :q., 8:q, qo::q, .oo:). Here we witness the sprouting of modern anti-empiricist philosophies, dedicated to the transcendent(al) conditions of experience, from their Christianmeta- physical seed-bed. Our third and nal instance of the elaboration of philosophical theological doctrine takes place in the metaphysics of morality. Here the problem confronting seventeenth-century Schulmetaphysik was not the clash between logic and Christology, or physics and cosmology, but that between pagan ethics and Christian moral theology. Sparn argues that this problem was focused in discussions of sin and evil. If Aristotelian ethics employed a purely negative conception of evil as the privative failure to realise the good or perfection contained in the entelechy of all things then Christian theology regarded evil quite dierently: as a positive choice by originally sinful man to transgress Gods holy law (Sparn :q6, :o8o). Through its conception of original sin as the transcendent predisposition to break divine law, the Christian concep- tion of radical evil is opposed to all pagan (Stoic, Epicurean) concep- tions of a morally indierent human nature; for these treat ethical attributes as imposed in accordance with earthly interests or civil pur- poses. According to Sparn, the Calvinist and Catholic metaphysics of morality adopted the Platonic ontological view of evil, in terms of the corrupting eects of matter and esh on mans rational soul. From the Lutheran perspective, this view not only threatened to reduce moral theology to ethics by deriving sin and redemption from mans philo- sophically accessible ethical substance it also negated free will and responsibility, mortgaging mans moral fate to the predestined corrup- tion of his moral being. Lutheran metaphysicians like Meisner sought to avoid these consequences by treating the corruption of mans sensible nature as itself the product of a free choice to transgress Gods law, while simultaneously treating this choice in a quasi-Aristotelian manner as the failure to realise the perfection of mans rational soul. Once again, we are less concerned with the detail of these early- seventeenth-century conicts than with the fact that they gave rise to The return of metaphysics q doctrines that would remain central to the enlightenment metaphysics of morals. This applies in particular to the Lutheran metaphysics of evil. Lutheran metaphysicians treat evil not primarily in terms of mans corrupt sensible nature, but in terms of the transcendent choice that brings this nature into being, through a ruinous qualication of mans rational faculties. Setting aside the apparent circularity of this doctrine for why would the rst humans choose evil unless their natures were already corrupt? we may observe that it remains central to the meta- physical ethics developed by both Leibniz and Kant. As we shall see in more detail below (..), Leibnizs discussion of evil in his Theodicy moves within precisely the same pattern of thought, attempting to show how a rational being, predisposed to evil by its corporeal embodiment, might nonetheless freely choose the corporeal nature that predisposes it to evil (Riley :qq6, 8). Similarly, we shall see that Kants metaphys- ics of radical evil is an improvisation on the same gure of thought (6.6.:). Signicantly, both philosophers invoke mans transcendent pre- disposition to evil in order to attack the indierentist conception of mans moral nature contained in the Epicurean anthropologies of the civil philosophers. They do so not because of a more profound insight into the nature of morality, but in order to defend the Christian meta- physics of morality against an anthropology that would place the deter- mination of good and evil at the disposal of civil purposes and powers. In short, through its philosophical explication of Christian doctrine, seventeenth-century Schulmetaphysik gave rise not to a rational (desacral- ised, detranscendentalised) philosophical theology, but to one that pursued the sacralising ends of Christian metaphysics via other enlight- ened means. It did so by providing its enlightenment successor with a Christological conception of homo duplex, as a morally self-redemptive being; an anti-empiricist and redemptivist conception of the subjective character of the spatio-temporal world; and with a transcendent con- ception of good and evil, designed to outank the civil determination of ethics in terms of mans worldly need for peace and security. We shall return to these issues in Part ii. We are now in a position to signal our fourth and nal observation regarding the historiography of metaphysics as the rational subsump- tion of theology. This concerns the quasi-religious intellectual deport- ment of the metaphysician and the spiritualsocial prestige attaching to it. At this point however we must depart from Sparns remarkable history of Protestant Schulmetaphysik. For despite his observation of the attitude of pietas attaching to metaphysics through its proximity to theology, and o University metaphysics despite his comment that Protestant scholasticism corresponds to a determinate shaping of religious life (:q6, .o6), Sparn can provide no clear account of metaphysics as a quasi-sacral ethos. As a result of his own commitment to Lutheran dualist metaphysics whose distinctive feature is to reserve the crucial mediations of divine and human being for Christian theology Sparn can only regard self-sacralising philo- sophical attempts at such mediation as indicative of the collapse of Christian theology into an ersatz philosophical theology or theoso- phy: according to the Lutheran framework there is no Christian meta- physics that mediates theology as philosophy (:q). This leads him to treat the notion that metaphysics might itself perform a sacralising role as indicative of a crisis in Lutheran theology, one that it passed through on its way towards a more universalistic and scientic conception of its subject and object (Sparn :qq.). Conversely, he regards the monis- ticPlatonic character of Calvinist metaphysics as predisposing it to just such a self-sacralising conception of its role. For Sparn, it is this quasi-Platonic character typied in its treatment of the world as con- taining the divine perfections in a form open to philosophical intellec- tion that transforms Calvinist rationalism into the progenitor of enlightenment rationalism, signalling the end of Christian metaphysics (Sparn :q6, .oq). A quasi-sacral understanding of its role is, however, far more deeply and generally embedded in early modern university metaphysics than Sparns account can allow for. In placing divine being beyond the reach of the corrupted human faculties, all versions of metaphysics were a means of giving shape to the personage who would overcome this cor- ruption through self-clarifying, self-purifying spiritual exercises. Despite manifold dierences, the entire spectrum of metaphysics is indebted to a single fundamental gure of thought: namely, that the gap between divine and human being (or the intelligible and sensible worlds) can only be closed by a person whose purication of his own humansensible nature qualies him for participation in quasi-divine intellection. Through this gure of thought we see the fundamental and ineradicable dependence of metaphysical knowledge on the ascetic formation of its bearer. This formation, which merges intellectual and moral purity, is dependent on the core metaphysical anthropology of homo duplex the gure of sensibly embodied intelligible being whose role is to induce the longing for transcendent intellection. It was through this practice of intellectual self-culture that is, by par- ticipating in a rite of speculative self-purication deemed to qualify them The return of metaphysics : for quasi-divine intellection that university metaphysicians acquired the spiritualsocial prestige needed to explicate Christian mysteries, and to advise those seeking to govern Christian states. This, after all, is pre- cisely why Thomasius identied university metaphysics with sectarian philosophy, urging law students to repudiate its core anthropological doctrines: That Gods nature consists in thinking. That mans nature consists in thinking and that the welfare and happiness of the whole human race depends on the correct arrangement of thought . . . That the will is improved through the understanding. That it is within human capacity to live virtuously and happily (SEG, 8). In order to clarify this role of metaphysics as the ethos of a quasi-sacral estate, and thereby complete our fourth observation, we must turn to another source. :. +nr xr+\rnvsi c\r r+nos Post-Kantian history of philosophy prides itself on accounting for the transition from metaphysical to anthropological constructions of reason, treating this as symptomatic of reasons progress from its theo- centric origins to the full recovery of its autonomous grounding in man. In approaching it as an ethos, however, we discover that metaphysics is itself deeply anthropological; for, no matter how theocentric its concep- tion of rational being, metaphysics remains a discipline for grooming man in the image of this conception. This shifting of the axis of histor- ical analysis is, of course, the direct outcome of our approaching philos- ophies via the anthropologies they presuppose and the spiritual exercises they require. In this setting, what matters is not the content of the image of rational being whether this is restricted to God and the pure intel- ligences, or extended to mans own higher intelligence but the self- formative use to which the image is put; for in each case the bearer of this rational being will be man, as he carries out the exercises designed to reshape himself in this image. It is in seeking to clarify the role of university metaphysics as an intel- lectual paideia that we briey break the bounds of our early modern focus, in order to take advantage of a remarkable study of Albert the Greats Metaphysics Commentary. In doing so, we seek not to posit doctri- nal continuity between late medieval and early modern metaphysics, but to uncover the roots of university metaphysics as a distinctive culture of the self. Beroald Thomassens study of Alberts commentaries on Aristotles metaphysics and ethics oers invaluable assistance in this regard (Thomassen :q8). It provides an outline of a metaphysical . University metaphysics culture or Lebensform an ensemble of doctrines and disciplines dedi- cated to a mode of spiritual grooming which we shall nd surfacing time and again through the entire history of university metaphysics, albeit of course in a wide variety of forms. Indeed, we shall be return- ing to Thomassens study in order to help elucidate the sense in which Kants metaphysics of morals may also be regarded as a form of spiri- tual grooming (6..). At the heart of Alberts construction of academic metaphysics is the reciprocal relation established between knowledge of its object and per- fection of the intellect that knows. Metaphysics is the highest form of knowledge because its pursuit bestows the highest form of perfection of which the human intellect is capable, its participation in the divine; while physics and mathematics only perfect the intellect in its temporal and spatial forms, respectively. As Albert formulates this in his Metaphysics Commentary: through metaphysics we accede to that true wisdom of phi- losophy, which perfects the intellect according to the degree that some- thing divine exists in us; in the same way that natural science perfects the intellect so far as it is bound to time, and inclined to the continuum [space], to the extent that it is perfected by instruction (Albert in Thomassen :q8, q, fn. ::o). This is the basis on which Thomassen eects the fundamental methodological shift lying at the centre of his study. It allows him to show that Alberts exposition of the foundations of metaphysics is not grounded in concepts thinkable by a generic human subject. Rather, the pursuit of foundations takes place instead through a construction that ties the concepts of metaphysics to the moral condition of the being qualied as their bearer: The grounding of metaphysics, which . . . is a constitutive element of metaphys- ics itself, is not simply aimed at the exposition of a logically and factually coher- ent system of metaphysical basic concepts concepts suited to comprehending the object domain of metaphysics in a subject-independent manner and to demarcating it from the object domain of other sciences. The grounding of metaphysics asks more generally for the enabling of metaphysics as a science whose bearer is man, and is to this degree anthropocentric. (Thomassen :q8, :.) Thomassen argues that Albert constructs the possibility of metaphys- ics through a complex set of doctrines regarding the nature and relations of divine and human being (:q8, .q). According to these doctrines, which Albert elaborates through an Averroistic paraphrase of Aristotles Metaphysics, God exists as a pure intellect spontaneously thinking the forms of the intelligible world. He is related to man by virtue of the fact The metaphysical ethos that man, despite being an embodied creature, also possesses a pure intellect, or at least the potential to realise one. In fact mans intellect is regarded as the substantial form or telos of his being, itself emanating from the divine intellect. This means that the completion of mans intellect, through the discipline of metaphysics, signies both the perfec- tion of the human being and its partial return to God. This metaphysical anthropology is indispensable for understanding not just the grounding of metaphysics as a science, but also the model- ling of the intellectual deportment whose grooming lies at the heart of metaphysics as an academic culture. According to Albert, metaphysics is founded in mans desire for knowledge of it; but this subjective ground- ing also has an objective dimension, as the desire arises from the onto- logical dierence between the divine and human intellects. The divine intellect diers from the human one by virtue of the fact that it is pure active intellection (Thomassen :q8, 666). Unhampered by the passive or receptive faculties characteristic of the human, the divine intellect knows things by bringing them forth from its own thinking, creating the intelligibles or substantial forms of all things through reection on itself, which means that the divine intellect creates and encounters the world through spontaneous self-reection. The sponta- neous activity of the divine intellect is linked to its perfect simplicity, for this allows it to have direct intuitive knowledge of the simple (non- embodied) substances the intelligibles that arise from its intellection of them. The human intellect, though, beshadowed through its combina- tion with space and time, and complexied through its possession of passive receptive faculties, is incapable of knowing the intelligible forms directly in their simple non-embodied state. It encounters them instead only as they have been scattered through space and time in material things (6). The human intellect is thus discursive rather than intui- tive. It must use syllogistic and other forms of argument to pick its way through the scatter of phenomena, gradually and painstakingly synthe- sising knowledge of the intelligible principles of the world, which are known to the divine intellect through instantaneous and eternal self- reection. As Heimsoeth has argued, this fundamental oppositional elaboration between the divine and human intellects provides the basis for the distinction between the active and passive intellect in Leibnizs monadology, and for Kants distinction between noumena and phenom- ena (Heimsoeth :q6b; Heimsoeth :q6; Heimsoeth :qo). Given that the intelligibles or substantial forms are in fact the object of metaphysics as a science constituting the domain of being as being University metaphysics prior to its embodiment in the specic kinds of being which are the objects of the particular sciences then the divine intellect must be the true bearer of metaphysical knowledge. Indeed, Albert says that God contemplates himself in metaphysics. At the same time, though, because he too possesses the spark of an active intellect, man is also capable of metaphysical knowledge, even if he must, for the most part, be satised with it in the approximate form suited to his discursive faculties (Thomassen :q8, o:). The condition of man attaining this knowledge is that he purify his intellect of its attachment to the sensory forms of space and time. He achieves this through the practices of abstraction and speculation, the three speculative sciences (Aristotelian) physics, (Euclidean) mathematics, and metaphysics constituting in fact a hier- archy of ways of perfecting the human intellect (q). In other words, the human intellect accedes to metaphysical knowledge only to the degree that it transforms itself into an approximation of the divine. Man only comes to grasp the simple non-embodied substances to the extent that he participates in the simple divine intellect that emanates them (6). Abstraction and speculation in metaphysics thus assume the form of spiritual exercises, representing a work of self-purication performed by the intellect on itself. Three features of Thomassens account are of particular signicance for our conjectural outline of the culture of university metaphysics. First, the reciprocal relation between the knowledge of metaphysics and the spiritual or moral constitution of its bearer means that metaphysics is always shadowed by a particular moral anthropology. In Alberts Aristotelian version this reciprocity is focused in the gure of the sepa- rated or non-embodied substantial forms. For these are both the object that man strives to know in order to have access to being as being; and they are also the principles that make everything knowable, to whichman accedes only by perfecting his own substantial form, his intellect. Of course, the particular character of this reciprocity betweenthe metaphys- ical subject and object alters when the Aristotelian substantial forms are replacedby the Scotist treatment of being interms of the divine intellects non-contradictory intelligising of possibilia, some of which it then wills into actual existence (Mhle :qq6). But this does not alter the fundamen- tal ascetic reciprocity between the object and subject of metaphysics. For, in Scotist metaphysics, it remains Gods simple, spontaneous, and intuitive intellect that is responsible for the non-contradictory intelligising of the possible concepts; and it is still mans duplex, sensibleintellectual subjectivity that must be puried through abstraction in order to qualify The metaphysical ethos it for knowledge of this object (Honnefelder :qqo, :oo8). Seen in this light, Sparns distinction between Lutheran and Calvinist metaphysics the former insisting that the limits of the human intellect preclude its philosophical participation in divine intellection, the latter arguing that suchparticipationis possiblefor asuitablypuriedintellect does not rep- resent the dierence between a truly theological and a merely theosoph- ical metaphysics. Instead, it points to a confessional variation in the anthropology being used to congure the intellectual deportment of the metaphysician. Second, the manner in which the metaphysical anthropology ties the knowledge of its objects to the moral constitution of its bearer also holds the key to the disciplines ascetic or self-transformative character. Albert regarded the gap between human and divine intellection as the enabling condition of metaphysics. By separating mans natural desire for knowledge from its satisfaction, this gap creates the need for a specically metaphysical knowledge that is, for knowledge of things in the pure form in which they emanate from the divine intellect (Thomassen :q8, 6). Through the teaching that only God has full possession of metaphysical knowledge, man comes to know himself as the being who seeks this knowledge and whose perfection lies in its attainment. For, unless metaphysical knowledge were inaccessible to man, he would not desire it (68). This is why Albert says that meta- physics is founded in wonder the impact of mans ignorance on himself which causes him to turn from the practical to the theoretic life, as the only way of overcoming his decit (6.). For Albert, of course, mans desire for metaphysics comes ultimately from God, whose perfect contemplative felicity makes his condition the most desirable possible. From a properly historical perspective, however, it is the paideia of metaphysics itself inculcated in religious or academic institutions dedicated to grooming the spiritual elite that is responsible for inducing the desire for metaphysical knowledge. It does so by imbuing its novices with a view of themselves as beings cut o from divine intellection by the sensible embodiment of their intellects. Through this anthropologically induced pathos, apprentice philoso- phers are disposed to relate to themselves as beings whose true selves lie in the pursuit of metaphysical knowledge. This mode of relating to themselves in turn impels their adherence to metaphysics as an ethos; for it leads them to treat the discipline of metaphysics as the means of pur- ifying their sense-aected intellects, hoping thereby to realise the pure one in which the intelligible forms of the world will be revealed. We may 6 University metaphysics pause to observe how profoundly this alters our understanding of Kants doctrine of the inaccessibility of noumena the intelligibles created through divine intellection to human understanding. We should regard this doctrine neither as if noumena were real entities lying beyond human intelligence (the metaphysical interpretation), nor as if they were null posits designed to restrict reason to empirical experience (the phenomenalist interpretation). Instead, we can treat the inaccessibility of the Kantian noumena as the latest variation in a longstanding paideia designed to induce the pathos of metaphysical longing and the ethos of intellectual self-purication. This paideia continues to work its magic even on todays philosophers (Holzhey :qq8). Finally, in tying human perfection to the characteristic life-activity of the metaphysician, the self-transformative function of university meta- physics gives rise to a particular claim to moral and social authority. Here, in defending the vita contemplativa as the highest form of life on the basis of Aristotles subordination of civil well-being to contemplative happiness Albert again pregures a key tendency of the whole culture of university metaphysics. Thomassen argues that the Aristotelian hier- archy of forms of life is based on the fundamental distinction between activities undertaken in order to realise some end and those undertaken for their own sake. Perfect happiness arises only from the latter kind of activity; for, by being its own end or good, such activity depends upon no goods outside itself, thereby unifying all the goods and becoming autarkic (:q8, :o6). Contemplation is the only activity of this kind, which means that contemplative happiness is the highest possible and the contemplative life the most virtuous, as man is perfectly happy only when he possesses all the virtues. Civil happiness though arises from activity undertaken in accordance with a single virtue: prudence (:q8, :o8). Prudence is the form of all the civil virtues, as it is the principle of acting to realise some end, typically the political and commercial ends of civil life. The man of justice or polit- icus perfects the virtue of prudence, and his role is to realise the civil security required for the man of wisdom or philosophus to pursue the true end of humanity, speculation. Despite the fact that prudence plays a nec- essary role in providing the personal and social tranquillity required for speculation, it cannot be compared with the summa of the virtues in con- templation, which means that civil happiness is only a preparatory stage for contemplative happiness. This is because, through theoretical activ- ity, the higher part of the soul is enlightened by the active intellect, per- mitting it to touch the domain of the intelligences, thereby perfecting The metaphysical ethos man. Prudential activity and civil happiness, though, are viewed as prod- ucts of the lower or unenlightened part of the rational soul, governed by the ends of useful action in the civil world (:oq:o). Here we can see the genesis of the entire line of anti-consequentialist, anti-civil moral and political philosophy from Leibniz through Wol to Kant and beyond whose hostility to civil prudence is grounded in the self-sacral- ising cultivation of contemplative autarky. With this account of metaphysical anthropology as an instrument for the spiritual grooming of a contemplative intellectual elite, we com- plete our fourth and nal observation on the history of metaphysics as the philosophical subsumption of theology. We have argued that the return of metaphysics to the early-seventeenth-century Protestant uni- versity was driven by the exigencies of confessional conict rather than the need to recover mans rational being. Rather than responding to a rational need for the unity of philosophy and theology, it imposed this unity in conicting ways at the behest of confessional theologies. Further, rather than bequeathing a rational philosophical theology to the Enlightenment, the philosophical explication of the Christian mys- teries in Schulmetaphysik gave rise to natural theologies in which the ends of Christian metaphysics would be pursued via rationalist means. Finally, in grasping that the metaphysician returned to the academy not as the subject of reason but as the bearer of an elite self-sacralising culture, we have begun to grasp the source of the authority wielded by this personage. We shall conclude our overview of university metaphys- ics with a few remarks on this last topic. :. rori +i c\r xr+\rnvsi cs In responding to the account of the return of metaphysics as a purely rationalphilosophical phenomenon, we have begun to show its role in the confessionalpolitical circumstances of early modern Germany, concentrating on the cultural authority claimed by university philoso- phers as a particular estate. By cultivating insight into the transcendent concepts and laws of a divinely intelligised universe, metaphysically trained philosophers could present themselves to bishops and princes as uniquely able to discern the true ends of church and state. At the same time, the reciprocity between religious and civil discipline in early- seventeenth-century cities and states provided political metaphysicians with a context well suited to the reactivation of this ostensibly ancient form of spiritualpolitical authority. In this religiously charged political 8 University metaphysics environment in which conicts between Empire and territorial state were deeply informed by those between opposed confessional-political estates university philosophers could seek to shape civil governance in accordance with their quasi-sacral role as Christian philosophers. This is, of course, a highly idealised portrait. In seeking to provide it with concrete historical anchorage by briey discussing the Politica (:6o) of Johannes Althusius we encounter all the diculties of attempting to clarify the signicance of abstract thought in highly ramied historicalpolitical circumstances (Althusius :qq; Friedrich :q.). Althusius was a political philosopher rather than a university metaphysician and, as Robert von Friedeburg has shown, his Politica rep- resents a sophisticated attempt to congure the political relations between the Empire and the territorial estates (Friedeburg :qqq). Nonetheless, without dissenting from Friedeburgs account, we may observe that Althusius relies on several leading Calvinist metaphysicians and theologians, including Keckermann, Zanchius, Aretius, Ursinus, and of course Calvin. Moreover, as Sparn has argued, in providing an overarching theological ordering of the contents of politics, ethics, and jurisprudence, Althusius Politica is a characteristic instance of confes- sional Schulphilosophie (Sparn :q88). In the Preface to the third edition we thus nd Althusius arguing that: I claim the Decalogue as proper to political science insofar as it breathes a vital spirit into symbiotic life, and gives form to it and conserves it, in which sense it is essential and homogenous to political science and heterogeneous to other arts . . . No one denies, however, that all arts are united in practice (Althusius :qq, :.). This theological framing of politics, however, is only a pointer to Althusius central politicalmetaphysical construct: his concept of uni- versal symbiotic communion (communio symbiotica universalis). In stressing his dierence from those, like Bodin, who locate sovereignty in the prince and the supreme magistracy, Althusius insists that it resides in the universal consociation or the people. For Althusius, sovereignty comes from the associated people because the conservation of their welfare, which forms the end of politics, arises not from the exercise of princely power, but from the communication of rights and capacities in univer- sal symbiosis: Universal symbiotic communion is the process by which the members of the realm or universal association communicate every- thing necessary and useful to it, and remove and do away with every- thing to the contrary (:qq, ). By grounding political right in a communion of the people that is simultaneously spiritual and material, Political metaphysics q the Politica achieves the integration of religious and civil governance, which is the hallmark of confessional political theologies: Universal symbiotic communion is both ecclesiastical and secular. Correspond- ing to the former are religion and piety, which pertain to the welfare and eternal life of the soul, the entire rst table of the Decalogue. Corresponding to the latter is justice, which concerns the use of the body and of this life, and the ren- dering to each his due, the second table of the Decalogue. In the former, every- thing is to be referred immediately to the glory of God; in the latter, to the utility and welfare of the people associated in one body. These are the two founda- tions of every good association. (Althusius :qq, ) This metaphysical grounding of right and law in the spontaneous spiritual and physical communication between community members holds the key to Althusius political and religious doctrines. It allows him, for example, to include both tables of the Decalogue in his conception of natural law, on the grounds that this law expresses the fundamental forms of spiritual and civil communion of the symbiotes. Further, it also permits him to insist on the superiority of this theologically informed natural law over the civil law propounded by jurists and princes: For there is no civil law, nor can there be any, in which some- thing of natural and divine immutable equity has not been mixed. If it departs entirely from the judgment of natural and divine law ( jus natu- rale et divinum), it is not to be called law (lex). It is entirely unworthy of this name, and can obligate no one against natural and divine equity (:qq, .). Finally, and most importantly, Althusius metaphysical conception of political community lies at the root of his construction of popular sove- reignty. For it allows him to argue against Bodins political jurispru- dence and Machiavellis reason of state that supreme political power comes not from the sovereigns role in securing social peace, but ows instead from the symbiotic community, as the means by which it enforces the forms of its spiritual and civil communion (). Given his desire to ground political sovereignty in a morally associated people, and given their desire to nd precursors for a rationally grounded democratic sovereignty, it is not surprising to nd post-Kantian philo- sophical historians embracing Althusius in these terms. Beck, for example, while acknowledging a moderate degree of religious intoler- ance in the Althusian polity, sees the concept of political symbiosis as a naturalistic expression of Calvinist rationalismthat anticipates theories of the secular democratic state (Beck :q6q, :68). Similarly, Schmidt- Biggemann regards Althusius conception of natural law as anticipating the enlightenment subordination of positive Staatsrecht to a higher moral 6o University metaphysics law, even if the confusion of moral and religious community in the con- fessional period proved an obstacle in this regard (Schmidt-Biggemann :q88b). Historians of political thought have begun to show how inaccu- rate this viewis, particularly given Althusius use of popular sovereignty as a means of defending the political rights of the territorial estates against those of the Empire (Friedeburg :qq8; Skinner :q8o). Given our interest in Althusius as a political metaphysician, however, our attention is focused on the manner in which the concept of symbiotic communion superimposes the religious on the political community. In this regard, it is crucial to observe that Althusius symbiotic com- munication is grounded in the metaphysical concept of the spiritual community and the religious gure of the communion of the saints in Christs mystical body. Althusius account of the role of the provincial religious estate (Geistliche Stand) shows just how tightly these conceptions bind the religious and civil concerns of the Politica: A collegium of pious, learned and most weighty men from the collegia of pro- vincial clergymen, elected and commissioned by common consent, represents the sacred and ecclesiastical order. Entrusted to this collegium is the examina- tion and care of doctrine, of public reverence and divine worship, of schools, of ecclesiastical goods and of the poor. Indeed, the care of all ecclesiastical busi- ness of the holy life in the entire province is entrusted to it in order that all the saints may unite for a common ministry, and constitute one mystical body. (Althusius :qq, ) If the conception of symbiotic communion permitted Althusius to ground sovereignty in moral community, then it simultaneously allowed him to conceive of a civil exercise of religious authority, designed to conform the fallen civil community to its spiritual archetype. This merging of religious and civil discipline is particularly apparent in his account of the provincial presbyters, to whom is assigned the adminis- tration of ecclesiastical things that is, the administration of things other than the word and sacraments for holding the saints together, for the work of the ministry and for building up the body of Christ. He con- tinues: Upon the presbyters rests especially the care of those things that have been insti- tuted for arousing repentance in the brethren and for conserving discipline. Therefore, together with bishops, who are properly called presbyters, they preside over censorship of morals. Their oce is also to observe that ministers perform their duties, and to disclose errors, schisms, scandals, and public neces- sities to the ministers for the purpose of producing prayers and repentance. (:qq, 6) Political metaphysics 6: It is also on this basis that the presbytery receives from God the power of the keys by which the kingdom of heaven opens and closes (). Writ large, the Politica provides a political theology for the Protestant territorial state of the pre-Westphalian period. It seems likely, however, that its concrete political correlate is to be found in the governance of the Imperial city-state, jointly ruled by councillors and presbyters. In fact, in the Calvinist city-state of Emden, where Althusius held the position of Syndic or chief magistrate from :6o to :68, we nd a practice of pres- byterial governance strikingly like that outlined in the Politica. Heinz Schillings research in the Emden presbyterial archives gives us some sense of the way in which Althusius programmatic identication of spir- itual and political community was played out in historical reality (Schilling :q8q). In showing howthe city presbyters used ex-communica- tion (the power of the keys) to punish a wide variety of civil misdemea- nours drunkenness, ghts between neighbours, sexual transgressions this research shows that it was in fact the circle of communicants that formed the model for the political community. Breaches in the moral purity required for holy communionthus led to disqualicationfromcivil association. Inshort, while Althusius sought an appropriate guration for the governance of the city and the state, his Politica was grounded in the political metaphysics of the church, as the kingdomof God on earth. By grounding civil authority in moral community, the political meta- physics of universal symbiotic communion allowed Althusius to attack Bodins purely politicaljuridical conception of sovereignty. But this metaphysics simultaneously committed him to using civil authority in order to enforce moral community. As we noted in the Introduction, in attacking political metaphysics Thomasius alleged just such a homology between the merging of theology and the civil sciences in sectarian phi- losophy, and the merging of religious and civil power in the confessional state. It was for this reason that civil philosophy emerged as a profound repudiation of all forms of university metaphysics, Catholic and Protestant, secular and theological. 6. University metaphysics cn\r+rn +vo Civil philosophy .. : i x+nontc+i ox In the Foreword that he wrote to the rst German translation of Grotius De Jure Belli ac Pacis (:o), Christian Thomasius was in no doubt about who the enemy was. In outlining the damage done to law, ethics, and politics by scholasticism, he begins with the four books of Peter Lombards Sentences, attacking them for oering a philosophical explica- tion of Christian doctrine: It is likely that in these four books Lombard attempted to unite the doctrines of Augustine and Aristotle; [for] the whole work contains a mish-mash of theol- ogy and philosophy. The Holy Scriptures are explained in accordance with the principles of pagan philosophy. In ethics and natural law the old stupidities are advanced. Lombards book was the sta and rod of the theology faculty, over which the theology professors fought in their glosses, just as the jurists fought over their Corpus juris. If scholasticism corrupted religion, then it simultaneously gave rise to philosophical sectarianism among those purporting to oer the one true metaphysics of faith: Because their explanations were not of a single opinion and yet each claimed to be right, various sects arose among these orthodox scholastics, including the Albertists, the Thomists, the Scotists, and the Occamists, among whom the rep- utation of Thomas Aquinas overwhelmed the rest. [Aquinas] not only wrote a commentary on Lombard but also a new system of theology, which led many to later forget Lombard in order to write commentaries on Thomas, as we nd with Thomas de Vio Cajetan, Bartholomew Medina, Gabriel Vasquez and Francisco Surez. One can expect to nd nothing rational in any of these, because everything arises from subtleties, authority and from being self-opin- ionated. One also nds that doctrines belonging to ethics and natural law begin to be ascribed to the theology faculty, under all kinds of titles. (VG, :q) Further, if university metaphysics was a weapon for theologising ethics and natural law, then it was wielded in the interests of priestcraft: 6 When, however, the Pope and the clerisy were assured that Aristotelian meta- physics, physics and ethics did no harm to their glory because there is little or nothing in them that can be applied to the right use of the natural light [of reason] and in fact it rather appeared that Aristotelian philosophy increased the clerisys authority, [then] . . . physics, metaphysics, and ethics were publicly taught in accordance with Aristotelian doctrine. (VG, :6) This problem, however, was not just conned to the Catholic scholastics. Despite Luthers banishment of metaphysics from Protestant academies at the beginning of the sixteenth century, by the beginning of the seven- teenth it had returned, modelled in part on the teachings of Francisco Surez, who began to expound mystical theology in accordance with a scholastic method. As a result: In claiming that the Augsburg Confession is grounded only in this theological system, not though in ethics and natural law or in the Corpus juris, Protestant theologians and philosophers that is, all those who have to teach about the dierence between good and evil, right and wrong feel able to follow the Catholic writers in these questions of right and wrong without any inhibition . . . So it happened that also everywhere at Protestant universities, moral phi- losophy and jurisprudence were bundled together without foundation, by many sometimes opposed writers. (VG, .) Finally, if the long ruination of the civil sciences could thus be laid at the feet of a metaphysical scholasticism Protestant and Catholic then their renewal was largely the work of the jurists, political and natural. Despite their own inability to relegate Roman law in favour of modern public and natural law, the French jurists Francis Hotman and Jean Bodin should be honoured among the legists who everywhere began to defend the rights of worldly authority against the tyranny of the clergy (VG, :8). For the full detheologisation of ethics and politics, however, the learned world had to wait for the natural law of Grotius and Hobbes, and, more importantly, of Pufendorf. We shall return to Thomasius remarkable cultural diagnosis in the nal section of this chapter (..). For the moment, we can treat it as indicative of the historical self-consciousness with which the civil philos- ophers grasped their conict with metaphysical scholasticism and con- structed an alternative to it. Not only does Thomasius trace the mixing of theology and the civil sciences to the metaphysical explication of the Christian mysteries, he also identies this with the sacerdotal exercise of authority by a clerisy. Further, he is aware that the natural law doctrines that would carry an alternative civil philosophy were grounded in a juris- prudence dedicated to the defence of worldly civil authority. Regardless 6 Civil philosophy of what todays philosophical historians might say, rather than seeing the seventeenth-century return of metaphysics as the resumption of reasons journey of self-discovery, Thomasius treats it as indicative of the theological contamination of ethics, law, and politics by a clerisy bent on defending its civil power. Given the clarity with which Thomasius grasped the historical need for a civil philosophy, the great puzzle confronting its modern historian is this philosophys present obscurity. The obscurity has two main sources. Firstly, civil philosophy has been subjected to historiographies intent on reducing its jurisprudential, political, and theological charac- ter to realities of a quite dierent kind. On the one hand, it has been sub- jected to sociological histories dedicated to showing the emergence of a socially grounded democratic reason. Such histories can only under- stand the expert (politicaljurisprudential) and non-democratic (author- itarianliberal) character of civil philosophy as aberrations arising from the social alienation of reason. On the other hand, as we have already seen, civil philosophy has also undergone reduction and assimilation at the hands of a philosophical history that identies reason with meta- physical philosophy. The second reason for civil philosophys current obscurity is minor in comparison, but arises from a degree of uncertainty regarding the sources and form of its civil character. Although historians of political thought agree that seventeenth-century Germany gave rise to civil sci- ences oriented to the desacralised government of a secular state, there is signicant disagreement regarding the respective roles of law and poli- tics in this development. As mentioned in the Introduction, some histo- rians trace the desacralisation of government to its juridication, while others ascribe it to the emergence of political humanism, albeit of varying kinds. These dierences have in turn aected the manner in which historians regard the central organ of civil philosophy, the modern natural law of Grotius, Pufendorf, and Thomasius. Some, like Tuck, see this profane natural law as playing a mediating role between a political humanism oriented to reason of state and one dedicated to shaping sovereignty in accordance with the norms of civic republican- ism (Tuck :qqa). Others though, particularly Dreitzel, see natural law as a normative juridical retreat from a statist political science (Dreitzel :qqb). Finally, Heckel and Kriegel both treat natural law as the philo- sophical expression of a politics already desacralised by jurisprudence (Heckel :q8qq, ii, q6q; Kriegel :qq). It is by working our way through these positions from all of which Introduction 6 there is much to learn that we shall arrive at our account of natural law as the intellectual clearing house for seventeenth-century civil phi- losophy. In doing so we shall outline a less exclusivist treatment of the relation between politics and law. In fact we shall argue that while there was indeed a juridical detheologisation of politics, this had the paradox- ical eect of placing the sovereign above the law, by neutralising the moral-theological restraints on secular politics. The remarkable thing about the natural law doctrines developed by Pufendorf and Thomasius is that they may be regarded as reconstructing academic ethics and pol- itics in order to reect this juridical unleashing of a fully secular politics but doing so in the very discipline that had been designed to prevent this from occurring. In order to provide an appropriate understanding of the emergence of civil philosophy, therefore, we must undertake two preliminary tasks. First, we must disarm those sociological and philosophical histories whose objective is to treat civil philosophy as a defective expression of society and reason. Next, we must clarify the relation between the jurid- ical and political dimensions of civil philosophy. Then we will be in a position to grasp the full signicance of Thomasius diagnosis of his own historical situation. .. . nrntc+i oxs or +nr ci \i r: soci r+v \xn nr\sox Jutta Brckners Staatswissenschaften, Kameralismus und Naturrecht oers an account of the emergence of the civil sciences by tying them to the his- torical sociology of bourgeois society. For its part, Michael Albrechts Eklektik incorporates an account of civil philosophy in a Begrisgeschichte or conceptual history of early modern eclectic philosophy. Despite their methodological dierences, it is striking that these representatives of his- torical sociology and philosophical history both treat the (authoritarian) politicaljurisprudential character of civil philosophy as indicative of culturalhistorical failure. For Brckner this is the failure of Germany to ground its law and politics in a democratically self-governed entlichkeit or public sphere. For Albrecht it is the failure of the eclec- tic civil philosophy to ground itself in the true (a-priorisystematic) con- ditions of subjectivity. Neither is it coincidental that both histories share a similar dialectical method. For, by construing failure in terms of the misring of dialectical integration, these histories locate the (statist) politicaljurisprudential character of seventeenth-century civil philoso- phy as a blockage in a historical dynamic which is intrinsically oriented 66 Civil philosophy to a self-governing society or a self-governing reason. If, therefore, we are to reinstate the historical reality and autonomy of civil philosophy, we must show why early modern politics and jurisprudence cannot be explained either in terms of a theory of bourgeois society or in terms of a philosophy of subjectivity. Brckners account of the emergence of the early modern civil sci- ences economics, politics, jurisprudence is framed by a conception of their prior moral unity. This conception is partly institutionalhistor- ical with Brckner pointing to their scholastic treatment as branches of practical philosophy but it is more importantly socio-moral. It is central to her account that the civil sciences precipitate from the milieu of the early modern court, where they had been unied within a con- crete social ethos or way of moral life: because in and around the court, the professional and social spheres, the life-realm and the realm of eciency coalesce (Brckner :q, :oq). As for Habermas, on whose account of the relation between theory and practice she relies, for Brckner the seventeenth-century political and juristic sciences emerge from the splintering of a prior social order, in which the ends of politics and law had been embedded in moral culture and social relations. She thus regards the prudential character and expert basis of these sciences as symptomatic of the loss of their organic relation to a moral-democ- ratic public sphere (entlichkeit). In this regard at least, Brckners account joins several others that ascribe a conservative or authoritar- ian character to German culture and politics on the basis of its supposed lack of an appropriate material basis in liberal-democratic society (Epstein :q66; Krieger :q). In projecting this social theory onto the early modern civil scientists and natural jurists, Brckners account can only view them in relation to the splitting of theory and practice, and the consequent alienation of reason from the social life-world. She thus characterises the objectify- ing political science of Arnisaeus and Conring dedicated to treating the maintenance of political order as a therapeutic (non-moral) problem as symptomatic of the instrumentalising of formerly moral arts of government (Brckner :q, :). Drawing on Denzers neo- Aristotelian reading of Pufendorf, Brckner treats his natural law as damaged by the instrumentalising of politics, but as retaining a residual normativelegal character, grounded in a teleological conception of human sociability (:68). It is left to Thomasius therefore to dissolve the last fragile bonds linking politics and morality, practice and theory in the civil sciences. Drawing on Werner Schneiders inuential study of Reductions of the civil: society and reason 6 Thomasius, Brckner argues that this occurs in two stages. First, Thomasius replaces Pufendorf s moral conception of natural law (as the law of human sociality) with a purely prudential conception of it as the means to political security. Next he introduces an anthropology based in physiological facts actually, the Epicurean anthropology of passion- driven man which leads him to abandon the image of man as a ration- ally self-governing creature. In its place, Thomasius develops a purely prudential or instrumental ethics. This is grounded in the self-restraint needed for inner peace (morality), and the observance of social manners needed for civil peace (decorum), breaches of which would be punished by the law (Brckner :q, :.:). We can now see how dicult it is for histories based in modern social theory to grasp the circumstances that gave rise to early modern civil philosophy. Due to her own commitment to a socio-morally grounded political order, Brckner misunderstands the imperatives driving the early modern separation of state and society in political and natural law. In treating the uncoupling of government from moral community as symptomatic of the instrumental fracturing of the life-world, she fails to grasp its driving force: namely, the attempts by political and natural jurists to render the state independent of the fratricidal moral commu- nities that had plunged Europe into religious civil war. This, as Dreitzel has shown, was one of the central preoccupations of Helmstedt politi- cal Aristotelianism (Arnisaeus and Conring). Here the therapeutic objectication of politics represented not a lapsing into political instru- mentalism but its dicult achievement, through a protracted exercise in intellectual reconstruction (Dreitzel :qo; Dreitzel :q8). In detaching the concept of political order from moralphilosophical and natural law norms the very move that Brckner identies with the social alienation of political knowledge Arnisaeus intended to free it from the confes- sional division and conict that entered politics through these norms. Rather than expressing the social interests of a rising class of bourgeois professionals, the autonomising of political expertise in Helmstedt polit- ical science was the expression of a fundamental culturalintellectual strategy, developed as a means of desacralising civil governance. Similarly, in restricting law to the commands of a sovereign charged with maintaining social peace, decorum to the cultivation of the exter- nal manners required by social intercourse, and morality to the restraint of the passions required by inner serenity, Thomasius was not the unwit- ting representative of a bourgeois professionalism intent on monopolis- ing political expertise and privatising moral aspiration. Rather, as a 68 Civil philosophy law professor and jurisconsult to the Brandenburg-Prussian state, Thomasius was the self-conscious representative of a deep-seated cam- paign to destroy the infrastructure of the confessional politics by parti- tioning civil and religious authority (Dreitzel :qq; Wiebking :q). Thomasius juridication of politics and Epicurean privatisation of morality which Brckner identies with the bourgeois-professional fragmentation of a political public sphere thus reveal a starkly dierent face to us. Rather than representing hindrances to the emergence of a participatory civil society, they were in fact part of a strategy for the deconfessionalisation and pacication of societies that had been all too participatory. Through its anti-political and anti-juridical interpretation of the early modern civil sciences as symptoms of the alienation of political expertise from moral community historical social theory forgets just how hard won and fragile this alienation was, not to mention how indispensable. While deploying a dierent methodology, Michael Albrechts Begrisgeschichte of eclectic philosophy suers from a similar inability to grasp the historical sources and purposes of civil philosophy. At rst sight, Albrechts history of early modern eclectic philosophy encom- passes a broader scope than the civil philosophy with which we are con- cerned. Yet, because the eclectic style was dened primarily by its opposition to scholasticism, and was typically dedicated to advancing a more irenic pluralistic philosophical discourse, it actually overlaps with the domain of civil philosophy, in a manner that we shall clarify. Despite its philosophicalhistorical character, Albrechts history shares many of the features and all of the limitations of Brckners historicalsociolog- ical account. For in discussing the civil dimension of eclectic philoso- phy its anti-sectarian (anti-scholastic) pursuit of an irenic pluralistic philosophical style suited to life in a deconfessionalised civil society Albrecht deploys a familiar dialectical strategy. He treats this as the delayed or incomplete form of a systematic philosophy whose recovery of the a priori forms of subjectivity would render eclectic philosophy redundant. In adopting this telos for his history, Albrechts account is closely associated with the post-Kantian dialectical histories whose general form and limitations we have already discussed; and, in fact, several of the key dialectical historians have written accounts of eclecti- cism broadly similar to Albrechts (Holzhey :q8; Schmidt-Biggemann :qq8; Schneiders :q8a). Despite their exhaustive breadth, Albrechts materials are shaped by a single powerful dialectical schema. After characterising eclecticism as Reductions of the civil: society and reason 6q the pursuit of free choice among dierent philosophies in order to arrive at truth, Albrecht opens a fundamental opposition within it. On the one hand, he argues, eclecticism was an idea, attitude, or intellectual deport- ment (Denkart, Einstellung). This was adopted by a range of early modern philosophers, jurists, and theologians seeking to cultivate intellectual independence, usually in opposition to various forms of scholasticism and orthodoxy. On the other hand, Albrecht claims, eclecticism was also a method for discovering the truth, modelled at this time on the hypo- thetical procedure employed by the seventeenth-century experimental physicist Johann Sturm (Albrecht :qq, :8q, .., .6, .66, :8). Albrechts Begrisgeschichte is premised on the unargued (ultimately Hegelian) doctrine that for the eclectic idea to step into history as an autonomous or self-grounded concept, then it would have to be possible for the eclectic attitude to be reconciled with the eclectic method. This must occur in a manner that reconciles the formers aspiration to freedom of intellectual choice with the latters methodologically guaran- teed access to truth. Albrecht argues that such a dialectical union was not possible under the name of eclecticism. For to the extent that eclectic philosophers cul- tivated the attitude of free choice they lacked a fundamental method capable of grounding this choice in demonstrable truth, which meant that this wing of eclecticism petered out in the merely fashionable culti- vation of Selbstdenken or intellectual freedom (:qq, q, o., 8). Conversely, to the extent that eclectic philosophy did possess a method producing demonstrable truth Sturms hypothetico-experimental method then it lost the attitude of reective choice among philoso- phies, solidifying into a merely scientic certainty (:). The striking result of this procedure is that Albrecht writes the history of a concept of philosophy that never really succeeded in existing: One nds scarcely a single author embracing eclecticism who made the transition to praxis (8.). At the same time, because Albrechts history is organised around a particular philosophicalhistorical telos namely, the idea of a philos- ophy whose scientic method is simultaneously the reective recovery of the grounds of free intellectual choice it is actually oriented to a style of philosophy he regards as destined to eclipse eclecticism: the critical rationalism of the LeibnizWolKant line (o:). Albrecht thus treats the emergence of Wolan rationalism as signalling the appearance of a method that was capable of grounding the intellects free judgments in a systematic recovery of their a priori conceptual grounds. According to Albrecht, this discovery abolished the need for any merely contingent o Civil philosophy cultivation of an eclectic attitude. In absorbing the capacity for free intellectual choice into the methodological recovery of its transcendent grounds, Wols critical rationalism thus subjected eclectic philosophy to an Hegelian Aufhebung preserving it by annihilating it (.68). Thomasius civil philosophy fares particularly badly under this dialec- tical regime, falling foul of both of Albrechts strategies for denying the reality of eclectic philosophy. On the one hand, in discussing Thomasius Introductio ad Philosophiam Aulicam (:688) translatable as Introduction to Court Philosophy but also as Introduction to Civil Philosophy, given the role of the court as a metonym for civil politics Albrecht argues that while cultivating the eclectic attitude as a means of attacking sec- tarian (scholastic) philosophy, this work fails to count as eclectic philos- ophy. In developing merely empirical versions of logic and ethics, grounded in the use of concepts and norms suited to civil communica- tion and civil intercourse, Thomasius is deemed to lack the systematic method capable of grounding his eclectic comportment in philosophi- cal truth. This leads Albrecht to consign him to the ranks of the modish Selbstdenkers (:qq, q8oq). On the other hand, drawing on biographi- cal accounts of his reconversion to a biblicistic Pietism in :6q, Albrecht argues that Thomasius methodologically unsupported eclectic attitude collapses into an irrational deism, whose central document is the Versuch vom Wesen des Geistes (Essay on the Nature of Spirits, :6qq). Here, says Albrecht, Thomasius eclectic attack on the mixing of philosophy and theology in sectarian philosophy has itself become sectarian, being grounded in adherence to a neo-Platonic nature philosophy of a quasi- Paracelsan kind (oq:6). In short Thomasius occupies an exemplary place in Albrechts history because his work encapsulates the larger fate of eclectic philosophy. Both are condemned to oscillate between an anti- sectarian eclecticism whose lack of true philosophical method reduces it to a mere attitude, and a merely concrete method whose lack of transcendental reexivity reduces it to another form of sectarianism. Once again, however, we are confronted by an approach to early modern civil eclectic philosophy that misunderstands its historical circumstances and intellectual form. As we shall see in more detail below (.), Thomasius support of eclectic philosophy arose not from this modish incapacity to penetrate the transcendental conditions of subjec- tivity, but from his anti-scholastic campaign to uncouple philosophy from theology. In the Foreword to Grotius, Thomasius objection to the merging of ethics, law, and politics in neoscholastic natural law is grounded in his acute sense of its role as a prop for the power of the Reductions of the civil: society and reason : clerisy. By separating philosophy and theology in accordance with their divergent objects, and by insisting that students should be taught to choose freely among rival philosophies in accordance with the ends of human happiness, Thomasius eclecticism formed an element of his anti-metaphysical attack on scholasticism (sectarian philosophy). Rather than lacking a method, his eclecticism was based in a method of cultivating the pluralistic attitude he deemed appropriate to the discus- sion of secular knowledge. Thomasius empiricism and nominalism were thus grounded in powerful ethicalepistemological doctrines in particular the voluntarist doctrine of mans incapacity for insight into transcendent objects whose role was to ensure that politics and juris- prudence would be approached in terms of their (several) historical dis- positions and purposes. Next, we may observe that in viewing civil eclecticism from the stand- point of its failure to recover the transcendental conditions of reason, Albrechts history obscures the historical point of civil philosophys attack on metaphysical scholasticism. In assembling the various ele- ments of his Philosophia Aulica in particular those designed to preclude access to forms of transcendent reason common to God and man Thomasius was engaged in a frontal assault on university metaphysics. This attack, we recall, was driven by Thomasius conviction that the mixing of theology and philosophy in university metaphysics was com- plicit with the merging of sacerdotal and civil power in the confessional state. In what remains the best analysis of the eclectic syndrome, Dreitzel provides a helpful sketch for the context in which this attack took place: To religious confessionalism there corresponded a type of philosophical con- fessionalism in the higher educational and scientic institutions. [This was] especially pronounced in the restoration of scholasticism following the counter- Reformation monopolisation of philosophical training via the Jesuits at Catholic universities and gymnasiums. The sciences and arts were demoted, homogenised, their disciplines polemically repelled or syncretistically assimi- lated a procedure that was the less maintained the more strongly the scientic disciplines, anchored in life-practice, developed a life of their own and put into question academic philosophys claim to a total interpretation of things. In Protestant Germany, though, it was not the natural sciences that dealt the death-blow to Aristotelianism and philosophical confessionalism, but jurispru- dence together with the doctrine of natural law, under the inuence of Pufendorf. (Dreitzel :qq:, o6) Dreitzels remarks are of course entirely in keeping with Thomasius own view of his historical situation in the Foreword to Grotius. . Civil philosophy Most damaging of all, though given Albrechts treatment of eclec- ticisms Aufhebung in Wolan rationalism is the fact that Thomasius was quite familiar with Wols grounding of subjectivity in transcendent reason, but vehemently repudiated it. As we have seen, he warned his students o the intellectualist anthropology contained in metaphysical rationalism the doctrines that Gods nature consists in thinking and that mans nature consists in thinking and that the welfare and happi- ness of the whole human race consists in the correct arrangement of thought on the grounds that the cultivation of a transcendent reason shared with God was wholly unsuited to future jurists and statesmen. In arguing that Thomasius civil philosophy failed to reach the level of transcendental philosophy (in fact university metaphysics), Albrechts history is thus methodologically inimical to its object. If we recall our discussion of the role of transcendental insight in Alberts metaphysics, then we obtain a clearer view of its role in Wols. In using the promise of transcendental insight as the goal of a practice of abstractive self- purication, Wol may be regarded as refurbishing the central ethos of metaphysical scholasticism, in order to defend Schulmetaphysik against its civil opponents. If this is so, then in presuming that Wolanism marked the transition from merely historical philosophies to a properly transcen- dental recovery of the laws of reason, Albrechts history itself constitutes an apology for university metaphysics, albeit in its modern post-Kantian form. .. sotncrs or +nr ci \i r: rori +i cs \xn r\v Having sketched the limits of the social-theoretic and philosophicalhis- torical approaches to civil philosophy and the civil sciences, we may now turn to some accounts that take us closer to the merciless sobriety required to address this philosophy in its sheer historicity. These are accounts for which the political-jurisprudential character of civil philos- ophy signies not the alienation of expertise from community, but its emergence from particular expert communities. Further, for these accounts, civil philosophys emergence through opposition to various political theologies signies not its failure to reach beyond historical con- tingency to transcendent philosophy, but the historical contingency of philosophy itself. Such accounts are given not in social theory or philosophical history, but in the historiography of political and jurisprudential thought. In dis- cussing some representative instances of this historiography we shall be Sources of the civil: politics and law concerned to clarify a particular question: namely, the relation between political and jurisprudential conceptions of the desacralisation of civil governance. For this holds the key to understanding what is meant by civil in civil philosophy. In clarifying the approach of the political his- torians we shall take Richard Tucks work on Philosophy and Government .,:.,. as broadly indicative of the Cambridge school view, while Horst Dreitzels study of Henning Arnisaeus represents a characteristi- cally German approach to the empirical history of political thought (Dreitzel :qo; Tuck :qqa). For a distinctively jurisprudential treatment of the emergence of a desacralised conception of politics, we shall be indebted to several remarkable essays by Martin Heckel (Heckel :q8qq). Despite his own call for a renewed attention to modern natural law, Tucks study traces early modern civil philosophy to the intellectual tra- dition of civic humanism and the political milieu of civic republicanism (Tuck :q8). Like some other members of the Cambridge school, he looks to civic humanism for the intellectual sources of a detheologised philosophy, and to the gure of the political humanist joined to the prince through the roles of educator and political secretary for the nexus between philosophy and government (Pocock :q; Skinner :qq6). Anchoring his account in the early modern commercial republics of Northern Italy and the Netherlands, Tuck argues that it was the recov- ery of Ciceronian political humanism in these settings that allowed a civil philosophy to break away from Aristotelian scholasticism, by rein- vesting virtue in the life of active participation in the aairs of the repub- lic (Tuck :qqa, :.o). Focused in the genre of advice to the prince, and combining a liberal constitutionalism with enough scepticism about the transcendent to focus the mind on the city, this Ciceronian humanism provides the framework for Tucks account of civil philosophy. Signicantly, it is not jurisprudence that provides the tension driving Tucks history, but another formof humanism: the new humanismthat he characterises through the trio scepticism, Stoicism and raison dtat. The sources of this humanismlay not in Ciceros constitutional republi- canism but in the statist histories of Seneca and Tacitus, whose moral scepticismandpolitical pessimismfoundtheir answeringmilieunot inthe commercial republic but instates requiringextreme measures todeal with the circumstances of religious civil war (Tuck, :qqa q). Despite his descriptive treatment of scepticismand Stoicism explored via Lipsius programmefor cultivatingthedeportment of constancy requiredtoface the vicissitudes of religious civil war a certain ambivalence surrounds Civil philosophy the third termof Tucks new humanism, reason of state. For it is reason of state the sovereigns use of extra-constitutional measures to preserve the state that conicts most sharply with the constitutional political virtues of Ciceronian humanism. In relying on this inner tension between constitutional and statist political humanism, Tucks history of civil philosophy begins to assume a dialectical character. In fact the civil or desacralised politics of civic humanism is seen as oscillating between its two opposed forms. Tuck thus treats the political Aristotelians, Arnisaeus and Clapmar, as assim- ilating Tacitean reason of state to the old Ciceronian humanism. They do this via a concept of political order that allows the prince to break lower-level laws while nonetheless restraining his authority within a nor- mative constitutional order (:qqa, :.). Tuck also views the refurbish- ing of scholastic natural law by Molina and Surez in accordance with the same dialectic, treating their elaboration of metaphysical laws binding on the prince as another version of liberal humanist constitu- tionalism (:8). Finally, he regards Grotius natural law as culminat- ing in the drive to mediate the constitutionalism of republican humanism and the statism of its Tacitean rival. According to Tuck, Grotius achievement of this reconciliation in the De Indis is marked by a reciprocity between the individuals right to self- preservation and the princes right to preserve the state; for the fact that these rights are reciprocal being held together by the political contract means that the power of the state comes ultimately from the consti- tutional consent of individuals (:qqa, :6qq). Tuck concludes, however, by stressing the fragility of this reconciliation. For, after his per- sonal experience of religious persecution at the hands of the Dutch Calvinists, Grotius writings shifted focus to the theme of the need for a state-enforced religious toleration, culminating in the revised natural law doctrine of De Jure Belli ac Pacis (:6.). Here, religion is considered solely in terms of its political utility, and the preservation of the citizens also takes on a purely utilitarian character, becoming the absolute source of the states power over them (:qo.o:). With this Tacitean turn, Tuck argues, Grotius forfeits the balance between republican and statist humanism he had achieved via the natural law notion of consent. For all that can be learned from it, Tucks account of early modern civil philosophy encounters certain perspectival limits. These arise in fact from the manner in which he derives the civil character of this phi- losophy its detheologised form and secular political function from the tension between the two kinds of political humanism. For these two Sources of the civil: politics and law humanisms are in fact the loci for dierent conceptions of the secular- isation of politics: the Ciceronian one grounded in the ethics of civic participation in a constitutional republic; and the Tacitean conception grounded in the statist pursuit of social peace, using extra-constitutional means to cope with religious civil war. The play between these two sources of civil philosophys secularised character gives rise to a certain instability in Tucks history, which is the source of its two central limitations. In the rst place it leads to a signicant ambivalence in Tucks con- ception of the political. Despite his endeavour to provide a neutral his- torical contextualisation for the two kinds of humanism, there can be little doubt that the image of the Ciceronian humanist defending the virtue of political participation in the commercial republic functions as an implicit norm for Tucks history. This image represents both the normal course for the secularisation of politics, and a model for the role of political intellectuals. As a result, the statist politics designed to cope with religious civil war tend to lose their historical neutrality and appear instead as abnormal responses to extreme circumstances. In discussing Pibracs Tacitean defence of the St Bartholomews Day Massacre, Tuck remarks that it illustrates how extreme were the circumstances which called Tacitism into existence and broke Ciceros hold on human- ists (:qqa, .). This tends to prejudge the historical issue, however; for, from a purely historical viewpoint, the capacity for unbridled religious warfare is no less normal than the capacity for irenic commercial repub- licanism. Concomitantly, extra-constitutional constructions of politics in terms of the instrumental exercise of sovereign power to achieve social peace are no less normal than constitutionalist conceptions, based on the participation of citizens in the governance of the republic. To the extent that this instability over the political informs Tucks approach to modern natural law the metonymic discipline of civil philosophy then it gives rise to a parallel ambivalence in this context too. In treating Grotius natural law as slipping from a constitutionalist into a statist form under the pressure of religious oppression Tucks account tends to skew the manner in which this natural law would be taken up in the German context by Pufendorf and Thomasius. For Pufendorf and Thomasius were elaborating a civil philosophy under his- torical circumstances in which religious civil war was the norm, and in which statist conceptions of sovereignty were central to the desacralisa- tion of politics. In his Foreword to Grotius, Thomasius traces these con- ceptions not to scepticism, Stoicism and reason of state, but to a new 6 Civil philosophy form of natural law informed by positive jus publicum or Staatsrecht. In developing their versions of natural law, Pufendorf and Thomasius thus drew on a conception of the political far removed from both Ciceronian civic republicanism and Tacitean reason of state. Further, they did so under circumstances in which German political jurisprudence had already played a major role in the desacralisation of politics. In order to clarify further the role of the political and jurisprudential sciences in the formation of civil philosophy we must address both of these issues: the statist secularisation of politics arising from German political science, and the juridical desacralisation of governance arising from German Staatsrecht. As far as the role of political science is concerned, Horst Dreitzels reconstruction of early-seventeenth-century political Aristotelianism in particular the work of the Helmstedt professors Henning Arnisaeus and Hermann Conring provides a convenient starting point; for Dreitzels account of Arnisaeus diers from Tucks in a manner that is signicant for our larger concerns. Unlike Tucks Arnisaeus whose conception of political order imposes constitutional normative limits on the actions of the prince Dreitzels Arnisaeus conceives of political order as the historical form of rule or domination characteristic of a par- ticular kind of society. In fact there can be little doubt that Arnisaeus treats political order not as a constitutional order imposing normative limits on the princes conduct, but as an empirical reality whose mainte- nance constitutes the scientic end of the princes political action (Dreitzel :qo, ::6.q). That this is so is shown most strikingly by the fact that Arnisaeus justies extra-constitutional political measures includ- ing political murder if these were required for the preservation of the state (qo6). Tyranny for Arnisaeus is dened not by the breach of constitutional norms but in a quite dierent manner: namely, by the princes pursuit of his personal interests in a manner incompatible with his role as a political expert responsible for diagnosing and eradicating threats to the political order. These local facts are only pointers to the signicantly dierent concep- tion of the political or civil arising fromDreitzels account of Arnisaeus, whose fascinating detail we can summarise in three broad points. In the rst place, while the political Aristotelians were humanists in the sense of adapting classical texts and wisdomto deal withcontemporary problems, they were not humanists in the Cambridge school sense of functioning as humanisticrhetorical educators and secretaries to the prince. As pro- fessors of political science at the University of Helmstedt who were also Sources of the civil: politics and law advisors tothe dukes of Brunswick-Wlfenbuttel, Arnisaeus andConring drew their expertise not fromCicero or Tacitus, but froma combination of Galenic medical empiricism and the scientic analyticsynthetic method of Paduan Aristotelianism(:qo, 6.). Rather than being seen as virtuous participation in civic aairs, in this intellectual setting politics was understood as the expert diagnosis and elimination of pathologies threatening the political order (::6.q). Second, it may be observed that the secularisation of politics entailed by Arnisaeus discipline was not the result of a neo-pagan recovery of civic humanism. Rather, it arose from the particular manner in which his science of political order was elaborated to meet the threat of relig- ious civil war. In reconstructing politics in terms of the instrumental maintenance of any historically existing form of rule, Arnisaeus sought to render it autonomous of scholastic moral philosophy in general. In particular he sought to free politics from its Aristotelian conception as the form of rule required to realise mans moral nature or his moral com- munio. Where it is concerned with law-making for citizens or the appointment and deposing of rulers, Arnisaeus argues, then a [politi- cal] prudence directed to the public good follows neither the commands of ethics nor those of the church, because these are all exclusively polit- ical matters (Dreitzel :qo, :.). As a result, Arnisaeus was hostile to both Althusius conception of a sovereignty based in the peoples moralreligious communio, and to all attempts to ground politics in transcendent natural law whether these arose from Melanchthons Protestant natural law or from Surezs Jesuit version. In purporting to subordinate the sovereigns legislative acts to legal norms lying beyond his positive commands, natural law jeopardised the autonomy of poli- tics and the stability of the political order. Further, it threatened to allow jurists to slip their role as servants of the sovereigns positive laws and take on the mantle of moral philosopher. I believe, Arnisaeus pro- claims, that there is no more accurate distinction than that between law- making [Gesetzgebung] and legal judgment [Rechtsprechung]. Law-making is not the task of jurists but of kings and statesmen (:.). Arnisaeus thus sought to make the concept of the state independent of all moralphil- osophical and religious foundations, conceiving it as the instrument of an autochthonous exercise of political domination: We learn and teach politics not to gain knowledge through it but so that we can direct the state in accordance with its precepts . . . In its constituent elements, of those who rule and those who obey, however, that state will have been built by the statesman himself . . . The immediate end of political action 8 Civil philosophy is the state itself, because when it is set up in the right way, the human groups belonging to it live happily (:.q). The anti-democratic or abso- lutist character of Arnisaeus conception of politics was thus not a feudal hangover. Rather it was a direct consequence of the manner in which he sought to autonomise politics by expelling the church from the state, seizing that eternal ecclesiological stalking-horse the moral com- munity and transforming it from the source of sovereign power into the latters main target. Finally, we may observe that the context for Arnisaeus and Conrings elaboration of a secular science of politics was not provided by a com- mercial republic, but by one of the several political enterprises to be found in Germany prior to the Treaty of Westphalia: namely, the would- be sovereign territorial state of Brunswick-Wolfenbttel. In aspiring to the creation of such a state, specically through the territorial incorpo- ration of the imperial free city of Brunswick, the dukes of Brunswick- Wolfenbttel engaged in such characteristic undertakings as the political integration of the estates (nobility and clergy), and the cameralistic development of their territorys social and economic infrastructure (Schorn-Schtte :qq.). The founding of the Academia Julia in :6, and the appointment of the circle of humanist scholars to which Arnisaeus would belong, was an integral part of these activities. Successive dukes thus saw the university as a source of the clergy and politici required by a territorial state, and regarded the training in politics in particular as a means for the political integration of the nobility (Baumgart :q8). Dreitzel thus regards Arnisaeus secular political science whose absolute character was focused in his rejection of any contract between sovereign and citizens and his treatment of politics as a technical problem of domination as suited to the construction of an absolute state under circumstances of confessional conict. The objective corre- late of Arnisaeus profound detheologisation and instrumentalisation of politics was the transformation of Brunswick-Wlfenbuttels nobility into a political elite, one equipped with a science that would allow it to subordinate all other religious and political interests to those of the ter- ritorial sovereign (:88). Juridical and natural law doctrines, however, play only a subordinate role in Dreitzels account of the emergence of a desacralised politics, as is the case with the Cambridge school account. In Dreitzels case this seems to arise from his view that natural law in particular has been cap- tured by social theories of the political, several modern versions of which including Brckners he has submitted to searching criticism Sources of the civil: politics and law q in an important series of articles (Dreitzel :q:; Dreitzel :q; Dreitzel :q8o). In any case, it is clear that Dreitzel regards the construction of an autonomous secular conception of the political by the Helmstedt neo- Aristotelians as the achievement of a non-juridical, purely political science. Natural and positive law play a subordinate role in this setting; the former providing the exercise of power with a juridical form, and the latter being regarded as one of the regalia or royal rights (Dreitzel :qo, :88.:.). As a result, Dreitzel regards the rise of natural law doctrines in the second half of the seventeenth century especially those of Pufendorf and Thomasius as signalling the lapsing of the scientic autonomy of politics in favour of a normative theory of sovereignty (Dreitzel :q8; Dreitzel :qqb). For all that we have learned from it, however, there are several reasons for thinking that Dreitzels account overstates the role of Helmstedt political Aristotelianism, and underestimates that of jurisprudence in the emergence of a desacralised conception of civil governance. First, as Dreitzel himself comments, in addition to neo-Aristotelian political science there were several other intellectual movements seeking to con- struct the autonomy of the political in seventeenth-century Germany, including Lipsian neo-Stoic political psychology, Protestant political jurisprudence (Staatsrecht), and Pufendorf s statist natural law and political history. Without doubting Dreitzels claim that political Aristotelianism gave rise to a distinctive conception of the secular auton- omy of politics, there is no need to treat this either as pre-eminent or as incapable of joining the other modes just as Stolleis argues that Lipsian neo-Stoicism owed into the practice of Staatsrecht as part of the ethos of the political jurists (Stolleis :qqo, ..6). Second, in order to demon- strate the pre-eminence of the political over the juridical, Dreitzel has to do more than show that Arnisaeus and Conring treated positive law as the form in which the sovereign exercised rule. For, even if Dreitzel is right that utility trumped justice in this secularisation of the political, this does not explain the aptness of German Staatsrecht for such a desacral- ised exercise of sovereignty. As we shall see, this aptness had an indepen- dent source, arising from the manner in which German politics itself had been juridied during the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries. Finally, once we have done justice to the secularising work of positive political jurisprudence, then, in the chapters nal section, we shall see that Pufendorf s and Thomasius natural law was not in fact a continuation of earlier normative social theories of politics. Rather, it was an attempt to transform these theories in the wake of the detheologisation 8o Civil philosophy of politics arising from its juridication in Staatsrecht and its instrumen- talisation in absolutist political science. In order to overcome these lim- itations in Dreitzels approach, we must move from the political history of civil philosophy to its juridical historiography. In :688, as part of a wide-ranging attack on scholastic moral philos- ophy, Thomasius identied several reasons for Protestant universities to teach German jus publicum or Staatsrecht, as an academic discipline dis- tinct from Roman law. Initially, he argues, learned legists and glossators such as Bardolus and Hotman had attempted to use the Roman-law construction of majestas in order to model the new forms of territorial sovereignty which were emerging in the German Empire. This was to prove insucient: When though in our time high potentates and their ministers observed that this old method explained little, and that the Respublica Germanica, [while] bearing the title of the Holy Roman Empire, diers completely from the ancient Roman Republic, then it became necessary to separate the doctrine of public law [ Juris publici] from the profession of Justinian law [ Juris Justinian], if one wished . . . to teach it to scholarly youth (KTS, :oo:). The reasons for the teaching of the new jus publicum or political jurisprudence were however more immediate and more pressing, because they owed from its use by all parties to formulate the conduct of the Thirty Years War and the peace that ended it: When therefore during this war the parties on both sides advanced claims and arguments that were in fact largely grounded in [appeals to] the form of the German Empire, this opened the way for the scholars to apply themselves to study this more assiduously. And it helped not a little that other [scholars] sought to explicate the same arguments on the basis of their principles, through other writings and systems of public law [Juris publici] . . . When though after the Thirty Years War the electoral princes began to extend the peace treaties further and further, and through this the estates, especially the princes, appar- ently expanded their privileges; and, additionally, when through the instrumen- tum pacis Caesareo-Svecicum . . . the rights of the estates were strengthened although from both new controversies arose then many estates have consid- ered it useful that Jus publicum be taught in their universities, either privately or publicly; so that for any case arising one would have people available skilled in claiming the rights [Jura] of the high potentates through public writings. (KTS, :o) In his studies of Protestant political jurisprudence, Martin Heckel conrms and deepens Thomasius eye-witness account of the emer- gence of Staatsrecht as an instrument for the regulation of confessional conict. In doing so, he elucidates the role of positive jurisprudence in Sources of the civil: politics and law 8: the desacralisation of civil governance. At the centre of Heckels account lies the argument that this secularisation was not a symptom of a general process of rationalisation whether grounded in the Reformations division of worldly and spiritual government, the emer- gence of bourgeois society, or the gradual philosophical self-assertion of human reason. Instead, he argues, desacralisation assumed a specic and limited historical form that of juridication as a result of the fact that Protestant political jurists were forced to deal with the stagger- ing problems of confessional politics and religious civil war in the only way they could, by juridifying them (Heckel :q8, q). Heckel thus sees the desacralisation of civil governance the detheologisation of political thought, the separation of church and state, the emergence of religious toleration as the prime liberal right arising neither from a secularrational philosophy, nor from Roman law as such, but from a unique set of intellectual and historical circumstances. These were circumstances in which, once it became abundantly clear that the relig- ious wars were incapable of theological adjudication or military-politi- cal termination, Protestant jurists developed a series of measures designed to end the conicts by securing the coexistence of the confes- sions within the legal framework of the Empire. Beginning with the Peace of Augsburg in :, and continuing through to the Treaty of Westphalia in :68, the desacralisation of the Imperial framework resulting from these measures led to the formation of a non-confes- sional or supra-confessional order of coexistence between the two great confessional blocks (Heckel :q8, o). Heckel identies the central features and eects of these measures under ve main themes. First, there was an attempt to rescue the Empire from the splitting of its religious foundations by reconstituting its unity in secularpolitical terms. This attempt to salvage a political unity for the Empire from the fragmentation of the church was, however, only partially successful, as both Protestants and Catholics continued to view this unity as grounded in the notion of the one true church of Jesus Christ, which both believed themselves to be (Heckel :q8, o:). Second, the legal coexistence of the confessions was pursued through a series of measures designed to establish parity between them at the level of their representation in the key institutions of imperial govern- ance, the Reichstag and the Reichskammergericht. This mode of establishing equality between the confessions depended on a far-reaching secularisa- tion of the imperial constitution, as all of its various oces, privileges, and protections had now to be distributed in a non-confessional manner, 8. Civil philosophy in accordance with a purely instrumental political end social peace (Heckel :q6). Third, the secularisation (juridication) of political governance witnessed the emergence of a purely secular-political concept of peace, in place of the religious conception of pax Christiana. This worldly concept of peace required that excommunicated heretics be included in peace settlements such as Augsburg. It therefore gave rise to confessional neutrality between states at the level of their Imperial relations, even while allowing confessionalisation (the Jus Reformandi) to proceed unabated inside state territories, on the principle of Cujus regio ejus religio (Heckel :q8, .). Fourth, somewhat paradoxically, the sec- ularisation of the legal framework allowed a greater degree of freedom for the religious. For theologians could also accept that a purely secular legally regulated coexistence oered them the best protection from the covert undermining of their religion by rival theologians (). Finally, and perhaps most importantly for our present concerns, the progressive secularisation (juridication) of Imperial church law (Reichskirchenrecht) led to a striking relativisation of its religious content. Given that this law had now to apply to two theologically opposed confessions, its central ecclesiological and liturgical concepts could no longer be dened in terms of the existing theological systems. This gave rise to a form of ecclesiastical jurisprudence that separated itself from Catholic and Protestant church law by coming to view the governance of religion in a non-theological manner, as a purely political problem. From this secu- larised Reichskirchenrecht would grow the theologically indierent Staatskirchenrecht of Pufendorf and Thomasius (). It was indeed through this protracted elaboration of the politicallegal instruments required to deal with religious civil war that German politi- cal or public law (Staatsrecht) gradually became independent of Roman law, employing the latters categories as the scaolding for these great works of legal construction, but lling themwith contents suited to pur- poses unknown to the Roman legists (Stolleis :qqo, .68q8). This does not mean, however, that positive lawemerged as a neutral instrument for an exercise of power whose secular character arose from a utilitarian political science of the Helmstedt kind. On the contrary, through its elab- oration as a means of securing the politicallegal coexistence of the warring confessions, German Staatsrecht became the source of a specically juridical autonomising of political governance. This helps to clarify the relation between politics and lawin Arnisaeus absolutist polit- ical science and, indeed, more generally. For it allows us to see that if Arnisaeus prince exercised sovereign power in the formof positive law, Sources of the civil: politics and law 8 this was because Protestant political jurists had already detached German jus publicum from all higher-level moral and theological ends, thereby allowing it to be treated as a series of the purely instrumental commands required to achieve social peace (Schmitt :qo, :::). Rather than making a forced choice between politics and law as sources of the desacralisation of civil governance, therefore, it is more histori- cally appropriate to treat them as independent strategies converging on this end each drawing on the intellectual resources at its disposal in order to forge instruments capable of meeting the challenge to govern- ance posed by religious civil war (Stolleis :qqo, ..6). One of the striking results of Heckels research is the demonstration that many of the central features of a liberal civil society the secular- isation of war and peace, the religious neutrality of law and politics, the gradual acceptance of the permanence of heresy which accompanied the introduction of religious toleration were not the result of a line of transcendent philosophical reection whose culmination would come in the democratic natural law theories of the Aufklrung. We learn rather that they arose as unplanned consequences of a whole series of juridi- cal improvisations undertaken by anonymous political jurists seeking the politicallegal bases of social peace. Conversely, when we examine con- temporary arguments on the need to ground positive Staatsrecht in a higher natural law such as Althusius argument that unless it were founded in a natural law containing the Decalogue human society (sym- biosis) would be a beastly congregation of vice-ridden men we nd that they are in fact attempts by political metaphysicians to undo the secularising eects of political jurisprudence (Althusius :qq, :). If, therefore, positive political jurisprudence was the source of an independent juridical secularisation of civil governance and if this process of deconfessionalisation and instrumentalisation was a source of moral consequences that we now identify with the emergence of a plu- ralistic civil society then we might expect that this role of political juris- prudence would be reected in the early modern civil philosophy of Pufendorf and Thomasius. This is in fact the case. For what distin- guishes their civil philosophy from political metaphysics and what dis- tinguishes their profane natural law from neoscholastic natural law is just this fact: that it was elaborated in order render practical philosophy (university ethics and politics) capable of reecting the profound secu- larisation of religious and political culture that had been taking place in the politicaljurisprudential sphere. 8 Civil philosophy .. ci \i r rni rosornv \xn rnor\xr x\+tn\r r\v Having disarmed the sociological and metaphysical reductions of civil philosophy, and located it at the conuence of the great political and jurisprudential desacralisings of civil government, we may conclude our exposition of Thomasius Foreword to Grotius. Taking the form of a brief history of natural law, Thomasius Foreword oers us a striking insight into the cultural role and signicance that he and Pufendorf envisaged for their reconstructed version of this discipline. Nothing could be clearer, Thomasius begins, than the dierence between revealed and natural truths the former coming through faith and rev- elation and leading man to eternal beatitude, the latter arising in mans understanding and guiding him to temporal happiness: Herein lies the simple and clear distinction between theology and philosophy or between theology and the three other faculties: theology is concerned with the light of grace and teaches in accordance with it, jurisprudence, medicine, and philosophy teach in accordance with the natural light (VG, .). Yet, he continues, nothing has been more responsible for derail- ing mans natural pursuit of a long and happy earthly life than the mixing and confusion of these two kinds of truth; for from this have arisen shameful exercises of priestcraft with all their attendant misery of religious tyranny and conict. It is the scholars who have been most responsible for this grievous confusion, Thomasius argues; particularly those who inherited the pagan philosophical conception of nature and mixed it with the Christian doctrine of creation that is, the metaphysicians. Ensnared by Platonic fables, the metaphysicians not only produced a bastard philo- sophicaltheological conception of a creation divided into visible and invisible things, they also used their alleged insight into transcendent being as the basis for doctrine-mongering and religious oppression: One was not content to present Christians with errors that contradicted the sound reason and senses of normal men. Through heresy-hunting and the coercion of conscience one forced these errors on the people as nec- essary articles of faith (VG, 8). Above all it was the incorporation of Aristotelian and Platonic metaphysics in the development of scholastic philosophy that formalised this corrupting mixture of philosophy and theology, leading to the progressive ruin of ethics, statecraft, and natural law. In this regard, Thomasius Foreword belongs to the genre of histo- ries of morality, whose role in forming an intellectual bulwark for the Civil philosophy and profane natural law 8 new natural law has been investigated by Timothy Hochstrasser (Hochstrasser .ooo, ::.). In a striking instance of his analysis of the corrupting eects of meta- physical doctrines, Thomasius divides their proponents into two kinds, the orthodox (Rechtmeinenden) and the esoterics (Geheimen). The former exercise power through the public imposition of articles of faith, the latter through a secret practice of mystical spiritual direction. In pur- porting to know the divine through natural (pagan) philosophical means, each of the two forms of metaphysics orthodox Schulmetaphysik and the clandestine pursuit of mystical enlightenment amounts to a secret theology: Both therefore misuse the natural light. The orthodox do so in that they over- step the limits of reason, seeking through its powers to explain things that God has held it not necessary to reveal, overly neglecting, however, the will and its improvement. The esoterics do so in that they make the powers of the will greater than they are, and, on the other hand, diminish the light of the under- standing too much. Both complain about the pagans and pagan philosophy, and yet both are descended from pagan wisdom and its disciples. The orthodox in fact [descend] from rening Platonic disputations regarding the divine being, the esoterics though from the Platonic doctrine regarding the end of true wisdom: namely, union with God through the way of purication and enlight- enment. (VG, :.) Further, both use their secret theology to engage in priestcraft the illicit exercise of authority through the claim to privileged religious insight to the ruin of true Christianity: So everything leads either to idle speculation or enthusiasm and, thereby, simple active Christianity is forgotten. Both of them impress upon the laity that giving is more blessed than taking, although for them this means that taking is more blessed than giving. Both seek to strengthen the pretences of their doctrines through holy fraud, through the fabrication of many evidently false histories, and through false miracles . . . Finally, we can add that both classes rob their lis- teners of the right use of their God-given reason. The orthodox [do so] by binding their listeners to their formulas, the esoterics by binding them to inner inspirations. So they spread the two most grievous prejudices of the human understanding, the former [the orthodox] that of human authority, the latter [the esoterics] that of untimely rashness. (VG, :.:) Thomasius is particularly concerned with the eects of Schulmetaphysik on the civil sciences of ethics, politics, and natural law, regarding it as the source of their confessional corruption and assimilation to scholas- tic moral philosophy: 86 Civil philosophy It is certain that the [teaching of] ethics by the rst philosophers in the univer- sities founded by the Pope was so bad that, so to speak, one could not entice a dog behind an oven with it. The profession of statesman rst arose long after that. In his account of the papal monarchy, Herr Pufendorf has remarked that it belongs to the secrets of papist states either not to teach politics in the univer- sities or to do so only in accordance with the interests of the clergy. Because of this even the name of politics itself has been made suspect, and a taint of shame attached to it. More should be said about this elsewhere, because politics and natural law or ethics [Moral] which are in fact markedly dierent were often confused. (VG, :) Several brave and wise men had attempted to redress this situation among them Pierre Bayle, Hermann Conring, Jean Barbeyrac, and, most notably, Samuel Pufendorf attacking the scholastic anthropolo- gies and cosmologies and pointing the way towards a new conception of politics and natural law. Their eorts, though, have been hampered by the scholastic domination of the universities. In the law faculties the dominance of jus civile has been a retarding factor; for this has meant that the glossators have been unable to separate natural law from Roman law, and thereby provide it with the political form required by recent his- torical circumstances. Things are even worse in the theology faculties, however. For here natural law has been ensnared by the full metaphysi- cal confusion of theology and philosophy, being in eect transformed into a branch of moral philosophy and losing its civil vocation altogether (VG, .o). While Thomasius castigates the Jesuits (Vitoria, Molinas, Surez) for this corruption, he is equally scathing of the Protestant theol- ogy faculties. Here too the secret theology of Aristotelian and Platonic metaphysics had crept back in, allowing the Protestant theologians and philosophers to follow the Catholics in assimilating natural law to meta- physics and moral philosophy: As a result, at the beginning of the seven- teenth century, the doctrine of virtue and vice, or of the dierence between good and evil, of the natural law and such like, was in a wretched and deathly condition, among both the Catholics and the Protestants (VG, .). Turning at last to the subject of his Foreword, Thomasius writes that it was Grotius task and honour to begin cleansing the Augean stables of scholastic metaphysics and natural law. He characterises Grotius as a man who had himself held political oce and had experienced at rst hand the monster of religious authority. In his treatment of the law of war and peace, Grotius had been the rst to show that conicts between princes could not be decided on the basis of Justinian or canon law but Civil philosophy and profane natural law 8 only through natural law. In doing so he separated divine, universal, mosaic, and human laws from each other: In a word, Grotius was the instrument that served Gods wisdom in lifting the long-lasting confusion of natural and supernatural light by making a beginning (VG, .6). Perhaps keeping in mind the fundamental corrections that Pufendorf had made to Grotius construction of natural law, Thomasius concludes his Foreword by observing that Grotius represented only the dawning of truth from the long night of scholastic error. Modern commentators particularly those wedded to post-Kantian philosophical history have great diculty in understanding the separ- ation of knowledge and faith in Thomasius civil philosophy, or the manner in which it combines a secularising empiricism and a spiritual- istic (anti-sacramental) theology. In treating this as a failure to reconcile philosophy and theology and in treating this failure as destined to be overcome in the great line of German metaphysics running from Leibniz through Wol to Kant they overlook two signal issues. First, they fail to observe that the reconciliation of philosophy and theology actually pre-dated Thomasius; that it was the dening mark of the meta- physical confusion that he set out to destroy; and that he had carefully diagnosed the secret theology of Aristotelian and Platonic metaphysics on which this reconciliation depended. They also overlook the fact that Thomasius linked the confusion of philosophy and theology in this secret theology to the merging of civil and religious authority in confes- sional society. These were joined by the priestcraft of the theologians and philosophers, and in particular by their claim to be able to admin- ister a philosophical salvation to the laity through speculative and self- purifying access to the Platonic intelligibles. In short, far from failing to reach the transcendental reconciliation of philosophy and theology in the great line of German metaphysics, Thomasius identied this recon- ciliation with the catastrophic fusion of civil and religious governance in the confessional state. He located the nexus between university meta- physics and the monstrosity of a religious state in the exalted deportment of the academic theologians and philosophers the clerisy who pur- ported to govern others on the basis of their access to a domain of pure intellection. In fact, the reshaping of the relations between the civil sciences and theology which lay at the heart of Pufendorf s and Thomasius natural law arose not from their philosophical failure but from the failure of uni- versity philosophy; that is, its failure to comprehend the profound trans- formation in the relations between civil and religious governance that 88 Civil philosophy had already been achieved in the domain of politics and jurisprudence. The comprehension of this transformation was to be the task of the civil philosophy developed by Pufendorf and Thomasius, in particular of their refashioned natural law. Rather than signalling their failure to become metaphysicians, the fact that their natural law contains a statist conception of politics and law alongside an unreconciled spiritualist theology points to a quite dierent historical reality. It indicates the manner in which Pufendorf and Thomasius sought to destroy meta- physics so that they could transform practical philosophy in accordance with the juridical and political secularisation of civil governance. This transformation was dependent on two fundamental and interdependent strategies which in fact form the basis of Pufendorf s and Thomasius civil philosophy. The rst of these strategies concerns the manner in which their profane natural law separates the exercise of civil authority from the pursuit of moral regeneration. In excluding the question of truth from the great religious peace treaties, political jurisprudence had not only detheologised politics, it had in eect detranscendentalised it; for the key to the peaceful legal coexistence of the rival confessions lay in the sovereign powers complete indierence to their transcendent truth claims. This in turn required the recalibration of politics and law as instrumental disciplines whose object was restricted to political order as such. The detranscendentalising of politics and law was reected in the anti-metaphysical voluntarism of the new civil natural law. Pufendorf and Thomasius denied that natural law could be founded in the transcendent truths of mans moral nature or moral community, grounding it instead in his limitless capacity for mutual self-destruction. This supported a conception of politics and law understood in terms of the commands of a sovereign power issued for the sole end of maintain- ing social peace. As we shall see, it also led to the fundamental doctrine that the sovereign power had the absolute right to settle religious contro- versies, by force if necessary; but only if they threatened social peace and only if this power remained completely indierent to the conicting religious truths. At the same time, because this detranscendentalising of politics resulted from a specic (politicaljurisprudential) kind of desacralisation and was not the result of a general philosophical or social process of rationalisation it did not lead to a wholesale secularisation or instru- mentalisation of all social spheres. On the contrary, in accordance with a second strategy, the civil philosophers sought to remove true Civil philosophy and profane natural law 8q Christianity from political supervision by treating it in terms of the informulable and unenforceable faith of an invisible church. This accounts for the ambivalent attitude to religion in the new natural law. To the extent that it is considered in its public ecclesiological sense, then religion is strictly subject to political utility, with a refashioned Staatskirchenrecht being the source of laws designed to neutralise the inde- pendent power of the churches and transform them into instruments of social pedagogy. To the extent that religion was regarded in its transcen- dent salvic sense, however, then Thomasius in particular sought to free it from all forms of authority clerical and political treating it as a matter of private faith and grace. In so doing, of course, he was simul- taneously removing politics and law from all religious obligations. The instrumentalising and detranscendentalising of politics and law, accompanied by the ambivalent privatising of religion, signalled a pro- found reconguration of the relations between civil and religious governance. It gave rise to an outlook in which the exercise of civil authority would only be considered legitimate to the extent that it was indierent to transcendent truth, and in which the pursuit of transcen- dent truth would be considered legitimate only to the extent that it involved no exercise of civil authority and had no impact on social peace. Pufendorf and Thomasius were amongst the rst to formulate this new outlook, which lay at the heart of their civil philosophy. This combination of secular civil sciences and spiritualistic theology was the instrument and outcome of a radical reorientation of the aca- demicintellectual eld, giving rise to the outlook of civil philosophy. On the one hand, it meant that the civil sciences would only be considered legitimate to the extent that they eschewed revealed or transcendent objects and restricted themselves to empirically available ones. On the other hand, it dictated that the transcendent objects of theology would be considered legitimate only to the extent that they were treated as objects of faith, completely inaccessible to natural philosophical knowl- edge. This outlook, while it employed the traditional Lutheran dualist formulations regarding the gap between reason and revelation, knowl- edge and faith, was not oriented to a metaphysical delimitation or recon- ciliation of the two domains. On the contrary, by inheriting the politicaljurisprudential imperative to separate the spheres of civil and religious governance, and through its spiritualistic rejection of all attempts to provide either a transcendent basis for the civil sciences or a rational basis for theological doctrine, the outlook of the civil philoso- phers was dedicated to the radical decoupling of the civil and theological qo Civil philosophy knowledge, and the consequent destruction of university metaphysics. This of course is the viewpoint informing Thomasius Foreword to Grotius. It will already be clear that Protestant university metaphysics and its natural law adopted diametrically opposed positions to civil philosophy in both of the above regards. In the rst place, university metaphysics remained committed to anchoring the civil sciences of ethics, law, and politics in transcendent truth, through philosophical reection on their rational foundations. Whether in the form of Albertis recovery of divine law, Leibnizs recovery of the transcendent concept of justice, Wols recursion to the intellectual possibilia that underlie all possible things, or Kants ascent to a transcendental moral law underlying all empirical ethics and politics German university metaphysics would be characterised by a relentless drive to overcome civil philosophys separ- ation of the empiricalcivil and the transcendentreligious sciences. It sought thereby to re-establish the unity of Christian academic culture at whose centre sat the privileged gure of the metaphysician himself, pre- serving a quasi-religious disposition for the civil sciences through his own self-purifying recovery of their transcendent grounds. Secondly, university metaphysics and its natural law rejected civil phi- losophys uncoupling of the spheres of civil and spiritual governance. Metaphysicians from the Martinis to Kant refused to accept the indierence of sovereign power to moral truth thereby rejecting the autonomy of the political with Kant commenting on how terrible it was that no philosopher has yet been able to bring into agreement with morality . . . the fundamental principles of the great societies called states (\i., RRT, 8:). At the same time, these metaphysicians remained committed to reconciling Christian theology and metaphysical philoso- phy, with Leibniz, Wol, and Kant all producing elaborate philosophi- cal theologies. In doing so they continued to seek a rational faith capable of reunifying Christianity and forming the basis of a moral commonwealth. As a result, they remained wedded to a political escha- tology, conceiving the state via the gure of the church, or the kingdom of God on earth. We may conclude the rst part of our study, therefore, by observing that the metaphysical and civil philosophy found in early modern German universities represented independent and opposed responses to the reshaping of civil and religious governance that was taking place in the politicaljurisprudential domain. Far from emerging as a failure to achieve the metaphysical synthesis of philosophy and theology a Civil philosophy and profane natural law q: failure that would force it to combine an amoral statism and an irrational theology civil philosophy emerged as a deliberate repudiation of the whole programme of metaphysical reconciliation, patiently uncoupling the civil sciences from theology in order to separate political authority and religious truth. For its part, university metaphysics remained consti- tutionally committed to the unication of philosophy and theology albeit on the basis of increasingly secular conceptions of the transcen- dental domain and refused to renounce the ecclesiological desire for a state governed in accordance with transcendent moral principles. These rival intellectual cultures were neither mediated by a dialectic internal to a universal human intellect nor unied by a singular form of truth. Rather they confronted each other as divergent modes of forming par- ticular intellectual deportments, each characterised by its own way of acceding to truth. Such is the manner in which we shall approach the civil philosophy of Pufendorf and Thomasius, and the metaphysics of Leibniz and Kant, treating the works of these philosophers as represen- tative instances of a still-unresolved divergence in the fundamental forms of intellectual culture. q. Civil philosophy r\n+ i i Civil and metaphysical philosophy This Page Intentionally Left Blank cn\r+rn +nnrr Leibnizs political metaphysics . : i x+nontc+i ox If the conict between civil and metaphysical philosophy represented a major ssure in the academicintellectual culture of early modern Germany, then one of its central texts is Leibnizs celebrated Opinion on the Principles of Pufendorf. Written in :o6 at the request of the abbot of Locum (Molanus), this text was rst published as an appendix to Jean Barbeyracs French edition of Pufendorf s De Ocio (::8). Here it was interspersed with Barbeyracs adjudicatory comments, intended to mediate the conict for the Huguenot Diaspora (Barbeyrac ::8). In his monitory discussion of the De Ocio, Leibniz comments that while he agrees with Pufendorf s derivation of duties from laws, Pufendorf has no idea of the depth of natural laws or the scope of the duties they embrace. Leibniz expands this comment with the following remarks: But my analysis of this is scarcely recognised by our author, [namely] that in a universal society governed by God every virtue . . . is comprehended among the obligations of universal justice; and not only external acts, but also all of our sentiments are regulated by a certain rule of law; thus those who are worthy of being philosophers of law [must] consider not only concord among men [humanae tranquilitatis], but also friendship with God, the possession of which assures us of an enduring felicity. (PW, ) These remarks provide a useful pointer to the central dierences between the natural law doctrines of Pufendorf and Leibniz. As we shall in more detail in chapter , Pufendorf had indeed sought to limit natural law duties to those derivable from the end of human tranquillity. He had done so in order to separate civil authority from mans pursuit of his enduring felicity or salvation, thereby restricting law to external or civil actions, to the exclusion of all concern with mans inner moral or religious purity. Moreover, in disputing Pufendorf s account of the ecient cause of natural law, Leibniz clearly identies the rival theo- logicalpolitical underpinnings of their divergent constructions: q [Pufendorf], indeed, does not nd [the cause of natural law] in the nature of things and in the precepts of right reason which conform to it, which emanate from the divine understanding, but (what will appear to be strange and contradictory) in the command of a superior (PW, o). Against Pufendorf, Leibniz insists that justice is not to be restricted to the governance of external actions in accordance with the end of civil peace, being grounded instead in Gods salvic governance of the uni- verse, which extends to mans inner moral condition. For, in Leibnizs metaphysical philosophy, man shares in Gods intellection of the sub- stantial forms or perfections responsible for the universes intelligible and moral order: Neither the norm of conduct itself, nor the essence of the just, depends on [Gods] free decision, but rather on eternal truths, objects of the divine intellect, which constitute, so to speak, the essence of divinity itself; and it is right that our author [Pufendorf] is reproached by theologians when he maintains the contrary (PW, :). According to this neo-Platonic metaphysics, wisdom is knowledge of the forms or per- fections which are the source of the universes teleological order. To know the rational forms or perfections, however, one must love them; for in loving or nding happiness in the perfections man perfects himself realises his telos as a rational being and thereby qualies himself to dis- pense justice as one in whom love and wisdom are combined. Leibnizs metaphysical conception of justice, justitia est caritas sapientis justice is the love of the sage thus constitutes a thoroughgoing con- trast with and self-conscious repudiation of Pufendorf s anti-metaphys- ical or civil conception. For, according to Pufendorf, the natural law duties nd their eective source not in the reasons of a quasi-divine intel- lect but in the commands of a political superior. How, though, should we approach these rival natural law doctrines? In what historiographic space are they most appropriately located? Seen from the viewpoint of the history of moral philosophy, the natural law doctrines of Leibniz and Pufendorf appear as competing attempts to provide a rational basis for political duties or, equivalently, a moral basis for the exercise of civil authority. Historians writing from this standpoint regard Leibnizs natural law as philosophically superior to Pufendorf s, despite the fact that Leibniz wrote nothing of the magni- tude of Pufendorf s De Jure Naturae et Gentium, or even of its epitome, the De Ocio. As we have already noted, some of these historians regard both philosophers as destined for eclipse with the appearance of Kants moral philosophy (Schmidt-Biggemann :q88a; Schneewind :qq6; Schneewind :qq8). Others, though, with greater sympathy for Leibnizs neo-Platonic q6 Leibnizs political metaphysics metaphysics, focus more directly on its supposed philosophical superior- ity to Pufendorf s Hobbesian perspective. They regard Leibnizs attempt to provide civil authority with a metaphysicalmoral basis as intellectually and morally preferable to Pufendorf s alleged reduction of right to might (Barreau :qq; Riley :qq6; Sve :q8q; Sve :qq). Viewing Leibnizs relation to Pufendorf in these terms, however, underestimates the degree to which it was shaped by the religious and political circumstances of post-Westphalian Germany. In his discussion of Pufendorf s theological writings, Detlef Dring observes that both thinkers were attempting to inuence Protestant Religionspolitik (Dring :qq., :o.). In writing his Jus Feciale Divinum sive de Consensu et Dissensu Protestantium Exercitatio Posthuma (The Divine Feudal Law, or On Consensus and Dissensus among Protestants, :6q), Pufendorf sought to provide a core theology acceptable to Lutherans and Calvinists, in accordance with the religious policy of Brandenburg-Prussia. Leibniz, however, had never deviated from his visionary quest to reunite the whole of Christendom around an agreed philosophical theology his own (Dring :qqa). Leibnizs stinging attacks on Pufendorf s theology and natural law were thus in part driven by personal rivalry Leibniz resented the high oce Pufendorf had obtained at the Brandenburg court but, more impor- tantly, by a fundamental dierence in their cultural and political out- looks. This dierence, as Dring comments, is given symptomatic expression in their radically opposed views of the discipline of meta- physics: Is a greater opposition thinkable than that between Leibnizs pride in having already penetrated the depths of metaphysics in his youth, and Pufendorf s thanking fate for having allowed him the timely recognition that metaphysics is nothing other than a useless mish-mash of empty concepts? (Dring :qq., :q). In the face of the modern proclivity to treat Leibniz as simply a better philosopher than Pufendorf, Drings comments are a pointer to just how deeply Leibnizian metaphysics were embedded in a specic set of religious and political conicts particularly the conict with civil phi- losophy. We have already indicated that Leibnizs metaphysics may be regarded as a characteristic neo-Platonic improvisation on seventeenth- century Protestant university metaphysics. Despite the important doctri- nal shifts involved here, there are, we have suggested, important continuities at the level of the culture of metaphysics itself; for Leibniz and those who came after him continued to cultivate the spiritual authority of a personage with access to the divineintelligible order of the cosmos and, on this basis, to claim authority in the civil sphere. This Introduction q distinctive culturalpolitical comportment holds the key to understand- ing Leibnizs attack on Pufendorf s civil philosophy, which was dedicated to destroying just this nexus of intellectual and civil authority in the metaphysical personage. It is also a pointer to the larger conict framing this skirmish: that between the civil desacralisation of politics and the strategy of rationalist resacralisation being pursued by the metaphysi- cians. In eshing out these suggestions, this chapter oers an account of Leibnizs metaphysics as a specic kind of intellectual self-culture, one embedded in the neo-Platonic anthropology and cosmology, and dedi- cated to the cultivation of a socially authoritative moral persona. This approach results in a view of Leibnizs philosophical theology and natural law quite unlike that oered by the historians of moral philoso- phy, but one more attuned to the religious and political circumstances in which his metaphysics did battle with Pufendorf s and Thomasius civil philosophy. . . rnox rno+rs +\x+ SCHULMETAPHYSI K +o n\+i ox\ri s + xr+\rnvsi cs In its neo-Platonic pursuit of the intelligibles underlying the empirical world, Leibnizs metaphysics represents a characteristic early modern rationalist transformation of the scholastic inheritance, comparable with Descartes and Spinozas. It is helpful to view this transformation in terms of an intellectual spectrum. Scholasticism may be characterised in terms of a particular tension: between the drive to elaborate a con- ception of substance or being common to God, man, and world, and the equally strong insistence on the gulf separating the divine and human realms. This gave rise to a variety of orthodox metaphysical theologies, in accordance with several strategies for responding to the tension, as we have seen in Walter Sparns account of Lutheran and Calvinist univer- sity metaphysics. In its positing of a single domain of intelligibles, open to both the divine and the human intellect, early modern neo-Platonism occupies the rationalist end of the metaphysical spectrum. Leibnizs metaphysics may thus be regarded as representing a particular histori- cal negotiation of the path from the scholastic to the rationalist poles of this spectrum. We obtain a helpful overviewof this transition in a short but pregnant essay by Bogumil Jasinowski. Jasinowski sees Leibnizs philosophy emerg- ing from the interplay between two distinct metaphysical traditions, q8 Leibnizs political metaphysics Christian scholasticism and Renaissance neo-Platonism (Jasinowski :q., .8). Central to Leibnizs rationalist transformation of his scho- lastic inheritance are two interlinked doctrines that Jasinowski calls pan- cosmismand gnoseomonism. Described by Jasinowski as a metaphysical faith originating in Chaldea, pancosmism is the doctrine that the entirety of the world is contained in each of its parts. This is the organi- cist teaching that gave rise to both the search for occult relations between things and the pursuit of mathematical formulas capable of expressing these relations. Gnoseomonism is Jasinowskis term for the epistemo- logical concomitant of pancosmism. This is the doctrine that, just as there is a single order of pancosmic being, so there is a single principle of knowledge informing God, man, and the world. The prime instance of this principle is the Platonic Idea, acceded to via pure intellectual intuition rather than discursive reason, and giving rise to empirical things through a process of devolution into the world of the senses. The rever- sal of this process nds expression in the doctrine of a self-purifying ascent from confused sensory perceptions to their source in the timeless forms or intelligences. Jasinowski sees Leibnizs philosophy as eecting a pancosmic and gnoseomonistic transformation of scholastic dualism and, in this regard, his account agrees with fundamental studies by Heimsoeth and Merlan (Heimsoeth :qo; Merlan :q6). Leibnizs monadology is a typical expression of this transformation. The monad or spiritual atom is both a substance originating in Gods creative intellection of the universe yet in the case of the soul or intelligent monad also contains the total- ity of substances in a pancosmic manner, through its own intellection, which mirrors Gods. From this viewpoint, the pantheistic and deistic tendencies of Leibnizs metaphysics arise from this neo-Platonic collaps- ing of the scholastic dualism of divine and human being. This interpre- tation echoes Sparns account of the Platonic provenance of Calvinist rationalist doctrines, particularly the doctrine of regenerate mans capacity to participate in Gods thinking of things through contempla- tive ascent to the divine ideas (Sparn :q6, :8o). It is somewhat surprising then that Patrick Riley should regard Leibnizs neo-Platonic conception of justice the charity of the wise as indicative of the harmonisation of Christian theology and scientic rationality: In the end one can say that Leibniz preserves the Christian/Pauline notion of charity as one side of justice, that he does not altogether secularise the idea of justice, but that (at the same time) the stress on the wise is redolent of both ancient Platonic rationalism From Schulmetaphysik to rationalist metaphysics qq and modern scientic Enlightenment (Riley :qq6, :q). In fact, like its Calvinist prototype, Leibnizs conception of enlightenment through contemplative ascent to the intelligibles may itself be regarded as a form of metaphysical faith or spiritual self-cultivation rather than as an anticipation of science; for we shall see that this ascent takes place not through experimental method but via a practice of intellectual self- purication. In fact, Leibnizs mode of acceding to the intelligibles or perfections is symptomatic of the secret theology that so concerned Thomasius, as we gather from Leibnizs claim that: The divine perfec- tions are concealed in all things, but very few know how to discover them there. Hence there are many who are learned without being illumined, because they believe not God or the light but only their earthly teachers or their external senses and so remain in contemplation of imperfec- tions (Lm, 6). Similarly, as Heimsoeth has shown, rather than antici- pating experimental biology, Leibnizs interest in the microscopic examination of pond amoebae was driven by his pancosmic (anti- Democritean) desire to prove that even the smallest particles of matter contained the living universe within them (Heimsoeth :qo, .oq). Rather than indicating an epochal transition to a modern scientic Enlightenment, Leibnizs metaphysics is thus better seen as a character- istic seventeenth-century Platonistic modication of Protestant Schulmetaphysik. In this regard it is symptomatic of a signicant parting of the cultural ways available to seventeenth-century Protestant intellectu- als. Other intellectuals, we recall, responded to the Lutheran dualism of divine and human being in a quite dierent manner. Rather than col- lapsing the two levels into a single form of reason or intellection, politi- cal scientists (Arnisaeus and Conring) and civil philosophers (Pufendorf and Thomasius) intensied the separation of divine being and human thought as a means of naturalising and objectifying the latter. This enabled them to treat the sciences of politics and law as governed by specic empirical objects and technicalformal methods. By contrast, in maintaining the classical religiousmetaphysical conception of the divine intellection of the essences, while deconsecrating the manner in which these would be acceded to, Leibniz was turning his back on the construction of autonomous empirical sciences and improvising the modern form of philosophia Christiana. At the very least, then, there are several paths into the modern scientic Enlightenment, and these do not lead to the same destination. In order to prepare the way for our discussion of the form and circum- stances in which Leibniz undertook his Platonic modication of :oo Leibnizs political metaphysics Protestant Schulmetaphysik, we need to supplement Jasinowskis schematic account by bringing forward two of the results of our earlier discussion of university metaphysics and civil philosophy. In the rst place, we need to recall the central lesson of Thomassens discussion of metaphysics as a particular Lebensform (see section :. above). Thomassen, we recall, treats the pursuit of the intelligibles not as an epistemological necessity, but as the goal of a way of life grounded in a contingent moral anthro- pology. This is the metaphysical anthropology of man as the being whose spark of divine intellect permits him to participate in Gods crea- tive intuition of the substantial forms, even if his corporeal embodiment means that to achieve this end he must rise above the discursivesensory forms of human understanding through self-purifying abstraction. Despite its more explicitly Platonic character, we nd the same anthro- pology at the heart of Leibnizs metaphysics in the gure of the ratio- nal monad, with its inner intellectual spontaneity and its outer sensory passivity, and with its driving desire for intellectual self-perfection (Heimsoeth :qo). We shall therefore approach Leibnizs monadology as an improvisation on the longstanding metaphysical anthropology of homo duplex. Inheriting the latters ascetic function and moral prestige, the monadology is also a means of grooming the exalted and authorita- tive intellectual deportment of the metaphysician. Next, we need to bring forward the results of our preliminary dis- cussion of the relation between university metaphysics and the civil philosophy of Pufendorf and Thomasius (see section ..). In their reconstruction of natural law grounded in the Epicurean anthropol- ogy of self-restraint rather than the Platonic one of self-realisation Pufendorf and Thomasius sought to uncouple the spheres of political governance and religious formation through a radical separation of pol- itics, law, and ethics from theology. They did so by treating the former as objects of sciences whose epistemological horizons were set by the states pursuit of social peace, and the latter as a discipline rooted in a private faith lying beyond the reach of all philosophical explication and doctrinal formalisation. Acting in accordance with the deep-seated de- sacralisation of politics that had been taking place in the politicaljuris- prudential domain, the civil philosophers sought to eliminate the political enforcement of religious life-styles by excluding transcendent truth and value from the civil kingdom. This meant that the kingdom of truth could only be entered through private devotion, not teachable metaphysics. Conversely, outraged by Pufendorf s and Thomasius desacralising From Schulmetaphysik to rationalist metaphysics :o: philosophy, the university metaphysicians continued to seek the recon- ciliation of theology and philosophy and, on this basis, to ground polit- ical governance in some version of Christian moral perfectionism. Lutheran political metaphysicians such as Alberti, Veltheim, Placcius, and Prasch thus continued to oer metaphysical explications of central theological doctrines. They also refurbished ante-bellum neoscholastic natural law, according to which sovereignty and positive law are con- strained by transcendental rational and moral laws. Rather than signify- ing his dialectical overcoming of the civil separation of theology and the political sciences, the fact that Leibniz sought to resolve religious conict through a trans-confessional philosophical theology indicates his close- ness to the anti-political strategy adopted by the university metaphysi- cians. Similarly, rather than solving a philosophical problem inherent in the civil decoupling of positive law and moral philosophy, Leibnizs re- establishment of a continuum between these domains is a weapon against the (politicaljuridical) desacralisation of civil governance. As the instrument of a new rationalist resacralisation of politics and law, Leibnizs metaphysics is also a means of preserving the intellectual and civil authority of the Christian philosopher in a new form that of the anti-positivist critical intellectual. These at least are the propositions that we shall defend in our discussion of the ascetic character of Leibnizs metaphysics, and the neo-confessional character of his phil- osophical theology and natural law. . +nr stn rc+ or xr+\rnvsi cs The key to understanding the self-formative character of Leibnizs metaphysics lies in the reciprocal relation it establishes between knowl- edge of the perfections (intelligibles) and the perfection of the intelli- gible being who strives to know them. Leibniz gives symptomatic expression to this relation in a short meditation on Felicity (c. :6q8). Virtue, Leibniz asserts, is the habit of acting according to wisdom. It is necessary that practice accompany knowledge. Wisdom, for its part, is the science of felicity and felicity a lasting state of pleasure. Pleasure, though, is a knowledge or feeling of perfection, not only in ourselves, but also in others; and this knowledge or feeling is itself trans- formative or perfecting of us, for in this way some further perfection is aroused in us. In other words, wisdom as the science of felicity is not just the theoretical understanding of a concept. It is the awareness of the :o. Leibnizs political metaphysics divine perfections or essences that we achieve when we are ourselves per- fected through that awareness, and is thus the pleasure or feeling of per- fection. Leibniz goes on to formulate the transformative character of metaphysical knowledge of the perfections in this way: Now it is necessary to explain the feeling or the knowledge of perfection. The confused perception of some perfection constitutes the pleasure of sense, but this pleasure can be [productive] of greater imperfections which are born of it, as a fruit with a good taste and a good odour can conceal a poison. This is why one must shun the pleasures of the sense, as one shuns a stranger, or, sooner, a attering enemy. Knowledge is of two kinds, that of facts and that of reasons. That of facts is perception, that of reasons is intelligence. Knowledge of reasons perfects us because it teaches us universal and eternal truths, which are manifested in the perfect Being. But knowledge of facts is like that of the streets of a town, which serves us while we stay there, [but] after [leaving] which we dont wish to burden our memory any longer. (PW, 8; Gr, ii, q8) Here we can make out the lineaments of a particular self-transfor- mative contemplative practice. In the classic Platonicrationalist manner, Leibniz teaches that to be virtuous or act in accordance with wisdom one must attain the knowledge or feeling of perfection that comes with being perfected. One attains this knowledge or feeling through the pleasures of the mind or the knowledge of reasons, which is in fact the knowledge of the perfections that perfect us. To obtain this pure knowledge and pleasure, though, is not just a theoretical matter. In fact it is to undergo a personal transformation. As in Alberts metaphys- ics, this is gured in terms of shunning the pleasures of sense and approaching the perfections or essences at their source, in their contin- uous emanation from divine intellection. For sensory perception is not just the confused or imperfect knowledge of an intellectual concept but is also the source of our metaphysicalmoral impairment, as we remain locked in our imperfect sensory condition through the contemplation of empirical things and satisfactions. Factual or sense-based knowledge is thus not just intellectually inadequate but spiritually corrupting, as it threatens to trap us in contemplation of imperfections. The world of facts should be like a town we pass through on our way to a permanent dwelling in the city of contemplation. For its part, rationally based knowledge is not just theoretically true but is so because it is spiritually purifying. It permits knowledge of intellectual perfections (reasons, essences, intelligibles) by purging the intellect of the sensory perceptions The subject of metaphysics :o that cut us o from self-perfecting contemplation of the source of all per- fections the ens perfectissimum. We can propose therefore that Leibnizs metaphysics and, to the extent that he is its harbinger, enlightenment metaphysics more gener- ally represents not the nal recovery of mans rational being, but a way of cultivating the self in the image of this gure. This specic mode of subjectifying individuals was adapted from the contemplative prac- tices of Schulmetaphysik, and was developed in opposition to the rival ways of grooming truth-capable subjects contained in civil philosophy. In clarifying this metaphysical cultivation of the self, the present section undertakes three tasks. First, we discuss Leibnizs anthropology (and cos- mology) as giving shape to a particular way of relating to and shaping the self. This in turn will require us to describe the principles of meta- physical abstraction as a particular spiritual exercise or practice of intel- lectual self-transformation. Finally, we will have to comprehend the gure of formal or pure intellection as the comportment-ideal of a pre- stigious way of life, that of the secular sage. Once we have completed these tasks we will be in a position to discuss Leibnizs philosophical theology and natural law as disciplines whose truth is informed by the metaphysicians prestigious moralepistemological status that is, his qualication to speak authoritatively on religious and civil matters by virtue of his participation in the quasi-divine intellection of pure con- cepts. ... The anthropology of pure reason The most compact formulation of Leibnizs anthropology is given in his Monadology (::), which also contains a cosmology and theodicy. The Monadology posits a universe teeming with monads or simple substances. The atomic or non-complex character of the monads means that they may never pass away, generation and death merely being cyclical com- positions and decompositions of the simple substances. Increate God creates the monads by intelligising them, thereby imbuing the created intelligences with a spark or image of this same creative intellection, albeit limited by the receptivity or passivity characteristic of the crea- turely status: So only God is the primary unity or the simple original substance of which all the created or derivative monads are products, and from whom they are born, so to speak, by continual fulgurations of the divinity from moment to moment, but limited by the receptivity of the created being, for whom it is essential to have limits (Mo, ). :o Leibnizs political metaphysics Through this continuous creative intellection of the monads or substan- tial forms, the divine mind imbues them with all of the accidents or pred- icates which will occur to them as events in time, and which they will experience as perceptions. All monads, even the naked monads that make up the world of things, are animate in the sense of harbouring a soul or entelechy, which is the substantial form intelligised by God and containing the predicates or perceptions that individuate things. Given that all monads reect the divine mind, and given that the universe is a plenum, placing all monads in communication with each other, then: this mutual connection and accommodation of all created things to each other and of each to all the rest causes each simple substance to have relations which express all the others and consequently to be a per- petual living mirror of the universe (Mo, 6). It is, however, in his treatment of the rational or thinking monads man and the angels that the ascetic or self-formative role of Leibnizs anthropology comes to the fore. Like ordinary monads or souls, rational monads or spirits are subject to the same passive percep- tions that arise from the unfolding of their forms in time. By virtue of the spiritual substance which they share with the divine mind, however, the rational monads are capable of becoming self-conscious of these perceptions, which allows them to rise from passive to active intellection, in imitation of God: Among other dierences which exist between ordinary souls and spirits . . . there is still this: souls in general are living mirrors or images of the universe of created beings, while spirits are also images of divinity itself or of the author of nature, capable of knowing the system of the universe and of imitating it to some extent by means of architectonic samples, each spirit being like a little divinity within its own sphere. (Mo, 8) Due to its structuring by this onto-theological hierarchy, Leibnizs dis- tinction between empiricalhistorical knowledge and knowledge derived from a priori reection possesses a strongly moralanthropolog- ical character, despite the fact that it is normally discussed in largely epis- temological or logical terms, as, for example, by Beck (Beck :q6q, .:q.). Leibniz thus treats empiricalhistorical knowledge as sympto- matic of the body-burdened passive perceptions of the lower creatures, while regarding a priori reection or intellectual intuition as indicative of mans capacity for participating in Gods active timeless intelligising of the forms of things (Mo, .8q). The monadology therefore func- tions as a moral anthropology by tying the capacity for divine intellec- tion to an image of the being who is to be its bearer. This is what permits The subject of metaphysics :o Leibniz to present theoretical speculation as a god-like deportment of the self, while stigmatising empirical knowledge as passive and beastly. In this regard, despite its neo-Platonic formulation, Leibnizs mona- dology plays a role strikingly similar to the one Thomassen ascribes to Albertian metaphysics. The common feature is the role of the metaphys- ical anthropology always focused in the image of man as a sensibly embodied intellectual being in inducing the desire for a particular kind of self-transformation. In both Leibnizian and scholastic metaphysics the desire for metaphysical knowledge of the perfections or forms arises from the imaginal ontological gap between divine and human intellec- tion. This gap is, in its turn, instituted in the paideia of metaphysics, in order to induce the desire for metaphysical knowledge. By conguring man as a spiritual being whose spontaneous intelligis- ing links him to divine intellection of the forms but whose receptive sensing threatens to trap him in confused and self-interested empirical perception Leibniz, too, is engaged in programming a particular work of spiritual self-formation. This is one that requires individuals to focus their desires (and fears) for moral regeneration in the way they know about things. Specically, it impels them to relate to their own thoughts as if these were a conduit to a higher mode of being, but one threatened with corruption by empirical perceptions that mire them in the sensory historical world. Rather than being a philosophical mistake that would be corrected by Kants separation of sensibility and understanding, the continuum that the monadology establishes between a degraded sensory perception and a puried rational intellection may thus be regarded as instituting a particular way of relating to the self. This is a relation through which certain individuals learn to regard their true selves as a fugitive pure intellect, emanating from the divine mind yet darkened by mans sensible being, hence in need of restorative purication for com- pletion. Two features of the intellectual deportment arising from this use of the monadology are of particular importance for our present concerns. In the rst place, as Patrick Riley has pointed out, by establishing a con- tinuum between human and divine intellection, the monadology allows Leibniz to represent man as a citizen in the divine republic or Civitas Dei, rather than as a mere passive thing in a mechanically ordered universe (Riley :qq6, :): It is this [their image-relation to divine intellection] which renders spirits capable of entering into a kind of society with God and makes his relation to :o6 Leibnizs political metaphysics them not merely that of an inventor to his machine (as God is related to other creatures) but also that of a prince to his subjects and even a father to his children. It is easy to conclude from this that the assemblage of all spirits must make up the city of God, that is to say, the most perfect state which is possible under the most perfect of monarchs. (Mo, 8) More importantly, however, Leibnizs monadology is designed to have a transformative eect on the philosopher himself. If the monadology is central to the continuum Leibniz establishes between Gods moral governance of the universe and the princes political governance of the state, then the key to this continuum lies in the exercise in spiritual self- transformation programmed by this speculative anthropology. For it is through the exercise in ascent to the a priori intellection of the forms of things that the individual establishes the unity of his own persona, as metaphysician, modelling this on the transcendent unity of Gods time- less intellection of substances prior to their scattering across time and space. From this perspective, there can be no fundamental distinction between Gods rational natural law and the civil laws of the secular prince, or between mans religious and civil duties. For the latter repre- sent only the devolution of the former into the world of time and utility, which it is the task of the metaphysician to transcend. This speculative deportment, as we shall see in the following chapter, is precisely what is excluded by Pufendorf s anthropology. ..: The exercise of abstraction In redescribing Leibnizian metaphysical abstraction as a spiritual exer- cise, we can begin by returning to our observation that the role of the metaphysical anthropology is to programme a certain kind of work on the self . In treating empirical objects as confused perceptions of quasi- divine clear and distinct ideas, Leibnizs monadology is designed to eect a turn from the outer to the inner world. In fact, it is an exercise in unifying the person around a single I or self a metaphysical moral personality whose God-likeness consists in apprehending the appar- ently autonomous and dierentiated historical world from a single point of a priori intellection: It is also by the knowledge of necessary truths and by their abstraction that we rise to reective acts, which enable us to think of what is called I and to con- sider this or that to be in us; it is thus, as we think of ourselves, that we think of The subject of metaphysics :o being, of substance, of the simple and the compound, of the immaterial, and of God himself, conceiving of that which is limited in us as being without limits in him. These reective acts provide us with the principal objects of our reason- ings. (Mo, o) According to Leibniz our reasonings are based upon two great prin- ciples. The rst of these is the principle of contradiction, by virtue of which we judge that false which involves a contradiction, and that true which is opposed or contradictory to the false (Mo, :). The second is the prin- ciple of sucient reason, by virtue of which we observe that there can be found no fact that is true or existent, or any true proposition, without there being a sucient reason for its being so and not otherwise, although we cannot know these reasons in most cases (Mo, .). The principle of sucient reason provides Leibniz with his key method of abstraction and, indeed, of acceding to truth. It is the means by which individuals, shunning the pleasures of sense, ascend from empirical facts and the confused murmur of sensory perception, via a ladder of progressively simpler denitions which are also causes of the facts they determine arriving nally at a priori axioms, laws, and primitive denitions. The latter terminate the analytic regress in that they dene themselves simply on being contemplated (DM, .; Mo, ). In this way one passes from truths of fact to truths of reason. Conversely, the principle of contradiction is the means by which one passes from a priori intuition of concepts known to be true (possible) by virtue of their component intelligibilia containing no contradictions to the syn- thetic demonstration of empirical truths independently of experience. Leibniz recommends the a posteriori analytic path to truth, regarding the a priori synthetic path as too dicult for unregenerate intellects, although not for all: Yet superior geniuses should enter upon this [a priori] way, even without hope of arriving at particulars by means of it, in order that we may have true concepts of the universe, the greatness of God, and the nature of the soul, through which the mind can be most perfected, for this is the most important end of contemplation. Yet we believe that the absolute use of this method is conserved for a better life (Lm, .8). Leibnizs twin principles of reason are of course normally understood in terms of epistemology and its (post-Kantian) history. Here, these prin- ciples have come to stand for Leibnizs awed attempt to formulate the true relation between reason and experience that would eventually be captured in Kants transcendental deduction of the categories. For, so the standard argument goes, Kant shows that the mind accedes only to :o8 Leibnizs political metaphysics the transcendental forms of empirical experience the categories of cognition and the forms of sensory intuition rather than to the transcendent forms of things in themselves, or Leibnizian noumenal essences (Beck :q6q, 6q; Kahl-Furthmann :qo; Wundt :q., :.., ., :6:). On this telling of the history, Leibnizs principles of contra- diction and sucient reason are incapable of the correct formulation due to their blurring of causes and reasons, sensibility and understand- ing. This is unavoidable given the programme of ascending from the empirical experience or confused ideas of the perfections to their clear and distinct intuition. Leibniz of course sees the principle of sucient reason as representing the fundamental operation of the soul or mind itself the operation through which it perfects itself by following the path that leads from its corporeal sensations to the pure intelligising it shares with God. If, however, we consider its dependency on the metaphysical anthro- pology that is, on the philosophers image of himself as an intelligible being mired in the imperfections of empirical experience then the principle of sucient reason acquires a strikingly dierent signicance. Rather than being a false theory of the conditions of experience, or a true path to the intelligibles of pure reason, it appears instead as a spec- ulative practice performed by the philosopher on himself, in pursuit of the perfection required to know the perfections. In short, it appears as one of Hadots exercises in mental concentration and renunciation of the sensible world (P. Hadot :qq, :o:). Programmed by the principles of contradiction and sucient reason, Leibnizian abstraction takes place as a fundamental reshaping of the individuals relation to himself and his world. Leibniz thus understands abstraction as the moment in which individuals recollect that perceptions of (apparently) external objects in fact come from their own subconscious thinking: we rise to reective acts, which enable us to think of what is called I and to consider this or that to be in us (Mo, o). This in turn is to be regarded as an imitation of or participation in Gods continuous fulguration of the intelligibles. We can propose then that Leibnizs principles of reason are not theo- retical mistakes that left him with an insucient regard for the indepen- dence of empirical experience. Rather, the abstractive ascent to determining Grnde through the shunning of the pleasures of sense and the contemplation of reasons that are also causes of phenomena is a spiritual exercise individuals perform to ensure that they will not regard empirical experience as independent of pure intelligising. In other The subject of metaphysics :oq words, Leibnizs principle of sucient reason is not a mistaken theory through which a universal subject misrepresents its true relation to a domain of independent empirical experience. Rather it is a real practice through which certain individuals cultivate a specic way of relating to empirical experience: as the passive sensing of ideas originating in the (presently quasi-conscious) active intellection of the universe. The prin- ciple of sucient reason is the means by which individuals can groom a subjectivity in which all sensory phenomena appear as husks of the hidden perfections that Gods intelligising maintains within them: The divine perfections are concealed in all things, we recall Leibniz intimat- ing, but very few know how to discover them there (Lm, 6). Seen in this light, Leibnizs principles of reason appear less as early forms of Kantian epistemology and more as late versions of scholastic metaphysical exercises (Honnefelder :qqo, ::). Like these exercises, Leibnizs practice of abstraction requires a prior existential acceptance by the philosopher that empirical experience is both intellectually and morally imperfect. This, we recall, is the burden of Leibnizs comment that: The confused perception of some perfection constitutes the pleas- ure of sense, but this pleasure can be [productive] of greater imperfec- tions which are born of it [which is why] one must shun the pleasures of the sense, as one shuns a stranger, or, sooner, a attering enemy (PW, 8; Gr, ii, 8o). Without this personal acceptance of the spiritual deciency of nite empirical experience that is, in the face of unmoved acceptance of the brute adequacy of such experience the demonstra- tion of the worlds metaphysical intelligibility lacks pedagogical grip on the person who is to undergo enlightenment. This helps to explain Leibnizs stigmatisation of those who deny the defective nature of empirical knowledge as coarse empiricists and irreligious mechanists. In any case, in requiring personal acceptance of the spiritual insuciency of empirical experience, the proof of a priori intellection is not just a chain of ideas leading to a propositional conclusion. As the means of inducing this acceptance, the principles of non-contradiction and sucient reason form part of a specic intellectual paideia or forma- tive regimen. This paideia is one that initiates neophytes into the disci- pline of metaphysics by inducing in them the experience of empirical realitys spiritual insuciency. It thereby binds them to the exercise in metaphysical abstraction as the only means of recovering the pure ideas of their higher being: One need not shun at all pleasures which are born of the intelligence or of reasons, as one penetrates the reason of the reason of perfections, that is to say as one sees them ow from their source, which is the absolutely perfect being (PW, 8; Gr, ii, 8). ::o Leibnizs political metaphysics The method of abstraction is thus not a means of recovering concepts whose thinking in fact makes the experience and reality of things pos- sible. It is rather a spiritual exercise a work of the self on the self aimed at forming a person who will relate to their concepts and them- selves in this way. This exercise operates by inducing a (milieu-specic) state of metaphysical anxiety or longing for pure vision of the intelli- gibles, thence to resolve it through assiduous winnowing of the husks of empirical perception, leading nally to the contemplation of pure ideas as if they were the source of empirical experience. This is the ascesis lying behind Leibnizs claim that in order to know the pure ideas or hidden perfections individuals must perfect themselves, as human understanding has to approach the same intensity or perfection of being as its spiritual object. But this ascesis is simultaneously the means by which the threatening autonomy of civil authority and its sciences could be held in check. For abstractive intellection leads not only to God but to the intelligibles that are responsible for the knowability of being as such, and are hence presupposed by all the particular sciences, includ- ing the civil ones. Seen in this light, Leibnizs Platonic conceptualisation of justice is not inherently superior to the nominalistempiricist conceptualisations of Pufendorf and Thomasius. Rather, it is just historically dierent to theirs, but in a highly signicant way. In claiming insight into the divine idea of justice and in stigmatising the empirical conceptions of the civil philosophers as imperfect and utilitarian Leibniz was in fact using metaphysical abstraction as a weapon for combating the secularisation of civil governance inherent in their objectication and instrumentalisa- tion of politicaljuridical rule. We will return to this issue below. For the moment, let us say that, far from representing the true path from empir- ical to theoretical concepts of justice, Leibnizs method of metaphysi- cal abstraction is the ascetic discipline for a highly specic theo-rational mode of acceding to truth. As such, it is not inherently superior to other methodological disciplines such as Arnisaeus empiricaltechnical conceptualisation of political order, or Pufendorf s empiricalhistorical construction of natural law which resulted in therapeutic or instru- mentalist modes of acceding to the truths of law and politics. .. The philosophers deportment This is the appropriate angle from which to approach our third and nal task in this section: understanding the pursuit of formal or pure intellec- tion as the comportment-ideal of a prestigious way of life. If Leibnizs The subject of metaphysics ::: anthropology and cosmology represent the conguration of a subject capable of acceding to divine or rational truth and if his method of abstraction is a spiritual exercise that individuals carry out on themselves in order to shape the being capable of this accession then it seems that knowledge of theo-rational truth is inseparable from attaining a partic- ular kind of personhood, that of the self-purifying metaphysical sage. This inner relation between rational knowledge and personal deport- ment is given symptomatic expression in Leibnizs own discourse. After all, Leibniz posits just such a relation in his cardinal doctrine that knowl- edge of the pure concepts or hidden perfections is dependent on the spiritual perfection of the being who is to know them. In fact this linkage between reason and spiritual perfection was both instrument and outcome of the process through which Leibniz was able to tap into the cultural authority that Schulmetaphysik had acquired through its confes- sional proximity to theology, channelling this into a new conception of philosophy and the philosopher. We are fortunate in having several helpful commentaries on the appearanceof this newandexaltedconceptionof secular philosophythat accompanied modern rationalist metaphysics (Schmidt-Biggemann :q88a, ; Schneiders :q8b, 68). What these accounts have perhaps not made suciently clear, however, is the degree to which Leibnizs fashioning of a newand culturally authoritative persona for the philosopher that intellectual being who uncovers the forms of intelli- gibility common to all the sciences through an act of abstractive self- purication was dependent on a complex process of cultural transmission and adaptation. This is the process that saw the exercises used in the self-perfecting contemplation of the divine perfections adapted to the practice of philosophical reection on the pure concepts. These are the concepts intended to anchor the centrifugal civil sciences in transcendental reection on the pure forms of experience, thereby allowing philosophia Christiana to make the transition to its modern form rationalist metaphysics. So culturally ambitious was this metaphysical philosophy that it sought to expel rival civil modes neo-Stoic, neo-Epicurean, empiricist from the domain of philosophy altogether, appropriating the term philosophy for metaphysical philosophy alone. The eects of this cul- tural arrogation can still be felt today, in those histories of early modern German philosophy that chart a course from Leibniz to Kant via Wol, consigning the civil philosophers to a minor, barely philosophical role. Leibniz thus initiated a distinction between philosophy and history ::. Leibnizs political metaphysics that would indeed pass via Wol to Kant. He did so by identifying phi- losophy with pure insight into the a priori possibilities (possibilia) of things prior to their occurrence in time, and history with the merely empirical knowledge of things as they are given to the senses post facto (Schneiders :q86b). This hierarchical distinction between philosophy and history became metonymic for a whole series of distinctions between the ratio- nal and empirical disciplines, the pure and applied sciences. It also har- bours an image of the philosopher as a type of secular prophet who, through his pure apprehension of the a priori concepts, possesses privi- leged insight into the future course of history, as the eschatological unfolding of these concepts in time. The relation between the truth of metaphysical philosophy and the enlightened or exalted condition of the philosophical personage is clear enough in Leibnizs meditation On Wisdom, probably written in the last decade of the seventeenth century. Commenting that persons of rank too often squander their power to do good through succumbing to the pleasures of sensual indulgence only to reap the punishments of ill-health and ill-repute Leibniz prescribes a course of philosophical meditation. Only this can bring the true regenerative pleasure that comes with the perfecting of our intellects in the intellection of perfec- tion: Such joy, which a person can always create for himself when his mind [Gemth] is well ordered, consists in the perception of pleasure in himself and in the powers of his mind, when a man feels within himself a strong inclination and readiness for the good and the true, and particularly through the profound knowledge which an enlightened understanding provides for us, namely, that we experience the chief source, the course, and the purpose of everything, and the incomprehensible excellence of that Supreme Nature which comprises all things within it. Thus we are lifted above the unknowing, just as if we were looking down from the stars and could see all earthly things under our feet. (Lm, .; Ge, \ii, 8q) From this panoptic vantage-point, to which he accedes through the purication of his intellectual being, the metaphysical philosopher can view the objects of all the sciences via the light of reason which is born with us; for these objects are themselves only empirical manifestations of the pure ideas revealed in this light. Through this linkage of pure knowledge to the exalted purity of the philosophers persona, Leibniz carries forward the conception of metaphysics as the transcendental science of being as being and as the science of the sciences. For Leibniz, all men are in principle capable of attaining this level of The subject of metaphysics :: intellectual perfection, although in fact few actually do so, due to the pre- ponderance of the sensory perceptions and passions in the majority. We have already argued, however, that Leibnizs subject of reason is not even in principle universal. By virtue of its dependency on an instituted spiritual anthropology and an administered exercise in abstraction, the intuition of pure ideas takes place as the goal of a specialised spiritual grooming. Similar anthropologies and spiritual exercises were respon- sible for tying knowledge to personal holiness that is, to the culturally authoritative comportment of the sage or the holy man in antiquity (Brown :q8; Brown :q88a; I. Hadot :q86; P. Hadot :q86). They can also be found in the early modern Schulmetaphysik that Leibniz was adapting (Sparn :q6, :66; Sparn :qq.). Lutheran natural jurists such as Samuel Rachel, for example, tie knowledge of natural law to the good mans nobility of character in a manner that is typical of Protestant neoscholasticism: In the same way, although Natural Laws are in themselves certain, yet relatively to men and human knowledge they may be either obscure or uncertain or clear; so that, just as jurists employ as a kind of standard of human conduct the dili- gence of the good man [arbitrium boni viri], so, and rightly, philosophers refer to the judgment of a good man, whose nobility of character, , is known to be conjoined with Wisdom in an indissoluble connection, and who therefore knows better than anyone else whether a given action is or is not con- formable to the Natural Laws which Prudence has promulgated. (Rachel :q:6, .) It is reasonable to propose, therefore, that intethering rational knowledge to spiritual perfection andthereby attaching the civil sciences to the hub of Christian philosophy Leibniz was placing the ancient cultural authority of the sage at the disposal of the metaphysical enlightenment. It should now be clear that in deriving theo-rational concepts of law, politics, and religion through abstractive ascent to the intelligibles, Leibnizian metaphysics is not the elaboration of a conrmable theory. Rather, it constitutes a spiritual discipline aimed at forming a particular kind of intellectual deportment which, in fact, is the deportment of a particular kind of intellectual. This is an intellectual who will treat the existence of empiricalhistorical forms of law, politics, and religion as imperfect and corrupting. This transforms actually existing legal, politi- cal, and religious arrangements into the starting point for the exercise in spiritual ascent that will qualify the metaphysician to reshape them in accordance with metaphysical conceptions of justice and salvation. In :: Leibnizs political metaphysics short, if Leibnizian rationalism does not constitute a conrmable philo- sophical theory, that is because it embodies the spiritual grooming responsible for the authoritative spiritual deportment of the metaphysi- cal sage. It is in this light that we now turn to Leibnizs philosophical theology and then his natural law. . rni rosorni c\r +nroroov Leibnizs philosophical theology can only be understood against the backdrop of the civil philosophers attempt to extirpate the whole genre of natural theology. Here, we can recall Thomasius attack on the four books of Lombards Sentences, for their philosophical explication of the Christian mysteries: It is likely that in these four books Lombard had attempted to unite the doctrines of Augustine and Aristotle; [for] the whole work contains a mish-mash of theology and philosophy. The Holy Scriptures are explained in accordance with the principles of pagan phi- losophy. In ethics and natural law the old stupidities are advanced (VG, :q). For a long time, historians have seen the civil philosophers refusal to integrate theology and philosophy as symptomatic of their failure to develop a reconciliatory philosophical theology. Now, however, we can see this refusal as indicative of a profound historical analysis of the cul- tural and political functions of university metaphysics and natural theol- ogy. In rejecting all forms of natural theology in programmatically excluding all philosophical explications of the mysteries of sin, damna- tion, justication, and salvation from the sphere of civil knowledge Thomasius was executing the dual strategy that lies at the heart of civil philosophy: the desacralising of the civil and the privatising of the sacral. Concomitantly, in those works which he dedicated to the metaphysi- cal explication of Christian doctrine the Catholic Demonstrations (:668o), the Confessio Philosophi (:6), the Systema Theologicum(:686) and the Theodicy (::o) Leibniz was engaged in a process both more con- tentious and less benign than that of making religion safe for reason, or vice versa. In fact he was attempting to transfer the philosophical medi- ation of the Christian faith together with all of the power and prestige attaching to it from the custodianship of confessional theologians to that of rationalist metaphysicians. In ignoring the civil philosophers embargo on natural theology, Leibniz was thus engaged in an uncom- promising defence of the metaphysicians access to the divine and, Philosophical theology :: through this, of this personages claim to mediate Christian doctrine and authority in the civil domain. Leibnizs grandest version of this claim lies in his programme for reunifying the faith around a metaphysical expli- cation of Christian truths agreeable to all three confessions ( Jordan :q.; Wiedeburg :q6.). These at least are the propositions to be explored in our discussion of Leibnizs Confessio Philosophi. ... Theological philosophy Leibnizs Confessio Philosophi or Philosophers Confession of Faith was written in :6 but remained unpublished during his lifetime. Manuscripts were, however, circulated to inuential philosophers and theologians, includ- ing Antoine Arnauld and the Catholic vicar to the Hanoverian court, bishop Nicolaus Steno, who is the probable source of an important set of marginal annotations. Taking the form of a philosophical dialogue, the Confessio deals with the origin of sin and the defence of Gods just- ness in the face of the suering and damnation. It thus explores the central questions of the Theodicy, but in a more compact and lucid manner. In contrast with the civil-philosophical strategy of treating con- tentious doctrines as adiaphora, while simultaneously establishing theo- logically indierent forms of civil authority, Leibnizs objective in the Confessio is to construct a metaphysical surrogate for theological truth, making the latter available as a moral foundation for civil society. In the Confessio Leibniz concentrates on providing metaphysical expli- cations for the biblical doctrines of sin, damnation, and election. These explications are grounded in the metaphysical anthropology and cos- mology later elaborated in the Discourse on Metaphysics and the Monadology. In keeping with this ChristianPlatonic anthropology and cosmology, God is conceived as related to the world through an optimally harmoni- ous ordering of the series of things. This onto-theological order is grounded in Gods non-contradictory intellection of the essences and his choice of the best possible world. Among the innite other worlds that God might have actualised from his intelligising of non-contradictory and compossible (logically possible and actually compatible) sub- stances, the best possible world is the one that permits the maximum harmonisation of potentially conicting elements (DM, :6). The ethical or moraltheological dimension of this metaphysical cos- mology is encapsulated in the Confessios concept of happiness, whose roots lie not in the notion of social security that Leibnizs civil rivals were elaborating, but in the notion of spiritual felicity or beatitude. For ::6 Leibnizs political metaphysics Leibniz, as we have already seen, happiness is a spiritual condition arising from the souls intellectual contemplation of the divine harmony, representing in fact a taking on or participation in this harmony: rn[ilosopher]. I will take it from your answer that you and I accept [that if God is just he loves everyone]. Is there not general agreement that God is all-knowing? +n[eologian]. Yes, so? rn. Therefore no thinkable thing possesses harmony unless God perpetually knows it. +n. Agreed. rn. So, each happiness is harmonious or beautiful. +n. Granted. rn. Now, I will prove it so that others wont deny it. There is happiness only in the intellect. +n. Correct, because no-one is happy if he doesnt know that . . . Whoever is conscious of his condition is an intellectual being [mens, geistiges Wesen]. Therefore no-one is happy who is not an intellectual being. rn. That follows. In any case, happiness is the condition of the intellect that is most agreeable to the intellect itself; nothing is agreeable to the intellect, though, except harmony. +n. Yes, of course, because we have just agreed that to take pleasure [delectari] means nothing other than to experience harmony. rn. Happiness is based therefore in a spiritual condition of highest possible harmony. The nature of the intellect is thought; the harmony of the intellect is based therefore in the thought of harmony; [and] the highest harmony of the intellect or felicity [is based] nally in the contemplation of universal harmony that is, Gods in the intellect. +n. Excellent: because at the same time this shows that the happiness of the intellect and the contemplation of God are one. (CP, ) Harmony, as a mode of perfection, holds together the cosmological and moralanthropological sides of Leibnizs theology. On the one hand, harmony refers to the perfect condition of the cosmic order or total series of things arising from Gods nature or, equivalently, the ideas of things. On the other hand, it refers to the enlightened condition of the intellect that, in contemplating this order, establishes harmony within itself and with the divine order of things, which is the source of its felic- ity or perfection. As the most perfect being, God nds happiness or love in the felicity of all beings, this in turn making him most love-worthy; and, as justice consists in the love of all, God is most just. With this framework in place, Leibniz is ready to begin his metaphys- ical explication of the problems of evil and providence. It is the Theologian who plays devils advocate, drawing out what he takes to be Philosophical theology :: the heterodox fatalistic consequences of the Philosophers doctrine, and doing so in a manner that threatens to make it stand proxy for the Calvinist doctrine of predestination. If, argues the Theologian, God is the cause of the whole series of things, and if this series contains sin and evil, then God himself must be the author of evil unless, of course, there is a second wicked God, which is impossible. Moreover, if the events of the series ow of necessity from Gods intelligising of their a priori possibility if, as Leibniz would later argue, all the events that a monad may undergo are already contained in Gods intelligising it then it is necessary that some individuals, such as Pilate and Judas, should sin and be damned for eternity. Hence, if all-knowing God thus necessitates the whole cosmic series, he must will the damnation of some and the election of others, as the Calvinists teach, which is incompatible with his justice or universal love (CP, q, ). The Philosopher employs two kinds of argument to avert this chain of consequences, the rst one being an ethico-cosmological argument. As nothing exists without a sucient reason, and as the chain of sucient reasons leads ultimately to God as the ungrounded cause of the whole series one cannot wish to alter or suspend the chain of con- ditions without wishing Gods non-existence (CP, q, ). At the same time, however, we know with certainty that this world is the best possible that is, the one permitting the optimal harmonisation of dissonant ele- ments. This means that sin and evil are to be regarded as contributing to the overall harmony or perfection of the series; just as, in the words of the Philosopher, the painter uses shadow to enhance brightness and the doctor uses poison to cure illness. If, therefore, we wish to maintain the harmony and tranquillity of our own intellect, we must regard sin and evil as reconciled within the greater harmony of the divine order, somewhat in the manner of Stoic and Epicurean ethical cosmologies. Interwoven with this is a second, more strictly Christianmetaphysi- cal, argument. Just as Scheibler had done sixty years earlier, Leibniz argues that if we wish to understand how evil can be inevitable without being metaphysically necessary which would make God into its author we must rene our usual understanding of such concepts as necessity, possibility, and actuality. The key to this clarication lies in the meta- physical distinction between Gods existence that is, his understanding or intellection of things and his will. Like everything else, argues the Philosopher, evil exists in Gods understanding as a necessary possibil- ity, or as something whose thinking entails no contradiction. This con- cerns only the idea or essence of evil though, not its accidental or ::8 Leibnizs political metaphysics existential inevitability in the series of things that comprises this world (CP, q:). The existence of evil in the world which is indeed inevi- table and foreseen by God thus represents only an existential necessity, not an absolute one; something that God tolerates as part of the whole series of things (CP, , 6q). Hence God neither wills nor nds pleas- ure in sin and damnation, because he takes pleasure only in the integra- tion of evil in the larger perfection of the whole. Sin or evil thus arises from the contingency of the actual totality of things in fact from the imperfect actualisation of the intelligised perfections and is reconciled in Gods best possible harmonisation of this dissonant totality (CP, ). These two modes of argument are jointly responsible for Leibnizs novel metaphysical account of damnation and election. According to Leibniz the damned are those who die hating God. For, cut o from new impressions by separation from their bodies, these souls must remain imprisoned in their dying hateful thoughts for eternity, so that: Who hates God at their death therefore damns themselves (CP, ). On the one hand the gure of self-damnation is explicated via the ethico-cos- mological argument. The damned are those who die in a sinful or dis- sonant moral condition, hating God for the presence of evil in the world rather than achieving the self-harmonising love that comes with contem- plative acceptance of Gods reconciliation of evil in the greater cosmic good. On the other hand, Leibniz explains damnation via his distinction between metaphysical necessity and existential inevitability. Here, in the subtle ssure between the metaphysical necessity of the relations between divinely intelligised substances and the contingent necessity of their actualised forms, the damned souls are free to hate rather than to love God, which is a symptom of their imperfect actualisation. But they do so apparently only because of their erroneous knowledge of their place in this harmonised best of all orders. It thus appears that the correct metaphysical theory of the harmonic order is also the salvic means by which the elect bring themselves into harmony with this order: the harmony of the intellect is based therefore in the thought of harmony. If so, then rather than being a rational expli- cation of Christian doctrine, Leibnizs philosophical theology is laying claimto the power to save. We must therefore depart fromWalter Sparns interpretation of the Confessio, in which he credits it with striking a dialectical balance between the theosophical translation of Christian doctrine into idealist philosophy, and the anti-metaphysical two-truths doctrine, which consigns theology and philosophy to discrete (revealed Philosophical theology ::q and natural) spheres (Sparn :q86, :6). The synchronisation of this works philosophical and soteriological functions its ascription of salvic power to metaphysics itself suggests, however, that Leibniz was indeed attempting to fashion a philosophical substitute for religion. Moreover, by making moral redemptioncontingent onacceptance of the true philosophy, this cultural translation betrays the persistence of a certain kind of confessionalism. ..: Rationalism as religion We derive some evidence for the quasi-confessional character of Leibnizs philosophical theology from the contemporary reactions of an avowedly confessional theologian, Nicolaus Steno, the Hanoverian courts Catholic vicar. In the margin of his copy of the Confessio, adja- cent to Leibnizs account of the soul eternally imprisoned in its dying thoughts, Steno writes: This is a mere assertion. Why shouldnt the soul be able to perceive the conditions of the place in which it nds itself ? To which Leibniz counter-annotates: How else than through the corpo- real senses? (CP, :8q, fn. q). Here Leibnizs metaphysical account of damnation with the soul eternally imprisoned in its self-damning last thoughts through loss of new sensory inputs is seen by Steno as a non- authoritative rival confessional doctrine. In fact Leibnizs metaphysics of damnation conicts directly with Catholic teaching on the possibility of post-mortem redemption arising from the souls experiences in purgatory. Similarly, adjacent to Leibnizs claim that: God harms those who slavishly fear him or who wrongly assume that he will harm them, just as, conversely, he who rmly believes himself chosen or loved by God, brings it about that he (whom God loves constantly) will be elect (CP, ), Steno makes the following annotation: This too is a mere assertion because, on the contrary, everyone fears God at the beginning of their conversion, and assumes that he might at least occasionally harm them; but nonetheless in this way they are led to the complete trust of love. This provokes Leibnizs counter-claim: Those who slavishly fear God do not love him and are therefore not yet in the condition of grace. Therefore they will not be led to holiness in this way (CP, :q, fn. ). Recalling that Leibniz sees fear as arising from erroneous knowledge of the metaphysical order, this statement again suggests that he regards the truth of his metaphysics as possessing salvic power that is, as a rival confessional doctrine. It appears that only those who possess true meta- physical knowledge of the harmonisation of evil within the cosmic order :.o Leibnizs political metaphysics can be saved. For only thus is it possible to avoid the fear and hatred of God arising from the erroneous perception of unreconciled evil, and the damnation to which this leads. In fact the quasi-confessional character of Leibnizs enterprise is man- ifest at the very heart of his philosophers theology, at the point where his cosmology and anthropology intersect: namely, in the rationalist doc- trine that the moral condition of the will is a function of the rational con- formation of the intellect to divine ideas. Here, in the eld marked out by the long struggle between rationalism and voluntarism, Leibniz rehearses a problem which, we recall (see section :.), was central to Protestant Schulmetaphysik. This is the problem of reconciling the meta- physical conception of evil as the imperfect realisation of an essence or entelechy, with the biblical conception of sin as a culpable free choice. In fact, just like his Lutheran and Calvinist predecessors, Leibniz is forced to confront the problem that metaphysical rationalism appears to allow little scope for the freedom of the will necessary to make the damned responsible for their own punishment. Without such responsibility however Gods providence appears incapable of reconciliation with human notions of justice. Once again, Leibniz puts this critique of the metaphysical conception of evil into the mouth of the Theologian (CP, q). The damned are those who will not to love God but to fear and hate him, thereby becom- ing responsible for their own damnation when they are trapped in their dying thoughts. Given, though, that the Philosopher sees this condition of the will as arising from knowledge, knowledge from perception, and perception in turn from the souls location in the total series of things, then the sinful condition of the will is determined by the sinners place in the cosmic order. The damned would thus appear to be souls having the misfortune to occupy an imperfect or dissonant place in the cosmic order to be incapable of willing otherwise than the imperfect confor- mation of their intellects in this place permits hence to lack the freedom of will required to make them morally responsible for their damnation. The Philosopher begins his answer to this problem by arguing that a harmonious or good will is available to everyone, by virtue of the fact that it arises from rational contemplation of the order of things or the ideas in Gods mind (CP, q8:). This way of framing the issues, though, does not address the Theologians questions regarding free will and responsibility. Leibniz understands freedom of the will in a special meta- physical sense: not as the capacity to choose between alternative paths Philosophical theology :.: in an undetermined manner, but as the capacity spontaneously to actu- alise ones (intellectual) nature on the basis of true insight. In fact the Philosopher distinguishes between spontaneity the agents capacity to act in accordance with his nature and freedom, which is the dispas- sionate condition of the will arising from a pure and tranquil intellectual insight: Spontaneity comes from potency, freedom from knowledge (CP, 8). This means, however, that souls can only freely will the good, never evil; for the freedom of the will that comes with tranquil knowl- edge of the order of things allows only for the spontaneous actualisation of the souls (good) intellectual nature (CP, 8). As a result, Leibniz advances the denitive doctrine of rationalist theology, that every sin arises from error (CP, 8q). Sin is thus a purely privative or negative phe- nomenon, arising from the minds failure to conform itself to the theo- rational metaphysical order, which leads to the wills incapacity for love and justice. This doctrine does not, however, immediately solve the problem of freedom and moral responsibility for, as the Theologian concludes, if sin is actually based in error then: As a result, every sin is to be excused. The Philosophers response is worth quoting: rn. Not in the least; because just as light falls through a crack into the darkness [so] a means of escape stands within our power, assuming that we want to use it. +n. But why do some will to use it [the light of divine knowledge] and others not? rn. Because those who do not want to, do not understand that it can be used with prot; or, more specically, because their souls [anima, Geist] are such that it is as if it [the light] were completely absent; that is, [they are] without reection or attention, so that they look without seeing, listen without hearing. Here lies the beginning of the refusal of grace or, as it is called in the Holy Scripture, obstinacy. (CP, 8q) The problem with this solution, when seen from the viewpoint of modern academic philosophy, is clear enough. Leibniz having explained the condition of the will in terms of knowledge of the divine order when asked why only some make use of this knowledge, answers in terms of the condition of their will: everyone has access to the light of knowledge assuming that they want to use it. This impending circu- larity in the relation between the condition of the will and knowledge of the metaphysical order is only postponed by reference to the intellectual darkness of the damned souls, whose imbecility makes them obstinate and whose obstinacy makes them imbecile. In either case Leibnizs :.. Leibnizs political metaphysics explication does not leave the circle in which the sinful will is explained in terms of lack of understanding and lack of understanding in terms of the sinful will. .. The philosophers sin We are not however interested in viewing Leibnizs metaphysics of evil from the standpoint of modern academic philosophy, as if a better non- circular solution to this problem was waiting in the Kantian wings (Riley :qq6, q88). Rather, we are interested in it as a particular way in which a secular philosopher could lay claim to the authority owing from a longstanding and prestigious metaphysical explication of Christian sin. Once again bishop Steno oers us a way into the contemporary relig- ious signicance of Leibnizs philosophical theology. In one of his several attempts to clarify the free wills dependency on rational knowl- edge, Leibnizs Philosopher comments that: In order to maintain the privilege of a free will, it is enough that we position ourselves at the cross- roads of life in such a way that we can only do that which we will, and that we can only will that which we take to be good; but that we can only investigate that which is to be taken as good through the most complete use of our reason (CP, 8). Stenos response is brief and to the point: But [can this be so] when free will is necessary for the investigation? That Steno is alert to the aporia lying at the heart Leibnizs articulation of free will to rational knowledge is clear in the mini-dilemma that he sketches for it: Therefore [i.e., given the necessity of free will for the use of reason], either one praises the highest gift of reason in vain [because without free will it will not be used to know the good] or one must admit the freedom of its use. Leibnizs exasperated counter-annotation As if anyone seriously denied this freedom of its use! I dont understand the ideas that the critic formed as he read this is a more-than-rhetorical expression of the fact that he has not understood the force of Stenos criticism (CP, :, fn. :o; my italics and square brackets). For Steno is objecting to the fact that one cannot purport to derive freedom of the will from the use of reason (for harmonious intellection of the divine order), and then explain this use of reason by appealing to the free will. The important issue here, though, is not that Steno has identied the circularity of Leibnizs account, but that he has done so on the basis of a rival confessional theological anthropology. In fact Stenos criticism is grounded in the Catholic teaching that the subject of reason must be graced with a degree of moral regeneration, hence freedom of will, before Philosophical theology :. pursuing rational knowledge of the good. The religious character of the bishops Christian anthropology is thus a pointer to the religious char- acter of the Philosophers Platonic one. In fact both anthropologies may be regarded as specic ascetic means for programming a particular relation to the self and way of life. In treating rational intellection as dependent on a prior sacerdotal regeneration of the will, Steno staunchly limits the power of the keys to the Catholic clergy. Leibnizs neo-Platonic treatment of rational intellection as the source of purity of will should thus be seen as a rival theological anthropology, aimed at making the philosopher morally self-generative. In this light it comes as less of a surprise to observe that Leibnizs treat- ment of evil is an improvisation on patterns of thought already elab- orated in early-seventeenth-century metaphysical theology. Sparn, we recall (:.), argues that reconciling the fatalism of pagan moral anthro- pology with the Christian demands for free will and moral responsibil- ity is the constitutive problem for metaphysical discussions of evil. For Lutheran metaphysicians such as Balthasar Meisner the problem was how to reconcile the privative Aristotelian conception of evil as the imperfect realisation of an entelechy or substantial form with the Christian conception of sin as the freely chosen transgression of divine law. This is something that Meisners dualistic framework allows him to overcome by treating mankinds rst sin as a transgressive choice that corrupted the human faculties, making humanitys imperfect realisation into the outcome of a positive choice the choice of a awed metaphys- ical nature. For their part, Sparn argues, the Calvinist and Catholic metaphysicians held a much more strongly metaphysical conception of radical evil. In treating evil as ontologically embedded either in matter or in the esh just in fact as Leibniz locates it in the rational monads sensory imperfection they nd it much harder to escape the conse- quences of pagan fatalism (Sparn :q6, :o8o). Given our immediate concerns, however, it is not the dierences between these various formu- lations that matter but their similarities. For all of them arise as theolog- ically impelled attempts to reconcile the pagan philosophical and Christian theological conceptions of evil, in keeping with the constitu- tive historical task of Christian university metaphysics as such. In attempting the same reconciliation moreover in attempting it in pre- cisely the same terms as its theological predecessors Leibnizs theodicy remains on the terrain of Christian metaphysical theology. The impor- tant historical dierence of course is that Leibniz was pursuing this :. Leibnizs political metaphysics exalted task outside the theology faculty, as an unconsecrated or, better, as a self-consecrating metaphysician. We may conclude therefore that the exoteric rationalisation of theol- ogy in Leibnizs philosophical theology was underpinned by a profound sacralisation of philosophy and the philosopher. The main dierence between Leibnizs metaphysical theology and Lutheran Schulmetaphysik is that the latter permitted escape from the damning circle between intel- lectual imperfection and moral corruption via the regeneration of the subject that came with Eucharistic participation in the Logos. Somewhat unexpectedly, Leibnizs trans-confessional Platonic universalisation of the rational subject removed this escape route. Ostensibly requiring no prior moral qualication of the capacities, Leibnizs rational subject is always already saved or, equivalently, always already damned. In the lan- guage of the Monadology, the damned soul reects the cosmic order from an imperfect viewpoint, whereby its intellectual capacity represents a degree of perfection determined by the sensory impressions to which it has been subject in that place: It is not in the object but in the modication of their knowledge of the object that the monads are limited. They all move confusedly toward the innite, toward the whole, but they are limited and distinguished from each other by the degrees of their distinct perceptions (Mo, 6o). The one way of avoiding the hatred of God arising from the imperfect viewpoint is to achieve that knowl- edge of the harmony of good and evil in the cosmic order which has the eect of harmonising the soul itself. But this knowledge represents another, more perfect, vantage point in that order and is simply not available to those still mired in their confused sensory impressions. In the Confessio, this state of aairs is captured in Leibnizs doctrine that souls dier only by virtue of their location in the cosmic order. Given that this location determines their respective moral identities, it would be as vain for a damned soul to blame God for its reprobation as it would for a peasant boy to blame his father for not marrying a queen (CP, :.o). For our purposes, the signicance of this striking gure lies not its faintly shocking callousness, but in what it tells us about the moral signicance that Leibniz ascribed to his philosophical theology. We have already observed that it is only the contemplative metaphysical view- point with its capacity to harmonise the intellect through the thought of harmony that permits souls to achieve the inner tranquillity that attunes them to the divine order and hence redeems them from sin. This means, however, that the moralintellectual natures characteristic of Philosophical theology :. particular places in this order are dierentiated only through their adherence to the metaphysical viewpoint. In other words, Leibnizs metaphysics itself now appears as a saving truth, occupying the same soteriological space as the confessional theologies it was intended to replace. Moreover, given the complete incapacity of Leibnizs rational- ism to dierentiate between philosophical error and moral sin between the inattentiveness of the intellect and the corruption of the will then it may be legitimate to punish those who adhere to erroneous doctrines or even to compel them to adhere to a true metaphysics. We will return to these possibilities at the end of the chapter, when discussing Leibnizs views on the decriminalisation of heresy. For the moment we can conclude that Leibnizs metaphysics is indic- ative of a profound re-ordering of the cultural relations between theol- ogy and philosophy; for it makes metaphysics itself into a saving truth, acceptance of which is the condition of membership of a new elect. In comparison with the twin strategies employed by the civil philosophers the privatisation of theological truth and the desacralisation of civil authority Leibnizs philosophical theology is thus symptomatic of a quite dierent cultural strategy. It represents the neo-confessional transformation of Protestant university metaphysics into a supra-politi- cal metaphysical rationalism. This is grounded in the exalted spiritual deportment of the metaphysical sage who now claims the confessional theologians right to direct the civil authority in accordance with transcendent truths. Such is the transformation that gave birth to Leibnizs political metaphysics and metaphysics of law. . +nr xr+\rnvsi cs or r\v In our Introduction we observed that the seventeenth century witnessed the clash between two kinds of natural jurisprudence. From Aquinas through Melanchthon to Surez and Althusius, scholastic or Christian natural law had maintained the theological basis of civil authority by modelling the person as a being capable of natural knowledge of divine moral law (Haakonssen :qq6, :.6). This allowed political sovereignty to be treated as the earthly form in which such persons exercised their natural right to order the moral communities that are the realisation of this law (Tierney :qq, .88:). As the discipline charged with recon- ciling natural and revealed knowledge, university metaphysics played a key role in the formulation of neoscholastic natural law doctrines during the seventeenth century. It taught men how they might accede to natural :.6 Leibnizs political metaphysics knowledge of divine laws through the spark of divine reason, and how the civil community could mirror or foreshadow the heavenly one, if only men would associate in accordance with the moral law. It was just this claim to special insight into transcendent law that was repudiated by the civil philosophers. They saw it as an instance of the clerisys attempt to maintain its civil power, thereby jeopardising the des- acralisation of the state. This is what led Pufendorf and Thomasius, in the aftermath of the Thirty Years War to reconstruct natural law from within, seeking to give it a form that would reect the secularisation of civil governance that had taken place in the politicaljurisprudential sphere. The full exposition of this reconstruction is reserved for our chapters on the two civil philosophers. For the moment we may observe that despite the longstanding and deep-rooted failure of philosophical historians to dierentiate clearly the two forms this civil natural law diered fundamentally from the metaphysical form that it was born to combat. Rather than treating mans natural knowledge of transcendent morality as the foundation of social order, the new civil natural law saw such knowledge claims as a central problem for social order given the recent profound and bloody disagreements over transcendent morality. It therefore sought a new natural law foundation for society, nding this in mans capacity to change his own moral nature, through the institu- tion of civil sovereignty, in the interest of civil security. This meant that ethics would be subordinate to the end of social peace and to the laws of the only institution capable of attaining this end, the sovereign terri- torial state. It is no surprise, therefore, that civil natural law was pro- foundly and vehemently anti-metaphysical. For it identied the metaphysical image of the person, or the image of the metaphysical per- sonage the rational being capable of governing itself and society on the basis of transcendent rational and moral laws as the intellectual icon of confessional society. It sought to replace this image with various voluntarist and neo-Epicurean conceptions of man. The civil philoso- phers Epicurean man is a creature whose passions not only remove him from divine intellection but also threaten him with utter destruction, leaving him only enough knowledge of the natural law now focused in sheer survival rather than spiritual perfection to institute the sovereign who would enforce it. Despite the fact that he did not write a full natural lawsystem, Leibnizs various writings on this theme are of great historical signicance. They represent the key transitional formin which the neoscholastic metaphys- ical natural law of the confessional period was modied and passed into The metaphysics of law :. the eighteenthcentury, where it wouldbe resumedby Kant among others. Patrick Riley thus illuminates our understanding of Leibniz by treating his central natural lawdoctrine the theory of a universal jurisprudence common to the religious and civil domains as deeply rooted in the ChristianPlatonic anthropology and cosmology of the Discourse on Metaphysics and the Monadology (Riley :qq6, :). Yet we must be careful not to treat Leibnizs natural lawas simply an alternative theory of justice to that oered by Hobbes and Pufendorf especially not as a superior one. As we have begun to see, these conicting doctrines were not grounded in theoretical ideas but in the grooming of certain kinds of person possessed of distinctive intellectual deportments. Moreover, at stake in their disagreement was not a theoretical victory but something far more consequential: the right to congure the relation between spiritual and political governance in civil society. In fact all of the participants to this great intellectual conict were advisors to governments that were attempting to reprogramme this relation in the aftermath of a protracted, vicious, and destructive series of religious civil wars. Once this is recalled, then Leibnizs proposal to refound law and politics in a transcendent morality may lose something of the warmglowthat surrounds it in many modern commentaries; for this of course was the longstanding impera- tive of neoscholastic natural law. Further, in discussing his philosophical theology, we have seen that Leibnizs rationalism is not as far removed from theological metaphysics as it rst seems. In any case, approaching Leibnizs philosophy in this manner gives us a new insight into the hostil- ity displayed in his Opinion on the Principles of Pufendorf (:o6), which takes us to heart of Leibnizs version of Christian natural law. As we have already noted, Leibnizs commentary on Pufendorf s De Ocio Hominis et Civis arose in response to a prelates concern regarding the suitability of Pufendorf s natural law as a topic of instruction for the young (PW, 6). Given the steadily increasing use of the De Ocio in Protestant universities in the early eighteenth century, and given our account of the two forms of natural law as rival comportment educa- tions, this pedagogical concern takes on its full signicance. As Sieglinde Othmer has shown, in making the central doctrines of his massive De Jure Naturae et Gentium (:6.) available in an epitome suited to the capac- ities of undergraduates, Pufendorf s De Ocio was a potent means of dis- seminating the new detranscendentalised ethics and secularised politics of civil philosophy. Commenting on Barbeyracs French translation of the De Ocio (:o) for the Huguenot Diaspora, Jacques Bernard, editor of the Nouvelles de la Republique des Lettres, prophesied that here it would be the magistrate, the military man, the businessman, the artisan . . . who :.8 Leibnizs political metaphysics will nd the rules of their conduct (Othmer :qo, :.6). This, of course, was precisely what Leibniz and the Christian natural jurists were afraid of. It comes as no surprise therefore that Leibnizs commentary takes the form of a warning (monita), stressing not only the intellectual errors of Pufendorf s natural law but more especially its moral corruption and social danger. We noted in our introductory comments that Leibniz identies three central errors in Pufendorf s work. First, focusing on the De Ocios strict separation of natural and revealed knowledge, and its attendant uncou- pling of mans temporal happiness from his eternal felicity, Leibniz attacks Pufendorf s restriction of natural law to the end of secular civil welfare (PW, 668). This restriction, he argues, renders the science inca- pable of its divine objects, connes it to merely civil duties and, in excluding the souls immortality, robs it of the normative force owing from the whole economy of divine rewards and punishments. Leibnizs next target is Pufendorf s stipulation that natural law applies only to mans external actions (PW, 68o). When joined with its corollary that the inner purity of mans soul is a matter of revelation to be dealt with in a completely separate discipline of moral theology this stipulation, Leibniz argues, is an excessively hard and objectionable doctrine. Not only does it jeopardise universal jurisprudence by detaching civil from religious law, it also threatens to exclude Christian philosophers moral philosophers and natural theologians from the sphere of a detranscendentalised natural law. It does so by assigning their privileged object the question of the minds inner conformity to a pure reason and will to the domain of revealed theology. Finally, confronting the voluntarist character of Pufendorf s account of the ecient cause of natural law, Leibniz argues that in deriving natural law duties from the command of a superior, rather than from the eternal truths of a divine mind, Pufendorf destroys the rational and moral basis of natural law. Like Hobbes, Pufendorf s voluntarism removes all capacity to judge earthly tyrants, by equating justice with their positive law; and, again like Hobbes, it also threatens to turn God into a divine tyrant, by robbing us of insight into the norms that govern his actions and make them praiseworthy. Against Pufendorf s secularising and naturalising voluntarism, Leibniz thus mobilises his own theo-rational metaphysics: Neither the norm of conduct itself, nor the essence of the just, depends on [Gods] free decision, but rather on eternal truths, objects of the divine intel- lect, which constitute, so to speak, the essence of divinity itself; and it is right that our author is reproached by theologians when he maintains the contrary; because, I believe, he had not seen the wicked consequences which arise from The metaphysics of law :.q it. Justice, indeed, would not be an essential attribute of God, if he himself established justice and law by his free will. And, indeed, justice follows certain rules of equality and or proportion [which are] no less founded in the immut- able nature of things, and in the divine ideas, than are the principles of arith- metic and of geometry. (PW, :) Leibniz concludes his commentary by constructing a dilemma for Pufendorf s voluntarism (PW, ). Pufendorf, he observes, having derived natural law duties from the superiors command, also, and inconsistently, adds that the superior must have just causes for this coer- cion. But, Leibniz argues, either these just causes are justifying reasons, in which case political obligation ows from the reasons not the command; or they are not, in which case the sovereigns commands lack a justifying reason, thereby reducing right to the sheer exercise of might. As we shall see, this way of establishing mutually exclusive relations between philosophical reason and political sovereignty was destined to have a big future in the history of philosophy. The most striking feature of Leibnizs criticisms is the light that each of them sheds on the real historical contest that was driving his attack on Pufendorf s natural law: namely, the struggle over the proper conguration of religious and civil governance, and over the appropri- ate roles of religious and civil intellectuals. In objecting to Pufendorf s restriction of the end of natural law to civil welfare, Leibniz was actu- ally resisting the detranscendentalising of ethics that the civil philoso- phers were attempting to bring about in the Protestant arts faculty. Similarly, in attacking the De Ocios connement of natural law to mans external actions to the complete exclusion of any concern with his inner intellectual purity Leibniz was not only taking oence at Pufendorf s expulsion of Christian philosophers from the domain of natural law. He was also resisting the exclusion of transcendent moral- ity from the exercise of civil authority, which was of course central to Pufendorf s desacralisation of political governance. Finally, in criticising Pufendorf s voluntaristic reconstruction of duties in terms of the command of a superior, Leibniz was repudiating the most fundamental of the civil philosophers desacralising strategies. For this was the way in which Pufendorf excluded all transcendental justications for sove- reignty the exercise of natural or divine right, the defence of the faith, the preservation of the godly community reconstructing political and ethical duties in terms of unconditional obedience to commands issued for the preservation of social peace. In each of these regards Leibniz was of course defending the rival way of conguring the relations between religious (transcendentalmoral) and civil governance. In fact, he was :o Leibnizs political metaphysics defending some version of a state of aairs in which civil ethics and pol- itics would continue to be subordinated to a (natural) moral theology. This resacralising subordination of the civil to the transcendental would be executed not by the old clergy but by a new kind of philosoph- ical theologian. The natural or rational theologian would be qualied to judge the inner moral condition of the citizens of the moral community through his own metaphysical participation in the transcendent wise love that dened Gods universal justice. Given that this was the historical stake, it is somewhat surprising that so many commentators should continue to treat Leibnizs attack on Pufendorf as simply part of a general theoretical critique of voluntar- ist (Hobbesian) ethics and politics (Barreau :qq; Riley :qq6, .:; Schneewind :qq6; Sve :q8q; Sve :qq). Given our present interest in grasping the historical conict between civil and metaphysical natural law, this intellectualist approach suers from three main deciencies. First, it uproots Leibnizs anti-political natural law from the circum- stances in which it conicted with civil natural law over the correct intel- lectual conguration of civil and religious authority. In particular, by considering him as a genius, it underestimates Leibnizs dependency on the neoscholastic natural law of a particular group of Lutheran aca- demic theologians and natural jurists. Second, those adopting this approach generally assume that Leibnizs rationalist construction of justice is philosophically superior to Pufendorf s voluntarist one. But this assumption obscures the degree to which Leibnizs rationalism is in fact the instrument for a rival spiritual grooming, and thereby a rival conception of the role of religious intellectuals in civil life. Finally, we can identify the assumption that Leibnizs maintenance of continuity between civil law and transcendent morality between human and divine justice is ethically and politically superior to Pufendorf s desac- ralising separation of these spheres. In regarding this continuity as restoring a higher justice (wise love) to the otherwise brutish reign of political utility, commentators like Barreau and Sve seem to forget the extraordinary brutality that had owed from the meshing of transcen- dent morality and civil authority in the confessional state. In any case, as we shall now see, each of these assumptions is unsuited to understand- ing the historical reality of Leibnizs legal and political metaphysics. ... Leibniz and Christian natural law We have already encountered the so-called Christian natural jurists, in our Introduction. As one of his theology professors at the University of The metaphysics of law :: Leipzig, Valentin Alberti had warned the young Thomasius against reading Pufendorf. Later, when Pufendorf s arguments had done their work, Alberti was among the phalanx of neoscholastic philosophers and theologians who had lobbied the Saxon court to prevent Thomasius from lecturing on theological matters, forcing him to seek refuge at the University of Halle in :6q: (Grunert :qq6b; Lieberwirth :q). As Thomas Ahnert has argued, this dispute cannot be understood as a conict between religious orthodoxy and enlightenment rationalism (Ahnert :qqq, 68.). In fact, in deriving natural law from necessary moral laws common to God and man, Alberti is the rationalist, not Thomasius. Thomasius thus attacks Alberti for overestimating the powers of reason, precisely because Albertis theo-rational conception of moral law is incompatible with the civil philosophers detranscenden- talising of ethics and desacralising of politics. Leibniz, we have observed, insists that theologians like Alberti are right to attack Pufendorf for denying that natural law is grounded in eternal truths common to God and man (PW, :). This, we may propose, is in part because Leibnizs rationalism is much closer to Albertis Platonised scholasticism than is generally understood. But it is also because Alberti belonged to a network of Lutheran natural jurists whose work Leibniz knew intimately. In his still-indispensable study of the intellectual sources of Leibnizs natural law, Hans-Peter Schneider demonstrates the degree to which Leibnizs legal metaphysics depends on fundamental forms of thought already elaborated within this network (Schneider :q6). Its members Alberti, David Mevius, Valentin Veltheim, David Placcius, Samuel Strimesius, Johann Prasch, and Samuel Rachel may be regarded as heirs to the early-seventeenth- century Protestant Schulmetaphysik of Meisner, Scheibler, and the Martinis, even if some of them had already moved away from the earlier dualistic form of Lutheran metaphysics towards a more Platonic meta- physical rationalism. In fact, the central lesson of Schneiders study is that the Lutheran natural jurists had moved in this direction develop- ing a doctrine of natural law based on the metaphysical recovery of the a priori norms underpinning both divine and human justice in order to combat the secularising eects of Hobbes and Pufendorf s anti- metaphysical separation of religious and civil authority (Schneider :q6, :.6, :q). Schneiders study thus shows us that even after the Treaty of Westphalia whose granting of toleration to the three main confessions marked a decisive (politicaljurisprudential) desacralising of political governance Lutheran academic metaphysicians and theologians :. Leibnizs political metaphysics continued to argue for the subordination of civil authority to transcen- dent moral truths, insisting, for example, that the Decalogue remain central to natural law hence to the civil law it founded. Further, in showing the striking similarity between this Lutheran metaphysics of law and Leibnizs particularly in their common appeal to the notion of a self-purifying ascent to the divine forms of justice this study raises the question of the degree to which Leibniz too sought to continue the sub- ordination of civil authority to transcendent truth, although this is not a question that interests its author. Schneider identies two main intellectual tendencies that emerged from the heartland of Lutheran university metaphysics and converged in Leibnizs doctrine of natural law. The rst is a renewed stress on the orthodox doctrine of man in his regenerate condition the status integrit- atis. Through this moral anthropology of regenerative man, certain Lutheran jurists and metaphysical theologians sought to combat the vol- untarism and statism of civil philosophy, by invoking mans remnant capacity for governing himself through participation in divine intellec- tion. The legal metaphysicians David Mevius (:6oqo) and Samuel Rachel (:6.8q:), the Leipzig theologian Valentin Alberti (:6q), and the Regensburg jurist Johann Ludwig Prasch (:6qo) the latter invoked by Leibniz in his attack on Pufendorf were leading represen- tatives of this line. They argued that mans intellectual and moral facul- ties had not been completely corrupted at the Fall; that he retained a remnant of their perfect spiritual form in the shape of his imago Dei or God-likeness; and that through this residuum of his spiritual nature man acceded to a partial awareness of the divine law that governed his society with God in the state of innocence. This dim outline of divine law inscribed in human reason that is, in the spiritual remnant of the soul is natural law. The nature on which this conception of natural law is based is not the passional nature posited by the civil philosophers, but mans divine imaginal nature. The fact that this nature is in turn identied with ratio- nal being or reason is an appropriate pointer to the theological charac- ter of seventeenth-century rationalism. Samuel Rachels De Jure Naturae et Gentium Dissertationes (Dissertations on the Law of Nature and Nations) of :66 which, in addition to a ferocious denunciation of Hobbes, contains a rebuttal of Pufendorf s recently published and similarly titled work provides us with a typical formulation of this theme: Come, then, let us see what is the utility of a knowledge of Natural Law. He who rightly pursues his enquiry into it will in the rst place get in some sort to understand what is that Image of God [imago Dei ] in which man was originally The metaphysics of law : created. That it consisted before everything in Justice and Holiness, we have the Apostles warrant (Ephesians, ch. , v. .; Colossians, ch. , v. :o), so that man can not only readily ascertain the Divine will and distinguish what is to be done from what is to be left undone, but also can exactly conform his own will and conduct to the Divine will and render perfect obedience to the Law of God . . . Now after the rst-create threw away this perfection by their disobedience (Romans, ch. , v. :o), and had begotten issue in their own likeness (Genesis, ch. , v. ), and the light of their intellect was darkened and the inclinations and disinclinations of their appetites had begun to be varied and vast, there was yet left to man Reason; and this Reason, contriving to retain a certain degree of Rightness, rec- ognised and promulgated the Law of Nature which is written on the heart, and controlled and curbed by its authority the activities of the soul. For although fallen man can not exactly conform his will to the Divine will and his conduct to the standard of Natural Law, yet it remained as binding on him after as before the Fall. (Rachel :q:6, q) Here we have a clear indication of the manner in which the Lutheran natural lawyers could use a rationalistic version of the imago Dei doctrine in order to defend the notion of a natural or philosophical knowledge of mans inner conformation to divine law. This was their way of combat- ing Hobbes and Pufendorf s strict separation of revealed and natural knowledge and the consequent uncoupling of religious and civil law. On this basis Rachel who taught Prasch and some of whose works bear Leibnizs (probable) annotations could argue that underpinning the civil law to which man is subject as the citizen of a particular state, there is a higher natural law to which he accedes via his imago Dei or reason. This natural law is in fact the Christian lex caritas or law of love, epitomised in the two commandments to love God and to love ones neighbour. Rachels identication of the imago Dei with mans partially regenerate reason which allows him a natural philosophical access to the law of love suggests that the neoscholastic natural jurists tied love to justice in essentially the same way as Leibniz. In fact the gure of the imago Dei remains central to Leibnizs metaphysics, helping to give shape to the transcendent character of mans capacity for philosophical reection, as we are reminded by the following passage from the Discourse on Metaphysics: It is also only by virtue of the continual action of God upon us that we have in our soul the ideas of all things; that is to say, since every eect expresses its cause, the essence of our soul is a certain expression, imitation, or image of the divine essence, thought, and will and of all the ideas which are comprised in God (DM, .8). In arguing that man accedes to the law of love by refurbishing the capacity for pure thought through which he participates in divine intellection, Leibniz was : Leibnizs political metaphysics thus improvising on one of the central themes of the Lutheran legal metaphysics. The second way of tethering civil law to Christian natural law or jurisprudence to Christian metaphysics involved the direct application of the central doctrines of Protestant Schulmetaphysik as found, for example, in the works of Christoph Scheibler. Here Schneider focuses on the grounding of natural law in the fundamental gure of Gods emanation of the universes ontological and moral order, through his intelligising of the non-contradictory essences and his willing of the most perfect world. It was on this basis that the professors of philosophy and theology Valentin Veltheim (:6:oo) and Samuel Strimesius (:68:o) argued that Gods intellection is natural law, as it gives things their whatness and actions their goodness (Schneider :q6, .6). It is not the command of a superior therefore that provides the ontolog- ical and cognitive ground of natural law but right reason (recta ratio), either originally because mans reason once agreed with Gods or in its devolved imaginal form. Human society is thus a reection of divine community, as human beings are intellectual substances emanating from the divine intellection of the universe and imitating this intellection each according to their degree of perfection. The extent to which Leibniz drew on this metaphysics or onto-theol- ogy of natural law is conveyed in a striking gure of thought in his Meditation on the Common Concept of Justice of c. :o. which, in its turn, anticipates some of the central doctrines of the Monadology of ::. Having commented that microscopic examination of insects and other small things reveals the design of the divine craftsman in his work, Leibniz continues: Thus by much stronger reasons craftsmanship and harmony would be found in large things, if we were capable of seeing them as a whole. And above all they would be found in the whole economy of the governance of spirits, which are the substances most resembling God, because they are [themselves] capable of recognising and of producing order and craftsmanship. And as a consequence, one must conclude that the author of things, who is so inclined to order, will have had particular care for it with respect to those creatures who are naturally sources of order, in proportion to their perfection, and who alone are capable of imitating his craftsmanship. But it is not possible that this should seem so to us, in this small particle of life which we live here below, and which is an incon- siderable fragment of a life without bounds which no spirit will lose. To con- sider this fragment separately is to consider things like a broken stick or like the bits of esh torn from an animal, where the craftsmanship of its organs cannot suciently appear. (PW, :.) The metaphysics of law : Finally, if Leibnizs metaphysical grounding of natural law thus bears a strong resemblance to Alberti and Veltheims neoscholastic version, then his use of this metaphysics as a weapon against Pufendorf also follows theirs. In fact, in rejecting Pufendorf s treatment of natural law as the means to mans civil security, Alberti and Veltheim appeal to the grounding of natural law in morally necessary divine truths. This of course anticipates Leibnizs main line of attack on Pufendorf. Leibnizs insistence that: Neither the norm of conduct itself, nor the essence of the just, depends on [Gods] free decision, but rather on eternal truths, objects of the divine intellect, which constitute . . . the essence of divin- ity itself is virtually identical with Albertis identication of the law with Gods intellection of necessary truths. Far from being minor German writers who had failed to develop a metaphysics of law harmonious with Platonistic rationalism, the Lutheran natural jurists were in fact the pow- erful source of just such a legal metaphysics, elaborated specically to combat the desacralising of law and politics being pursued by the civil philosophers. This is not to deny, of course, that Leibnizs natural law was in a certain sense more secular than Veltheims, Albertis, and Rachels. But even here the dierences are not as great as is generally argued, as we shall now see. ..: Metaphysical abstraction and the spiritualisation of law Riley, we recall, regards Leibnizs Platonistic philosophical recovery of the divine perfections or essences specically the perfection of divine justice as the mode in which he integrated Christian law (the lex caritas) in a scientic and enlightened philosophical jurisprudence (Riley :qq6, :q). We have already questioned the adequacy of this account as applied to Leibnizs metaphysics in general, arguing instead that his doc- trine of metaphysical abstraction should be regarded as the architecture of a particular kind of spiritual exercise. This is an exercise that ties the formal purity of concepts to the moral self-purication of the philoso- pher, who thinks them via ascent from impure sensory ideas to the self- perfecting intellection of the perfections or essences. Now we can apply this historical reconstruction to the role of abstraction in Leibnizs meta- physics of law in particular. In doing so we discover that while Leibnizs legal metaphysics is indicative of a certain secularisation of Christian natural law in the sense that Leibnizs more intensely Platonistic con- struction was designed for use beyond the sacral connes of the theol- ogy faculty it is also symptomatic of a profound spiritualisation of civil jurisprudence. :6 Leibnizs political metaphysics Leibniz applies this method of abstraction to the construction of natural law by treating justice as one of the hidden perfections. To uncover the intelligible notion or formal reason of justice, it is necessary to withdraw from the domain of empirical or positive laws and seek the pure concepts on which universal justice is based. Universal justice, Leibniz declares, is a pure concept formed from the combination of wisdom, love, and goodness. Wisdom in fact comprises metaphysical knowledge of the perfections or hidden forms emanating from Gods intelligising of the cosmos, while love is the happiness intelligent beings nd when conforming themselves to these perfections, and goodness that which serves in the perfection of intelligent substances (PW, o). Rather than viewing it as a mere semantic clarication, Leibniz thus regards his formal denition of justice justititia est caritas sapientis, justice is the love of the wise man as actually recovering the perfection of pure justice from the husks of empirical law, and, presumably, as perfecting the one who recovers it. Leibnizs formal or a priori construction of the intelligible notion of justice the notion of caritas sapientis or love governed by wisdom thus provides the architecture for a particular exercise in intellectual self- transformation. This is designed to lead those worthy to be philoso- phers from their experience of empirical law to the intellection of the pure form of justice. Leibniz oers a remarkable short demonstration of this exercise in a letter to the Electress Sophie of Hanover in :6q: Justice is charity conformed to wisdom. Wisdom is the science of felicity. Charity is a universal benevolence. Benevolence is a habit of loving. To love is to nd pleasure in the good, perfection, the happiness of another. And by this denition one can resolve . . . a great diculty which is important even in theology how it is possible that there be a nonmercenary love, detached from hope and from fear, and from all concern for our own interest. It is that the felicity, or the perfection of another, in giving us pleasure, enters immediately into our own felicity. For all that pleases is desired for itself, and not through interest. It is a good in itself, and not a useful good. It is thus that the contemplation of beautiful things is agreeable in itself, and that a painting by Raphael moves him who looks at it with enlightened eyes, though he derives no prot from it. (Leibniz in Riley :qq6, :.) The key to this construction of formal justice lies in a doctrine that we rst encountered in our brief observation of the metaphysics of Albert the Great (:.). This is the doctrine that humans may only participate in the divine perfections or intelligibles here the perfection of justice The metaphysics of law : to the extent that they perfect that part of themselves which they share with the true bearer of metaphysical knowledge, God. They do this, it will be recalled, by purging their intellects of all those sensory images and inclinations that tie them to the mere worldly utility of things. In this way they rise to contemplate the intelligible at the point of its emana- tion from God, where it brings happiness, or is good, merely by being beheld. This gure of thought is the source of the longstanding anti- consequentialist character of metaphysical ethics. For, unlike material beings, whose ends lie outside them in the form of a multiplicity of goods or desires, divine intelligible being contains its own good, or, equiva- lently, is good in itself , hence constitutes the highest good simply by realising its own end. For such a being there is no gap between acting in accordance with the law and realising its own desires between good- ness and happiness; for, in realising an immanent end, intelligible being wills only its own perfection, possessing only good inclinations. In the case of Leibnizs metaphysics of law, knowledge of the per- fection or pure concept of justice (as wise love) is thus dependent on one perfecting oneself. This requires purging ones love of all sensuous inter- est, so that it becomes nonmercenary happiness in intellectual perfec- tions, and purging ones wisdom of all sensory-empirical adhesions, so that it becomes the a priori science of this happiness. To see this concept of justice one must therefore look on it with enlightened eyes. In con- crete historical terms this means that only those individuals who have undertaken these specic self-purifying intellectual exercises associated with the cultivation of an illuminated intellectual deportment will be deemed to have insight into the pure concept of justice. This intellectual ethos and deportment is of course that of the university metaphysician. By oering a new way of reconciling philosophy and theology, this gure began to emerge as an authoritative moralsocial personage, character- ised by the possession of what may be termed secular holiness. In val- idating his wisdom through the personal purity he displays in rising above merely interested or utilitarian conceptions of law (as the means to social peace), the metaphysical sage warrants the higher concept of justice, as wise love, through the moral and epistemological prestige of his persona. He thus functions as humanitys proxy in the divine order, mediating its supra-mundane concept of justice not through his human understanding but via the condition that he must imitate divine wise love in order to know it. This tying of the abstract or pure concept of justice to the spiritual purity of the metaphysical philosopher was already a feature of the :8 Leibnizs political metaphysics Lutheran metaphysics of law on which Leibniz was drawing. In his crit- icisms of Osiander, Rachel, for example, treats abstraction as the means by which the philosopher passes from the actual (positive) law suited to mans fallen state to the natural law governing his incorrupt or regener- ate condition. Herein, unless I err, he [Osiander] has come to grief through dening the Law of Nature as Habituation (habitum) and saying that it resides like something habitual (his own word) in the mind of man, the result being that he does not contemplate the Law of Nature in itself and in the abstract [in se & in abstracto], nor the mind of man as it ought to be, but the latter in a corrupt state and the former (habit forsooth!) contaminated and, so to say, submerged by a ood of vices (Rachel :q:6, o). That men often act contrary to natural law as a matter of fact is thus no impediment to the teaching that mans reason or imago Dei con- tains a pure version of the law. For observation of facts, Rachel argues, pertains only to mans conduct as a fallen creature indeed, is itself symptomatic of this conduct while the natural law is acceded to by a rationality that returns man to his regenerate state, revealing the a priori norm by which he ought to act: Nor can any objection be based on acts done contrary to the Law of Nature . . . For in such cases attention must be directed not to what is actually done but to what ought to be done, there being all the world of dierence between Fact and Law (:). Leibnizs normative-rationalist separation of the is from the ought of the facts of law (loi, Gesetz) from the norms of right (droit, Recht) is thus indicative of something far more momentous than a theoretical or methodological imperative. For it arises in fact from the gap that uni- versity metaphysics opens between human and divine intellection. This in turn is the pedagogical condition for the purifying self-transformation that validates the metaphysicians insight into what justice ought to be the love of the wise through the manner in which this personage imi- tates the quasi-divine perfection of wise love. The metaphysicians claim to accede to the pure or formal concept of justice is warranted only by the self-purifying exercise in abstraction through which he acquires enlightened eyes. The content of this concept may then be provided by the Christian caritas doctrine, because the metaphysician is now himself the personication of Christs loving way of thinking and willing justice. On the one hand, this procedure subjects the New Testament theol- ogy of love to a philosophical sublimation, as it now appears as the content of the formal philosophical concept of justice. On the other hand, though, the same procedure forces civil jurisprudence to undergo The metaphysics of law :q a profound spiritualisation; for now the formal concept of justice is only available to a personage who has completed the self-purifying ascent to its divine intellection. The formalisation and spiritualisation of jurispru- dence are thus inseparable in Leibnizs legal metaphysics. They are held together by the ascetic link between the formal purity of a concept that reveals itself prior to all experience and the moral purity of the special personage in whom such a concept can be thought. Leibnizs normative legal metaphysics his anti-empiricism or anti-positivism is thus really a symptom of the legal metaphysicians morally prestigious intel- lectual ethos and self-exalting spiritual deportment. It is this method of speculative self-purication that allows Leibniz to treat the empirical civil legal order as the devolved or imperfect level of an onto-theological hierarchy grounded in Gods rational intelligising of a cosmic legal order. Like the Lutheran natural jurists and political theo- logians on whose work he drew, Leibniz nds a jurisprudential foothold for his metaphysics by superimposing this hierarchy on the central pre- cepts of Roman law. Using these (now) transcendentalised principles of Roman law, he is able to construct a natural law that subordinates posi- tive civil law to the Christian metaphysics of a cosmic legal order. Leibnizs rational construction of natural law thus takes the form of a metaphysicalmoral ladder, converting the three Roman law precepts hurt no-one (neminem laedere), give each his due (suum cuique tribuere), and live honourably (honeste vivere) into an ascent from empiricalutilitarian forms of justice to the universal justice characteristic of Gods rational governance of the cosmos. At the lowest level, strict justice, character- ised by the precept to refrain from harming others, and typical of the natural law theories of Hobbes and Pufendorf, has as its object only the preservation of civil peace. One step up from this we nd the level of equity or charity, characterised by the precept of rendering each his due, and nding its object in the states conversion of mutual benevolence into reciprocal rights (PW, pp. ::). Love only becomes truly disinter- ested, however, when we pass beyond the level of political law alto- gether. Here we reach the ultimate stage of natural law which is characterised by the precept to live piously, and which requires insight into Gods rational governance of the cosmos in order to reveal the legal character of duties having no bearing on civil peace. Leibnizs metaphysical hierarchy thus permits him to pass from civil law to a syn- thesis of natural and Christian law, using his method of abstraction from the empirical to the transcendent in order to establish the continuum: :o Leibnizs political metaphysics It is on this ground that justice is called universal, and includes all the other virtues; for duties that do not seem to concern others, as, for example, not to abuse our own bodies or our property, though they are beyond [the power of] human laws, are still prohibited by natural law, that is, by the eternal laws of the divine monarchy, since we owe ourselves and everything we have to God. Now, if it is of interest to the state, of how much more interest is it to the universe that no one use badly what is his? So it is from this that the highest precept of the law receives its force, which commands us to live honorably (that is, piously). It is in this sense that learned men have rightly held . . . that the law of nature and of nations [ius naturae et gentium] should follow the teachings of Christianity, that is, , the sublime things, the divine things of the wise, according to the teaching of Christ. (PW, :) Despite the similarity of this construction to those developed by the Lutheran natural jurists and political theologians, we have observed that some commentators regard Leibnizs natural law as a major secularisa- tion and rationalisation of his theological sources (Riley :qq6, :q; Schneider :q6, ..). Leibniz, they argue, while not completely secular- ising natural law, provides rational concepts or Grnde for the theologi- cally authorised doctrines of his predecessors. This gives rise to an enlightened scientic conception of natural law, while simultaneously repelling Hobbes and Pufendorf s more fully secular, but merely empir- ical and utilitarian conception. Yet, without denying the secularising aspect signalled in Leibnizs natural law specically, the transfer of a sacral doctrine from theologians to academics and savants we may nonetheless propose that these commentators underestimate the degree to which Leibniz sought to preserve the sacral character of this doctrine in its new secular setting. For Leibniz, we recall, the giving of rational Grnde is itself a sacralising exercise in intellectual self-purication Knowledge of reasons perfects us leading him to conceive enlighten- ment as a refurbishing of the spark of divine intellection or imago Dei. We have already observed the closeness of Leibnizs rationalism to its theological sources, noting in particular Rachels treatment of the imago Dei as the remnant of right reason through which man recognised and promulgated the Law of Nature which is written on the heart, and con- trolled and curbed by its authority the activities of the soul (Rachel :q:6, :q). For both Leibniz and Rachel, access to the pure or formal concept of justice requires a pure or regenerate reason requires, that is, the intellectual ascesis the determines what counts as purity of thought and will for a certain theocentric culture which is precisely what makes their rationalism theological. The main dierence between them is that The metaphysics of law :: Leibnizs more purely philosophical (Platonistic) conception of self- purifying abstraction allows him to expand the ambit of the regenerate to include metaphysical intellectuals as a type of secular holy estate. Finally, therefore, it is quite misguided to treat Leibnizs rationalist conception of justice as inherently superior to Pufendorf s empirical voluntarist one as if Leibniz had in fact recovered the rational ground of positive law, while Pufendorf s failure to do so condemned him to accept the irrational exercise of power. We have already noted that this view deploying the characteristic rationalist distinctions between law and justice, power and reason is very widespread in post-Kantian phil- osophical history. Just how close this historiography is to Leibnizs own hostile view of the civil philosophers is clear in these remarks from the Meditation: The error of those who have made justice dependent on power comes in part from confounding right and law. Right cannot be unjust, it is a contradiction; but law can be. For it is power that gives and maintains law; and if this power lacks wisdom and a good will, it can give and maintain quite evil laws: but happily for the universe, the laws of God are always just, and he is in a position to maintain them, as he does without doubt, although this has not always been done visibly and at once, for which he has, no doubt, good reasons. (PW, o) Yet, in the light of our reconstruction of the ascetic role of abstrac- tion in his legal metaphysics, Leibnizs claim to have insight into the pure concept of justice should be understood in terms of the moralepiste- mological prestige of the metaphysical personage. For it is a claim that may be credited only within the ethos that treats this abstraction as the self-purifying ascent to the divine intelligibles, undertaken by a being who is deemed to mediate between divine and human justice. This way of understanding Leibnizs legal rationalism re-establishes its historical symmetry with Pufendorf and Thomasius voluntarist and empirical construction of natural law. For, as we have suggested, their voluntarism and empiricism is also fundamentally a moral doctrine linked to a certain comportment education. This education, however, was dedi- cated to forming intellectuals who would no longer presume to subordi- nate civil law and politics to transcendent moral truths acceded to in the quasi-sacerdotal person of the metaphysician. In other words, Leibnizs rationalism and Pufendorf s empiricism are not in fact contradictory theories, but rival and autonomous ways of conguring the relation between religious and political laws, operating through the spiritual grooming of the personages responsible for administering these laws. :. Leibnizs political metaphysics .. The continuum of spiritual and civil governance The nal obstacle to an adequate historical understanding of Leibnizs natural law is the widespread view that in maintaining a continuum between civil and theo-rational law, Leibniz provides a necessary moral corrective to Hobbes and Pufendorf s desacralising restriction of natural law to utilitarian commands issued by the sovereign for the end of security. In presuming that the continuum between law and morality is founded in reason, this view fails to comprehend its true grounds in the resacralising cultural politics of metaphysical natural law. We have observed that Leibnizs reconguration of the relation between civil and religious governance takes place by tying the just exercise of civil power to the spiritualintellectual superiority (purity) of the personage who is to exercise it. The personage in question is of course the sage who, in accordance with longstanding Christian-Platonic topoi, is regarded as qualied to inuence the exercise of civil authority on the basis of his self-sacralising ascent to transcendent concepts of justice and goodness (Brown :q88a, 6:o). In concrete historical terms, the gure of the metaphysical sage provided the Lutheran natural jurists such as Alberti and Veltheim with a comportment-ideal suited to their own claims to a role in the civil governance of the godly state. In extending the rights of this quasi-sacral gure to the philosopher more broadly, Leibniz was adapting this ideal to his own role as political metaphysician and court savant to several German Kleinstaaten. In tying civil authority to the moral superiority of the sage, Leibnizs natural law begins to exhibit some of the central features of German political metaphysics. In the rst place, this guration leads to the chili- astic doctrine of the withering away of the state, or the redundancy of legal coercion for beings who have fully recovered their capacity for rational self-governance. In the course of his attack on Pufendorf, we thus nd Leibniz insisting that: Whoever, indeed, does good out of a love for God or his neighbour, takes pleasure precisely in the action itself (such being the nature of love) and does not need any other incitement, or the command of a superior; for that man the saying that the law is not made for the just is valid. To such a degree it is repugnant to reason to say that only the law or constraint make a man just (PW, .). At the same time, the same guration leads Leibniz to claim political authority for the sage himself. For, to the extent that not all individuals will be capable of achieving the level of spiritual self-purication needed The metaphysics of law : for rational self-governance, then they will have to be subjected to the puried will of the sage: After this one can say absolutely that justice is goodness conformed to wisdom, even in those who have not attained to this wisdom. For, apart from God, the majority of those who act according to justice in all things, even against their own interest, do in eect what a wise man would demand who found his pleas- ure in the general good; but in certain cases they will not act as sages themselves, not being sensible of the pleasure of virtue. And in these cases, where their dis- interestedness would not be compensated either by praises or honors, nor by fortune, nor otherwise, they would not have acted in a way most conforming to prudence. But as soon as they consider that justice conforms to the will of a sage whose wisdom is innite and whose power is proportioned to it, they nd that they would not be wise at all (that is, prudent) if they did not conform them- selves to the will of such a sage. (PW, q) In fact, says Leibniz, it must be conceded that those who have not reached this point of spiritual perfection are only susceptible of obliga- tion by hope and fear (PW, .). In other words, by providing a meta- physical grounding for political obligation in rational self-governance, Leibniz provides a metaphysical rationale for the exercise of political coercion, treating it as compensating for the lack of intellectual perfec- tion required for self-governance. He thereby re-establishes the sacral linkage between political and spiritual governance, which now appears in the demand that political authority be exercised to enforce the capac- ity for rational self-governance that will eventually make such authority redundant. The twin icons for this envisaged reunication of politics and moral- ity are the sageprince and the unlimited or total society. If justice is a perfection fully manifest only in the self-perfecting personage of the metaphysical sage, and if the exercise of civil power is legitimated through its capacity to compensate for the lack of such perfection in others, then a just political order requires the unication of reason and power, the sage and the prince. For Leibniz, coercion is only legitimate insofar as it is used to turn right into fact, and this requires the unication of power and reason in a single person: Those to whom God has given at once reason and power in a high degree are heroes created by God to be the promoters of his will, as principal instruments (Leibniz in Riley :qq6, .:q). With the gure of the sageprince, Leibniz recapit- ulates the political-theology of godly government in its modern form, as government driven by the desire to realise reason and advised by politi- cal metaphysicians. : Leibnizs political metaphysics At the same time, if human society is ultimately ordered by the uni- versal justice of mans society with God, then the civil authority gov- erning human society must apply universally, to all areas of life. The sageprince will thus rule over an unlimited or total society: Every society is either unlimited or limited. An unlimited society concerns the whole life and the common good. A limited society concerns certain pur- poses, for example, trade and commerce, navigation, warfare, and travel (Lm, .q). We also recall Leibnizs assertion contra Pufendorf that social justice may not be limited to the end of human tranquillity, but that in a universal society governed by God every virtue . . . is comprehended among the obligations of universal justice; and not only external acts, but also all of our sentiments are regulated by a certain rule of law (PW, ). In other words, through his image of the sageprince ruling over an unlimited or total society, Leibniz is envisaging the resacralised state in its modern enlightened form. This would be a state in which politics could be grounded in morality through the enforcement of a metaphys- ical ethics, perhaps in the form of a civil religion. Several commentators have argued that in maintaining a continuum between civil and theo-rational law, Leibniz provides a necessary correc- tive to Hobbes and Pufendorf s desacralising restriction of natural law to utilitarian commands issued by the sovereign for the end of social peace. Riley, for example, argues that in maintaining a continuum between the lower forms of justice dedicated to the negative preservation of security, and the higher form oriented to universal benevolence and the perfection of society, Leibniz oers a more rational, generous, and benevolent vision of the legalpolitical order than Hobbes or Pufendorf (Riley :qq6, :8qq). Similarly, Sve claims that by establishing a hier- archical ascent fromthe narrow sense of justice, as the maintenance of security, to higher formof caritas sapientis, Leibniz supplements the merely negative conception of justice with the positive ethic of doing good for others. Sve regards this as opening up the prospect of a complete moral transformation of society. For his part, Herv Barreau argues that because Leibnizs natural laws forma graduated hierarchy leading from civil security to spiritual perfection, so too do the natural rights founded on them: One must conceive this gradation as the call of moral con- sciousness in each person, who sees the degrees of good, and undertakes to actualise themby beginning with the lower degrees, without ever repu- diating them, since the higher degrees contain the lower ones, which they bring to greater perfection (Barreau :qq, ). In fact, Barreau goes so far as to suggest that without this call to a higher moral consciousness, the The metaphysics of law : mere Hobbesian grounding of justice in security contains the germof totalitarianism, as can be seen from Hobbes interference in the aairs of the church. In neglecting the historical circumstances in which law was rst uncoupled from morality, however, this viewpoint forgets a crucial lesson. Once a continuum has been established between the exercise of civil authority and the pursuit of a higher moral good, then the desired outcome the moral elevation of political power is inexorably shad- owed by its far less desirable twin: namely, the exercise of civil authority in order to enforce (someones) higher moral good. Yet it was their expe- rience of the catastrophic consequences of such enforcement that had led the civil philosophers to break the nexus between civil authority and transcendent morality in the rst place. We catch a glimpse of the constitutive ambivalence of rationalist political metaphysics in this regard in Leibnizs attitude to the decrimi- nalisation of heresy. In a little-cited text reviewing Thomasius argu- ments for such decriminalisation, Leibniz takes Pufendorf s most famous follower to task for failing to see that purity of will may be depen- dent on purity of doctrine (Gr, i, .:o:.). Thomasius had argued, rstly, that as an intellectual error heresy lies beyond all civil compulsion and, second, that even where it arises from corruption of the will, heresy is not a punishable oence; for only conduct disturbing the republic falls into this category, and the prince may not use intellectual or moral error as a criterion for such conduct (ADS, .8, .6). In rejecting these arguments that heresy concerns intellectual errors lying beyond human judgment and outside the reach of civil coercion Leibniz con- tends that the theoretical heretic can be compared to the law-breaker who refuses to look at the laws the prince has proclaimed for his salva- tion: Hence, to the degree that in heresy he might fail to understand a question of great importance for his salvation, wickedness is combined with lack of learning and, what is more, through this insight we cannot deny that heresy deserves punishment (Gr, i, .::). If, thus, not downright evil, intellectual error is nonetheless deserving of punishment as it arises from culpable negligence and results in the great evil of damnation. Recalling our earlier discussion of the reciprocal relation which Leibniz establishes between intellectual error and the corruption of the will, it is not surprising that he regards this culpable failure of learning as itself arising from a prior failure to purify the intellect: Again, the will to learn can arise from the intellect if anyone pays attention to the great importance of having the intellect puried for things to be done well :6 Leibnizs political metaphysics (Gr, i, .:.). Given, though, that metaphysical philosophy is the means by which the intellect and will are puried, then it follows that if heretics may be punished for lacking the will to learn saving truths, they may be compelled to undergo the purifying discipline of metaphysics in order to acquire this will. The real danger residing in Leibnizs rationalist identication of heresy with crime, or sin with error, is thus not the one imagined by the Theologian in the Confessio that sins might be excused. It is rather that error might become punishable and metaphysics enforceable. Leibnizs conception of heresy as a crime is thus insepara- ble from a conception of rationalist metaphysics as the secular theology for an enforceable rational faith. In its battle with civil philosophy to resacralise the state, rationalist metaphysics would be tempted to become the natural theology for a new kind of confessional society. The metaphysics of law : cn\r+rn rotn Pufendorf s civil philosophy . : i x+nontc+i ox Born in :6. and coming to intellectual maturity in the immediate after- math of the Thirty Years War, Samuel Pufendorf found himself con- fronted with the task of developing an ethics and politics suited to life in the descralised states sanctioned by the Treaty of Westphalia. As a polit- icaljurisprudential councillor at the courts of Sweden (:68) and Brandenburg-Prussia (:688q), he had rst-hand experience of the problems such states confronted in attempting to establish deconfession- alised civil orders in the wake of protracted confessional conict. In this context, Pufendorf encountered university metaphysics with its claim to ground political right in philosophically known transcendent reasons and laws as a major intellectual obstacle and institutional enemy. In order to render moral and political philosophy capable of comprehend- ing the gap that had been opened between civil and religious authority, Pufendorf had to detranscendentalise it in a manner that would par- allel the desacralising of law and politics. This task whose central texts are the De Jure Naturae et Gentium Libri Octo (On the Law of Nature and Nations in Eight Books) of :6., its epitome of the following year, the De Ocio Hominis et Civis juxta Legem Naturalem Libri Duo (On the Duty of Man and Citizen according to Natural Law in Two Books), and the De Habitu Religionis Christianae ad Vitam Civilem (Of the Disposition of Religion in Relation to Civil Life) of :68 entailed a fundamental and far-reaching reconguration of philosophical, political, and moral culture. If today the true charac- ter and full extent of this reconguration are only just emerging, that is because, since its academic marginalisation at the end of the eighteenth century, Pufendorf s natural law has remained obscured, put in the dark by the interpretive canons of neo-Aristotelian and neo-Kantian meta- physics. In this chapter we show just how profound Pufendorf s reshap- ing of the early modern intellectual landscape really was. :8 If modern commentators have underestimated the scale of Pufendorf s reconstruction of moral and political philosophy, that is because they have failed to comprehend the gulf separating Pufendorf s natural law and the line of metaphysical natural law running from the neoscholastics through Leibniz to Wol and Kant. As a result of this failure, it is widely assumed that Pufendorf s natural law was a continu- ation of the moralphilosophical attempt to contain the positive legal commands of the sovereign within overarching moral norms. This assumption is particularly marked in modern Aristotelian and Kantian interpretations, which assimilate Pufendorf s natural law to the meta- physical line by treating it as an attempt to formulate absolute norms for politics based on the gures of the moral community or the moral law. We will discuss representative instances of these interpretations in the following section. For the moment, we may propose that both lines of interpretation fail to observe the degree to which Pufendorf s concep- tion of natural law is designed in fact to free the sovereigns law-making commands from any eective appeal to higher moral norms. It is true that Pufendorf distinguishes natural law from both (positive) civil law and moral theology: From the rst ow the most common duties of man, particularly those which render him capable of society [sociabilis] with other men; from the second ow the duties of man as a citizen living in a particular and denite state [civitas]; from the third, the duties of a Christian (DOH, Pref., ). Yet it soon becomes clear that Pufendorf s prime concern is to drive a wedge between the duties of the Christian and those of the citizen, while the duties of the man and the citizen are in fact treated as convergent. For, we shall argue, in giving natural law and positive law the same end social peace and in granting the sove- reign sole discretion to determine how the natural law should be enacted in the states positive laws, Pufendorf in eect makes natural law norms immanent to the process of political governance through which citizens are formed. In showing how deeply embedded it was in the political and theolog- ical circumstances of post-Westphalian Germany, political and theo- logical historians provide us with a sharper insight into the historical disposition of Pufendorf s natural law. In the illuminating introduction to his edition of the De Ocio, James Tully argues that after the emer- gence of the post-Westphalian deconfessionalised sovereign territorial state, the question which underlies and orients Pufendorf s theory (and the theories which he followed) is . . . how does one conduct oneself so as to become a useful member of such a society and polity (Tully :qq:, Introduction :q xxxxi). For his part, recalling Thomasius arguments on the complicity of metaphysics in the formalisation and enforcement of religion in the confessional state, Detlef Dring argues that Pufendorf s voluntaristic expulsion of moral theology from natural law should be seen as a means of prising the levers of civil coercion from the hands of the clergy; that is, as an instrument for the secularisation of political governance (Dring :qqb). The truly remarkable characteristic of Pufendorf s enterprise, however, is that he undertook this desacralising separation of transcen- dent morality and civil authority by reconstructing the very discipline that had been designed to hold these spheres together, natural law. This observation holds the key to understanding Pufendorf s natural law as a comprehensive civil philosophy. In the rst place, it provides an appropriate understanding of the rela- tion between Pufendorf s natural law and the other civil sciences that were engaged in the desacralisation of politics Lipsian neo-Stoicism and Helmstedt political Aristotelianism in particular. In relegating Christian natural law in favour of a Stoic political psychology or a tech- nicalinstrumental science of political order, these civil sciences in eect secularised politics by creating new foundations for it outside the sphere of Christian moral and political theology. But while this strategy may have succeeded in forging a detheologised political science and demea- nour for a ruling elite Dreitzel characterises Helmstedt political science as an intellectual regime for the political nobility of absolute states in marginalising natural law it left untouched the very discipline that pro- vided politics with moral legitimacy. In detranscendentalising natural law itself, therefore, Pufendorf s aim was to provide the new desacralised forms of political governance with a broad-based moral intelligibility. His reconstruction of natural law was intended to make it hospitable to the idea that both ethics and politics were legitimately grounded in the commands of a superior issued in accordance with the end of social peace. It is for this reason that the De Jure functions as a clearing-house for the other civil sciences Lipsian political psychology, Helmstedt political instrumentalism, Hobbesian anti-clericalism, Bodinian sove- reignty theory, positive Staastrecht assembling their several secularising tactics, via the architecture of voluntarist natural law, into a single desac- ralising strategy. Pufendorf thus refers to his natural law as including all moral and civil teaching [doctrinam moralem & civilem] that is genuine and solid (DJN, i.ii.6, .). The object of this strategy was not to marginalise the domain of natural law but to transform it, conning ethics and pol- itics to the horizon of social peace and civil governance, and consigning :o Pufendorf s civil philosophy the desire for salvation and transcendent truth to the separate sphere of private piety. Now we are better placed to grasp the historical circumstances from which Pufendorf s natural law arose and that it was intended to meet. We recall that the endeavour to pacify the warring confessional states and communities found its most potent intellectual instrument in posi- tive political jurisprudence (Staatsrecht), which oered the central means of partitioning civil authority and transcendent truth, the search for civility and the pursuit of salvation. In the great struggle to nd religious peace that stretched from the Treaty of Augsburg in : to the Treaty of Westphalia in :68, it was the Protestant political jurists who gradu- ally secularised the Empires legal and political culture and laid the con- stitutional groundwork for the system of sovereign territorial states. They did this, Martin Heckel argues, not through a new rational or secular philosophy most jurists remained committed Lutherans but through a series of measures, driven by force of circumstance rather than force of reason, aimed at securing the legalpolitical coexistence of the confessions. The most important of these measures were the accep- tance of jurisprudence rather than theology as the prime political dis- course; the establishment of legal parity between the confessions within the juridical and political apparatus of the Empire; and, above all, the exclusion of the question of theological truth from the legalpolitical settlements that ended religious Brgerkrieg (Heckel :qq., :8). Still, despite resulting in a profound secularisation of the judicial and politi- cal apparatus, these changes were not aimed at the secularisation of society as a whole. Driven by the exigencies of social pacication rather than an all-embracing ideology, and typically motivated by the desire of the faithful to preserve their particular confession amid the wholesale carnage of the religious wars, this was a secularisation that stopped at the cathedral door. It left the churches free to pursue their transcendent aims as voluntary associations, while excluding these aims from the sphere of civil governance (Heckel :q8, 6q). This gradual disarticulationandre-orderingof theinstitutions of polit- ical andreligious governance whichwas the work of hundreds of name- less lawyers and statesmen and for which no philosophical genius may claimthe glory was arguably the most important cultural and intellec- tual transformationto take place inearly modernGermany. Infact it pro- duced the characteristic political and moral topography of the modern state. This emerged in the form of an apparatus of legal and political governance from which all higher theological and metaphysical ends Introduction :: had been excluded in favour of the single end of security. Inside this agnostic security envelope an array of religious, academic, and other social associations were free to pursue their absolute truths, so long as they did so within the limits of social peace. If, therefore, Pufendorf s natural law doctrine enacts a fundamental partitioning of the civil kingdom fromthe kingdomof truth the exercise of civil coercionfrom the pursuit of transcendent morality this is not because he fell short of the dialectical reconciliation of philosophy and theology. Neither is it because, in excluding all appeals to transcendent right, his voluntarism drove himinto the arms of a state basedonmight alone. Rather, by enact- ing this separation Pufendorf was attempting to reshape the learned cultures prime discipline of ethical and political reection, giving it a formthat wouldcomprehendthe fundamental desacralisationof govern- ment and privatisation of religion that had already taken place in the politicaljurisprudential domain. Now we begin to see the scale of the reconguration of ethical and political culture contained in Pufendorf s natural law, and the depth of the gulf separating it from its metaphysical rival. In continuing to ground civil authority in transcendent moral philosophy, metaphysical natural law whether neoscholastic or rationalist represented a cultu- ral formation of great intellectual strength and social power. The intel- lectual strength of this metaphysical natural law lay in the manner in which its Christian Platonic anthropology permitted the privilege of transcendent insight to be claimed by the metaphysical personage, who thereby acquired a quasi-sacerdotal authority as a secular sage. Its social authority arose from the fact that through this anthropology rationalist metaphysics remained in touch with the central Christian symbols and rituals particularly those associated with moral regeneration and sal- vation. Through the training of a metaphysically imbued clerisy, univer- sity metaphysics could thus engage a population whose moral physiognomy was still deeply informed by these symbols and rituals. On the basis of the spiritual prestige attached to the metaphysical person- age, rationalist university metaphysics could instruct citizens in how they might achieve moral perfection, even if this meant acting in accordance with a conception of justice higher than that embodied in the positive laws of the state. If, therefore, Pufendorf s De Jure begins by cutting the knot of meta- physical anthropology, that is because this is where the threads joining civil authority and transcendent truth are tied the tightest. Replacing this anthropology with his own conception of man as a being whose :. Pufendorf s civil philosophy passional nature is imposed by the divine sovereign and necessitates the commands of the earthly sovereign was the rst step in Pufendorf s extraordinarily ambitious attempt to reshape the landscape of early modern German ethical and political culture. In showing how civil authority could be separated from transcendent truth, this quasi- Epicurean anthropology held the key to a natural law designed to reect the desacralisation of government and the privatisation of religion, by forming a new kind of civil deportment for rulers and citizens: But by far the greatest dierence [between natural law and moral theology] is that the scope of the discipline of natural law is conned within the orbit of his life, and so it forms man on the assumption that he is to lead this life in society with others [hanc vitam cum aliis sociabilem exigere debeat]. Moral theology, however, forms a Christian man, who, beyond his duty to pass this life in goodness, has an expectation of reward for piety in the life to come and who therefore has his citizenship [politeuma] in the heavens while here he lives merely as a pilgrim or stranger. (DOH, Pref., q) We still have diculty comprehending the depth of the changes to moral and political philosophy entailed by this project. For, in order to fashion a persona for the citizen that would allow individuals to accede to their civil obligations independently of their Christian moral person- ality, Pufendorf had to displace the Christianmetaphysical guration of the person with a pluralistic construction that was perhaps unprece- dented in early modernity. This is a construction that relativises duties to the several statuses or personae occupied by individuals in the course of civil life, while maintaining the duty of obedience to the civil state as the ultimate parameter within which this variation takes place. In thus detaching political and legal governance from transcendent morality, Pufendorf earned the hostility of metaphysicians from Leibniz to Kant and beyond. Regardless of their attacks on the allegedly tyrannical or totalitarian implications of Pufendorf s doctrines, and notwithstanding their righteous defences of freedom, the cardinal sin of Pufendoran natural law in the eyes of metaphysical intellectuals has always been its uncoupling of political sovereignty from moral truth. For in this separa- tion these intellectuals have seen both the dissolution of the moral com- monwealth and of their own prestigious role in it, as the guardians of a rational moral politics. In continuing to frame civil duties by theorising the self-governing moral personality or a self-perfecting moral community the modern avatars of puried reason and the godly state todays moral philosophy remains inimical to the desacralisation of civil governance undertaken Introduction : by Pufendorf. In fact, in an unhappy historical irony, it has used these gures of thought as its means of interpreting Pufendorf, thereby post- humously assimilating him to the culture of metaphysics that he sought to destroy. The central symptom of this assimilation is the discussion of Pufendorf s conception of political obligation in terms of either the self- realising community or the self-legislating personality. We can begin to excavate the depths of Pufendorf s natural lawby recovering his concep- tion of political obligation frombeneath these neo-Aristotelian and neo- Kantian treatments of it. . . xon\r rni rosornv \xn rori +i c\r onri o\+i ox Pufendorf formulates his conception of political obligation in a well- known passage in the De Jure Naturae et Gentium: An obligation is properly laid on the mind of a man by a superior, that is, by one who has both the strength to threaten some evil against those who resist him, and just reasons [justae causae] why he can demand that the liberty of our will be limited at his pleasure. For when a person has such power, after he has once signied what reward awaits those who obey his will, and what evil conse- quences those who resist it, there must necessarily arise in the faculty of reason a fear mingled with reverence [metum reverentia temperatum]; a fear occasioned by such a persons power, and a reverence arising from consideration of the causes, which should be sucient, even without the fear, to lead one to receive the command on grounds of good judgment alone. (DJN, i.vi.q, q) Modern commentators have reclaimed this conception for moral philos- ophy by interpreting the superiors just reasons in terms of morally jus- tifying and justied reasons, as they variously understand the latter. In his inuential neo-Aristotelian account, Horst Denzer explicates the justness of the superiors reasons in terms of mans rational and social nature and the states role in cultivating or completing this nature. Its role in perfecting mans moral nature gives the state itself a natural moral character: For Pufendorf there are conditions attached to the fact that the nature of man demands the state. The concept of nature must be taken in its teleological sense, [meaning] namely that man strives for perfection rather than indulging his inclinations and passions. The natural character of the state is therefore the nal consequence of human natures capacity for cultivation (Denzer :q., :6). For Denzer, therefore, the superiors reasons are just to the extent that his commands order the kind of society in which mans rational and social faculties may be perfected, but not otherwise. On this basis, Denzer interprets : Pufendorf s civil philosophy Pufendorf s version of the social contract as one that establishes recip- rocal rights and obligations, between individuals possessing natural rights to development, and a political sovereign who must be obeyed to the extent that he develops the moral nature grounding these rights (:q., 8, :6:). In the most important of the neo-Kantian interpretations, J. B. Schneewind construes the justness of the superiors reasons not in terms of the realisation of a natural good, but in terms of the autonomy of the rational faculty responsible for issuing laws: Pufendorf is here saying that the good God intended us to achieve with our special nature is not restricted to natural good. It must include a good indicated by the higher aspect of our nature reason and will (Schneewind :qq8, :.). Stressing the non-teleological character of Pufendorf s conception of entia moralia, Schneewind treats the superiors commands as anticipations of Kants self-legislating reason, ascribing their justness to the higher rational part of human nature in which they originate. On this view, mere rec- ognition of the higher rational source of the superiors commands should be enough to create the sense of obligation: Here Pufendorf seems to be suggesting that simple recognition that a law is a divine command should awaken a motive for compliance in us (:). As a result, Schneewind treats Pufendorf s recourse to political sanctions as the outcome of his failure to grasp how reason itself might impose polit- ical obligations, ascribing this failure to Pufendorf s inability to recon- cile moral entities and physical beings: Obligation is a moral entity. As such it has no causal power of its own. Desires, as part of our physical nature, can cause us to act in space and time; but recognition of obliga- tion gives us a consideration or reason for action that does not operate in the eld of force in which desires operate (:8). We have heard this critique of Pufendorf before, of course, in Leibnizs comment that: If reasons restrain even by themselves, why did they not restrain by them- selves, before fear arose? (PW, ). Apparently, moral and political phi- losophy could not solve the problem of how moral reason has force in the political world until Kant formulated his doctrine of self-legislating reason and our reverence for it, thereby providing a nal explication of the justness of the superiors commands. For all their subtlety and interest, neither of these readings captures Pufendorf s construction of political authority. In fact both of them re- import the categories of moral philosophy to a civil ethics from which they have been expelled. For the just causes warranting the superiors imposition of obligation are neither those provided by the telos of mans Moral philosophy and political obligation : rational and social nature, nor those owing from a higher self-obligat- ing aspect of his nature, reason and will. Rather, in the summary for- mulation of the De Ocio, they are the relations of vulnerability and protection, need and care, linking beings seeking tutelage to an agent possessing the power to provide it: The reasons which justify a persons claim to anothers obedience are: if he has conferred exceptional benets on him; if it is evident that he wishes the other well and can look out for him better than he can himself; if at the same time he actually claims direction of him; and, nally, if the other party has voluntarily submitted to him and accepted his direction. (DOH, i.ii., .8) In keeping with their moralphilosophical outlooks, the neo-Aristotelian and neo-Kantian accounts interpret the civil powers justness in terms of its moral superiority. But, while ruling out sheer force as a legitimate source of political duties, Pufendorf simultaneously rules out moral excellence: We are of the opinion, consequently, that the right to lay an obligation upon another, or, in other words, to command another and to prescribe laws, arises not merely from strength alone, or even from [superiority], or excellence of nature (DJN, i.vi.q, q). Moreover, despite Schneewinds claims to the contrary, it seems clear that the superiors right to command through laws is indeed speciable in terms of a good independent of the laws themselves. This good, though, is not the summum bonum of the perfection of mans rational and social nature, but something far more restricted political security. We may propose then that the just causes which, together with the power to coerce, constitute superiority and obligation are grounded not in the higher nature of mans rational or perfectible being, but in a dierent normative source altogether: namely, in the relations of dependency and protection linking a being in need of security to one who is in a position to provide it. For Pufendorf, it is not their conformity to a self-legislated moral law or a self-perfecting moral community that justies the supe- riors commands. Rather they are justied by the fact and to the degree that they are issued by an agent who claims and has been granted the absolute right to govern others in exchange for the care and protection that he oers them. Pufendorf s construction of obligation should thus be seen as part of his larger rescaling and reconguration of the relation between transcendent rationality and civil governance, moral philosophy and political jurisprudence. Through this construction he seeks to detach the justication of civil governance from its moralphilosophical moorings :6 Pufendorf s civil philosophy the persons perfectible moral nature, self-legislating moral reason and to tie it instead to the concrete relations of dependency and protec- tion established in order to achieve security. There can be little doubt that this was Pufendorf s way of reconstructing academic ethics and pol- itics in response to the period of confessional warfare and the subse- quent politicaljurisprudential desacralisation of civil governance. The reconstruction of political obligation in terms of the provision of secur- ity alone may be regarded as Pufendorf s way of building the historical reality of murderous moral communities into the foundations of ethics and politics, transforming the is of the Thirty Years War into the ought of a detranscendentalised ethics and secularised politics. Pufendorf s programme remains obscuredinmodernAristotelianand Kantian commentaries because they are grounded in moral anthropolo- gies of the self-perfecting community and the self-governing rational being dedicated to maintaining the synthesis of moral and political governance that he was intent on destroying. In order to recover Pufendorf s conception of obligation the historian must therefore be careful not to allow these rival anthropologies to inltrate his historical reconstruction. Historians who presume, for example, that in eschewing the notion of self-legislated moral law Pufendorf s project collapsed into political utilitarianism, are declaring their de-facto adherence to the anthropology of self-governing rational being. But, as I have indicated, this anthropology was explicitly repudiated by Pufendorf as inimical to his desacralising programme. The same remarks apply to the presump- tion that Pufendorf s conception of obligation was, or should have been grounded in the Aristotelian anthropology of mans self-perfecting ratio- nal and social being. As we shall soon see in more detail, Pufendorf s con- struction of obligation is grounded in its own moral anthropology. This has little incommonwiththe Aristoteliangurationof mans socially per- fectible moral nature or the Platonic image of his self-legislating rational being. Instead, Pufendorf elaborates a quasi-Epicurean anthropology of man as a being whose weakness (imbecilitas) dictates that he requires soci- ability tosurvive, but whose vicious passions anddividedminderode soci- ability andleave himprey toextravagant violence andmutual destruction (DJN, ii.i.68, :q; DOH, i.iii.:, ). Pufendorf thus derives the natural law norms of sociability solely from the need to achieve civil peace, exclusive of the requirements to perfect mans moral nature or respect the enactments of his higher rational being. This is the way he sought to exclude moral theology and philosophy from the domain of natural law. In doing so he conceives of a politics independent of all Moral philosophy and political obligation : higher moral ends purely in terms of the relations of obedience and superiority required for the security of beings whose capacity for mutual violence is no less denitive of themthan their need for sociability. Understood in this way, Pufendorf s construction of political obliga- tion allows no space for the gap that Leibniz and Schneewind posit between the superiors just causes and his strength to threaten some evil against those who resist him. In deliberately rejecting the metaphys- ical anthropology and, with it, the division between mans higher self- legislating rational being and his lower sensuous inclinations and desires Pufendorf s natural law is untroubled by the split between rational self-governance and instrumental coercion formulated within this Christian-Platonic doctrine of man. In accordance with his Epicurean anthropology, Pufendorf treats human nature as fundamen- tally driven by rationally uncontrollable and socially dangerous passions. Further, in keeping with his voluntarist repudiation of metaphysical rationalism, Pufendorf treats human reason not as a higher self-legislat- ing intellectual nature, but as a limited capacity for empirical knowledge and deductive ratiocination: Mans nature, then, is so constituted that the human race cannot be secure without social life and the human mind is seen to be capable of ideas which serve this end (DOH, i.iii.::, 6). Man possesses just enough reason to know that his passionate and dan- gerous nature is incapable of attaining sociability through reason. In explicating his conception of obligation Pufendorf indeed says that a reverence arising from a consideration of the causes . . . should be sucient, even without the fear, to lead one to receive the command on grounds of good judgment alone (DJN, i.vi.q, q). But this is not the articulation of a rationalmoral source of obligation incommensurate with the administration of fear. For the consideration of causes is under- stood not in terms of philosophical reection on self-governing rational being, but in terms of political reection on the debt of obedience arising from the relations of guardianship and dependency, sub- and super-ordination: For no man can well avoid having respect for the one from whom he has received many favours, and so if it appears that the same person wishes me well, and can take better care for my future than can I, and he also claims at the same time a right to direct my acts, there is no apparent reason why I should wish to question his power (DJN, i.vi.:., :o:). It is the incapacity of human beings to accept political obli- gation on the basis of such consideration an incapacity arising from the strength of their jealous and ambitious passions that establishes the continuity between justifying considerations and the power to coerce. :8 Pufendorf s civil philosophy Rather than representing a Hobbesian principle ambiguously distinct from the capacity for rational consideration of the just causes, the power to coerce which compensates for this incapacity actually forms a continuum with such consideration. For mans inability to obligate himself through such consideration is itself one of the determinants driving the institution of an oce of sovereignty possessing the power to coerce. The capacity to punish non-compliance, and the justness of the causes for issuing commands, are thus conjoint determinants of the superiority that creates obligation: From what has been said, one must surely agree that mere strength is not enough to lay an obligation on me at the desire of another, but that he should in addition have done me some special service, or that I should of my own accord consent to his direction . . . Fromthese two sources, we believe, ows the force of obligations, which, as generally understood, restrain as by an inner bond the liberty of our will. But because the natural liberty of the human will is not destroyed by any moral bond, and because also among the vast majority of mortals the inconstancy or wickedness is so great that they prevail over these reasons for command, something else is needed to control the wild passions of men, with a greater force than a feeling of shame and an appreciation of what is right . . . Now we feel that nothing could have such an eect, but the fear of some evil to come, upon the breach of an obligation, from the hand of a stronger person, to whose interest it was that there should be no departure from that obligation. And so, in the nal analysis, obligations get their stability from force, and from the consideration that the one who desires to procure their observance has so much power, either inherent in him or given him by others, that he can bring some grave evil upon the disobedient. (DJN, i.vi.:., :o:.) For Pufendorf, then, the normativity of political obligation the justify- ing ground for the superiors commands comes not from the impera- tives of a rational nature that is good in itself, or, indeed, from a rational and social nature that requires such commands for its perfection. Rather, it comes from the relations of dependency and protection that human beings have established on the basis of empirical knowledge of their pas- sionate and destructive nature and in pursuit of the end of security. There is thus no unbridgeable gap between just reasons and political discipline for Pufendorf. This is in part because the reasons in question arise from concrete political circumstances rather than self-legislating Kantian reason. But it is in part because the reasons of vulnerability and protection legitimating the superiors command of his subjects are also those legitimating his use of coercion against them, should they fail to obey. For, in basing the political pact on the chastened recognition of their own incapacity for rational self-governance, the subjects not only Moral philosophy and political obligation :q give the sovereign the right to determine what is in the interest of their collective security, they also give him the right to exercise a supreme coercive power over them, whenever their self-interest threatens to deviate from this collective one. It is not, therefore, that Pufendorf fails to explain how moral entities can have eects in the physical world how reason alone can move the will. It is, rather, that this problem has no meaning for him, being precluded by his self-conscious rejection of the notion of mans higher rational nature or self-legislating moral reason. For Pufendorf, political duties are not grounded in transcendent moral norms, but in norms of political discipline. These are norms immanent to the historical circumstances in which the sovereign state emerged as the bulwark against mans limitless capacity for self-destruction and civil mayhem. In short, the sovereign is not the moral superior of his subjects, only their political superior. The justness of the sovereigns use of political coercion thus ows neither from mans failure to obey a moral law that should be respected on rational grounds, nor from his failure to adhere to the law of a moral nature that impels him to strive for perfection rather than indulging his inclinations and passions. Rather, it comes from mans chastened recog- nition of his rationally ungovernable and permanently awed passional nature. It is this recognition the knowledge that consideration of the justness of the superiors right to command will not by itself lead to obe- dience that allows Pufendorf to build political coercion into the oces of sovereign and subject, thereby redening the contours of political right. The continuum joining the consideration of just causes to the exercise of political coercion is thus provided not by mans rational being but by his passional nature. For it is in a series of progressively more pow- erful ways of governing this fractious and violent nature that considera- tion of the sovereigns just causes for command joins forces with his use of coercion, when consideration alone proves insucient to secure com- pliance. This means that political coercion acquires its legitimacy not as a means of enforcing the self-governance that rational beings should be able to exercise by and on themselves the rationalist model that con- tinues to tie civil authority to transcendent truth. Instead, coercion acquires legitimacy as a means of enforcing the relations of dependency and guardianship that human beings have imposed on themselves, via the institution of civil sovereignty, as a means of achieving social peace. As far as Pufendorf is concerned, the need for political coercion is not just a temporary phenomenon, arising from the failure of rational self- governance. Rather, it is a permanent and constitutive feature of politi- cal right and of a civil state which will never wither away. :6o Pufendorf s civil philosophy To conclude this reconsideration of Pufendorf s conception of polit- ical authority, we must return to the centre of our attention some- thing that remains o-stage in moralphilosophical interpretations of Pufendorf: namely, his privatisation of salvation or moral regeneration. We have already observed that Pufendorf s restriction of civil right to the political relations required for social peace was reciprocally and inseparably related to a second act of demarcation: his restriction of the pursuit of moral regeneration to the non-political sphere of religious faith or private moral striving. This partitioning of civil governance from transcendent morality whose crucial formulation is provided by the De Habitu Religionis Christianae ad Vitam Civilem was Pufendorf s central response to the problem of religious civil war. If, as some critics have claimed, it divorces political governance from transcendent morality then it does so in order to place transcendent morality beyond political enforcement. The religious neutrality of the state and the political neu- tralisation of the church are the twin pillars of Pufendorf s natural law. This larger partitioning of civil and spiritual governance needs to be kept in mind when considering the nature of the continuum that Pufendorf establishes between the just causes for the sovereigns com- mands and the use of coercion to enforce them. For, given that these just causes refer only to the relations of dependence and protection required for civil peace, then their enforcement never touches the pursuit of transcendent morality and religion. This remains free of political coer- cion precisely to the extent that it has been detached from the exercise of civil power, which oers us a good pointer to the statist character of Pufendorf s liberalism. From Pufendorf s viewpoint, in seeking trans- cendent moral grounds for the exercise of political coercion in self- perfecting moral community or self-legislating rational being moral philosophers risk making transcendent morality politically enforceable. As we have seen in our discussion of Leibnizs theory of punishment and his treatment of heresy, this was not a groundless fear. We cannot appreciate the true character Pufendorf s reconstruction of ethics and politics until we realise that he is no longer in the business of attempting to derive political obligation via metaphysical reection on mans rational and moral being. In fact his objective is to ensure that this would no longer occur. Pufendorf was among the rst to see that the desacralisation of civil governance meant that individuals would have to learn to accede to their civil duties independently of cultivating an inte- gral moral personality a practice which would have to be restricted to the domain of private spiritual striving. From now on human beings would have to accede to their civil duties not through self-purifying Moral philosophy and political obligation :6: recovery of a higher metaphysical being, but through empirical reec- tion on their violent historical nature, for whose governance they had instituted a new moral persona that of the citizen. In the system of post-Westphalian states, political authority could have only one end security and political obligation only one source: obedience to the supreme power that provided it. All attempts to justify obligation via a true philosophy of mans ratio- nal and moral being attempts that grounded obligation in a self-per- fecting moral community or a self-legislating rational being would therefore be inimical to the new disposition of civil governance and civil duties. Such attempts refuse to accept Pufendorf s desacralising segre- gation of the political subject from the subject of truth the civil kingdom from the kingdom of truth and they continue to obscure our understanding of this objective today. To reach this objective the citizen had to be transformed from a person who accedes to his civil duties through insight into moral truth to one who does so through acceptance of his need for civil security. This could not be done without removing metaphysical moral philosophy neo-Aristotelian and neo- Platonic from academic ethics and politics and replacing it with a civil philosophy suited to the moral comportment of the subject of the deconfessionalised state. That is the fundamental task of Pufendorf s natural law. To understand the manner in which he carried out this task we must come to terms with three fundamental features of this natural law, fea- tures which are also decisive points of departure from metaphysical moral philosophy. First, we must observe that for Pufendorf the bearer of duties is no longer an integral moral personality or community through which access might be gained to an ultimate rational or moral ground for obligation. Rather, the bearer of duties has become the imposed status or oce, the entia moralia; and the duties attaching to oces have no integrating source or form in such gures as the rational being or the moral community. They take their shape instead from the ends for which the oces have been imposed pre-eminently from the end of security. Second, as a result of this, human beings may not accede to the natural law that is, to the duties attaching to the natural status imposed on them by God through philosophical reection on the ratio- nal and moral grounds for this imposition. As human reason and moral- ity are internal to the nature created by this imposition, man may and can only deduce natural law through chastened observation of his empirical nature and the conduct most likely to preserve it. Finally, this :6. Pufendorf s civil philosophy means that the pact through which man enters the civil state is not a means of enacting or perfecting his higher rational being. Rather, this pact is the form in which human beings impose a new moral being on themselves: the compound moral person of civil sovereignty the citizen and the sovereign. In imposing a new civil status, the state- forming pact institutes new personae and a new way of governing liberty. As such, although it is reached in accordance with the natural law goal of security, civil sovereignty is not eectively accountable to natural law. For, as a result of the transformative powers of the pact, the sove- reign is the only civil person possessing the capacity to decide the meas- ures needed for social peace. In discussing each of these features in turn, we shall build up an inter- pretation of Pufendorf s natural law that is more in keeping with its his- torical role as both instrument and outcome of the early modern desacralisation of politics. . rnox xon\r rrnsox\ri +v +o ci \i r rrnsox\r The rst chapter of the rst book of Pufendorf s De Jure Naturae et Gentium executes a short but fundamental expulsion of the Christian metaphysical concept of the person from the domain of civil ethics and politics. Drawing on the Roman-law notion of persona as a duty- bearing status, and the associated Ciceronian notion of oce (ocium) as the duty attached to a civil position, Pufendorf constructs a concept of civil moral duty in terms of the conduct required by the occupancy of a civil status. Wolfgang Rd has suggested that here Pufendorf may have been drawing on the work of one of his teachers, Erhard Weigel (Rd :q6q; Rd :q:). For Weigel had sketched a (partially) convention- alist account of social order in which moral norms are treated as arte- factual moral entities Weigel also calls them entia civilia or civil entities instituted by human agreement for the purpose of securing social order and cohesion (Weigel :6, :..o). In any case, in Pufendorf s hands this construction was unexpected and unwelcome in many Lutheran theology and philosophy faculties, rejecting as it did the Christian metaphysics of the person root and branch. Protestant neoscholastic metaphysics had construed the concept of person in terms of the Aristotelian ontology of substances and acci- dents. Here person is understood as the substance or supposite of an intellectual being (R. Schrder :q8, ::). But it is metaphysical Christology which provides the seminal patterns for later philosophical From moral personality to civil personae :6 conceptions of the unity of the person. In this setting, the pressure to unify divided oces (divine and human) and states (of exaltation and inanition) comes from the imperative of mediation and salvation, which helps to explain the extraordinary importance of the two natures one person formula to all Christological debate during the seventeenth century (Baur :qq.; Sparn :q6, :.q). In fact the conception of moral personality in the early modern metaphysics of morals the line running from Leibniz through Wol to Kant may be regarded as a series of elaborations of this soteriological conception of personal unity (Kobusch :qq). Leibnizs monadology, for example, may be treated as a secular improvisation on the Christological metaphysics of personal unity; for, as a result of the division between their spontaneous apper- ception and their passive sensing, the monads echo the neoscholastic division of Christs divine and human natures, fuelling the same drive for unifying mediation (Sparn :q86). Despite his ongoing attempts to provide a denitive metaphysics of the Eucharist, Leibnizs monadology allowed him to shift the drama of mediation and salvation to the twin natures of homo duplex, where the pursuit of saving unity could take place as a philosophical spiritual exercise. Nonetheless, as we have argued, given its Platonicascetic form, this philosophical pursuit of personal unity retains a strongly religious character. In any case, rather than antic- ipating the further subjectivisation of the metaphysical conception of the person which would occur in Kants notion of self-legislative ratio- nal being Pufendorf s construction of civil persona or ocium severs his natural law from this entire line of development. The opening chapter of the De Jure is the sundering blow. Launching a corrosive intervention into the neoscholastic Weltans- chauung, Pufendorf denies that the ontology of substances and attributes has any relevance to the moral domain and the understanding of per- sonhood, thus relegating it to the domain of natural or physical entities. This marks the beginning of a remarkable anti-metaphysical tour de force, in which he sets out to destroy the whole programme of deriving moral duties from a moral nature embedded in the person and acceded to through reection on divine or transcendent reasons. Pufendorf s central weapon is the distinction he draws between physical and moral entities. Physical entities (entia physica) are created, and their properties ow from the substances subtending them. Moral entities (entia moralia), however, arise through imposition (impositionis), and their properties (moral duties) ow not from an essential moral nature (form, entelechy, :6 Pufendorf s civil philosophy soul), but from the purposes for which they have been superadded to physical beings: We seem able, accordingly, to dene moral entities most conveniently as certain modes, added to physical things or motions, by intelligent beings, primarily to direct and temper the freedom of the vol- untary acts of man, and thereby secure a certain orderliness and decorum in civilised life (DJN, i.i., ). Reason and morality thus do not ow from an intelligible substance (rational being) imbricated in the order of being, but represent capacities for inventing and improvising in relation to the circumstances and needs of man. Pursuing his desubstantialisation of morality by a daring analogy, Pufendorf comments that if physical things have their properties through the manner in which their substances or supposites occupy space, then moral entities specically moral persons (personae morales) exist through their occupancy of a particular state or status (statu), which is the space in which moral qualities and actions are possible. As the mode of bearing a particular conguration of duties, status is either natural or adventitious the former being the status imposed on man by God, the latter comprising those imposed on man by himself. But Pufendorf is careful to point out that not even the natural status repre- sents an unfolding of an ontological nature or essence, being rather the mode God has willed to shape mans conduct and govern his natural liberty: Hence the active force which lies in [moral entities] does not consist in their ability directly to produce any physical change in any thing, but only in this, that it is made clear to men along what line they should govern their liberty of action, and that in a special way men are made capable of receiving some good or evil and of directing certain actions towards other persons with a particular eect (DJN, i.i., 6). Pufendorf thus replaces the metaphysical conception of the person as the substantial origin of all its oces and conditions with an account of oces tied only to an instituted status or condition. This enables him to reject the idea of duties unfolding from a single source of spiritual being or intellectual reection in favour of a conception of their multiple origins in invented statuses. It is quite misleading, therefore, for Theo Kobusch to interpret Pufendorf s conception of moral entity as if it were a development of the neoscholastic conception of the person as moral substance, bearing inalienable rights and duties, and set apart from natural being only by its Kantian capacity for free self-determination (Kobusch :qq, :8.). Far from attempting to provide a moralontolog- ical anchor for moral freedom and natural rights, Pufendorf s separation From moral personality to civil personae :6 of moral from natural being is intended to divorce duties and rights from all ontological foundations and salvic aspirations, grounding them instead in imposed oces which originate in a civil rather than a meta- physical order. As Haakonssen explains: Ocia in the broader sense are thus not simply duties, as the term is normally rendered in English. They are the oces of life which encompass clusters of specic duties and rights, and we are bound to them by an obligatio, or moral necessity (Haakonssen :qq6, :.). In explicitly rejecting the neoscholastic and rationalist metaphysics of natural law, Pufendorf uses this conception of moral oces in order to displace the PlatonicAristotelian conception of universal justice understood as both the plenary form of the virtues and the recovery of self-governing moral personality. Writing to his young admirer Christian Thomasius on : July :688 he comments that: If I can demonstrate that they are only suited to a certain kind of republic [i.e., the Greek polis], I regard it as a strong argument among rational people that one should not set up morality in accordance with Aristotles eleven virtues. And in general it is my opinion that one should institute and manage morality not in accordance with virtues but in accordance with oces [ocia]. Reminding us of the rival moral anthropology underpinning this shift from metaphysical virtues to civil oces, Pufendorf continues: In any case, Epicurean ethics is without doubt better than Aristotelian. But the name of Epicurus is so hated by the idiots that one must fear that Bileams horse would mount the pulpit and preach if one said anything good of Epicurus (GW, i, :q6). Pufendorf leaves us in little doubt regarding the central objective of his relegation of moral personality in favour of civil personae. He seeks to secularise and pluralise the basic ethical tool used in the shaping of moral comportments the guration of personhood. Cut loose from its vertical integration in spiritual substance and rational being, and freed from its salvic role in the Christology of homo duplex, personhood could be distributed horizontally across a variety of statuses imposed for the ends of civil governance. The reconguration of moral personhood arising from this transformation is so profound, and so counter to the Christianmetaphysical inheritance, that the outrage it provoked in early modern moral philosophers has only been stilled by the eorts of their modern counterparts to re-absorb it into the metaphysics of morals. For this reconguration allows Pufendorf to separate the philo- sophical concept of the subject as transcendental rational being from the civil conception of the person, as a comportment imposed for the :66 Pufendorf s civil philosophy bearing of obligations. In doing so it allows him to establish an ethics and politics independent of the moral philosophical treatment of duties in terms of self-conscious and self-governing moral personality. Pufendorf s voluntarist anthropology thus precludes the kind of self- relation programmed by Leibnizs transcendental psychology. It denies that individuals can accede to their moral duties through self-unifying redemptive recovery of their inner imago Dei, rational being or moral per- sonality, insisting instead that they must recognise their duties in the array of oces or personae imposed on them for the purposes of civil governance. By separating the concept of moral person from that of human (rational) being, Pufendorf is able to argue that a single human being may be the bearer of several moral personae civil and ecclesias- tical, commercial and familial, public and private each with its own duties arising from the purposes for which it was instituted (DJN, i.i.:., :::.). Further, the obligations clustered around a given status or persona need have no single unifying principle, arising instead fromthe variety of civil ends terminating in the persona. Conversely, on the same basis, many human beings may be represented by a single moral person, as in the case of civil associations and states, where individuals subordinate their particular wills to the will of the sovereign as a composite moral person (persona moralis composita), again instituted for a certain purpose, here the achievement of social peace and security (DJN, i.i.:, :). In deriving obligations from multiple principles or ends lying outside the individual in the ocia of civil life, Pufendorf s civil anthropology places the array of duties to which an individual might be subject beyond the reach of a single integrating judgment to which they might aspire. This detranscendentalising and pluralising of moral personhood holds the key to the separation of civil and religious oces needed for the governance of newly deconfessionalised states. Pufendorf s prime purpose for arguing in this way is to deny that there is any transcendent moral personality anchored in the nature of man no moral or rational being, no imago Dei, no Christian conscience that might permit indi- viduals to unify and rank all their oces from a single point of rational insight. Moreover, in Pufendorf s central example of the illegitimate unication of oces the gure of the priest we catch sight of the his- torical circumstances driving this anti-metaphysical anthropology: Also we should not forget, that, just as one person may at the same time be in dierent states [pluribus statibus], provided only that the obligations accompany- ing those states do not conict, so the obligations attached to any one state may in their parts be derived from dierent principles. Hence he who gathers the From moral personality to civil personae :6 obligations owing from any one principle, and omits all others, does by no means immediately form a state [statum] to which no obligations can or should adhere, save those which he himself recollects [meminit]. So he who has gath- ered from the Sacred Scriptures alone the parts of the duty of priests [partes ocii sacerdotum], assuredly cannot deny that those priests are also obligated to perform such duties as are required by the constitutions of individual govern- ments [civitatum]. And so we also who are here treating merely of the duties of man [hominis ocia], which can be shown to be necessary by the light of reason, do by no means maintain that any such state of man, which includes such obli- gations alone [i.e., those recollected from a single principle or source], ever did exist, can exist, or should exist. (DJN, i.i.::, :o::) The duties attaching to a moral persona may arise from a plurality of principles, and it is unacceptable for anyone priests in the rst instance to unify their duties using the method of inner self-reection, as if the obligations they were under had no external civil determinants. Those neoscholastic theologians and rationalist philosophers who sought to subordinate civil duties to the cultivation of a transcendent moral per- sonality stood in the way of the pluralisation of oces required by life in deconfessionalised states. In confessional society the inward cultiva- tion of spiritual unity had its external correlate in the eorts of religious intellectuals to subordinate all the spheres and duties of life to the relig- ious or transcendentalmoral. This moral unication of life had fuelled the unbridled intensity of the conicts between the dierent confessional communities. The separation of religious and civil governance at the level of the state was thus conditional on the secularisation and plural- isation of personhood at the level of the individual. Rather than representing a stage in the development of (Kantian) moral philosophy, Pufendorf s anti-metaphysical anthropology should thus be seen as directly engaging with specic religious and political circumstances. Through his frontal assault on the paideia of metaphysi- cal anthropology through his rejection of self-formation via the inner ascent to quasi-divine concepts of morality and justice Pufendorf was laying the groundwork for the separation of religious and civil govern- ance that lies at the heart of his natural law. It should already be clear that if the confessional theologian was the rst target of this attack then the metaphysical philosopher would be the next. For, no less than the religious, the metaphysical sage is prone to determining his obligations for himself, imagining that the duties of the philosopher have a single transcendent source in the conceptual contemplation of pure ideas to the exclusion or assimilation of the duties imposed by historically existing governments. :68 Pufendorf s civil philosophy . rnox +n\xscrxnrx+ nrrrrc+i ox +o cn\s +rxrn onsrn\\+i ox Like Leibnizs, Pufendorf s method of constructing or knowing natural law is deeply embedded in his moral anthropology. Pufendorf s concep- tion of man as the bearer of imposed statuses or oces, however, is asso- ciated with an intellectual method diering profoundly from Leibnizs exercise in transcendental rationalism. Drawing in part on the doctrine of fallen mans incapacity for transcendent knowledge, but more cen- trally on his doctrine of the imposed nature of moral entities, Pufendorf insists that the science of natural law may not be derived from insight into theo-rational concepts or norms existing prior to the imposition of laws. Pufendorf s voluntarist insistence that scientic knowledge of moral- ity is possible without positing objective values things considered good or bad in themselves without reference to the laws making them so is not simply an epistemological doctrine. In fact it is central to his strat- egy for the civil rescaling of natural law, providing the means of includ- ing it in the same (imposed) domain as the civil states positive law: Now in order that this knowledge of natural law with which we are now con- cerned, and which includes all moral and civil knowledge that is genuine and solid [& quae genuinam ac solidam doctrinam moralem & civilem absolvit], may meet the full requirements of a science, we feel that we need not declare, with certain writers, that some things are noble or base of themselves without any imposi- tion, and that these form the object of natural and perpetual law, while those, the good repute or baseness of which depends upon the will of a legislator, fall under the head of positive laws. (DJN, i.ii.6, .) It is possible to have certain knowledge in the moral sciences, Pufendorf argues, but such certainty is internal to the domain of knowledge created by the a-rational imposition of laws: For since good repute [honestas], or moral necessity, and turpitude, are aections [qualities] of human actions arising from their conformity or non-conformity to some norm or law, and law is the bidding of a superior, it does not appear that good repute or turpitude can be conceived to exist before the law, and without the imposition of a superior (DJN, i.ii.6, .). To suggest that the moral quality of actions exists independently of Gods gratuitous imposition is to join to God some co-eternal extrinsic principle which He Himself had to follow in the assignment of the forms of things; and this is impos- sible because God created all things, man included, of His free will and could have assigned whatever nature He wished to this creature whom Transcendent reection to chastened observation :6q he was about to create. Pufendorf accepts that there is such a thing as natural good, which consists in the naturally benecial powers contained in mans physical nature, and, indeed, all moral goods are based in natural goods. The converse is not true however that is, not all natural goods are moral goods because natural goods cross the threshold of morality only via the imposition of some law aimed at governing mans natural liberty. Natural actions, including the acts constituting adultery, theft, and murder, are thus morally indierent as physical actions, and acquire moral qualities only through the imposition of law (DJN, i.ii.6, .q). The key to Pufendorf s detranscendentalising of moral and political philosophy, therefore, lies in his voluntaristic rejection of transcen- dentobjective moral norms. This does not mean, however, that his vol- untarism constitutes a rival theory of moral truth to the rationalist one championed by Leibniz and the Lutheran neoscholastics. For the eect of Pufendorf s theological voluntarism is not to launch a (possibly) true theory of mans moral nature; rather it is to transform the manner in which philosophers will accede to truth in this domain. If it is accepted that mans moral nature is a status imposed on him by God and is not a form of rational being shared with Gods then man must come to knowledge of the moral laws from within the connes of this ungrounded historical nature. Man must accept that the awed and vicious nature he possesses as a matter of fact is the only one relevant for deducing of natural laws of morality, which must be laws governing a creature with just this kind of nature. In other words, man must come to knowledge of his ethical duties from within the connes of the nature imposed to t him for society with other men, rather than adopting the viewpoint of a being privy to the reason or goodness out of which God imposed this nature. Pufendorf s voluntarism thus forms part of an ethical exercise designed to impel natural jurists to detranscendentalise their discipline by turning from the contemplation of the transcendent perfections shared with God to the observation of the historical aws immanent to humanity. This is the intellectual-historical light in which we must view Pufendorf s deduction of the natural law in the third chapter of Book ii of the De Jure. This deduction is immediately preceded by Pufendorf s version of man in his natural condition (statu hominum naturali). Pufendorf presents his account of man in the state of nature as exem- plifying the empirical standpoint needed to derive the natural law from chastened observation of the moral nature man actually has. In this :o Pufendorf s civil philosophy regard his version is specically opposed to the neoscholastic depictions of the natural condition, which, in equating it with the Christian state of innocence (status integritatis), orient natural law to the religious command- ments governing man in his fallen condition. In relying on revelation, Pufendorf argues, this account belongs in the domain of moral theology and has no place in the civil science of natural law (DSH, ., ::o:.). Pufendorf thus refuses to construe the natural condition in terms of the Christian conception of a state of innocence, dening it instead through opposition to the civil state, as that condition for which man is understood to be constituted, by the mere fact of his birth, all inventions and institutions, either of man or suggested to him from above, being disregarded (DJN, ii.ii.:, :). The content of Pufendorf s version of the state of nature does not, of course, arise from observation in the sense of the modern empirical natural sciences. In fact it derives from Epicurean and Stoic sources compiled in the classic humanist manner; for Pufendorf s approach is observational or empirical in an ethical rather than an epistemological sense, dedicated to conning natural law to knowledge of a nature in need of political rule rather than one capable of governing itself through reason. In the summary version of the De Ocio, Pufendorf thus characterises natural man as a creature whose weakness (imbecilitas) necessitates sociality for survival but whose vices render dealing with him risky and make great caution necessary to avoid receiving evil from him instead of good. Unlike the beasts, mans appetites for sex and food are limitless and impossible to satisfy. Moreover: Many other passions and desires are found in the human race unknown to the beasts, as, greed for unnecessary possessions, avarice, desire of glory and surpassing others, envy, rivalry and intellectual strife. It is indicative that many of the wars by which the human race is broken and bruised are waged for reasons unknown to the beasts (DOH, i.iii., ). Mans petulance, his capacity for giving and receiving oence, combined with his extraordi- nary capacity for violence, makes his natural condition a very dangerous one, particularly when one takes into account the great divisions in human beliefs and ways of life. In short: Man, then, is an animal with an intense concern for his own preservation, needy by himself, incapable of protection without the help of his fellows, and very well tted for the mutual provision of benets. Equally, however, he is at the same time malicious, aggressive, easily provoked and as willing as he is able to inict harm on others (DOH, i.iii., ). Mans life in the state of nature would thus indeed be miserable, Transcendent reection to chastened observation :: unadorned, and short. It would not, however, be ungoverned by natural law or bereft of friendship as a primitive form of sociality. This is because man is indeed equipped by nature to know the natural law, even if he is not equipped to govern himself in accordance with it. In provid- ing the state of nature with this kind of disposition, Pufendorf is distin- guishing his version of it from two others. First, he uses it to criticise Hobbes naturalistic description of the state of nature as one of ungov- erned war, and Spinozas parallel metaphysical account of the natural state as one of radically conicting individual rights arising from uncon- trolled natural desire. Against these Pufendorf argues that even in the state of nature humans possess a reason and will informed by natural law. This gives rise to minimal obligations and rights to preserve oneself and not to harm others which means that the natural state inclines to peace, even though it is perpetually threatened by war through mans incapacity to adhere to these obligations in the absence of a superior (DJN, ii.ii., :86.). Second, Pufendorf s prime opponents, however, are the neoscholastic natural jurists. By invoking the state of innocence as a bulwark against Hobbes war of all against all, these metaphysicians claimed that man was capable of governing himself through right reason, which means that government (sovereignty) itself is a feature of mans natural condi- tion. Clearly Pufendorf s view of mans incapacity for self-governance is fundamentally opposed to this argument, but here he concentrates on its unacceptable political consequences. To accept right reason as a princi- ple of government in the state of nature would be to infringe the supreme authority of the government that emerges with the transition to the civil state; for right reason would then be something superior even to what is supreme. As such it would undermine the sovereignty of civil government, which consists in its capacity to rule over men free from any interference on their part (DJN, ii.ii., :6). In short, both Hobbes and his neoscholastic opponents fail to see that despite being natural in contradistinction to civil, mans condition in the state of nature remains an imposed status a mode of bearing duties instituted for the govern- ance of his liberty. This means that the natural state is neither lawless nor of itself capable of giving rise to civil sovereignty, which arises from the imposition of a new kind of status or condition on man. We will return to this last point in the following section. Pufendorf s deduction of the natural law is thus meant to exemplify how man as the bearer of an imposed moral nature can derive its laws from the inside, through observation of what it takes to preserve :. Pufendorf s civil philosophy a creature of the kind man happens to be. It comes as no surprise there- fore that Pufendorf prefaces his deduction by remarking that the law of nature can be obtained through straightforward observation of man and the requirements of his nature: There seems to us no more tting and direct way to learn the law of nature than through careful consideration of the nature, condition and desires of man himself, although in such a consideration other things should necessarily be observed which lie outside man himself, and especially such things as work for his advantage or disadvantage. For whether the law was laid upon man in order to increase his happiness or to restrain his evil disposition, which may be his own destruction, it will be learned in no easier way than by observing when man needs assistance and when he needs restraint. (DJN, ii.iii.:, .o) On the basis of the Epicurean anthropology that supplies the content of this observation, Pufendorf proceeds to derive the general form of natural law in this way: After the preceding remarks it is easy to nd the basis of natural law. It is quite clear that man is an animal extremely desirous of his own preservation, in himself exposed to want, unable to exist without the help of his fellow creatures, tted in a remarkable way to contribute to the common good, and yet at all times malicious, petulant, and easily irritated, as well as quick and powerful to do injury. For such an animal to live and enjoy the good things that in this world attend his condition, it is necessary that he be sociable, that is, be willing to join himself with others like him, and conduct himself towards them in such a way that, far from having any cause to do him harm, they may feel that there is reason to preserve and increase his good fortune . . . And so it is a fundamental law of nature, that Every man, so far as in him lies, should cultivate and pre- serve toward others a sociable attitude, which is peaceful and agreeable at all times to the nature and end of the human race. (DJN, ii.iii.:, .o8) Pufendorf s deduction of natural law thus serves two interrelated functions. First, in deriving the law from an empirical nature that God has gratuitously imposed on man, rather than from a rational nature that man shares with the divine being, this deduction sloughs o all the transcendental aspirations of ethics, leaving only the duty of cultivating a peaceable deportment in the interests of civil peace. Second, by deriv- ing the law from observation of mans empirical condition, rather than through philosophical abstraction to his higher rational being, the deduction seeks to remodel the intellectual deportment the mode of conducting the intellect through which civil duties are recognised. It drops exalted philosophical self-reection as the appropriate mode of acceding to civil duties, replacing it with chastened recognition of the obligations imposed in the interests of sociability. Given their centrality Transcendent reection to chastened observation : to Pufendorf s detranscendentalising of ethics and politics, each of these functions requires further clarication. In rejecting the idea that natural law ows from a rational nature that man shares with God, and treating it instead as a rule for governing an empirical nature gratuitously and inscrutably imposed on him, Pufendorf launches a frontal assault on the central doctrines of neoscho- lastic natural law. To this end he divides those writers who search for the prototype of natural law in God himself into two classes: The one nds its prime origin in the divine will, and since this is in the highest sense free, they conclude that the law of nature can be changed by God, nay, its very opposite can be enjoined, just as is the case with positive laws. The other maintains that it is based on the essential holiness and justice of God, so that the law of nature expresses these attributes like a kind of (copy) [ectype]; and from this proceeds also the immutability of natural law, because the justice and holiness of God reject all alteration and change. (DJN, ii.iii., :8) The rst position unrestrained theological voluntarism is awed, Pufendorf argues, because it fails to understand that while God is free to create beings with any nature he pleases, once God has created a being with mans nature, he is not free to change the laws whose observance preserves this being. God thus refrains from altering natural law not as the rationalists argue because it binds the divine will to an unchange- able metaphysical order, but because natural law is the means of main- taining the being produced by Gods act of free creation (DJN, ii.iii., :8). But it is the second theo-rationalist position that Pufendorf is at greatest pains to attack; for, in regarding human nature and its law as continuous with divine nature and its law, this view is inimical to Pufendorf s treatment of natural law in terms of norms immanent to mans worldly empirical nature. Pufendorf deploys two related argu- ments against this view. First he attacks it for vainly and impiously claim- ing to judge divine justice and holiness by human standards. Then he argues that it wrongly presumes a continuity between the legal obliga- tions established among men and the willed imposition establishing these obligations, which is a free creative act knowing no obligations (DJN, ii.iii., :86). It is only apparently paradoxical that Pufendorf s own theological vol- untarism issues in a fundamental de-theologisation of natural law. For the result of viewing mans moral nature as gratuitously imposed by God is that one cannot inquire into the theo-rational grounds of the moral : Pufendorf s civil philosophy laws governing this nature. Such laws must therefore be treated as wholly immanent to the observable or empirical moral nature accessible to a being lacking all transcendentalrational insight; rather than as eternal truths or moral necessities common to human and divine reason and permitting mans participation in the latter. Conversely, we have already observed that in grounding natural law in transcendent reasons common to man and God, metaphysical rationalism is responsible for a profound theologisation of natural law; for in doing so it invokes a model of ratio- nal being as the intellection of the intelligibles prior to their devolution into the world of the senses and their utilities whose prototype is the divine mind and whose beneciary is the metaphysical clerisy. Pufendorf s attack on the central emblems of neoscholastic and rationalist legal metaphysics the gures of the status integritatis and the imago Dei is thus integral to his voluntarist detranscendentalising of ethics. Pufendorf rejects utterly the doctrine that man can or may accede to his natural law duties by burnishing the image of divine justice and holiness in his own person. The reason is clear: human justice and good- ness arise from acting in accordance with imposed laws but, as the untrammelled source of this imposition, Gods will is just and holy in a quite dierent and incommensurate way (DJN, ii.iii., :86). Hence, while God has created man to be just, human justice is not continuous with divine; and, while man is destined for society with God in another world, divine society cannot be the model for the societies of this world. The anti-scholastic intent of Pufendorf s theologically derived volun- tarism is made clear in some o-the-record remarks that he addressed to Thomasius in a letter written in April :68. These remarks arise in the context of Pufendorf s response to his young admirers plans for his own natural law work the Institutiones Jurisprudentiae Divinae that would appear in :688. Here, it will be recalled, Thomasius was in part defend- ing Pufendorf s natural law against Valentin Albertis neoscholastic attack, which makes it all the more signicant that Pufendorf should congratulate his young follower for scrutinising the doctrine of the status integritatis: Among other things, my esteemed sir, it pleases me greatly that the same [work, i.e., the Institutiones] explains the theory of the incorrupt state [status integri]. Because if this [theory] is distinctly outlined in accordance with the hypothesis of our theologians, human life receives such a dierent shape from that of today, that our natural laws would make no sense for it. And because most parts of our law distinguish the two human institutes, absolute sovereignty and Transcendent reection to chastened observation : human government [nempe dominum et imperium humanum], whether and how far they would have obtained in the state of incorruption is very hard to determine . . . My esteemed sir otherwise does well if he avoids all conict with the theo- logians and its accompanying retaliation, and maintains merely that holy Velten [Valentin Alberti] errs beyond doubt, and wishes to introduce a mixture that is against all reason. (GW, i, :6.) In rendering natural law immanent to mans worldly empirical nature in excluding all recourse to his divine imaginal nature Pufendorf thus aims to restrict moral and political philosophy to the horizon of conduct required for the maintenance of civil peace. If natural law reaches no further than the preservation of mans sociability, and if moral respon- sibility reaches no further than the external performance of acts required by law, then moral and political philosophy must be restricted to public actions imputed as good or bad, just or unjust in accordance with the rules of social peace. In this way Pufendorf disconnects his version of natural law from all concern with a justice higher than the maintenance of external social security; and, as we have seen, he removes his natural law sociality from all concern with a goodness higher than that attaching to external action in accordance with the law. In short, Pufendorf disconnects civil ethics from the pursuit of holiness, whether in the explicitly theological form of the neoscholastic pursuit of the imago Dei, or in the implicitly theo-rational forms of Leibnizs meta- physical ascent to the pure concept of justice. It is, however, the second aspect of Pufendorf s detranscendentalising of morality his refusal to accept that natural law is acceded to via prin- ciples of reason and goodness common to God and man that was most destructive of seventeenth-century academic moral philosophy, and remains so in relation to todays versions. For, by insisting that moral norms be derived from and for an impaired worldly nature lacking all transparency to transcendent reason, Pufendorf is attempting to restrict the forms of philosophical reasoning themselves to the horizon of civil peace. Not even the comparatively benign theo-rational conception of natural law oered by Lambert Velthuysen escapes Pufendorf s stric- tures in this regard. Pufendorf seizes on Velthuysens comment that: The supreme right of God over His creatures is made known to the natural reason by those principles which form among men the founda- tion of natural law and equity. Such a view is untenable, Pufendorf argues, because it confuses the absolute right exercised by God in impos- ing mans moral nature with the hypothetical (immanent, relative) :6 Pufendorf s civil philosophy rights and obligations arising among men as a result of this imposition. For Pufendorf, this confusion arises from the assumption that Gods actions are subject to the same laws as mans. Velthuysen had argued that God should of necessity consider natural laws to be just, the order of this universe being established and constituted as it now appears to the eyes of every man. He had supported this by commenting: Because all things which we can picture in our minds always have a or rela- tion, arising from the intrinsic nature of the thing, which cannot by sound judgment be separated from the thing. In criticising this attempt to show the transcendent rationality of natural law, Pufendorf com- ments that God himself is not subject to the moral necessity of natural law since with Him there can be discovered no necessity other than that which he derives from the divine pleasure. Further, there is no intrinsic moral relation or quality attaching to things, and thereby giving man natural knowledge of divine law, since things do not have such a nature and accompanying relation of themselves, but only at the will of the Creator, and the decision of His will cannot properly be called a law. He thus concludes: Thus the reason why, among men, a favour obligates one to gratitude, and why a violation of agreements, savagery, pride, and contumely can never be lawful, is because God has appointed for man a sociable nature, and so long as this is untainted, what is agreeable to it is reputable [honesta], and what does not agree with it is unlawful and base. But this does not imply any right common to God and men, or any endowment or [relation] of things which is not based upon the divine will. (DJN, ii.iii.6, :88) The depth and scale of Pufendorf s programme for detranscenden- talising moral philosophy now becomes clear. It is not just neoscholastic moral theologians who fall beneath the wheels of Pufendorf s jugger- naut but, by implication, the entirety of rationalist moral and political metaphysics to the extent, that is, that it continued to derive natural law duties through reection on principles of reason and goodness common to God and man or man and the cosmos. For Pufendorf s central argument is that man has to accede to his natural law duties via a contingent nature that oers him no continuity with or insight into the rational and moral nature of its creator. The depth of Pufendorf s voluntarism his insistence that the cer- tainty of mans moral knowledge occurs inside the moral and epistemo- logical universe created by arbitrarily imposed laws holds the key to his criticism and transformation of Grotius construction of natural law. Despite Grotius insistence on the normative pre-eminence of sociability, Transcendent reection to chastened observation : his famous rationalist formula in the Prolegomena to De jure belli ac pacis that natural lawwould be valid even were God not to exist is, as Tierney argues, a direct echo of the neoscholastic natural law (Tierney :qq, :.o). It is precisely at this point that Pufendorf parts company with his honoured predecessor. Grotius goes astray, Pufendorf argues, when he claims that we can test the goodness of natural laws themselves by seeing whether the actions they prescribe agree with sound reason or mans rational and social nature. This cannot be done, rstly, because sound reasoninmoral aairs always assumes the existence of suchlaws and, sec- ondly, because mans moral nature is no less the result of gratuitous impo- sition than the laws it is supposed to justify. There is, therefore, no way of ascribing an absolute goodness to legislated actions by discerning their agreement with a nature that is good in itself or carries the seeds of its own perfection in the Aristotelian manner. Rather, the goodness of such actions is only hypothetical that is, goodrelative to a nature whose own goodness is a function of its imposition for the governance of conduct (DJN, i.ii.6, o). Despite rst appearances, then, the fact that Grotius is prepared to entertain the conjectural independence of natural law from divine command is a sign of his residual attachment to the transcenden- talrationalist line. Conversely, by treating natural law as the gratuitous expression of the divine will, Pufendorf is actually breaking with this line. For in doing so he renders natural law immanent to moral oces that betray no trace of the higher rational nature that has imposed them, thereby treating mans moral nature as an empirical phenomenon to be managed in accordance with the pragmatic rules required for its sheer preservation. The appeal to divine will as the inscrutable source of moral nature is Pufendorf s way of removing the transcendentrational justications frommorality and natural law. Pufendorf s deduction of natural law from mans need for sociability does not, therefore, operate in the standard teleological manner. It is not an attempt to justify moral norms by showing that they are neces- sary to realise or perfect a natural good. In observing his need for social- ity man is only observing his moral end from within the limits of his worldly nature. In recognising that he must conform to the laws of soci- ability required for his worldly ourishing, man is not deducing their necessity from a good known independently of them. Rather he is observing their utility for a nature that we take to be good because it forms the moral horizon for our ethical judgments. Right reason is thus not a procedure for deriving the law from a rational or moral end known independently of the law, but an attempt to conduct the intellect along :8 Pufendorf s civil philosophy the moral path formed by a gratuitously imposed nature and law: Therefore the law of nature may be called the dictate of right reason only in the sense that the mind of man has the faculty of being able clearly to understand, from the observation of his condition, that he must of necessity order his life by that law, and at the same time to search out the principle whereby its commands can be convincingly and clearly demonstrated (DJN, ii..:, .o.). The question of why man nds himself in his needyvicious condition the question of what lies beyond the ethical horizon formed by the laws of mans worldly ourishing is not open to reason. So profound is this rejection of rational justications for natural law that it even applies to the principle of utility. Pufendorf indeed advances the utility of natural laws as the condition of our knowing them, yet he denies that this constitutes a rational justication for them. The relevant remark runs: But, although by the wisdom of the Creator the natural law has been so adapted to the nature of man, that its observance is always connected with the prot and the advantage of men, and there- fore also this general love tends to mans greatest good, yet, in giving a reason for this fact, one does not refer to the advantage accruing there- from, but to the common nature of all men (DJN, ii.iii.:8, .::). Neo- Aristotelian and neo-Kantian commentators cite this passage as evidence that Pufendorf (partially) refused the utilitarian conception of natural law in favour of one investing it in a nature good in itself (Denzer :q., q; Schneewind :q8, :6). But this represents a miscon- strual of the passages intent. Pufendorf refuses utility as a rational justication for natural lawnot because he accepts the notion of an abso- lutely (teleological or deontological) good nature, but because he denies that human beings are capable of providing any kind of (transcendent) rational justication for natural law, including a utilitarian one. We have already seen Pufendorf taking Grotius to task for purporting to justify natural lawby testing it against mans moral nature. Such a pro- cedure is impossible not because this nature or its imposition is good in itself , but because it has been arbitrarily imposed on us by a superior. The imposed character of mans moral nature means that while he can deduce natural law by observing what it takes to preserve his nature, he cannot oer a rational or moral justication for the law through rational insight into the goodness of this nature; for, as we have seen, mans sense of goodness arises from the arbitrary imposition of this nature and is therefore internal to it. The goodness of natural law, and the advantage man derives fromit, meet not in a reason he shares with God but in the Transcendent reection to chastened observation :q nature imposed on him at Gods pleasure. It is not belief in God that holds goodness and utility together, though. Rather, it is recognising that, as a result of moral reasons immanence to a gratuitously imposed moral nature, man has no choice but to call good that which allows a creature with this kind of nature to survive and ourish. Man can deduce the natural law by observing its utility for attaining the sociality required for his preservation. He cannot know, however, that the preservation of his nature is a good intended by God. For Gods acts are not bound by (human) ends and mans sense of the good is internal to the nature arbi- trarily imposed on him, although natural religion dictates that he should treat this imposition as sign of Gods providence. Man must therefore derive his own understanding of natural law by observing its utility for his sociable nature. At the same time he must eschewall attempts to treat this derivation as revealing the reason for Gods imposition of this nature, which must be treated as gratuitous and inscrutable. The diculty that moral philosophers modern and early modern have in coming to terms with Pufendorf s deduction of natural law is that they treat it as another attempt to provide a philosophical justication for ethics. It is, however, something almost diametrically opposed to this interpretation: namely, an attempt to show that ethical duties can and must be acceded to independently of philosophical justications. Moral philosophy purports to accede to natural law duties through purifying reection on a nature that connects man to a higher rational and moral being to the perfect ends man shares with God, to the order of things that harmonises him with the cosmos, to the holy moral law of his own intellect. For Pufendorf, however, man must accede to such duties through sobering recognition of a nature that requires mutual assistance but threatens mutual destruction. Only thus can he avoid the self-exalting delusion that his duties arise from the dignity of his rational and social being, accepting instead that they come from the requirements of preserving his civil nature through restrained sociabil- ity with other men. In short, the persona of the (metaphysical) moral philosopher is an inappropriate model for the deportment of the decon- fessionalised citizen. . rori +i c\r stn rc+noon \xn ci \i r so\rnri ox+v Pufendorf s reconstruction of the scope of natural law duties and of the mode of acceding to them has profound consequences for his concep- tion of political authority or the state. We have seen that by treating :8o Pufendorf s civil philosophy mans natural state as an imposed status Pufendorf construes the law of sociality as a purely this-worldly rule of security, disconnected from all higher rational and moral law. In doing so, he clears the way to treat the civil state not as the expression of mans rational and moral being but as the result of a new willed imposition, the sovereignty pact. In agreeing to impose the status of civil sovereignty on themselves, men do not con- struct the political state in accordance with a rational and moral nature they share with God or reason. They were doing so on the basis of a dan- gerous and contingent nature that can be reshaped through sovereignty in pursuit of security. As we shall see, the absolute character of Pufendorf s conception of political authority his insistence that a supreme or sovereign power must be exercised independently of the moral judgments of those over whom it is exercised is not well under- stood by modern commentators, particularly those whose calling as moral philosophers commits them to the primacy of individual moral judgment. But then neither do these commentators understand the manner in which Pufendorf s absolutism harbours a liberal conception of religious toleration. Pufendorf construes the political state as a human artice imposed by men on themselves as an instrument of this-worldly security. This con- structionts well withour account of the larger historical task that he had undertaken: the fashioning of a civil philosophy capable of comprehend- ing the desacralisation of the state that had already occurred at the level of law and politics. Pufendorf s undertaking was fundamental as it involved overturning the way in which existing natural law doctrine neoscholastic and rationalist organised the relations between the indi- viduals religious, ethical, and political obligations. His strategy is to reshape these relations around the gure of a fundamental agreement or pact whose form and outcome accord with natural law without being rationally or morally preguredby it. At the heart of Pufendorf s account of the civil state or status lies his conception of the political pact as the willed imposition of a moral entity, civil sovereignty. This pact is analo- gous to Gods gratuitous imposition of mans natural state or status and, like it, provides a means of governing mans natural liberty through the imposition of new moral persona on him. In fact it is the imposed char- acter of the civil state that holds the key to its secularised desacralised and detranscendentalised form. In creating civil sovereignty as a new compound moral entity, consisting of the citizen (subject) and the sove- reign(ruler), the compacting individuals are infact transforming the basis on which they exercise their liberty and accede to their obligations. Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :8: Centrally, in agreeing to enter the civil state in accordance with natural law, individuals give up their capacity to decide whether henceforth the state is being governedinaccordance withnatural law. For Pufendorf, this holds the key to uncoupling civil from religious governance, the rule of the sovereign fromthe rule of conscience. Pufendorf s reconstruction of civil sovereignty is focused in Book \ii of the De Jure Naturae et Gentium. He begins in his usual manner, by clear- ing away the alternative accounts of the state oered by Hobbes and by anti-Hobbesian neoscholastic political theology here represented by J. F. Horns De Civitate. In claiming that in the state of nature natural laws are silent, Hobbes argues that the state arises not from the need for sociality but from the pursuit of individual advantage and the struggle for supreme power, which goes to the strongest individual. This means that individuals must give up their natural rights on entering the civil state, which gives political right immunity against the destabilising appeal to natural rights. According to Hobbes ProtestantAristotelian opponents, however, natural law itself gives rise to the state. As the law of a rational and sociable being whose capacities can only be perfected in the state the zoon politicon neoscholastic natural law assumes a natural teleological development of the civil from the natural state, thereby grounding political right in natural rights. Against Hobbes, Pufendorf reactivates the arguments of the second chapter of Book ii. These, it will be recalled, are designed to show that humans are indeed aware of the natural law in the state of nature and attempt to conform their conduct to it, even if only a few succeed in doing so. Sovereignty should thus not be regarded as a prize going to the most powerful in the universal war (DJN, \ii.i.8, q6.). Once again, though, it is Hobbes neoscholastic opponents who are Pufendorf s real target. He is particularly concerned to combat Horns version of the Aristotelian doctrine that the state arises from mans rational and social nature, at the behest of natural law, as the means of perfecting this nature. Against this doctrine Pufendorf argues that while man is indeed commanded to sociability by the law of his nature, his fractured mind and fractious passions mean that he is not naturally adapted to the public-spirited and peaceable role of the citizen: Nay, rather, no animal is more erce and uncontrolled than man, more prone to vices which are calculated to disturb the peace of society (DJN, \ii.i., q). A further reason why the mere law of nature cannot encompass the peace of mankind is that mans natural liberty is such that his judgments cannot be made to agree through the exercise of individual reason. Deliberation :8. Pufendorf s civil philosophy on mans nature and its permanent advantage may indeed point to the need for civil sovereignty. Few, however, are capable of such deliberation the pursuit of personal gain giving rise to a chaos of judgments regard- ing mans true good which means that human reason is not the source of the agreement that leads to the state: But since reason alone, as it is found in individual men, is unable to compose such great dierences, some sort of agreement of opinions must be sought by a dierent course (DJN, \ii.i.:o, q6). What this course is will soon become apparent. While mans natural condition gives rise to the desire for sociality and in fact to such lower forms of society as the family and the clan it does not of itself give rise to the civil state, as for this a certain comport- ment is required, consisting in trust and pacts. The source of the restrained comportment attending political society is, however, not readily understood by those living within it. In a striking observation, animated perhaps by his sense of how quickly the horrors of the Thirty Years War were being forgotten, Pufendorf comments of states: Their force is not realised by children or the unlearned, or their advantages by those who have never experienced the losses consequent upon their non- existence. This the reason why the former, because they do not under- stand the nature of a civil society, cannot enter into it, while the latter, because ignorant of its advantages, give no heed to it, or at least live in it in such a way as not to value its excellence. In fact the latter group themselves remain political children, and their insouciance regarding the conditions of their pacied existence suggests what it is that compen- sates for the immaturity of their natures: Therefore, all men, being born as infants, are by that fact unsuited to civil society, and most of them remain so all their lifetime, while it is discipline, not nature, that ts a man for such a society (DJN, \ii.i., q.). This indicates the course by which men will reach the agreement that gives rise to civil society or the state. If it is discipline and not nature that gives rise to the peaceable and public-spirited deportment of the citizen, then Aristotelian political theologians such as Horn are wrong to claim that the state is the realisation of mans rational and sociable being. It is not only early modern Aristotelians, however, who will fall victim to Pufendorf s interposition of discipline as the condition of political sub- jecthood. In attempting to interpret Pufendorf s own conception of this state as the instrument of mans moral realisation, modern moral phi- losophers suer collateral damage. In this regard we can recall Denzers argument that in Pufendorf the concept of nature must be taken in its teleological sense . . . that man strives for perfection so that: The natural Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :8 character of the state is thus the nal consequence of human natures capacity for cultivation (Denzer :q., :6). We can also take note of Simone Zurbuchens similar claim that for Pufendorf: As the most perfect human community . . . the state is natural in the sense that it belongs to the completion of humanity (Zurbuchen :qq:, o). In fact, this is precisely the teleological account that Pufendorf is at pains to reject, commenting in his essay De Statu Hominum Naturali (On the Natural State of Men) of :68 that such a view presupposes a kind of civil state wherein citizens are without any fault and wickedness, when in fact states are a sort of remedy for human imperfection (DSH, ., :::). The imperfection for which states are a remedy is not the immaturity of an essential endowment or teleological nature, but an incapacity that shows up in relation to an imposed purpose. Man, says Pufendorf, can be brought to the status of the citizen in the same way that a horse can be taught to prance, a parrot to talk, a eld to bear crops and a hill- side vines that is, not through the teleological realisation of a natural capacity that is good in itself, but through the disciplined transformation of natural capacities in accordance with an imposed end (DJN, \ii.i., q.): Yet no one is so ignorant as not to recognise how ill-adapted are the characters of most men to this end [of peaceable public-spirited cit- izenship]. To few is it given to meet all the requirements of a good citizen; most men are restrained by the fear of punishment, and remain their life long poor citizens and non-political creatures (DJN, \ii.i., q). For Pufendorf, then, man is not a political animal in the Aristotelian sense of requiring the state to perfect his rational and social being. Rather, he is so in the starker and more restricted sense of having a nature capable of being disciplined to the end served by the formation of states security: It is suciently clear from all this in what sense then man can be called a polit- ical animal: Not because there resides in each and every one a natural aptitude to act the part of a good citizen, but because at least a part of mankind can by nature be tted to that end, and because the safety and preservation of mankind, now become so multiplied, can be secured only by civil societies. Into these, nature always intent upon its own preservation, impels men to enter, just as also it is the rst fruit of civil society, that in it men may accustom themselves to lead an orderly life. (DJN, \ii.i., q6) It is not through the cultivation of mans rational and moral nature therefore that nature composes individual wills to that agreement by which they enter civil society, but through a quite dierent kind of instru- ment the discipline of mutual fear: Therefore, the real and principal :8 Pufendorf s civil philosophy reason why the fathers of families left their natural liberty and under- took to establish states, was in order that they could surround themselves with defences against the evils which threaten man from his fellow man . . . [A]gainst those ills with which man in his baseness delights to threaten his own kind, the most ecient cure had to be sought from man himself, by joining men into states and establishing sovereignty (DJN, \ii.i., qq). We are now better placed to understand Pufendorf s account of the pacts through which men leave the state of nature and enter the civil state. These consist not in a rational agreement and exchange of rights and obligations between two natural individuals the people and the sovereign but in a series of fear-driven decisions that results in the crea- tion and imposition of a new status or moral person. For a state to be possible there must be a body of men large enough to defend itself against other groups, and these men must be able to agree on the best means of their common defence. The divided and fractious nature of mens minds, however, means that mutual consent alone will not be sucient to allow them to reach and adhere to such an agreement (DJN, \ii.ii., q68q). Unlike bees, men are incapable of the natural harmon- isation of their political wills and, despite what the philosophers say, men are incapable of arriving at such a harmonisation through the dictates of sane reason having fully subdued all their passions and base lusts. Surely, says Pufendorf, those men erect states upon shifting founda- tions, who show too great respect for mens moderation and weigh all other men, and especially the vile mob, upon the scales of their own probity (DJN, \ii.ii., q:). In fact, given the two evils threatening mans pursuit of political secur- ity the diversity of his inclinations and the torpor of his will the only way to achieve and maintain the state-forming agreement is via the con- stitution of a single articial will equipped with the power to compel the performance of civil duty: The rst of these evils may be cured by uniting the wills of all in a perpetual bond, or by so constituting aairs that there will be for the future but one will for all in those matters which serve the end of society. The second may be alleviated if some power be established which is authorised to inict upon those who hesitate before the common advantage some present evil and such as will impress itself upon their senses. In striking contrast to all those who attempt to ground sovereignty in a general will Althusius, Rousseau, Kant Pufendorf insists that the sovereignty pact is not the expression of an actual or ideal union of wills: Now a union of wills cannot possibly be encompassed by the wills of all being naturally lumped into one, or by only one person Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :8 willing, and all the rest ceasing to do so, or by removing in some way the natural variation of wills and their tendency to oppose each other, and combining them into an abiding harmony. This union is rather the result of the fear-driven agreement of all individuals to subordinate their wills to a single agency of political decision: But the only nal way in which many wills are understood to be united is for every individual to subordinate his will to that of one man, or of a single council, so that whatever that man or council shall decree on matters necessary to common security, must be regarded as the will of each and every person (DJN, \ii.ii., q.). In the same way, a sovereign power as may be feared by all is created when all individuals have obligated themselves to use their strength only at the behest of a single man or council. This is the light in which we must understand Pufendorf s account of the two pacts and one decree that give rise to the state. It is in the crucial rst pact sometimes misleadingly called the social pact that individ- uals agree to enter the state by subordinating their political wills to a single individual or council. This pact is followed by a decree deciding whether the form of government will be monarchical, aristocratic, or democratic that is, whether the sovereign power will be administered by a prince, a council of nobles, or an assembly drawn from the people. This decision having been taken, sovereignty is then conferred on some individual or council through a second pact in which the rulers bind themselves to the care of common security and safety, and the rest to render them obedience, and in which there is that subjection and union of wills, by reason of which a state is looked upon as a single person (DJN, \ii.ii.8, q). The key to understanding Pufendorf s conception of the formation of civil sovereignty is that he regards it not as the realisation or execution of a natural capacity but as the invention and imposition of a new moral entity or status. Pufendorf rejects the idea that sovereignty pre-exists the state-forming pact residing in the individuals natural freedom and power or in Gods majesty treating it instead as a creation of the pact itself. By agreeing to subordinate their wills to that of a single individual or council in exchange for the security pledged by the latter, the assem- bled individuals create civil sovereignty as a new compound moral person. This composite moral personality consists of the persona of the citizen dened by the duty of obedience, and the persona of the sove- reign dened by the duty of care and protection. While it is true that in imposing this new moral entity on themselves men act in conformity with the law of nature which always seeks mans preservation they :86 Pufendorf s civil philosophy do so not in accordance with the laws of their rational and social being, but out of fear and exigency, which compels them to transform their being in pursuit of security. Pufendorf is now free to reject all attempts to derive sovereignty from some source higher than or independent of the pact that forms it. His central targets are Hobbes account of sovereignty arising via individu- als donating their natural sovereignty (freedom and strength) to the Leviathan, and Horns opposed view of it originating in a transfer of a metaphysical sovereignty from God to the prince who rules by divine right. According to Pufendorf, in viewing civil sovereignty as arising from the donation of natural freedom and rights, Hobbes is forced to posit a non-reciprocal pact in which the people is extinguished as bearer of natural rights, all of which pass over to the sovereign who therefore exercises them unconditionally. For a reciprocal pact might allow indi- viduals to reclaim their donation, thereby functioning as justication for rebellion. Still, despite sympathising with Hobbes fear of rebellion arising, Pufendorf suggests, from his experience of religious civil war Pufendorf regards Hobbes conception of sovereignty as fundamentally awed. What Hobbes fails to understand, argues Pufendorf, is that sov- ereignty a single and supreme locus of political decision and power is not something that individuals possess in the condition of natural freedom, but something they create and impose in the agreement that gives rise to the civil condition. There is no need therefore to posit a non- reciprocal pact in which the people is extinguished as a bearer of natural freedom and rights, because freedom is not the condition or quality by virtue of which they enter the pact or by virtue of which the sovereign is obligated to them: And yet when a free people transfers sovereignty to a king, that people does not cease by natural death, nor is the obligation of the king founded upon that quality of the people whereby it is under- stood to be free, but whereby it will thereafter continue to be a group of citizens subject to one mans sovereignty (DJN, \ii.ii.:., q8). The property of individuals relevant to the pact and foundational for political obligation is not their natural freedom and rights as attributes of their rational and moral or irrational and desiring being but their need for security, arising from their partially sociable but mutually destructive nature. Political obligation arises from the fact that, with the rst pact, individuals delegate their capacity for self-defence to another, agreeing in doing so that the sovereign alone should decide the best means to this end, and that he should have absolute power to coerce those who subsequently dissent from his decisions. The personae of Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :8 citizen and sovereign thus do not pre-exist the rst agreement. Rather, they are imposed by it, as a means of transforming the mode in which men will govern their liberty in pursuit of security. Citizens and ruler thus do not enter the second pact as bearers of natural freedoms and rights that must be traded o to produce sovereignty and may later be reclaimed but as bearers of the reciprocal duties of obedience and pro- tection that compose civil sovereignty as a moral person: When I subject myself to a prince, I promise him obedience, and stipulate for myself defence, while the prince in accepting me as a citizen promises me defence and stipulates from me obedience. Before that promise, neither of us was under an obligation, at least not a perfect one, I to obey him, or he to defend me (DJN, \ii...q, q8). Commenting on the distinctiveness of Pufendorf s political pact in this regard, James Tully has remarked: Therefore, unlike doctrines of corporate popular sovereignty, the people, although it possesses unity, never possesses supreme authority and so cannot be said to delegate it to a ruler and repossess it if the ruler breaks the agreement (Tully :qq:, xxxiii). There is thus little support for Denzers argument that Pufendorf rejects Hobbes one-pact model because it fails to allow for a reciprocal exchange between citizen and sovereign as natural-rights-bearing persons (Denzer :q., :6:). As far as Pufendorf is concerned, the complementary duties of the citizen and sovereign to obey and to protect are artefacts of the agreement that allows individuals to enter the civil status by providing them with new personae. As a result, the complementarity of these two kinds of obligation is such that the legit- imate power of a king and the duty of citizens exactly correspond, and we emphatically deny that a king can lawfully command anything which a subject can lawfully refuse. For a king cannot command anything more than agrees, or is supposed to agree, with the end of instituted civil society (DJN, \ii...::, q8o). Hobbes problem is that his conception of the peoples rights and freedoms is too natural that is why he is so con- cerned with destroying them. The arguments that Pufendorf deploys against Hobbes are even more devastating, however, when applied to the latters neoscholastic oppo- nents. For if sovereignty does not pre-exist the formation of states as a natural condition of individuals, then it is nonsensical to regard it as pre- existing the state as a metaphysical substance inherent in God or the order of being. Pufendorf is thus by turns scathing and mocking of Horns account of civil sovereignty devolving from divine majesty an account which sees political agreements among men as providing merely :88 Pufendorf s civil philosophy the empirical occasion for the attribute of divine sovereignty to ow into a king. This view of sovereignty as a divine right tears to shreds all the conventions and fundamental laws which are agreed to between kings and subjects, touching the administration of sovereignty (DJN, \ii.iii., :oo). More fundamentally, it fails to understand that sovereignty is a moral entity instituted by human agreement, not a metaphysical sub- stance emanating from the divine. Quoting Horns assertions that God pours it [sovereignty] forth directly upon kings after their election by the people, and that sovereignty is a creation of God, so that no other crea- ture in an equal or superior kind of causation, nor from any innate prin- ciple, has made any contribution to the institution of this type of administration, Pufendorf comments that making such statements only betrays a crass ignorance of moral matters. He then continues in a more sarcastic vein: Now if a man will consider this more deeply, he will see that such men as Hornius have conceived majesty to be a physical entity, which, upon being created by God, wanders about over the world with no home or resting-place until it lights upon a king, who has been selected by a people, and invests him with its august splendour. And such a man will surely be in dicult straits if he should be pressed as to whether that majesty, before it nds a seat in some king, is substance or accident, and if the latter, how it can exist without a subject. Furthermore, when was it created, at the beginning of the world, or later? Is there also but one majesty in the entire world, bits of which are distributed to individual kings? Do dierent kings have their own special and entire majesty? When a king dies does his majesty perish with him? Or does it survive him, sep- arated like the soul from the body, or nding by a kind of metempsychosis a dwelling in a new king? . . . But it is idle to inquire about the immediate cause of majesty, or supreme sovereignty, abstractly considered, since it exists only in a concrete form. (DJN, \ii.iii., :oo6) Lying behind this piece of boisterous anti-metaphysical invective is of course Pufendorf s entirely serious argument that civil sovereignty is an artefact of human agreement aimed at achieving a purely this-worldly security. As we have seen, lying at the heart of this argument is his treat- ment of civil sovereignty as imposed by individuals in accordance with the natural lawend of security. This imposition gives rise to duty-bearing personae unknown in the natural condition, the citizen and the sovereign personae incapable of carrying moral or religious norms into the civil condition, where they might be used for or against the state. This recon- struction of sovereignty in terms of the fear-driven imposition of new political personae is the condition of Pufendorf s desacralisation of pol- itics and the state. For it is the means by which he detaches the exercise Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :8q of sovereignty from all claims to political authority lying beyond that required for the worldly end of the state security and frommoral and religious claims in particular. Pufendorf s construction of political authority is thus equally inimical to popular-sovereignty conceptions and to divine-right theories. If sove- reignty is not the expression of supra-political capacities and rights, then it cannot reside inthe people, whether inaccordance withthe pessimistic doctrine of Hobbes, or the optimistic ones of Althusius, Rousseau, and Kant. For the same reason, however, sovereignty cannot not reside inGod or the metaphysical order of being, thence being transferred to princes. In viewing sovereignty as the mode of realising a moral capacity originat- ing in an extra-political domain, both popular-sovereignty and divine- right theories sacralise the state. Conversely, in treating sovereignty as an articial deployment of supreme political power rootedinsocial danger and created by fear-driven pacts Pufendorf s construction of political authority is dedicated to desacralising the state. Clearly this reconstruc- tionis noless inimical tothe eorts of modernmoral philosophers totreat the sovereignty pact either as an agreement between natural-rights- bearing moral persons or as the general will that arises fromthe rational harmonisation of all particular wills. For Pufendorf, it is discipline, not nature, that ts a man for such a society. Pufendorf s reconstruction of the concept of sovereignty gives rise to three striking and far-reaching transformations in our understanding of the state and political authority. First, as Tully has argued, it leads to the separation of sovereignty as the supreme unied locus of political deci- sion and power fromgovernment, as the particular formin which sov- ereignty is administered (Tully :qq:, xxxiiixxxv). Pufendorf thus argues that, to the extent that they are all capable of managing a supreme and unied exercise of political decision, then each of the three forms of government monarchy, aristocracy, democracy is an appropriate bearer of sovereignty: The capacity and inclinationof one or more men, who exercise sovereignty by their own right, or as it is delegated to them, do indeed aect or modify the administration, but in no way the formof a state (DJN, \ii.v.:, :o.). If the sovereign power is an artefact of the political pact, and is not donated to government by its natural or meta- physical bearer God, the king, the people, the general will thenneither monarchy, nor aristocracy nor democracy is its natural expression. Hence despite the fact that each of the forms of government is subject to the forms of incompetence characteristic of the dierent ruling persons or groups, none is inherently more or less legitimate than the others. :qo Pufendorf s civil philosophy Pufendorf thus rejects Horns claim that monarchy is the naturally legitimate bearer of (divine) sovereignty by remarking that the people, having created sovereignty by agreement, are surely free to bestow it on a council or assembly if they choose. In fact this causes Pufendorf to modify the temporal dierentiation of his two pacts, observing that if sovereignty does not pre-exist the rst pact then it may be regarded as being created and conferred at the same time: We realise, of course, that election is properly and exactly but a form of secur- ing sovereignty, and yet nothing appears to prevent a certain person from being selected, and sovereignty, now rst coming into being, from being conferred upon him by one and the same act. For surely it is childish to hold that in moral things, when some right or moral quality is said to be conferred upon another, it must rst have existed somewhere in separate form. Nay rather, it is clear to all that rights and other moral qualities come about by pacts from a mutual agreement of wills. (DJN, \ii.iii., :oo6) By parity of argument, however, neither can democracy be said to be the naturally legitimate form of government; for here too sovereignty does not pre-exist the state, in the moral sovereignty of the people. Moreover, even though it is physically drawn from the people, a demo- cratic assembly is (or should be) an autonomous moral person, and therefore cannot be understood as the people governing themselves. For, to the extent that it governs absolutely and in the interests of security, then the assembly occupies the persona of sovereign, while the people continue to have the single obligation of obedience to the sovereign (DJN, \ii.v., :o.8). In short, Pufendorf s separation of civil and moral sovereignty allows him to adopt a detached and pluralistic view of the relation between state and government, refusing all attempts to idealise any particular form of government as the naturally legitimate bearer of (moral) sove- reignty. Once the state has been reconceived in terms of its political function the maintenance of security through a unied and irresistible deployment of political authority then any form of government exer- cising sovereignty in this manner may be regarded as legitimate. In fact, Pufendorf is not concerned with (morally) legitimate and illegitimate forms of government, only with regular and irregular forms of state: We hold that the regularity of states lies in this: that each and every one of them appears to be directed by a single soul, as it were, or, in other words, that the supreme sovereignty, without division and opposition, is exer- cised by one will in all the parts of a state, and in all its undertakings (DJN, \ii.., :o.). Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :q: The second, no less striking consequence of Pufendorf s reconstruc- tion of sovereignty is that it sequesters government from the moral judgment of individuals. It is perhaps here that the ambivalence of Pufendorf s relation to Hobbes shows through most clearly. For, unlike Hobbes, Pufendorf insists that natural law judgments are operative in the natural state and that natural law informs law-making in the civil state. Pufendorf agrees with Hobbes, however, that it must not be left to the individual judgment of subjects to determine whether the sovereign is legislating in accordance with natural law: [T]he question is not, which is of greater value, the person of the king or the entire people . . . but whether, in view of the fact that civil sovereignty has been invented for the prot of all, the decision as to how to secure that end resides in those who have subjected their will to the will of the king, or in him to whose judgment and conscience the government has been entrusted (DJN, \ii.vi.6, :o6:). For Pufendorf, only the sovereign is in a position to make this judgment, which he does in accordance with the fundamen- tal end of the state security. Under circumstances threatening the exis- tence of the state, the sovereign will even be justied in infringing some of the citizens natural law rights for example, sacricing some to war to the extent that this is in the long-term interests of public safety. Clearly Pufendorf assumes that the dictates of natural law and those of reason of state will generally coincide in the sovereigns duty to make civil law in accordance with natural law. In fact he seeks to hold these together by treating public safety as both the end of natural law the reason for which states were founded and the end governing the sov- ereigns commands, even though these are beyond all eective moral and legal accountability. The diculty with this solution is that the concept of sovereignty entails that only the sovereign can decide whether his actions are in fact in accordance with public safety or the security of the state. Some commentators treat this apparent tension as indicative of Pufendorf s inability to integrate the doctrines of natural law and reason of state (Meinecke :q, .6.; Krieger :q6, .68; Denzer :q., :q.o). Others, as we have noted, regard Pufendorf s natural law as too normative to contain a fully autonomous or utilitar- ian conception of politics (Dreitzel :q8). In light of the preceding interpretation, however, it is possible to propose that none of these accounts manages to clarify the issue. In fact the power of decision that Pufendorf ascribes to the state comes not from a theory of sovereignty or Staatsrson super-added to his doctrine of natural law, but from the manner in which he construes the natural law :q. Pufendorf s civil philosophy pact itself. We have seen that Pufendorf treats this not as a rational agree- ment between two moral persons but as a pact between individuals to create two unequal personae, the subject andthe sovereign. It is as a result of this creation that citizens may not judge and dissent from the sover- eigns commands, to the extent that prima facie these agree with the end of the state. For the fundamental condition of this end being realised is that individuals give up this power of judgment. It as at this point that Pufendorf renders natural law immanent to the exercise of sovereignty, thereby opening the doctrine of natural law to the theories of absolute (secular) sovereignty elaborated by Bodin, Arnisaeus, and Conring. The tension in Pufendorf s account of the relation between sove- reignty and natural law judgment arises therefore from the fact that he must posit the latter as a condition of pacts being made and adhered to, while simultaneously treating the pact as annulling the individuals right henceforth to make such judgments regarding the sovereigns civil laws. The decisive factor here, however, is not any putative capacity individu- als might have to govern themselves but something quite dierent: namely, security, which is the intention or thought with which men made up their minds to establish states. Pufendorf continues: Therefore, it is held that no more power was voluntarily bestowed upon that prince than what a man of reason may judge to make to that end [of security]; although what may at any particular moment work to that end is a matter for decision not for those who do the transferring, but by him on whom that power was transferred. Therefore, the supreme sovereign can rightfully force citizens to all things which he judges to be of any advantage to the public good. (DJN, \ii.vi.:, :o) Consequently, while denying Hobbes assertion that civil-law commands are themselves the source of the individuals moral sense as this sense is present in the natural condition Pufendorf nonetheless accepts Hobbes uninching doctrine that it is seditious for individuals in the civil state to make their obedience to the sovereign conditional on their knowledge of good and evil: Yet in another sense the thesis of Hobbes can be allowed, if, that is, good and evil be taken as that which does or does not work to the advantage of the com- monwealth. For then that is surely a seditious opinion that the knowledge of good and evil, that is, of that which is good or evil, advantageous or disadvan- tageous to the state, belongs to individuals. That is, that each individual is empowered to pass judgment as to the aptitude of the means which a prince orders to be undertaken so as to secure the public good, with the eect that the obligation of each person depends upon that judgment. (DJN, \iii.i., ::q) Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :q For, if this were the case, then the civil state would cease forthwith, con- ditional as it is on the mass of individuals giving up their right to deter- mine the best means of their common security to a single individual or council. If the desacralisation of political authority entails withdrawing the state from the sphere of moral judgment, then it also entails with- drawing moral judgment from the sphere of the state. Finally, if Pufendorf s reconstruction of political authority thus renders the state absolute in the political arena, then it simultaneously gives birth to a liberal sphere of extra-political rights and freedoms. Those commentators who imagine they see the germ of totalitarianism in Pufendorf s desacralising of politics could not be wider of the mark. For, as we have already observed, this secularising of politics was accom- panied by a no less powerful privatising of religion. If Pufendorf s uncoupling of civil governance from transcendent morality renders the state absolute in the political domain, then it simultaneously precludes the exercise of political power in the moral domain. Civil society, Pufendorf argues in the De Habitu Religionis Christianae ad Vitam Civilem (:68), was not instituted for the end of religion to achieve mans sal- vation and eternal happiness but solely for the end of worldly security (DHR, , q:o). It is therefore improper for any state to make civil rights and duties contingent on the fulllment of religious rights and duties; just as it is unacceptable for the civil authority to be opposed on relig- ious grounds (DHR, , ::6). For civil duties depend only on the com- mands of the civil sovereign, issued for the end of civil peace, and limited to mans external conduct in civil life; while religious duties depend only on the laws of God, issued for mans eternal felicity, and concern only his inner spiritual condition. The civil sovereign may not, therefore, command mans inner religious life, unless this issues in conduct threat- ening to the republic, whereupon it ceases to be religious. Leibnizs iconic unity of reason and power, the sage and the prince, thus nds its mirror inversion in Pufendorf s insistence that the teacher and the prince represent distinct and mutually exclusive oces. On the one hand, drawing on his spiritualistic Lutheranism, Pufendorf argues that the teachers relation to his students is characterised by love and emulation, to the exclusion of all coercion and all dogma, thereby allow- ing them to seek saving truth in complete freedom, just as Christ taught the disciples in the primitive church (DHR, ., 68). On the other hand, on the basis of his own statist natural law, Pufendorf connes political authority to the personae of the subject and ruler, bound together by asymmetrical duties of unconditional obedience and abso- lute command, in so far as the ruler remains indierent to saving truth :q Pufendorf s civil philosophy (DHR, :., ::.:). Pufendorf thus recongures the relation between the pursuit of transcendent saving truth and the exercise of civil governance by consigning each to dierent statuses or zones of moral space the kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom: The kingdom of Christ therefore is a kingdom of truth, where he, by the force of truth, brings over our souls to his obedience; and this truth has such power- ful charms, that the kingdom of Christ needs not to be maintained by the same forcible means and rules by which subjects must be kept in obedience to the civil powers. And for the same reason, there need not be established a particular state in order to propagate and preserve truth, no more than it is necessary to set up a separate commonwealth where philosophy and the other sciences are to be taught. (DHR, :, ) Pufendorf s disarticulation of civil power from transcendent truth thus precludes the possibility of an unlimited or total society, in which all areas of life, unied by their common dependence on Gods univer- sal justice, are equally open to governance. Instead, he eects the funda- mental liberal separation of political and religious life. He does so, however, not to protect individual freedom from the state, but to render the state absolute in the political domain, by establishing that neutral- ity to religion which signies the expulsion of the church from the state apparatus. This is the authoritarian basis of Pufendorf s construction of a zone of liberal religious freedoms. We may agree with Dring, therefore, that Pufendorf s conception of toleration is politically based and of limited scope, with Pufendorf refus- ing to extend toleration to the Catholic church, on the grounds of its refusal to accept the states religious neutrality (Dring :qq8). This does not mean, however, that Leibnizs conception of an ecumenical faith grounded in transcendent reason would support a more liberal form of religious freedom. On the contrary, as we have seen, in continuing to make political authority conditional on transcendent truth, Leibniz is tempted to make such truth politically enforceable. Conversely, in extending the states power by rendering it indierent to transcendent truth, Pufendorf had opened a domain of liberal rights the domain of conduct incapable of threatening the republic which could be further expanded. This expansion was undertaken by Pufendorf s most famous follower, Thomasius, whose arguments for the toleration of various heresies contrast sharply with Leibnizs views in this regard. The scale and signicance of Pufendorf s reconstruction of moral and political philosophy should now be apparent. In order to detranscen- dentalise practical philosophy, in accordance with the desacralising of Political subjecthood and civil sovereignty :q political governance, Pufendorf had to re-invent it. It was to this end that he sought to replace the Christianmetaphysical cultivation of moral personality with a pluralised conception of oces, distributed in civil space in accordance with the ends of civil life. This also led Pufendorf to reject the moralphilosophical mode of acceding to civil duties via the individuals self-recovery of their higher rational and moral being in favour of a chastened recognition of the conduct that best serves a social being in need of security. Finally, this need to reconstruct ethics led Pufendorf to construct political sovereignty not as the means by which man perfects his natural being, or expresses his rational being in the political sphere, but as the means by which his moral nature is trans- formed in accordance with the end of civil security. Pufendorf argued that the detranscendentalising of morality and politics was conditional on excluding neoscholastic and rationalist moral philosophy from the domain of civil ethics. We must observe, however, that three centuries after Pufendorf s campaign latter-day versions of this kind of philoso- phy maintain dominant positions in the humanities academy a domi- nance felt most immediately and most ironically in the hermeneutic assimilation of Pufendorf himself to the agendas of neo-Aristotelian and neo-Kantian moral philosophy. Still, this dominance notwithstand- ing, the question of the success of Pufendorf s reconstruction of aca- demic ethics and politics remains open. For it is not immediately clear whether the power of modern moral philosophy is conned to the aca- demic sphere itself, where its sway might be treated as symptomatic of the privatisation of religion that attended the desacralisation of poli- tics. Alternatively, it might be that Pufendorf s desacralising strategy was never completely successful, and that the governmental means of isolat- ing the exercise of civil authority from the pursuit of moral truth have proved far more fragile than Pufendorf hoped. In discussing these pos- sibilities we turn to two very dierent kinds of philosopher: Christian Thomasius, sometimes described as Pufendorf s greatest disciple, and Immanuel Kant, who was responsible for passing the metaphysics of morals and politics into the modern period. :q6 Pufendorf s civil philosophy cn\r+rn ri \r Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics . : i x+nontc+i ox Christian Thomasius (:6:.8) was the leading exponent of Pufendoran civil philosophy in late-seventeenth- and early-eighteenth- century Protestant Germany. Given that he was also a famous or noto- rious, depending on ones viewpoint anti-scholastic educational reformer, and considering the standing he achieved as an academic, cul- tural commentator, and jurisconsult to the Brandenburg-Prussian state, one of the most puzzling aspects of Thomasius is his current relative obscurity. Until very recently, in the Anglophone academy the signi- cance of his multifaceted work has been known only to a handful of spe- cialists (Barnard :q6; Barnard :q8q; Beck :q6q, .6; Haakonssen :qq; Schneewind :qq8, :q66). The appearance of important new studies by younger scholars suggests that this situation might be chang- ing (Ahnert :qqq; Hochstrasser .ooo; P. Schrder :qq). Even in Germany however Thomasius has been described as forgotten (W. Schmidt :qq). It is true that the Germanists of the :q.os claimed him as a hero of the Frhaufklrung, yet Frank Grunerts bibliography suggests that serious attention to Thomasius jurisprudential, political, and ethical work is largely a post-war development, picking up momentum during the seventies and eighties (Grunert :q8q; Grunert :qq6a). It is likely that this renewed interest in Thomasius, and in early modern natural law and practical philosophy more generally, has been driven by German moral philosophys post-war concern to recover an ethical basis for politics (Dreitzel :q; Dreitzel :q8o). This, as we shall see, turns out to be a somewhat ironic light in which to view a political jurist whose prime concern was to nd a political basis for ethics. There are several reasons for Thomasius relative obscurity in the modern period. In the rst place, unlike Pufendorf s, Thomasius works did not receive European-wide dissemination in the late seventeenth and early eighteenth century. Here several contributory factors come into :q play. Most of Thomasius works were written in German rather than Latin, which made them less open to translation and dissemination than Pufendorf s accomplished Latinity. Pufendorf was also earlier in the eld than his follower, publishing the denitive civil reconstruction of natural law in his De Jure sixteen years before Thomasius Institutiones Jurisprudentiae Divinae of :688. These factors combined to secure the translation and dissemination of Pufendorf s natural law into other Protestant European countries which were seeking a solution to the problem of confessional conict via some form of desacralisation. Jean Barbeyracs French translations of Pufendorf s De Jure (:o6) and De Ocio (:o) intended to make the new civil ethics and politics avail- able to the Huguenot Diaspora and Gershom Carmichaels related annotation of the De Ocio (::8) for teaching duties in the Scottish Enlightenment, point up the more localised cultural setting within which Thomasius works circulated: Protestant Germany (Mautner :qq6; Moore and Silverthorne :q8; Othmer :qo). Basil Kennets English translation of the De Jure (:o) and Andrew Tookes of the De Ocio (:6q:) no doubt feeding into English debates over the religious ques- tion tell a similar story. This does not mean, however, that Thomasius work was narrow or provincial. On the contrary, his decision to lecture and write in German, like Barbeyracs to translate Pufendorf into French, was governed by the desire to expand the audience for civil phi- losophy. Both men sought to reach beyond the Latinate readership of the universities which they regarded as mired in scholasticism and con- fessionalism in order to address other vernacular publics, especially the politici and administrative nobility, many of whom were not inured to Latin. Nonetheless, the fact that Thomasius works were not translated into other national languages in the early modern period helps to explain why they remain untranslated today. The second reason for Thomasius comparative obscurity is more intrinsic, arising from the diculty of clarifying his intellectual relation to Pufendorf and an associated unevenness in his intellectual positions. In our earlier discussion of the Preliminary Dissertation that he prexed to his Institutiones, we have already taken note of Thomasius own account of his conversion to Pufendoran natural law. In experiencing the full desacralising force of Pufendorf s arguments, Thomasius took sides in the intellectual civil war that was unfolding between civil and metaphys- ical philosophy. Further, in dedicating himself to the study of politics and German Staatsrecht while nonetheless remaining committed to a pietis- tic form of Lutheranism Thomasius was heir to a mix of statist juris- prudence and spiritualistic theology very similar to Pufendorf s :q8 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics intellectual sources. Nonetheless, there are important dierences in the manner in which the two thinkers congured and used their common sources. As jurisconsults, both men belonged to the stratum of gelehrte Rte or academic advisors to government, in which university duties were rou- tinely combined with political ones. Without renouncing his pedagogi- cal interests and activities, Pufendorf s life carried him from the academic to the political end of this career spectrum as can be seen in his roles as privy councillor, secretary of state and royal historian at the court of Charles XI of Sweden (:688), and then as court historian and judicial privy councillor at the Brandenburg-Prussian court (:688q) (Dring :qq., o:; Dring :qq6). Despite his occasional forays as a practising advocate and his own role as a judicial adviser to the Brandenberg-Prussian court, Thomasius activities were concen- trated at the academic end of the spectrum, in his role as a founding law professor in Brandenburgs new University of Halle. Established by the Hohenzollerns in :6q, as an institution for the training of jurists and clergy independent of the orthodox Lutheran universities, Halle pro- vided Thomasius with a relatively safe haven from which to launch a programme of academic-cultural reform that was broadly in keeping with Hohenzollern Religionspolitik (Hammerstein :q8; Schindling :qq). From here he could conduct a remarkable one-man campaign to dis- mantle the neoscholastic curriculum and replace it with one suited to forming the future jurists and statesmen of a deconfessionalised princely territorial state. If his intense engagement with the problem of cultural pedagogy gave Thomasius civil philosophy a dierent emphasis to its Pufendoran model, then his version was also set apart by an associated dierence in intellectual and theological emphasis. Both writers drew on Lutheran theological voluntarism the doctrine of the wills dominance of reason and reasons consequential incapacity for thinking transcendent ideas as a means of attacking metaphysics and admitting statist civil sciences to the ethical domain. We have already suggested that Lutheran volun- tarism was the source of an important parting of the ways in German academic culture. For while the insistence on the inaccessibility of the divine attributes to human understanding supported a strong separation of revealed and natural knowledge, this could be used for two quite dierent purposes. On the one hand, Lutheran deists like Daniel Hofmann, and later the Halle Pietists with whom Thomasius was asso- ciated, could use it to attack neoscholastic metaphysics in order to defend a spiritualistic theology; that is, a theology grounded in a biblicistic Introduction :qq inwardness hostile to all metaphysical and rational theology (Brecht :qq; Sparn :qq). But, on the other hand, the separation of revealed and natural knowledge and rejection of metaphysical rationalism could also be used to secure the intellectual autonomy of empirical sciences, as Arnisaeus had done in his instrumentalist political science, and Pufendorf in his empiricist reconstruction of natural law. Unlike Pufendorf, in his early natural law work Thomasius remained in transi- tion between these two anti-metaphysical strategies. In the Institutiones of :688, Thomasius thus attacks the metaphysical confusion of theology and philosophy in order to provide a secular foundation for natural law. Yet he also uses this attack in order to admit positive biblical command- ments, as compensations for the incapacity of natural knowledge, thereby deviating from Pufendorf s strict exclusion of revealed Christian law from the domain of natural law. The transitional character of Thomasius thought in this regard accounts, perhaps, for its greater unevenness in comparison with Pufendorf s an unevenness that sees him oscillating between a number of dierent intellectual and theolog- ical positions during the :6qos. We will return to these issues below. If, however, Thomasius transition to a detranscendentalised natural law was less clear cut and elegant than Pufendorf s, Thomasius none- theless contributed something important to his mentors agenda. Pufendorf had indeed realised that for the desacralisation of civil governance to succeed it would be necessary to sever the conguration of civil duties from the cultivation of Christian moral personality. We have seen, moreover, that he made a fundamental contribution to this programme through his relegation of the unied Christianmetaphysi- cal concept of the person in favour of the pluralised construction of civil personae. It was Thomasius achievement, however, to recognise the depth of the academic-cultural transformation that would have to take place if Pufendorf s projected pluralisation of civil personhood were to take root in the educational institutions where young Protestant jurists, ocials, and statesmen acquired their intellectual deportments. These were the circumstances in which Thomasius developed his Aektenlehre or doctrine of the passions. Through this moral therapeutics he sought to take over Pufendorf s voluntarist and pluralist conception of civil oces, while simultaneously grounding this conception in a paideia of passional restraint capable of displacing the intellectualist paiedeia of Protestant neoscholasticism. As we noted in our Introduction, Thomasius Preliminary Dissertation to the Institutiones contains a good biographical pointer to the larger his- torical signicance of his programme. In attacking Albertis heresy .oo Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics allegation against Pufendorf, Thomasius identies the two central errors of his neoscholastic opponents. In making this charge, which depends on the metaphysical doctrine that divine and human justice form a single order, Alberti was applying moraltheological categories in the domain of civil jurisprudence, where they have no business. Further, in doing so, he was usurping the power and right to declare someone a heretic [which] belongs to no private person even if they were great and famous but only to the prince, who would himself be best advised not to use it (PD, :o, 6). In these remarks we can discern the central characteristic and driving force of Thomasius programme. This lies in his recognition of the historical complicity between the merging of the theological and civil sciences in scholastic metaphysics and the merging of religious and political authority in confessional society (Dring :qqb). This recognition in turn holds the key to under- standing the relation between the two wings of Thomasius remarkable programme: on the one hand, his culturalpedagogical campaign to replace metaphysical scholasticism with an eclectic array of civil sci- ences and a privatised religion of faith and grace; and, on the other, his politicaljurisprudential campaign to strip all civil power fromthe relig- ious estate, transferring this power wholly and solely to the secular sove- reign territorial state (Dreitzel :qq; Wiebking :q). For Thomasius, these campaigns formed the dual wings of a single programme of deconfessionalisation because, perhaps more clearly than any of his contemporaries, he saw that the catastrophic linkage between the exer- cise of political authority and the pursuit of holiness had been forged in the theology and philosophy faculties of the confessional university. Thomasius thus saw the struggle between metaphysical rationalism and civil voluntarism as something far more consequential than a clash between rival theories of moral being. He realised that, in programming the ethical regimen through which young intellectuals relate to them- selves and accede to their duties, these doctrines gave shape to dierent deportments of the person, dierent kinds of moral being. In particular, by training young intellectuals to accede to their civil powers and duties through self-sanctifying insight into true faith or pure reason, the meta- physical rationalism of Schulphilosophie gave rise to an intellectual deport- ment inimical to the governance of deconfessionalised states. For this mode of governance required that individuals accede to their civil duties on the basis of their status as subjects of the desacralised Rechtsstaat. Here, though, we reach the third and least tractable of all the diculties confronting modern attempts to understand Thomasius. For, as we have already observed in our Introduction, since Kant the history Introduction .o: of moral philosophy has been written as if metaphysical rationalismand civil voluntarismwere indeed nothing more than conicting ideas or the- ories, destined to be reconciled in Kants nal discovery of the categori- cal imperative a pure thought giving rational lawto the will. In treating the metaphysics of transcendent insight and the civics of political command as the partial viewpoints of a single moral subject thereby setting the scene for their reconciliation in the person who commands themselves through transcendent insight into the moral law post- Kantian philosophical history renders itself incapable of comprehend- ing the historical struggle between metaphysical and civil philosophy. For this was not a struggle within the moral person, open to resolution via a self-reexive moral philosophy. It was a contest between rival cultu- ralpolitical groups locked in a bitter struggle to control and congure the cultural institutions in which dierent moral personae were fash- ioned. So great, though, is the obstacle posed by post-Kantian philosoph- ical history to our understanding of Thomasius, that it demands a dedicated discussion. . . +nox\si ts \xn +nr ni s +onv or xon\r rni rosornv For those of us living in liberal democratic states, where the problems of social pacication and social discipline have receded behind the edu- cational, health, welfare, disciplinary, and electoral systems that con- tinue to solve them, it requires a major eort of historical understanding to come to terms with the cultural and political circumstances in which Thomasius elaborated his version of civil philosophy. In this regard, we should recall Pufendorf s comment regarding the state: namely, that those who have never experienced the losses consequent upon [its] non- existence . . . because ignorant of its advantages, give no heed to it, or at least live in it in such a way as not to value its excellence (DJN, \ii.i., q.). Thomasius was confronted by circumstances in which the emer- gent princely territorial states, operating within the Empire as a federa- tion of independent political enterprises, were still centrally preoccupied with the post-Westphalian problems of social pacication, deconfession- alisation, and state-building, looking to the universities for the jurispru- dential, political, cultural, and economic expertise that might help solve them. The challenge to historical understanding posed by this dierence between Thomasius circumstances and our own becomes insurmount- able, however, if liberal democracy is joined to the telos of post-Kantian history of philosophy, written in terms of the progressive reconciliation .o. Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics of intellectualism and empiricism, rationalism and voluntarism. For under these conditions Thomasius programme only becomes visible to the extent that it anticipates or deviates from a single normative line of historical development: the reciprocal emergence of democratic society and philosophical truth, joined in the trope of a society of rationally self- legislating individuals. Werner Schneiders Naturrecht und Liebesethik; Zur Geschichte der praktis- chen Philosophie im Hinblick auf Christian Thomasius (Natural Law and the Ethic of Love: On the History of Practical Philosophy with Reference to Christian Thomasius) is the most important and inuential study of Thomasius to date, and one from which I have learned much. Nonetheless, despite its wealth of insights, this study remains too heavily indebted to the proto- cols of post-Kantian philosophical history to free Thomasian civil phi- losophy from the web of misunderstanding spun around it. For all his eorts to show Thomasius independent importance, Schneiders fails to do justice to the conictual cultural context of Thomasius intellectual programme, placing him instead within the history of moral philosophy which, in turn, remains a history of the struggle to reconcile rationalism and voluntarism. As a result, Thomasius central preoccupation his concern to develop a statist political jurisprudence of church law (Staatskirchenrecht) is marginalised by Schneiders account. In fact it nally settles into its accustomed post-Kantian place, as a symptom of the failure to reconcile voluntarism and rationalism, coercive law and self-governing morality. In briey negotiating Schneiders account, we will nd a way to relocate Thomasius outside the history of moral philosophy. Schneiders sets his story of Thomasius splitting of law and morality or jurisprudence and moral philosophy against the teleological backdrop provided by a philosophicalhistorical account of their original harmony. According to Schneiders this harmony was rst forged in the patristic synthesis of natural law as a body of universal rational rules of moral and social conduct and the philosophico-theological tradi- tion of Caritas ordinata, or well-ordered love (Schneiders :q:, q). This harmonisation of natural law and moral philosophy was in turn depen- dent on the prior synthesis of the two philosophical theologies that fed into the teaching of Caritas ordinata: the doctrine of Platonic eros which conceived knowledge of God in terms of the adepts ascent of the hier- archy of being through self-purifying intellectual love; and the Christian agape doctrine, centred in the command to love the supreme being as the key to salvation (.o). Ignoring Thomasius own view that such Thomasius and the history of moral philosophy .o syntheses amount to a mish-mash of theology and philosophy, Schneiders treats Augustines version as reconciling natural law and the ethic of love, jurisprudence and moral philosophy just, indeed as Riley does (:q66). For this, Schneiders argues, allowed the Platonic hierarchy, ascended through intellectual love of God, to be superimposed on the ontological order of the cosmos established by divine natural law. The Augustinian synthesis thus provided love with a right or just order supplementing sheer aect with a normative-cognitive dimension while simultaneously supplying the formal order of natural law with a moral content: love of God and ones neighbour (Schneiders :q:, .o). It simultaneously permitted the ascetic or therapeutic ars of Platonic erotics to undergo a theoretical sublimation, by grounding them in a rational theology of the moral order, or a philosophical theory of the moral law (:). Transposed into the Schneiders philosophical history, it is not surpris- ing that Thomasius entire jurisprudential, pedagogical, and political programme is made to turn on his moral philosophy, principally on two works: the Einleitung zur Sittenlehre (Introduction to Ethics, :6q.) and the Ausbung der Sittenlehre (Practice of Ethics, :6q6). Schneiders regards Thomasius use of the concept vernnftige Liebe or reasonable love in the Einleitung as a late blooming of the Caritas ordinata tradition. In continuing to arm mans capacity to conform his will to a rational knowledge of just love, this concept maintains the priority of moral theory over moral therapeutics and, with it, the priority of moral philosophy over positivist jurisprudence (:q:, :6q). The disintegration that Schneiders sees occurring with the Ausbung of :6q6 is therefore marked by the autonom- ising of Thomasius therapeutics of passional self-restraint, now wholly oriented to the achievement of inner tranquillity independent of rational knowledge of the good (.o::, ..6q). Under these circumstances law can no longer attempt to enact the loving justice originating in individ- ual moral consciousness and becomes, by default rather than design, a purely external discipline serving the end of civil order a development that Schneiders locates in Thomasius late natural law work, the Fundamenta Juris Naturae et Gentiumof :o (.6.8q). Cut loose frommoral theory by a voluntarist doctrine of the pre-eminence of the will over reason, and giving succour to a statist doctrine of the pre-eminence of public security over individual reason and rights, it appears that Thomasius Aektenlehre shatteredthe original harmony of lawandmoral- ity, leaving us moderns with only the shards: a practice of private ethical therapy, and a systemof public legal coercion. .o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics At this point, however, we should pause and take stock of the fact that we have passed through the post-Kantian looking-glass. In the world that Schneiders sketches for us on the other side, Thomasius separation of law and politics from the metaphysics of morals has lost its historical anchorage in the campaign to desacralise the culture and politics of the early modern state. Instead, it oats before us in the distorted and anach- ronistic form of a philosophical mistake: the positivist divorce of ethical practice from moral theory, political governance from individual self- governance. It is time to restore our sense of historical perspective. In the rst place, the Caritas ordinata doctrine encountered by Thomasius and Pufendorf was not a manifestation of an early-Christian synthesis of natural law and the Platonic love-ethic. Rather, as we learned from our discussion of Leibniz and the neoscholastic natural jurists (..:), this doctrine was a product of the early modern conict between civil and metaphysical natural law. In fact it was elaborated by such metaphysical jurists and theologians as Placcius, Veltheim, Prasch, Rachel, Alberti, and Leibniz expressly to attack the profane line of natural law running from Grotius through Pufendorf to Thomasius (Schneider :q6). Far from representing some sort of quasi-timeless wisdom, the doctrine and discipline of a self-purifying ascent of the ladder of being to the vision of Gods just love at whose apex Leibniz could pronounce Justitia est caritas sapientis was in fact elaborated to combat Pufendorf s rival civil derivation of duties. This, we recall, derives political obligation from the rules required to preserve civil peace, and was intended to uncouple law and politics from moral phi- losophy. The historical genesis and role of the early modern Caritas ordinata doc- trine are revealed in an attack on Thomasius Aektenlehre, published in :68q by someone using the nomde guerre of an old theologian. According to this critic, in focusing on the governance of the passions Thomasius doctrine removes the self-purifying pursuit of holiness fromnatural law, thereby allowing even statists and atheists to qualify as ethical: So, rstly, it does not suce for a complete Christian ethics to know how to dis- cipline the aects in which Herr Thomas[ius] claims the whole of ethics con- sists because occasionally the utterly un-Christian statists and atheists are capable of this in a quite masterly way. But ethics also includes the doctrine of the highest good and true felicity, whose attainment is the principal reason for teaching and learning ethics. Further, the theory of the virtues (through which true happiness is attained) should also illuminate a mans immortal soul with the brilliance of the true light of virtue, and implant there these virtues so that the Thomasius and the history of moral philosophy .o soul may turn to God [the God] from whom these virtues came and whose grace and holy dwelling they lost through original sin again ascending to reunite with him, once more able to appear worthy and capable before God. Just as among the pagan philosophers Plato had recognised and taught that the true felicity consists in union with God. Because of this and other excellent doc- trines he was called the Divine Plato. Then if I have God, so I certainly have / That which will eternally delight me. Namely, the highest good, the highest pleasure, and the highest tranquillity of the soul. (KTS, :..) Even in Leibnizs rendering focused in the claim that civil duties should be derived from the sages enlightened insight into the theo-ratio- nal conception of justice the role of this doctrine was to defend the right of Protestant moral theologians and philosophers to provide moral norms for the exercise of civil power. Its abstract beauty notwithstand- ing, the Caritas ordinata doctrine was in fact a theo-rationalist weapon of resistance to the detranscendentalising of ethics and the desacralising of politics. It was wielded in a ferocious and uncompromising manner by Christian philosophers intent on preserving the civil authority of the clericalacademic estate. Thomasius thus encountered the historical reality of the doctrine of just love in Albertis heresy allegation against Pufendorf, and in the machinations of a phalanx of enemies Alberti, Johann Benedict Carpzov (the younger), and Carpzovs brother Samuel, pastor to the Saxon court who succeeded in having the court ban Thomasius from lecturing on theological topics, eectively depriving him of his livelihood and compelling him to leave Leipzig for Halle in :6qo (Grunert :qq6b; Lieberwirth :q). It compromises the neutrality of scholarship therefore if the formaltheoretical character of the Caritas ordinata doctrine is allowed to function as the telos of philosophical history or as a norm of historical judgment; for this leads Thomasius self-conscious rejection of this doc- trine to be seen as a philosophical mistake, as a deviation from the true history of moral philosophy. By identifying this normative doctrine with the priority of moral theory over ethical culture and by treating Thomasius rejection of it as the source of the fragmentation of moral- ity and law Schneiders fails to understand the actual role of formal the- orisation in neoscholastic metaphysical natural law. Here, as we have seen, formalisation is itself a type of ethical culture, tying the intellec- tual purity of concepts to the moral purity of the one who is to think them (..., ...). As for the old theologian, so for Leibniz and the neo- scholastic natural jurists, formalising abstraction is a means of groom- ing the puried or illuminated intellectual deportment required for .o6 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics intelligising the pure ideas from which empirical ethics, law, and politics are supposed to devolve. Thomasius explicit rejection of formal moral theory must therefore be seen as symptomatic of a conict between two autonomous intellec- tual cultures: namely, the civil philosophers regimen of passional self- restraint grounded in their Epicurean anthropology of the rationally uncontrollable aects and the metaphysicians culture of intellectual self-purication, grounded in the ChristianPlatonic anthropology of the body-darkened senses. In his depiction of reason and the senses, the old theologian is doing no more than invoking the gure of homo duplex and thus setting the anthropological scene for an exercise in contempla- tive self-purication: Reason which has not been enlightened by God is a false, deceptive light . . . bears a eshly cast and is darkened by the cloud of eshly aects. It looks only to its own honour, praise and inter- ests, through which man . . . becomes ckle and volatile (KTS, :). For all its greater philosophical sophistication, Leibnizs construction of rationalist enlightenment is an improvisation on the same anthropolog- ical theme and self-formative culture: The divine perfections are con- cealed in all things, but very few know how to discover them there. Hence there are many who are learned without being illumined, because they believe not God or the light but only their earthly teachers or their external senses and so remain in the contemplation of imper- fections (Lm, 6; Gu, i, :o). As we have noted in our discussion of his Foreword to Grotius, far from failing to master this ChristianPlatonic anthropology, Thomasius was fully conversant with it as a secret theology, dividing its practition- ers into the orthodox, who used it to formalise doctrine, and the esoter- ics, who used it to practise a secret form of spiritual direction: The orthodox in fact [descend] from rening Platonic disputations regarding the divine being, the esoterics though from the Platonic doctrine regard- ing the end of true wisdom: namely, union with God through the way of purication and enlightenment. So everything leads either to idle spec- ulation or enthusiasm and, thereby, simple active Christianity is forgot- ten (VG, :.). Further, as we shall soon see in more detail, Thomasius was acutely aware of the role of ChristianPlatonic anthropology in con- structing concepts of justice common to the divine and earthly realms. Ascribing to this Christian metaphysics of law precisely the mixing of theological and civil sciences he held to be complicit with the blurring of religious and civil discipline in confessional society, Thomasius repudi- ated it as unsuited to the formation of the young politici of a desacralised Thomasius and the history of moral philosophy .o state. In failing to grasp this historical state of aairs, and in marginalis- ing Thomasius for not grounding his positive ethics and jurisprudence in a pure moral theory, post-Kantian history of philosophy provides an uncanny echo of the original attacks made on Pufendorf and Thomasius by their self-exalting metaphysical opponents. We are now in a position to reformulate Thomasius relation to the history of moral philosophy. Accepting for arguments sake the meta- physical conception of moral philosophy as the discipline responsible for uncovering the norms of moral conduct in formally theorised moral concepts or laws we can say that, far from failing to realise this concep- tion through the unripeness of his time or intellect, Thomasius analysed and repudiated it, as formative of an intellectual deportment unsuited to those charged with the politicaljurisprudential governance of civil society. Rather than deviating from the history of metaphysical moral philosophy, Thomasius civil philosophy collided with it, encountering it as an obstacle to the secularisation of culture and politics. Moreover, he located its weak point at precisely that place where metaphysical specu- lation doubled as confessional enculturation: its formation of an intel- lectual deportment that tied the performance of civil oces to the pursuit of moral purity. Thomasius partitioning of law and morality his programme for expelling neoscholastic metaphysics of morals from the teaching of jurisprudence and the operation of the law was thus not something he fell into by default, after dropping out of the true syn- thesis of law and the love-ethic achieved by the metaphysics of Caritas ordinata. On the contrary, it was something that he spent his life working towards, gradually conguring the right array of civil sciences and ethical disciplines required to form jurists capable of separating their civil and religious duties this being the pluralistic deportment to which neoscholastic and rationalist metaphysics were jointly inimical. Thomasius appearance in post-Kantian philosophical history where he personies a process of cultural fragmentation triggered by the failure to develop a transcendental moral philosophy thus masks a quite dierent reality: a programme of cultural secularisation and pluralisa- tion triggered by philosophys failure to detranscendentalise itself. If, then, we are to begin to understand the historical reality of Thomasius deconfessionalising programme, we must forgo the frame- work of post-Kantian philosophical history in its entirety. This must be replaced with one capable of comprehending the way Thomasius used the intellectual resources and social position to which he was heir, to deal with the volatile religious and political circumstances in which he found .o8 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics himself. Rather than treating Thomasius as a minor gure in a tradition of moral philosophy that he strenuously repudiated, we shall explore four lines of inquiry that position him as a major force in the politi- caljurisprudential deconfessionalisation of early modern society. First, we shall observe that if Thomasius launched a campaign to destroy metaphysical rationalism and the neoscholastic curriculum replacing it with an eclectic education in the civil sciences this was because he regarded the intellectual deportment it formed as one inimical to the civilpluralist comportment required by the young jurists and statesmen of a deconfessionalising state (.). Second, in discussing the role of Thomasius Aektenlehre in his reconstruction of the academic curricu- lum, we shall concentrate on its role as an alternative paideia to the meta- physical anthropology of neoscholasticism. This was one intended to replace the monkish intellectualism of metaphysical scholasticism with a culture of self-restraint suited to the plurality of civil sciences the young jurists would study, and the plurality of oces they would occupy as advisers to the territorial sovereign and as citizens of the secular state (.). Third, we shall show that in the domain of natural law, Thomasius Aektenlehre, while indeed oering a voluntarist alternative to metaphys- ical rationalism, nonetheless impeded the uncoupling of jurisprudence from moral philosophy, functioning instead as a new (detranscendental- ised) moral-philosophical foundation for natural law (.). Finally, we shall see that this uncoupling took place not in Thomasius natural law but in his political jurisprudence or Staatsrecht, specically in his Staatskirchenrecht or political jurisprudence of church law, which was Thomasius central preoccupation and formed the cutting edge of his deconfessionalising programme (.6). These are the four areas that now lie open for exploration. . +nr \++\ck ox xr+\rnvsi c\r scnor\s +i ci sx Despite their good spirit and general informativeness, those accounts of Thomasius educational reforms couched in terms of his enlightened attitudes, his defence of intellectual freedom, and his concern for his stu- dents moral welfare can hardly do justice to the scope or trenchancy of Thomasius programme to abolish the neoscholastic curriculum and assemble a new one in its place (Schubart-Fikentscher :q). Thomasius programme was driven neither by his solicitude for his students, nor by any adherence to enlightenment rationality he remained resolutely hostile to metaphysical rationalism but by his acute sense of the role of The attack on metaphysical scholasticism .oq Protestant neoscholasticism in the culture and governance of the con- fessional state. Thomasius probably acquired or at least honed this awareness during his time at the University of Frankfurt an der Oder in Brandenburg where, concerned by the standard of teaching at their home university of Leipzig, his father Jacob had sent him to study law (Lieberwirth :q, :6). Gerhard Oestreich has argued that the aca- demic culture of late-seventeenth-century Frankfurt was informed by a mix of Cartesian philosophy, Lipsianneo-Stoic political science, Grotian natural law, and moderate Arminian Calvinism in fact just the combination of statist civil science and spiritualist theology informing Thomasius version of civil philosophy (Oestreich :qq; Thieme :qqb). From this perspective, Leipzigs reigning Protestant scholasticism intellectually grounded in Protestant Schulmetaphysik and institutionally anchored in the power bloc of the theology and philosophy faculties must have seemed particularly oensive to Thomasius emerging politi- cal and religious sensibility. Certainly, by the time the disaected prodi- gal returned to Leipzig in :68o he was armed with a programme for the root and branch extirpation of this neoscholastic curriculum. After a few years practising as an advocate, he joined the university as a Privatdozent and proceeded to publicise this programme in a series of lectures, dis- putations, and essays later collected in the Kleine Teutsche Schriften (Shorter German Writings :o:) and in the Introductio ad Philosophiam Aulicam of :688, translated into German as Einleitung zur Hof-Philosophie (Introduction to Court Philosophy) in ::o. If the lectures and essays sketch a wide- ranging and far-reaching reconstruction of the artslaw curriculum, designed to produce a propaedeutic suited to the formation of political jurists, then the Hof-Philosophie leaves us in no doubt regarding the source of the corruption that had ruined the academic sciences the discipline of metaphysics. If, in Thomasius eyes, the mixing of theological and civil sciences in metaphysics had led religion into a speculative dogmat- ics lacking all inward ethical power, then it had also corrupted law and politics by implicating them in the miscegenation of religious and civil authority that characterised the confessional state. ... Dismantling the scholastic curriculum The lectures and essays produced by Thomasius between :68 and :6qo in which he threw down the gauntlet to Leipzig neoscholasticism and sketched his new curriculum are programmatic rather than systematic works, by turns far-sighted and combative, satirical and mordant. .:o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics Nonetheless, they were dedicated to reshaping the institutional culture in which systematic scholarship was produced, and they remain serious and intellectually challenging works. At their centre lies Thomasius acute sense of a relationship that those of us coming after Kant have the greatest diculty in comprehending: the relation between the elabora- tion and transmission of particular philosophies and sciences (on the one hand) and the formation of particular kinds of intellectual deportment in and through this elaboration and transmission (on the other). The prime focus of Thomasius concern in this regard was the neoscholastic philosophical preparation students underwent before entering the three higher faculties; for he regarded this preparation as wholly unsuited to the formation of future jurists and state ocials. The character of Thomasius concern with his students philosophi- cal preparation is signalled in the essay Wie ein junger Mensch zu informieren sei (How a Young Man is to be Educated, :68q), whose sub-title runs: Christian Thomas makes a proposal to university students in which he sets out how, within a three-year period, he intends to educate a young man who has decided to uprightly serve God and the world in civil life and to live as an honest and gallant man [honnet und galant homme] in philosophy and the particular parts of jurisprudence. Observing that the university consists of the faculties of law, medicine, and theology, under which philosophy is an instrument of the higher faculties, or at least should be, Thomasius indicates the philosophical disposition suited to future jurists: Therefore I also demand as my auditors such individuals as do not take the mere shell of philosophy as their nal goal and following the erroneous pagan doctrine seek their highest good in speculation but such as strive to turn their philosophy to the real benet of the human race (KTS, .o). Setting theology to one side commenting only that he regrets its sec- tarian controversies and its use of philosophy as an instrument Thomasius passes quickly over medicine, confessing his ignorance of this noble art but remarking that he regards it as an ethical rather than a scientic discipline. On reaching his own domain of jurisprudence, however, he pauses to reect that he has long found the philosophical preparation given to his students unsuited to their future calling, and that as a result: for several years I have reected on how I might provide that necessary instru- ment, philosophy, in a form that one could use in jurisprudence, and [I have] required as the type of my future auditors such individuals who have resolved to cultivate philosophy to the degree that it is capable of establishing particular The attack on metaphysical scholasticism .:: benets in civil life and especially in jurisprudence. This is so that through the propositions of philosophy [Welt-Weisheit] they will be enabled to honestly apply their understanding and will to the needs of humanity, to support the general peace, and to skilfully serve the commonwealth in whatever political oces it determines. (KTS, .:.). In fact Thomasius published some of the fruits of this reection the year before, in his essay Von den Mngeln der aristotelischen Ethik (On the Defects of Aristotelian Ethics, :688). Here he provided an acerbic analysis of the limits of neoscholastic moral philosophy, at the same time outlining the new arrangement of disciplines that he was assembling as a post-confes- sional arts degree for jurists. Thomasius begins by arguing that for young men to acquire the manners and knowledge required for prudent partic- ipation in the aairs of life and the state, three conditions must be met: it is necessary rst that a young man seek a certain ground for exploring the truth; next that he learn to conform his morals to the laws of virtue; and nally he must apply himself to understanding the state of human aairs and the republic in which he nds himself. Because in so far as men live in the world, they live bound to each other in an orderly fashion in a civil society, and have to observe in this condition not just the duty that binds them to the whole human race, but also their duty to the commonwealth in which they live. They are incapable of doing both obediently, though, unless they have already cleansed their understanding of the common errors and are knowledgeable of the society in which they dwell . . . (KTS, ) Aristotelian practical philosophy serves none of these purposes, according to Thomasius. In the rst place it is incapable of making young men virtuous and for this reason does not deserve the name of practical philosophy. A discipline worthy of the title habitus practici (prac- tical competence) should actually form the capacity for moral action. It is not enough for this discipline to teach a young person something of himself and his nature, [and] how capable these are of understanding the action in question. Rather, it is above all necessary that it display the means and manner through which a natural ability can be put to work (KTS, 8o:). Academic practical philosophy is quite incapable of functioning in this way. On the one hand bogged down in disputes over the summum bonum, taught to youth in the form of metaphysical exercises, proceeding from a cataloguing of the eleven virtues to a classication of the species of justice Aristotelian moral philosophy reduces to a set of technical terms and axioms lacking all edifying power: I hope therefore that I do no injustice to Aristotelian ethics when I say that it is as inca- pable of leading a young man to the path of virtue as a gouty foot is inca- pable of carrying a lame man across a river (KTS, 86). On the other .:. Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics hand, through its mixing of theology and philosophy, Aristotelian meta- physics can claim a cultural authority that threatens the political order, giving birth to such dangerous hybrids as Christian logic, which has no other use than to show ill-mannered individuals how they can oppose the territorial sovereign under the cover of a hypocritical religiosity (KTS, q.). As a result, says Thomasius, displaying a characteristic mix of self- promotion, intellectual audacity, and political bravado, he will redress the defects of Aristotelian moral philosophy by developing an alterna- tive ethics. We will reserve our discussion of Thomasius ethical disci- pline for the following section, contenting ourselves for the moment with the claim through which he signalled its distinguishing feature and so outraged the old theologian, namely: That ethics is nothing other than a teaching and instruction in how a man should govern his aects, in order to render them incapable of impelling him to something that would be against the law (KTS, q). Thomasius also tells his auditors that his lectures will clarify the nature of the aects and their relation to reason, and will teach the kind of general rules a man must observe to hold his aects in check (KTS, q). In short, Thomasius was proposing to remedy the practical incapacity of Aristotelian moral philosophy with an ethical therapeutics. This discipline would relegate the intellectualist anthropology and quasi-religious discipline of metaphysical ethics in favour of a passional anthropology geared to a practice of self-restraint an Aektenlehre. Secondly, argues Thomasius, Aristotelian practical philosophy is no less inappropriate as a means of informing students as to the nature of the political state and the duties they owe to it. Here, the important thing is that future jurists and statesmen be instructed on the present post- Westphalian condition of the German Empire, particularly with regard to its relation to the emergent territorial states and their sovereigns. In using Roman natural law categories and Aristotles typology of state- forms to construe the Empire as a type of state a respublica mixta neo- scholastic political theory is completely unsuited to this task. This construal maintained, we may observe, by Leibniz and the neoscholas- tic natural jurists is both empirically inadequate to the Empires actual existence as a federation of states, and politically inappropriate, in favouring a society of Imperial estates over the emergent systemof sove- reign territorial states. Displaying his own grounding in Conrings civilis prudentia and Pufendorf s natural law, Thomasius declares that neoscho- lastic political and legal theory must be replaced by the teaching of a new kind of political lawor Staatsrecht. This would be a political jurisprudence The attack on metaphysical scholasticism .: informed by Monzambanos (Pufendorf s) empirical history of the Empires actually existing political organisation, and oriented to the now dominant political reality of the sovereign territorial state (KTS, q:o.). Exemplifying the new historical form of jurisprudence that he sought to introduce into the university and in fact anticipating the history of early modern jurisprudence given by such modern historians as Martin Heckel Thomasius argues that German Staatsrecht derives not from metaphysical concepts of justice common to the sage and God, but from a quite dierent order of reality: the history of the Reformation, the religious wars of the sixteenth century, and the Thirty Years War in par- ticular. It was in this context that deconfessionalised politicaljurispru- dential principles were gradually assembled, in order to provide statesmen with an agnostic juridical framework capable of containing the fractious doctrines and passions of the warring confessional estates (KTS, :o). Emerging as the instrument of this statist deconfessional- isation of society, the new political jurisprudence was constitutionally disposed towards the reality of the system of independent sovereign states established by the Treaty of Westphalia. If, therefore, the rising generation of jurists and statesmen were to understand the nature of the states in which they lived, they would have to have to be taught German Staatsrecht. They would also have to master Pufendorf s account of the Empire as a state that was irregular or lacking the dening character- istic of the state: supreme sovereignty, or the concentration of all the powers and capacities necessary for the security of the state and its citi- zens in a single locus of decision and action (KTS, :o6::). As Notker Hammerstein has shown, Thomasius historical approach to the study and teaching of Staatsrecht is representative of a more general alliance between the disciplines of law and history that was displacing the deductive framework of metaphysics and Roman law (Hammerstein :q.; Hammerstein :q8q). This transformation played an important role in Thomasius reconstruction of academic practical philosophy. In fact Thomasius proposes that philosophy or arts faculties should continue teaching ethics, politics, and oeconomics, but in a quite new way. Rather than approaching these disciplines through the portals of metaphysics, which led to their being regarded as applied branches of moral philos- ophy, students would be introduced to them via the discipline of history, which allowed the disciplines an eclectic independence. Through the study of sacred and profane history, and especially through the study of the history of philosophy the discipline that Thomasius father had cultivated in search of a restraining context for rationalist metaphysics .: Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics students would learn to approach the dierent parts of practical philos- ophy in terms of their historical contexts and objectives (KTS, .). History thus began to emerge as the great disciplinary alternative and rival to metaphysics. It did so by treating historical phenomena as empir- ically autonomous, rather than as temporal manifestations of a priori or theo-rational ideas, thereby playing a decisive role in the detranscenden- talising of philosophy. Situated in the curriculum in this way, the civil sci- ences were no longer to be seen as devolved branches of the theory of being, in either the neoscholastic or Leibnizian manner. Instead, they were to be taught in the eclectic manner, as autonomous historical undertakings, each with its own methodological conditions and practi- cal ends. It was against this backdrop that Thomasius could introduce his ver- sions of the main branches of practical philosophy. His ethics, we have noted, would be one divorced from the metaphysics of intellectual self- governance, grounded in the quasi-biological passions it was meant to shape and control, and oriented to a practical end inner tranquillity to be achieved by the discipline (KTS, .:). For its part, politics was to be taught not as a branch of ethics in terms of the princes role in executing Gods will, or in terms of the states role in perfecting mans moral nature but as a discipline for managing the state as an empiri- calhistorical entity. In a manner reminiscent of Arnisaeus and Conring, Thomasius argues that political science should focus on how states are maintained and what it is that destroys them; the role of dierent forms of government in realising the sovereign interests of the state; the benets and harms of good and bad clergy to the state; the contribution of manufacture and trade, and so on. As a further dimension of this practical political pedagogy he promises to teach his students a type of political prudence (politische Klugheit) providing them with the means to control their emotions and compose their demeanour in threatening public circumstances, while simultaneously penetrating the dissimula- tions of others with whom they are conversing or negotiating (KTS, .:). Thomasius outline of the oeconomics curriculum, though, is far less advanced, reecting both the limited development of this discipline and his limited interest in it (KTS, .). Oeconomics is treated partly in terms of practical advice to the students on the prudent management of their nancial aairs, and partly via the rules of the princes state- housekeeping (Haushaltungskunst) conforming to Brckners argument that economics had not yet emerged as a fully independent discipline focused on knowing and managing the national economy (Brckner The attack on metaphysical scholasticism .: :q, q6o). Finally, Thomasius proposed to add a fourth discipline to practical philosophy one for which the German language had no word but which the Latins called decorum and the French politesse or galanterie. Introduced as a distinct ethical domain alongside morals (honestum) and law (justum), decorum contains the rules for managing conduct that is neither commanded nor forbidden, but is nonetheless necessary for the maintenance of civilised life. The rules of decorum derive from the manners and mores of those persons whose way of living is most esteemed, the gens du court in particular. Decorum teaches students how to avoid incivility and impudence, to cultivate winning ways and manners, and to engage in peaceable social intercourse with those whose religious or moral beliefs they may not share (KTS, .q). The prime casualty of this reconstruction of the philosophical curric- ulum is, of course, the discipline of metaphysics. As the linchpin of phil- osophical confessionalism and the confessional university, neoscholastic metaphysics is the bte noir of Thomasius deconfessionalising pro- gramme. Schulmetaphysik both stationed the civil sciences on the lower rungs of the ladder of being and compelled university students to accede to their civil duties via the speculative ascent of this ladder. Thomasius curricular and pedagogical reforms were thus intended completely to dismember university metaphysics reassigning its ontological role to history, relegating its ethics in favour of his Aektenlehre, denying it any role in politics, and expelling it from theology leaving only its carcass to be picked over by logicians in search of useful categories. Thomasius would settle for nothing less than the utter destruction of metaphysics, in order to make way for a philosophical propaedeutic that would train students in the ethical discipline required to govern themselves and in the civil sciences required to govern the state. Nonetheless, Thomasius reform of the arts curriculum was not gov- erned by a simple substitution of social utility for metaphysical truth. By treating it in this way, some commentators have sought to explain Thomasius statism as the product of yet another philosophical error: his sacrice of transcendental norms capable of judging the state to an all- embracing political utilitarianism (Schmidt-Biggemann :q88a, :). In fact Thomasius prime philosophical concern was not the substitution of utility for truth but a quite dierent one. He was concerned with the utility in the broad sense of contributing to human ourishing of dierent modes of acceding to truth. In other words, Thomasius fun- damental concern was not to defend a true philosophy, but to describe and criticise particular ways of acceding to philosophical truth in terms .:6 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics of the intellectual deportments to which they gave rise. In fact, in approaching philosophy via an historical description of the intellectual deportments it formed, Thomasius was playing the trump card in his reconstruction of the arts curriculum: the historicisation of metaphysics itself. This is the task that he essayed in the Hof-Philosophie of :688. ..: Historicising metaphysics Rather than anticipating nineteenth-century utilitarianism, the Hof- Philosophie represents the fusion of two distinctively early modern intel- lectual currents. First, it draws on the historical approach to scholastic metaphysics developed by Thomasius blessed father Jacob, in his Schediasma historicum of :66. An adherent of the classic Lutheran dualism of revealed and natural knowledge, Jacob Thomasius objected to the rationalist collapsing of this division in (Scotist) Aristotelian meta- physical ontology. For this led to God being treated as a sub-species in a hierarchy of being open to the human intellect, rather than as the highest analogum for a reality the intellect could not know directly. Thomasius senior sought to rectify this error by providing a history of it (Santinello :qq, oq.). Tracing its origins to the Chaldean and early- Greek dualisms of God and matter, good and evil, Jacob viewed the phil- osophical sects Aristotelian, Platonic, Stoic, Epicurean as attempts to reconcile the dualisms, treating neoscholastic metaphysical ontology as the most recent such attempt. In a footnote to the Institutiones, the son enumerates the errors which his father had discerned in the neoscholas- tic metaphysicians: They err when they make intelligence into a species of theoretical disposition [habituum theoreticorum], which happens because they concern themselves too little with practical principles. They err in confusing ontology with metaphys- ics. [They err] In excising the theory of God from metaphysics, shifting it to a special discipline, namely pneumatology. [They err] In presenting their modern metaphysics as wisdom, because it is nothing more than a dictionary of various terms, which either has no uses or else very bad ones. [They err] In that, in pneumatology, they treat of angels and of human souls separated from the body . . . They err when they treat the moral disposition [habitus morali] or moral virtue [virtute morali] as if it were indistinguishable from a free disposition [wilkhrlichen habitu] and once again the forget the art [the ars ethica]. (IJD, i.:..., fn r, ) At the same time, the Hof-Philosophie is also informed by the kind of anti-metaphysical civil philosophy to be found in Renaissance civic humanists such as Mario Nizoli(us) (Dreitzel :qq:, oo.). This current The attack on metaphysical scholasticism .: of civil philosophy combined a nominalist rejection of universals and metaphysical abstraction with an empiricist epistemology, framing both within a rhetorical conception of logic and language as instruments of civil communication (Nizolius :q8o). In fusing his fathers anti-sectarian history of metaphysical ontology and the Renaissance civicnominal- ist critique of metaphysics, Thomasius Hof-Philosophie emerged as a powerful anti-metaphysical tract. By focusing on its sectarian merging of theology and philosophy, Thomasius was able to diagnose university metaphysics as a danger to both private piety and public civility. Thomasius begins the Hof-Philosophie with a history of philosophy whose central function is to provide a genealogy of the contemporary struggle between the neoscholastic philosophia Christiana and the eclectic civil philosophy of Grotius and Pufendorf (Hochstrasser .ooo, :.8). Following closely in his fathers footsteps, Thomasius characterises pagan philosophy in terms of its erroneous treatment of God and the world, and good and evil, as co-eval principles (EHP, 6:.). Not only does this doctrine mark pagan philosophys dierence from Christian monotheism, it also indicates the original miscegenation of theology and philosophy whose ospring was sectarian philosophy. Dened by opposition to eclectic philosophy, sectarian philosophy signies an ille- gitimate natural (philosophical) appropriation of revealed (theological) truths, giving rise to intellectual authoritarianism, discipleship, and intol- erance of other philosophies. Thomasius history of philosophy is thus not so much a history of ideas as a history of philosophical sectarianism as a particular way of acceding to ideas. Without attempting to capture the detail of this history we can observe that Thomasius identies the patristic period as the moment at which pagan (Stoic and Platonic) philosophical sectarianism penetrated Christian theology. It is the Platonising fathers in particular Origen, Chrysostom, Augustine who are held chiey responsible for this cross- breeding, giving birth to the hybrid discipline of metaphysics and, with it, the type of sectarian speculative theology that has brought great dis- turbance to religion and civil society (EHP, .). Transmitted to the middle ages in the form of the great scholastic systems, this sectarian philosophy has given rise to such recent forms as the papist Aristotelian moral philosophy that mixes theology, philosophy, and Roman jurispru- dence in misshapen texts that purport to discuss justice and law (EHP, 6). It was against this intolerant confessional philosophy that the excellent Hobbes entered the eld in England. But it is Grotius and Pufendorf those two heroic men who have led the renewal of moral .:8 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics philosophy. In grounding natural law in mans need for a sociable life in this world rather than in his supposed insight into divine ideas they have paved the way for a restrained and non-sectarian eclectic philoso- phy (EHP, 6). Here we can see an early sketch of the history of natural law that would inform the Foreword to Grotius. Thomasius history of philosophy is thus one that identies scholastic metaphysics as the key modern form sectarian philosophy, characteris- ing it in terms of an undesirable spiritual and civil comportment. This is the dogmatic zeal that arises when matters of faith are espoused in the form of philosophically demonstrable doctrines, requiring adherence to the truth of a particular master or sect: Experience and history both teach that this sectarian philosophy . . . has provided innumerable occa- sions for great disturbance in the church and the state (EHP, :). For its part, eclectic philosophy is also advocated principally as a mode of intel- lectual conduct, rather than as a doctrine or theory. This mode, however, is grounded in a confession of the limits of human intellect, which prevents us from treating any philosophy as the absolute truth. It takes place as a restrained exercise of the freedom to choose among various philosophies in accordance with the benets they bring to man and the commonwealth (EHP, :). Having constructed the history of philosophy as a history of sects, Thomasius proceeds to historicise the concept of philosophy itself (EHP, 68). He begins by noting the variety of meanings given to the term. Some have used it to refer to all wisdom no matter what its principles, including revealed theology. Others, though, have dened it in opposi- tion to theology, restricting it to knowledge gained via natural reason. Some, dening it in opposition to law and medicine, have identied phi- losophy with the arts. Yet others, though, have restricted it to the liberal arts alone. Finally, those who oppose philosophy to logic or mathemat- ics do so in order to identify it with metaphysics or theology. Adhering to this last meaning, the Platonic and Aristotelian sects and their neo- scholastic heirs have attempted to make metaphysics into the essential form of philosophy, construing it as the art of arts and science of sci- ences, but only by treating it as the means of acceding to divine being or being as being. This only displays the sectarian confusion of theol- ogy and philosophy in their teachings (EHP, 68q). Thomasius uses the multiple meanings of philosophy to justify its operational construal as the discipline taught under this name in our academies thereby dening it in opposition to law, medicine, and theology and treating it as inclusive of the liberal arts (EHP, 6q). He then The attack on metaphysical scholasticism .:q proceeds to congure this empirically dened eld via a series of theo- retical and methodological distinctions. Theology is distinguished from the other academic sciences both by its end eternal felicity as opposed to civil welfare and by its mode of cognition: revelation as distinct from natural knowledge. Philosophy is, then, distinguished from the other rational sciences of medicine and (natural) jurisprudence, as they have autonomous ends the health of the body and the soul whereas phi- losophy is contributory to these ends and is hence an instrumental science (EHP, o). This allows Thomasius to characterise philosophy as: that intellectual and instrumental disposition [habitus intellectualis und instrumentalis] which considers God, his creatures, and the natural and moral conduct of men in the light of reason, and which investigates the causes of their conduct for the benet of the human race (EHP, :). If his history of philosophy is intended to show the temporal origins of scholastic sectarianism, then Thomasius methodological demarca- tion of philosophy is meant to reveal the intellectual grounds of this undesirable deportment. As in the later Foreword to Grotius, Thomasius locates these grounds in the mixing of two fundamentally distinct prin- ciples of cognition revealed and natural knowledge which is reected in the alliance between the theology and philosophy faculties in the con- fessional university. This mixing takes two forms: When arguments for things whose knowledge depends on the light of nature are derived instead from the principle of revelation, and, When arguments for the secrets of faith are drawn from the principles of reason (EHP, :). Scholastic theology must bear the blame for the latter confusion, which has been the cause of the many religious troubles which have continued from the beginning of scholastic theology until our time (EHP, ). University metaphysics, though, must take responsibility for the former which, although not as harmful, has nonetheless blurred the borders between philosophy and theology. This has given rise to the monstrosity of a Christian philosophy, characterised precisely by the attempt to derive philosophical doctrines from revealed truths or to elucidate the latter using philosophical means. These attempts have produced such hybrids as the metaphysical distinction between essence and existence the notion that dogness exists independently of dogs which does not come from the Holy Ghost. Further, they have led to such monstrosities as a Christian physics and a Christian ethics, the former purporting to explain the common creation of matter, the latter original sin, both of which are matters of faith not reason (EHP, 6). Having shown the historical consequences of the sectarian mixing of ..o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics philosophy and theology, and argued the need to conne philosophy to the ends of mans worldly happiness, Thomasius notes the broad con- tours of his delimitation of the philosophical domain: With the description of philosophy I have signalled that its end is the ourishing of the human race: that is, temporal happiness. Through this description, rst, philosophy will again be separated from theology and, second, it will be denied that the nal end of theoretical philosophy is aimed at a pure contemplation because [theoretical philosophy] must also be rendered subordinate to those activities that reach [only] to the ourishing of the human race, which Seneca had already recognised in his time. (EHP, 8:.) Despite Thomasius comment that the princes themselves have decreed the separation of philosophy and theology, this delimitation does not mean that he is proposing the state control of philosophy in the interests of social welfare; for he argues that academic work should be free of political control, to the extent that it does not jeopardise civil peace. In fact, through his history of philosophical sectarianism and his account of the confusion of revealed and natural principles of knowl- edge in scholasticism, Thomasius was attempting to achieve a desacral- isation of philosophy analogous to Pufendorf s secularisation of natural law. He uses the end of worldly happiness to exclude contemplation of pure truth from civil philosophy, in the same way that Pufendorf uses worldly security to exclude the theo-rational contemplation of pure justice fromcivil jurisprudence although, apparently, with less success. Thomasius aimis thus not to teach a true philosophy backed by the state, for that would be more philosophical sectarianism. Rather, it is to trans- form the manner in which intellectuals would accede to philosophical truth. Thomasius uses his history of philosophical sectarianismto reveal the relation between philosophical doctrine and intellectual deportment. Then he establishes the horizon of civil happiness in order to repudiate those doctrines and deportments which purport to transcend this horizon through access to a pure contemplative truth shared with God. This is the manner in which Thomasius approaches neoscholastic and Cartesian metaphysics in the Hof-Philosophie, discussing their anthropol- ogies, conceptions of truth, and logical doctrines in terms of his history of philosophical sectarianism and his desacralising separation of philos- ophy from theology. Without attempting to capture the detail of this dis- cussion, we can observe that Thomasius overall endeavour is to replace the Platonised Aristotelianism of rationalist metaphysics with a natura- listic anthropology of the passions and an eclectic mix of humanist logic and Stoic epistemology. The attack on metaphysical scholasticism ..: In the domain of anthropology, for example, he rejects the privileging of the intellect entailed in Platonic and Aristotelian teaching that, as a fragment of the divine intellect, the human soul consists in thought and controls the body through reason (EHP, 88qo). The Christianising of this doctrine by the neoscholastics who treat the body as that which dis- tinguishes men from intellectual angels only compounds the original pagan mixing of theology and philosophy, by drawing philosophical conclusions from Scripture. According to Thomasius, Descartes con- ception of the mind as an incorporeal thinking substance derives from the same sectarian sources. Moreover, he criticises Descartes use of radical doubt as a means of demonstrating this conception, arguing that it is impossible to exclude reference to the body in accounting for thought (EHP, qo). In place of this intellectualist anthropology, Thomasius sketches a civil Epicurean one. Here, the soul (Gemth) is embedded in the body by the sensory pathways that are the cause of thought, and it is tied to society by language, whose propositional schemata organise thought in a form suited to civil communication (EHP, q). Logic thus has no relation to ontology and should be treated rather as an instrument for teaching prudence in thought, by tying rational judgment to the social communication of this judgment (EHP, ::8.o). Similarly Thomasius rejects the pagan (neo-Platonic) conception of truth as the souls partic- ipation in divine intellection of the forms, or recovery of the ideas it pos- sessed prior to its descent into the body. In its place he defends a Epicurean-Stoic and Eclectic conception of truth as the correspondence between the souls propositional schemata and the empirical states of aairs conveyed through the senses (EHP, ::). We can also observe that he rejects Descartes attempt to derive the immortality of the soul from the incorporeality of its substance, treating this as a misguided attempt to provide a philosophical proof for a matter of faith (EHP, :o). In rejecting the anthropology, logic, and epistemology of both neo- scholastic and Cartesian metaphysics, Thomasius was engaged in an undertaking far more consequential than a dispute within academic phi- losophy. Through his history of philosophical sectarianism and his anal- ysis of the blurring of philosophical and theological modes of knowledge, Thomasius was attempting to reshape academic philosophy as a whole, from the viewpoint of its role in an emergent deconfession- alised state and civil society. His interventions are thus focused not in dis- puting particular truths, but on transforming the formative disciplines and institutional order within which truths were congured and acceded to. ... Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics Thomasius Hof-Philosophie is thus intended to forestall the integration of academic disciplines into a metaphysical hierarchy, and to destroy the pedagogy that saw students acceding to their civil sciences and duties through the contemplative ascent of this hierarchy. Only through such a fundamental dismemberment of the neoscholastic curriculum would it be possible to eliminate the metaphysical assimilation of the civil sciences to moral philosophy. This would allowpolitics and jurisprudence to stand as independent historically based disciplines, and it would reduce philos- ophy to the status of a preparatory training in the liberal arts. Without this radical detranscendentalising of philosophy, Thomasius argues, the deconfessionalisation of society could not take place. For the states future jurists and politicians would be corrupted by a discipline that tempted themto orient their duties and decisions to an horizon that lay beyond civil happiness and, in doing so, denied themthe restrained and pragmatic demeanour required by their civil oce. If this desacralising of philosophy were to succeed, therefore, the students would have to be provided with an alternative to the intellectualist ethos that sutured them to the neoscholastic curriculum and, through it, to confessional society. Thomasius sought to provide this alternative in the formof a therapeu- tic for the passions. . nr+n\xscrxnrx+\ri si xo r+ni cs We recall the brash manner in which Thomasius announced his ethical programme at the University of Leipzig in the late :68os, upbraiding Aristotelian moral philosophy for its failure to make young men virtu- ous, and promising to remedy this defect via a lecture series based on this premise: That ethics is nothing other than a teaching and instruction in how a man should govern his aects, in order to render them incapable of impelling him to something that would be against the law (KTS, q). In the event, Thomasius forced departure from the Lutheran University of Leipzig, engineered by his scholastic opponents, meant that this ethics was elaborated at the University of Halle in Mark Brandenburg, whose Calvinist ruling house was more open to non-orthodox ethical and polit- ical doctrine. This was the setting in which Thomasius published the Einleitung zu der Sittenlehre (Introduction to Ethics, :6q.) and Ausbung der Sittenlehre (Practice of Ethics, :6q6). Despite their respective titles, the Ausbung represents less the application of the Einleitungs moral theory than its supersession, on the grounds of its unsuitability for sustaining an ethical practice. Here, therefore, I will be concentrating on the Ausbung, Detranscendentalising ethics .. as the mature formulation of Thomasius Aektenlehre which, as we shall see in the following section, fed directly into his late natural law doctrine. In the running commentary on the Einleitung that accompanies the opening chapters of the Ausbung, Thomasius locates the defects of his earlier work in its account of the relation between reason and the will. When writing the Einleitung, says Thomasius, he had accepted the common doctrine of the moral philosophers: namely, that bad conduct is the product of the reason presenting erroneous ideas of good and evil to the will, which then acts on them. Now, though, he wishes to treat the will as the more powerful of the two capacities of the soul. In possessing its own fundamental predispositions to prestigious imitation and impulsive action it is the will that determines the disposition of reason, giving rise to conduct uncontrollable by reason (ASL, .q). The reason for this change of viewlay in Thomasius acceptance of the doctrine that man is a fundamentally passional rather than rational creature, acting not on the basis of ideas of good and evil, but driven by love, or the desire to obtain future pleasure or avoid threatening pain. If Pufendorf had sought to detranscendentalise ethics through his doctrine of imposed moral oces, then Thomasius would locate mans incapacity for rational self-governance elsewhere in the autarchy of the passions. Thomasius thus signalled his departure from all forms of rationalist moral philosophy; that is, all doctrines in which reason governs the will through its discernment of the ideas of good and evil. Committing himself instead to a thoroughgoing ethical voluntarism, he locates the dierence between good and evil within the passional conguration of the will itself, in the form of the dierence between two kinds of desire, vernnftige and unvernnftige Liebe. These terms are sometimes translated as rational and irrational love, but are perhaps better rendered as rea- sonable and unreasonable love, in order to capture Thomasius basic focus on the dierence between tempered and unrestrained desire. From reasonable love ows tranquillity of soul or peace of mind (Gemtsruhe), the end of Thomasius ethic and the source of all virtues; from unrea- sonable love, turbulence of soul, the source of all vices. From now on let us therefore look for the origin of all errors and all misery in the human will, so to speak. We will nd it there immediately, in the simplest manner, because all truth is simple. Tranquillity of soul is the greatest happi- ness and its mother and daughter are reasonable love . . . Why should we hesitate [to say it]? The well-spring of all good is love. The well-spring of all misery is love. Be he composed as he will, a man cannot be without love for a moment, because there is no moment in which a man does not wish for something as good, or desire and wish its continuation. .. Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics But these two loves must possess dierent, in fact contradictory, natures, because they cause such contradictory eects. The well-spring of all good is rea- sonable love, so the well-spring of all evil must be unreasonable love. And here you have the origin of universal unhappiness, unreasonable love. In fact here you have universal unhappiness itself: namely, disturbance of the soul. (ASL, :q.o) Despite its aliation to Stoic ataraxia, Thomasius Gemtsruhe is not an a-social condition characterised by indierence to and withdrawal from worldly desires. In fact, the peace of mind achieved through reasonable love holds the key to tranquil relations with others, making it into the repository of the sociable virtues friendliness, truthfulness, modesty, peaceableness, and patience to which the individual accedes through restraint, purity, industriousness, and courage (ASL, ). Conversely, the mental agitation arising from the uncontrolled desires of unreasonable love is the mother of all the social vices ferocity, vengefulness, licence, envy, and malice making it into the source of social disorder. Arguing that without an account of the aects it is impossible for a teacher to help his students diagnose and restrain their ruling passions, Thomasius comments that this is a neglected and uncertain area, appar- ently combining medical therapy, moral philosophy, and rhetoric (ASL, qo). This situation is not helped by the existence of several doctrines of the passions, all diering over a series of basic questions: what should be included in a typology of the aects; whether the aects are good, evil, or indierent; whether they can be expunged or merely restrained; whether man shares them with the beasts (ASL, :). Thomasius then pro- ceeds to develop his Aektenlehre via a comprehensive discussion of the main doctrines of the passions Platonic, Aristotelian, Stoic, Epicurean, and Cartesian. His prime targets, however, are Descartes account of the passions of the soul and the ChristianPlatonic treatment of the body soul relation in neoscholastic pneumatology; for these were the central academic sources of the intellectualist moral anthropology that his pas- sional anthropology was dedicated to combating. It is generally agreed, says Thomasius, that aects consist in move- ments of the soul, be these inclinations (actions) or reactions (passions). Descartes, though, lodges these aects in the understanding rather than the will, which seems paradoxical when one considers such aects as love, fear, and hope. The prime reason for Descartes intellectualist treat- ment of the aects lies in his treatment of wonder as an aect, in fact as the fundamental aect, occurring prior to the distinction between good and evil, and grounding all the other aects in a fundamental feeling of astonishment at things not yet known (ASL, 8). This leads Descartes to Detranscendentalising ethics .. treat the understanding as the seat of a self-generated aect wonder which, as both a cognition and a feeling, is also a disposition of the will, arousing desire and action. In proceeding in this manner, Thomasius argues, Descartes fails to distinguish thinking something from willing it or, more generally, the actions and passions of the understanding which have their seat in the brain, from those of the will, which are seated in the heart: From this consideration though it necessarily follows that the action and passion of the will diers by nature from human thought. Hence when Descartes says Homo dum vult, cogitat man thinks when he wills something he is right in so far as thinking and willing are unied in the human soul . . . but not when he joins other philosophers in proposing that willing and thinking are a single thing, or more precisely: that willing consists in thinking. Because thinking belongs only to the understanding. (ASL, 8o:) Descartes is therefore wrong to make thought into the essential charac- teristic that distinguishes man from animals: Because the inclination and drive of the will is a much nobler power of the human soul than the thinking of the understanding, in which form however [the will] is gen- erally completely overlooked by the pagan philosophers and their follow- ers in the universities, or else [it is] mixed with the understanding and its thinking (ASL, 8:). Despite his claim to superior scientic knowledge of the brain and heart seats of the understanding and will Thomasius constant concern throughout his discussion of intellectualist anthropology is not with its truth or falsity as such, but with the intellectual deportment to which it gives shape. He thus argues that while wonder is a demeanour suited to undertaking intellectual inquiry, it should not be treated as the essential human aect, thereby representing man as a being who governs himself and lives his life through reason (ASL, ::). Any philosophical anthropology that does this including that in his own Einleitung zur Vernnft-Lehre is suited only to the improvement of the understanding, not to the governance of mans moral conduct (ASL, 8:.). While Thomasius spends a good deal of energy attacking Descartes moral psychology in these terms, his prime target remains the neoscho- lastic ChristianPlatonic and ChristianStoic doctrines that locate the aects in the body by opposing themto the mind or spirit. As we have already observed, Thomasius opposition to the metaphysical anthropol- ogy of homo duplex is also grounded in his analysis of the kind of relation to the self to which it gives rise. By treating them as corporeal drives common to men and beasts, and by opposing them to a capacity for ..6 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics rational self-control lodged in mans intellectual or spiritual substance, this intellectualist anthropology characterises the aects as intrinsically evil, marking them out for complete eradication through rational con- templation of the good (ASL, 8). Not only is this way of relating to the self vain and fantasmatic, it results in an inappropriate monkish civil demeanour. By the same token, Thomasius construction of a nat- uralistic anthropology of the passions is also governed by the end of deportment-formation. If Thomasius opposes the neoscholastic view of the aects as the eshly source of evil, treating them instead as morally indierent, that is because he is programming a dierent way of relating to the self, aimed at forming a dierent kind of intellectual demeanour. This is the appropriate light in which to view Thomasius doctrine that such aects as anger, patience, fear, and courage arise in part from the sensory stimulation of the blood and brain bres, and in part from the ruling passion or temperament of the individual who receives these stimuli. The nal shape of the aects is thus determined by whether the persons temperament is governed by reasonable love or by one of the three unreasonable loves or ruling passions: ambition (Ehrgeiz), concupis- cence (Wollust), or avarice (Geldgeiz) (ASL, :oo). Here, rather than attempting to oer a scientic or naturalistic explanation of morality, Thomasius is providing a voluntaristic means of detranscendentalising its culture. If the aects arise in mans nature as a passional being, they can be neither good nor evil in themselves, acquiring their moral char- acter instead depending on whether they give rise to tranquillity and the sociable virtues or agitation and the unsociable vices: From this it follows, though, that the inclinations of the soul in general are indierent that is, neither good nor evil with regard to their kinds, but are either good in so far as they lead us to tranquillity or evil in so far as they lead us to disturbance (ASL, :). By positing the moral indierence of the aects, Thomasius detaches ethics from all concern with the souls transcendent goodness or evil, allowing it to be recongured as a disci- pline for managing external conduct in civil life. This, as the old the- ologian noted with disgust, gives rise to a less purist and less Christian ethics, for the utterly un-Christian statists and atheists are capable of this [management] in a quite masterly way (KTS, :..). The immediate objective of Thomasius detranscendentalising reconstruction of ethics was to transform the manner in which those undergoing academic moral education would relate to and cultivate their moral selves. Thomasius passional anthropology forms the core of a paideia designed to impel students to renounce the rationalist sense of Detranscendentalising ethics .. themselves as intellectual beings capable of governing themselves through a supranatural thinking of pure ideas. The condition of Thomasius students adopting the proper moral relation to themselves is that they begin by recognising themselves as beings whose conduct is irretrievably governed by some combination of ambition, lust, and greed; for only then can they renounce all false intellectual pride and accept the need for constant monitoring and restraint of their desires in accordance with the ends of personal and civil tranquillity. At the same time, this Epicurean anthropology also programmes the spiritual exercises required to form a self capable of governing its conduct in this manner. If conduct is driven by the passional con- guration of the will, then it is vain to propose the complete extirpation of the aects through contemplative exercises in intellectual self- purication aimed at rational autonomy. Rather, the task of ethical dis- cipline must be to dampen and moderate the aects. The violent passions will be restrained not through sudden rational insight into the idea of the good, but through the gradual and constant moderation of the desires for honour, pleasure, and wealth, with a view to arriving at the tranquil, sociable desire of reasonable love: This [disturbed] condition of man is certainly very evil. If he does not wish to ruin his nature though, his return from these agitated and extraordinary move- ments [of the soul] to calm and orderly ones can only be attained through a series of steps. Someone suering from gout will only gradually regain the use of his limbs. And someone who has been dazzled will only be the more so by normal light, unless he is exposed to it by degrees. It is therefore necessary that one passes from extraordinary and agitated movements of the soul to peaceful ones via less agitated ones. (ASL, :6) Finally, through this anthropology Thomasius also separates the ethical self-cultivation of reasonable love from the (ChristianPlatonic) pursuit of salvation. Here, as Thomas Ahnert shows, Thomasius locked horns with those neoscholastics like Johann Ludwig Prasch, who posited a continuum between reasonable love and the Christian love that lifts man from his corrupt state (Ahnert :qqq, :o.). By accepting their corrupt state and renouncing the self-purifying ascent to the contempla- tion of pure goodness and justice, Thomasius students would be impelled to seek a more modest and useful object for their ethical labour. Through recognition of themselves as creatures whose ambition, lust, and greed are ineradicable hence in constant need of monitoring and restraint they would forgo the vain pursuit of rational autonomy and ..8 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics gear their ethical striving instead to the cultivation of a worldly civility and tolerance. This was the deportment suited to their oces as servants and citizens of a desacralised state. From now on moral philosophy could aspire to be nothing higher than a governance of the passions through the passions, to be achieved through naturalistic recognition of their tranquil and agitated states, thereby setting ethics within the limits of this-worldly civil conduct. Seen in this context, Thomasius abrupt turn from the ethics of self- restraint to the theology of grace in the nal chapter of the Ausbung would appear to be anomalous. Historians of moral philosophy have seized on this apparent about-face as indicative of the philosophical inadequacy of Thomasius supposed attempt to provide a voluntaristic and naturalistic justication for morality. Mixing their own normative analysis of Thomasius philosophical failure with biographical anec- dotes of his pietistic crisis of the mid-:6qos, these historians treat the deistic turn of the nal chapter as symptomatic of Thomasius alleged failure to provide a properly rational foundation for his ethics. In Werner Schneiders formulation: Because Thomasius . . . had further developed a voluntarism that proclaimed the priority of the will over the under- standing and the dependence of the understanding on the will, he found himself confronted, through disillusioning personal experience, by the aporia that thought ruled by an evil will must be incapable of recognis- ing its own evil and the true good, and, through this knowledge, improv- ing the will (Schneiders :q68, n.p.). According to Schneiders, this intellectual and personal crisis was responsible for Thomasius turn to the Pietist doctrine of divine grace at the end of the Ausbung, in a des- perate eort to compensate for mans incapacity to improve his own will on the basis of rational insight into the good. Once again, however, approaching early modern civil philosophy from a post-Kantian perspective leads to a serious misunderstanding of the form in which Thomasius detranscendentalises ethics and the histor- ical circumstances in which he did so. At one level, it is evidently not true that Thomasius elevation of the will over reason left him incapable of recognising good and evil and, thereby, of improving the will. After all, we have just seen him teaching his students that those aects are evil that lead a person away from inner tranquillity and sociable relations with his fellows, while those are good that lead toward this tranquillity and soci- ability (ASL, :o:). Moreover, elsewhere in the Ausbung, Thomasius converts this rule into an elaborate diagnostic grid, laying out the various Detranscendentalising ethics ..q combinations of the ruling passions and their accompanying vices, in order to equip his students with the means of recognising and moderat- ing their own bad desires (ASL, 6). This, of course, is not the level of analysis with which todays moral philosophers are concerned. For them Thomasius failure arises from his alleged inability to oer a formal or theoretical justication for the goals of personal and civil tranquillity that underpin his ethics. This would be the kind of justication that Kant oers, when he insists on the neces- sity of nding a principle whose goodness resides not in the ends to which it leads because then we must seek the goodness of these ends ad innitum but in merely being beheld. It should already be clear, however, that Thomasius cannot fail to discover this kind of justication because he is actively not seeking such. As is signalled in the Ausbungs subtitle On the therapy [Arzenei] for unreasonable love and the self- knowledge required by it Thomasius objective is to provide his stu- dents with a moral therapy rather than a moral theory. His aim is not to teach them how to provide a speculative justication for the goodness of personal tranquillity and civility. Rather, it is to equip them with an ethical regimen through which they could conduct themselves in a serene and civil manner, thereby transforming the ethics seminar into the locus for a practice of secular spiritual direction or psychotherapy. As Schneiders himself comments: Generally speaking, the goal of the theory of aects was the transformation of man through the regulation or mastery of these aects (Schneiders :q:, .:). Thomasius Aektenlehre is thus not an ethical practice lacking a formal theorisation of the good. Rather, it is an ethical culture that regards such formal theorisation as symptomatic of an alternative and undesirable kind of ethical culture: one that purports to govern the self through con- templative access to the concept of the good, but that gives rise to an uncivil intellectualism. Like Pufendorf s description of mans denuded and vulnerable natural condition, Thomasius account of this creatures volatile aect-driven nature is presented not as an object of theoretical reection but as an occasion for chastened recognition. In this setting it would be idle to enter into a theoretical dispute over the validity of Thomasius presentation of evil in terms of the uncontrolled desires for honour, sensuous pleasure, and wealth. For the function of this presen- tation is to induct his students into a particular way of relating to and conducting themselves: namely, as beings whose ruling passions require constant monitoring and control in order to attain the inner restraint .o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics required by public civility. Dorothee Kimmich argues that Thomasius Epicurean anthropology and cosmology are intended to encourage indi- viduals to turn away from the pursuit of higher knowledge in order to cultivate a self capable of meeting lifes blows and vicissitudes with inner calm and fortitude (Kimmich :qq, :). Thomasius development of a voluntarist Aektenlehre is indicative not of his failure to oer a formal theorisation of the good, but of his self-conscious rejection of the intel- lectualist anthropology and demeanour involved in such theorisation, and of his turn to an ethics of self-care and self-control. The abrupt shift to the deistic theology of grace and moral rebirth that occurs in the last chapter of the Ausbung is thus not a symptom of a desperate attempt by Thomasius to compensate for his lack of a formal theory of morality. Rather, in its very abruptness, it signies his way of constructing the relation between the naturalistic ethics that he has elab- orated in the body of the Ausbung, and the salvation that he expects his students to pursue in a dierent place and capacity. Once again Thomasius target is the rationalist moral philosophy taught in the uni- versities. For, he argues, despite Luthers teaching on the enslavement of the will to the aects, and on the need for grace to achieve moral reno- vation, Protestant theology and philosophy faculties have continued to harbor the papist doctrine that man might become regenerate through moral philosophy itself: So I believe that one could clearly show how, in the moral philosophy of both kinds of Protestant university [Lutheran and Calvinist] . . ., students are taught such principles regarding the suciency of the natural capacities for the attainment of a virtuous life as allow if not a gross then at least a subtle papism to take root in their hearts. After this they use the natural and sharp-tongued pride in their subtlety for nothing other than to gloss over themselves and their doctrines with many quibbling explanations, while damning others whom they accuse of heresy. From this it comes about that one in fact writes and disputes against Spinozism, Stoicism and Pelagianism, throwing around the charge of heresy in other words making a mountain out of a molehill when it comes to others opinions but remaining unaware of the beam in ones own eye. (ASL, q) Thomasius leaves us in no doubt that in his view this speculative and intolerant blurring of ethics and theology arises from the intellectualist doctrines of Cartesian and Aristotelian moral philosophy taught in Protestant universities. In giving reason command over the will, this phi- losophy ridiculously overestimates mans capacity for autonomous Detranscendentalising ethics .: action, such that: in the process of human conduct the will sits as if on a throne, and after consigning the sensuous desires to evil, while preserv- ing reason from that fate, always determines itself to good or evil through free choice (ASL, q8). Thomasius responds to this overestimation of mans moral autonomy with two counter-pointed observations. On the one hand, he argues: that the natural capacity of a man to restrain his desire is very poor and limited, therefore quite unable to remove man from his disturbed state and bring him to the true happiness of spiritual tranquillity and reason- able love. On the other hand, however, this does not mean that one should despair of the more modest programme of ethical restraint that he has just outlined: nonetheless, the reasonable propositions regarding the moderation of the aects given in the preceding chapters [of the Ausbung] must not be completely lost sight of (ASL, oo). This is the context in which Thomasius introduces his argument regarding the incapacity of the aect-driven will to know and govern its own evil, formulating it in a manner virtually identical to Schneiders later criti- cism: We have extensively shown above that with man the will rules the understanding, not the understanding the will. And because that which rules in his will is evil, and yet the understanding takes it for good, how can the understanding obtain the powers to stigmatise its ruling nature and hold it for bad? From where will it derive the attention to notice this? (ASL, o.). The purpose of this argument, though, is not to destroy the anthropological basis of his Aektenlehre, which Thomasius continues to regard as appropriate for natural or philosophical ethics. Instead, it is to show the inadequacy of philosophical knowledge as such for the process of moral regeneration or the attainment of salvation; for these lie beyond mans natural reason and will in the domain of revelation, faith, and grace. Rather than reecting a personal epistemological crisis precipitated by his passional voluntarism, Thomasius use of the doctrine of mans moral and intellectual incapacity thus represents a self-conscious intel- lectual strategy. Its purpose is to eect the radical separation of philo- sophical ethics and moral theology, in fact creating a gulf between ethical self-cultivation and the pursuit of holiness that would defy all attempts to bridge it via intellectualist metaphysics. In short, at the conclusion of the Ausbung, Thomasius uses the incapacity doctrine to preclude philosoph- ical or natural theological pursuit of salvation, thereby establishing the border between his students civil and religious deportments: .. Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics Now when the man who is stuck in his misery, and recognises that he is inca- pable of practising the means [of ethical restraint] given in the preceding chap- ters . . . becomes ever more really convinced of his misery and incapacity, then one might easily think that he would nd little pleasure in that but must neces- sarily become downcast, and that philosophy or moral philosophy could not comfort him. But this shows all the better that one must not hold the proposi- tions of the preceding chapters in contempt. Because they show us how the human aects should be restrained, even if at the same time leading us to see that this could not occur through our natural capacity, but that we must wait for this capacity and for the consolation of our sadness from a higher and holier science . . . Where, then, moral philosophy runs out, there divine wisdom sup- plies its lacks and defects. Moral philosophy goes no further than to allow man to recognise his bestial condition, and to lead him from there to the condition of humanity. How, though, he should be led from humanity and mere reason to true Christianity, that is shown by the Holy Scriptures with the help of divine grace. (ASL, .o:) Thomasius Aektenlehre may thus be regarded as a paideia designed to forestall the pursuit of salvation through metaphysical moral philosophy, replacing this with a therapeutics of passional restraint oriented to per- sonal tranquillity and civil peace. In keeping with his role as a pedagogue and his campaign to overturn the scholastic curriculum, Thomasius developed his Aektenlehre in order to augment Pufendorf s magisterial destruction of Christian moral personalism. He sought a paideia that might combat the enculturating power of Protestant scholasticism, while yet delivering the pluralisation of oces required by Pufendorf s decon- fessionalising programme. In the Ausbung this is achieved by the civil voluntarism of the ethical therapeutic which required Thomasius stu- dents to engage in a discipline of self-restraint reaching no higher than inner calm and outer decorum supplemented by the deist voluntar- ism of the nal chapter. Between them, the two voluntarisms shatter the metaphysical continuum between civil ethics and religious morality, by treating civility and salvation as the ends of two distinct personae the man and the Christian. In dissolving the intellectualist moral philosophy responsible for uni- fying the theological and civil sciences, Thomasius Aektenlehre explodes the unied treatment of religion, ethics and political jurisprudence that characterised the metaphysics and pedagogy of Protestant scholasti- cism. The discipline through which Thomasius sought to recongure the relations between these domains, in a manner suited to a deconfession- alised civil society, was natural law. In the elaboration of his natural law, Detranscendentalising ethics . however, Thomasius Aektenlehre would turn out to be a mixed blessing. For, while it oered law students access to a restrained civil persona suited to their calling, it also threatened to interpose a new moral foun- dation for civil governance, thereby muddying Pufendorf s elegant uncoupling of political jurisprudence from moral philosophy, the exer- cise of civil from moral authority. . x\+tn\r r\v Although moral voluntarism plays a key role in the Institutiones Jurisprudentiae Divinae of :688, it was not until he came to write the Fundamenta Juris Naturae et Gentium of :o that Thomasius made his Aektenlehre central to his construction of natural law. Rather than being a fully independent work, however, the Fundamenta is a rectication and reworking of the Institutiones. It consists of a new framework for natural law provided by the Aektenlehre followed by a series of chapters, cross- referenced to their counterparts in the Institutiones, and containing detailed instructions to students for the emendation of the earlier doc- trines. If we are to discuss the role of Thomasius anthropology of the passions in the Fundamenta, then we must rst give an account of the Institutiones, so that we can grasp Thomasius view of the problems the Aektenlehre was intended to solve. ... Institutiones Jurisprudentiae Divinae While no less inimical to metaphysical rationalism, Thomasius early natural law work remains closer to the theological roots of voluntarism than Pufendorf s. As a result, in comparison with Pufendorf s funda- mental and magisterial reconstruction of natural law, Thomasius uncoupling of theology, moral philosophy, and jurisprudence takes a dierent and more circuitous route. The marks of this dierence are evident in the title of the Institutiones Jurisprudentiae Divinae itself. For here Thomasius was signalling his intention to construct a jurisprudence that would encompass not just the laws enacted by men and known by reason, but also the divine positive laws or biblical commands willed by God and known by revelation at least to the degree these commands pertained to mans temporal happiness. Despite the apparent anomaly, though, the inclusion of certain bibli- cal laws within jurisprudence was in fact true to Thomasius deconfes- sionalising agenda. For his objective was to transfer the authority for . Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics interpreting and applying a particular class of biblical laws those that could be deemed as pertaining to mans civil welfare from academic theologians to academic jurists. Perhaps Thomasius saw this as a way of dealing with the fact that even in a deconfessionalised state such as Brandenburg-Prussia biblical law continued to play a role in the regula- tion of civil life at the end of the seventeenth century. In any case it is clear that while Thomasius continued to use the same deconfessionalis- ing threshold as Pufendorf the exclusion of all matters pertaining to salvation from the sphere of civil governance he could not immedi- ately follow his mentor in superimposing this threshold on the one that divided natural from revealed (biblical) knowledge, thereby making a clean break between a natural jurisprudence and a revealed religion. This residual retention of biblical law in Pufendorf s natural law frame- work is responsible for the ambivalent character of Thomasius central formulations in the Institutiones. This ambivalence is visible in Thomasius attempt to ground the secu- larising separation of theology and jurisprudence in a powerful theolog- ical doctrine: namely, the doctrine of humanitys two conditions or Stnde the condition of innocence and undamaged human nature (status integritatis), and the post-lapsarian condition of corrupted capac- ities (status corruptus). According to Thomasius, natural law and divine revealed law both originate in Gods will, which is the condition of their agreement (IJD, i...6, ). Further, the two kinds of law have bound man in both his conditions, of innocence and corruption (IJD, i...:o:., 8). In a footnote to this last remark Thomasius acknowledges that in admitting revealed knowledge of mans incorrupt state to the domain of natural law he is deviating from Pufendorf who, as we recall, excludes the incorrupt condition and its (Christian) laws from the domain of natural law. In retaining the Christian two-state doctrine, Thomasius envisages the Institutiones as prospecting a via media between Pufendorf s secular voluntarism and the metaphysical rationalism of Valentin Alberti, their common arch-enemy. Nonetheless, Thomasius construc- tion of the status integritatis is one that precludes Albertis, Rachels, and Leibnizs treatment of it as a condition to which fallen man might return in search of pure moral norms for the governance of civil life. Thomasius opens the Institutiones by rehearsing the voluntarist doc- trine that the divine being consists in pure will issuing laws, rather than in pure thought to which man might accede through contemplation. He supports this with the long footnote summarising his fathers repudiation of the metaphysical conception of God as divine intellectual being Natural law . for tempting man to imagine that he might conformhis being to Gods, or become holy, through thought (IJD, i.:...6, 8). Thomasius use of the two-states doctrine follows in the same vein. Beginning with the claim that the biblical account of the Fall may be regarded as history there- fore as a common instrument of the four faculties Thomasius pro- ceeds to give a rendition of mans change of state that would in fact seem to owe more to theology than history (IJD, i...:8, o). From a condition in which his body was awless and immune to decay, his reason able to penetrate the essences of things, and his will perfectly attuned to Gods, man has passed into one in which his body is disgured by disease and haunted by death, his mind darkened and forever removed fromnatures hidden essences, and his will so corrupted by aect and desire as to render its natural conformation to Gods impossible (IJD, i....oq, :). These changes in man, Thomasius comments, are so great that we must imagine it absolutely impossible that man could improve such imperfections through natural means in this life (IJD, i...o, ). It is, therefore, vain of Alberti and the other metaphysicians in fact symptomatic of the corruption of their theology by pagan speculation to teach that man might know his duties through some sort of recov- ery of his integral or holy state. As we have seen, according to this doc- trine, man may accede to knowledge of that which is good and bad in itself , antecedent to Gods will, through rational participation in Gods intelligising of such perfections as love and justice. Such a doctrine is impossible, according to Thomasius, because it is Gods willing that creates moral qualities, which are therefore not available to his or anyone elses reason beforehand. Moreover, it is unacceptable to teach that man might accede to pure ideas of good and evil through conceptualisation because, following the ruin of his faculties, such conceptualising signies an imperfection (IJD, i...8, ). According to Thomasius, then, man accedes to moral knowledge not through concepts shared with God but via two other paths. Like Pufendorf, he argues that this knowledge can be gained in part through natural knowledge of mans own fallen nature and of the rules required for its preservation. But, unlike Pufendorf, Thomasius argues that it may also be gained through the positive biblical laws that God has issued to fallen man in partial compensation for the corruption of his knowledge and nature (IJD, i... and fn., 68). For this reason, because they purport to ground justice in transcendent or divine concepts of it, meta- physical theologians are unable to determine the role either of natural or of divine positive law in the sphere of civil jurisprudence. .6 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics On this basis, Thomasius is able to divide up the eld of natural law in a manner suited to his deconfessionalising agenda. Theologys proper concern with mans eternal felicity means that it can have no place in divine jurisprudence, whose concern is the divine and human laws enacted to ensure mans civil happiness, making it the exclusive preserve of the law faculty (IJD, i.:.:6.q, .). Natural law and divine positive law, while agreeing as co-ordinate expressions of the divine will, dier in their mode of knowing it and in their object. Natural law is known via natural reason in fact through the deduction of the rules required by civil peace and applies to conduct whose goodness or badness is deter- mined by its agreement or non-agreement with mans rational being. Divine positive law, though, is known through its revelation or publica- tion in the Bible and applies to conduct that would be otherwise morally indierent: These two laws dier in that natural law has to do with conducts which neces- sarily agree or conict with common rational human nature. Revealed law, though, [concerns] such conducts as are in the middle, and neither agree nor conict with this nature. Because the light of nature shows that God has willed that man should be rational and that his conduct should be subordinated to a certain norm, it follows necessarily . . . that God will have commanded such conducts as neces- sarily promote rational nature and will prohibit those that conict with it. At the same time, there are many conducts whose performance or neglect does not disturb mans nature, nor benet it as such, which means that man cannot know through rational reection whether they are commanded or prohibited. Hence it was necessary that this law be published. (IJD, i...:., 6) With these arguments Thomasius in fact transfers the right to deter- mine which biblical laws will be given civil eect wholly to the estate of political jurists. The jurisconsults will use the criterion of civil welfare to exclude all revealed law concerned with salvation from the jurispruden- tial eld. Next, they will use the threshold of moral indeterminacy to determine when biblical law can supplement natural jurisprudence, while nally claiming the authority to regulate the ceremonial forms of public worship in the name of civil peace. Thomasius leaves us in no doubt as to the political importance of these intellectual distinctions: Moral theology teaches the Ten Commandments which are binding on all men without distinguishing between natural and revealed law, and uses the Holy Scriptures to ground both kinds of law. Generally therefore the theolo- gians take the moral law and the natural law to be the same thing. But divine jurisprudence separates natural law from divine revealed law, deriving the former from the rules of sound reason (ex dictamine rectae rationis), in accordance Natural law . with the teaching of the apostle Paul, but taking the latter purely from divine revelation. This distinction has indescribable benets for the discussion of the otherwise intractable controversies over the duty of princes with regard to such commands, and whether he has the power to dispense with them or not, over the power and authority to make laws, and so on. (IJD, i...:o, 8.) Nonetheless, despite delivering the required separation of theology and jurisprudence, the intellectual machinery of the Institutiones remains quite unstable. This is due to the diculties Thomasius encounters in reconciling the Lutheran voluntarism which he inherited from his father and the far more radical and secularised voluntarism which he had encountered in Pufendorf s natural law. The prime locus of this instabil- ity lies in the problematic relation between the theological voluntarism of Thomasius version of the two-state doctrine and the civil voluntar- ism underpinning Pufendorf s doctrines of status and sovereignty. In fact, despite their shared hostility to orthodox metaphysical natural law, there is a crucial dierence between the ways in which Thomasius and Pufendorf construct mans moral nature as an object of (natural law) knowledge and governance. For Thomasius it is the post-lapsarian corruption of the faculties that removes man from the capacity for rational self-governance advocated by the scholastic moral theologians and philosophers. In using the doc- trine of mans damaged faculties to determine that he be governed by imposed laws rather than self-imposed reasons, Thomasius is, however, retaining the idea of moral self-governance as the criterion for judging mans moral corruption and as the goal of his moral restitution even if the latter is impossible through natural means in this life. This means that Thomasius treats post-lapsarian natural law and its civil applica- tions as a surrogate for the natural law that governed man in his integral condition, compensating for the lost capacity for moral self-governance through a mix of prudential knowledge and civil discipline. Pufendorf, however, despite using the doctrine of human incapacity to attack the metaphysical rationalists, treats mans moral nature his weak, fractious, sociable being not as the ontological remnant of a more perfect kind of moral and rational being, but simply as the observable moral exis- tence (natural status) whose natural laws man must deduce. In govern- ing mans moral nature, Pufendorf s natural law is thus not oriented to a lost capacity for moral self-governance, but solely to the end of civil security, which is the condition of preserving mans fragile sociable exis- tence. For Pufendorf, natural law and its civil cognate compensates not for the higher moral being that man once was and still should be, but for .8 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics the fractious sociable being that he happens to be as a matter of fact. Pufendorf s natural law is oriented not the recovery of the lost status of moral self-governance but to the construction and imposition of a new civil status: governance by a political superior. The Institutiones represents Thomasius sustained attempt to integrate Pufendorf s secular voluntarist construction of natural law within the framework of Lutheran theological voluntarism. The only intellectual means at Thomasius disposal for this task was in fact the dualist or analogical current of Lutheran metaphysics represented by his father. This, we recall, used the doctrine of mans two states to separate the theological and civil sciences teaching that it was impossible for fallen man to accede to revealed truth through natural reason. At the same time, however, it could maintain an attenuated relation between the two domains, by treating naturally known things as analogues of things revealed through faith which yet remained inaccessible to natural reason. Using this complex gure of thought, Thomasius is able to con- struct his version of natural law around the inaccessibility of divine will to rational insight. For this enables him to treat Pufendorf s naturally known natural law as the analogical form of Gods hidden commands, while treating biblical law (divine positive law) as the published or revealed form, each form compensating in its own way for the lost perfect knowledge characteristic of the incorrupt state. Thomasius construction of natural law in the Institutiones thus steers an unsteady path between the Aristotelian and Pufendoran frame- works. But the solution Thomasius arrives at is closer to Grotius version of natural law than Pufendorf s. Thomasius thus oers a quasi- Aristotelian derivation of natural law in terms of the laws needed to realise an ontological essence, which makes natural law duties ontologi- cally good. This derivation is marked in such formulations as: The law of nature is a divine law written in the heart of all men and obligating them to do that which agrees with mans rational nature and refrain from that which is contrary to it (IJD, i...q, ). At the same time, though, Thomasius is aware that this construction is problematic, as it appears to bind Gods will to antecedent concepts of good and evil to which man might accede. He thus attempts to hold the incipient rationalism at bay via a second, more Pufendoran deduction. According to this, natural laws are simply the rules required to preserve the (sociable) nature willed for man by God, which makes natural laws a function of civil security. In fact the only way that Thomasius can forestall this incipient ration- alism in the Institutiones is to treat the rational deduction of natural law Natural law .q as itself symptomatic of the limited or analogical knowledge of Gods will available to man in his fallen condition. He does this by treating the moral indierence of certain actions as a sign of fallen mans incapac- ity for natural knowledge of their true moral character, thereby deviat- ing markedly from Pufendorf s secular voluntarism. Unlike Pufendorf, who treats all natural actions as morally indierent as a means of excluding moral theology fromthe domain of natural law Thomasius treats the moral indierence of some actions as indicating the need to supplement natural law with revealed commandments. Thomasius thus reinterprets his mentors secular delimitation of ethics, treating it as indicative of the inaccessibility rather than the irrelevance of the divine mind to natural jurisprudence. In using the imputed deciency of natural knowledge to include a supplement of biblical law within jurisprudence, Thomasius sacrices the sharpness of Pufendorf s dis- tinction between the secularpolitical and religioustheological domains. The Institutiones thus contains two distinct ways of desacralising the domain of civil governance. According to the rst, while necessary and inevitable, the derivation of civil duties from the end of civil peace is a sign of mans corruption. According to the second (Pufendoran) way, the derivation of civil duties from the end of civil peace, far from approx- imating mans lost capacity for moral self-governance inaccessible or not is in fact the means of relegating this concern in favour of a dierent derivation of such duties: namely, their imposition by a politi- cal superior as a means of governing mans fractious sociability in accor- dance with the end of security. The instability arising from these two ways of secularising natural law is evident in Thomasius treatment of marriage law which, as a nexus for religious and civil governance, was a neuralgic point for the problem of deconfessionalisation in early modern Germany. In the Institutiones, Thomasius oers a quasi-Aristotelian deduction of the natural laws of marriage, but one whose nal insuciency dictates its supplementation by biblical marriage law. As the ends of this society are the begetting of children and the assuaging of lust, and as these ends have been implanted in the marriage partners in the form of an inner desire for marital society, it should be possible to derive the duties of marriage by deducing them from these ends in accordance with the method of natural law (IJD, iii...6:., 68). So powerful is the burning desire implanted in man for the realisation of the natural ends of mar- riage that it completely overwhelms his capacity to judge and conform .o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics himself to the duties of marriage (IJD, iii...., 6). Con- sequently, were it not for the relevant biblical injunctions regarding adul- tery, incest, polygamy, whoring acceded to by jurists in order to secure mans civil happiness marital conduct would remain morally indierent (IJD, iii..:, o). Outside of the natural law setting of the Institutiones, however, in a context determined by a concrete religiouspolitical dispute over the regulation of marriage, Thomasius adopts a position much closer to Pufendorf s statism. The dispute in question had broken out over the marriage of Maria Amalia, the Calvinist daughter of Friedrich Wilhelm I (III) of Brandenburg, to the Lutheran Duke Moritz Wilhelm of Saxon- Zeitz, a brother of the Electoral Prince of Saxony, where the marriage was opposed on religious grounds (Lieberwirth :q, :8). In :68q the Lutheran theologian Philipp Mller Provost of Magdeburg and pro- fessor at the University of Jena published a pamphlet in which he attacked the marriage, using extensive biblical citation to show the unlawfulness of such inter-faith unions. For our immediate concerns, the most striking characteristic of Thomasius polemical response to this pamphlet given in his Frstlicher Personen Heirat (The Marriage of Royal Persons, :68q) is how little it owes to the divine law framework of the Institutiones. Rather than grounding the princes marital duties and rights in natural or biblical law, as mediated by his theological or juristic Rte, here Thomasius derives them directly from positive Staatsrecht: In fact, from that which we have . . . advanced from the Osnabruck Peace Treaty [ie., the Treaty of Westphalia], it can be seen following it that the adherents of the Reformed [Calvinist] religion were expressly included [in its provisions]; that they should enjoy all the privileges and rights enjoyed by the adherents of the Augsburg Confession [Lutherans]; and that the freedom of royal persons of both religions to marry each other, arising from divine law, was reinforced rather than limited by that [treaty]. (ADS, ii, 8:) In other words, under the pressure of confessional disputation, Thomasius appeals to political law not to mop up the residue of indierent conduct remaining from the application of natural and bib- lical law, but as the source of autonomous duty-imposing norms. Here therefore the role of political jurisprudence is not to compensate for a lost capacity for rational insight into true morality. Rather it is to trans- mit norms arising from a politically imposed pacication of society. These are norms grounded in the politicaljuridical instrument that banished all concern with true morality from the governance of civil society: the Treaty of Westphalia. Natural law .: ..: Fundamenta Juris Naturae et Gentium Some of these ambivalences and instabilities are resolved in Thomasius nal formulation of his natural law doctrine, the Fundamenta Juris Naturae et Gentium of :o translated into German as Grundlehren des Natur- and Vlker-Rechts in :oq, which is the edition I have used. Looking back at the Institutiones Thomasius explains to his readers that with the concept of divine positive law he had been attempting to nd a middle path between the alternatives of natural and Mosaic law and, indeed, between Pufendorf and his scholastic opponents (FJN, Fwd, ). In doing so he had failed to separate fully the principles of natural knowl- edge and revelation, in part because he had located positive law in the revealed word of God, and in part because he had failed to scrutinise with sucient care the central thesis of Pufendorf s opponents: namely, that principles of natural law must be looked for in their agreement and non-agreement with the condition of innocence (FJN, Fwd, 6). He soon learned, though, that he would be reviled by the scholastics regardless of whether he attempted to reconcile his conception of natural law with the Bible, hence the [concept of] universal positive law was renounced and nally the hypothesis that the foundation of natural law is to be sought in the state of innocence has henceforth been completely buried and for- gotten. As a result: The constitution of natural law as we are now considering it requires that we disregard the Holy Scriptures and the state of innocence. This is especially so since not only has the state of innocence been utterly lost, it also cannot be regained in this life not to mention the fact that while the purpose of Holy Scriptures is the blessed life in the next world, moral philosophy and the whole of jurisprudence are aimed solely at true happiness in the present life. (FJN, Fwd, 6) In this manner, Thomasius abandoned the residual dualist or analog- ical metaphysics of the Institutiones. Henceforth natural law was to have no relation to an inaccessible condition of rational self-governance not even an analogical one and there would be no biblical supplement for natural law in the domain of civil jurisprudence. Thomasius thus took the deconfessionalising threshold, which partitioned the goal of civil happiness from that of eternal felicity, and superimposed it on the epis- temological one that separated the principles of natural jurisprudential knowledge from those of revealed biblical truth. In doing so, he approx- imated Pufendorf s clean break between a biblical moral theology con- cerned with salvation, and a natural ethics and jurisprudence whose .. Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics ends reach no higher than civil well-being. With this, Thomasius nego- tiated his own passage from theological to secular voluntarism, relegat- ing the two-state conception of innocent and fallen man in favour of a conception of man as a being whose single passional nature was the source and object of naturally known ethical and political duties. Nonetheless, despite arriving at an intellectual destination similar to Pufendorf s, Thomasius had taken a very dierent route. If Pufendorf had secularised natural law by decoupling the recognition of civil duties from the cultivation of moral personality specically from the Christianmetaphysical contemplative integration of the person then Thomasius did so by secularising the cultivation of moral personality itself. As we shall now see, this means that Thomasius construction of natural law continues to dier in important regards from Pufendorf s. For, in contradistinction to Pufendorf s conception of the imposed char- acter of civil oces, Thomasius foundational appeal to a quasi- Epicurean moral anthropology allows civil duties to remain grounded in a practice of moral cultivation, albeit a very dierent practice to the con- templative exercises of the Christian rationalists. The rst three chapters of the Fundamenta in which Thomasius out- lines his image of man as a being whose will is governed by corporeally rooted passions quite outside the reach of intellectual control are little more than a summary of the Ausbung der Sittenlehre, minus the latters ideal of reasonable love and the deist conclusion. In the Fundamenta Thomasius uses his Aektenlehre to mount a frontal assault on metaphys- ical moral philosophy and Christian natural law (FJN, i.:.8q, .q). If man is governed by his aects, specically by the three dominant pas- sions of ambition, lust, and greed, this is not because he has fallen from a higher condition of rational self-governance but is simply the result of the kind of natural being that he is. Like all such beings, man is driven by the desire to preserve himself and consequently is attracted to that which sustains his life and well-being and repelled by that which threat- ens it. These visceral feelings of attraction and repulsion, giving rise to the aects of hope and fear, are the primitive source of moral judgment and natural law. From the perspective of this ethical naturalism, and apparently mis- understanding the full signicance of Pufendorf s doctrine of imposed entia moralia, Thomasius declares that the scholastics and Pufendorf share a common error: they make a sharp distinction between mans moral and physical nature. For the will is both driven by the physiologi- cal powers of the passions and yet functions as the source of their moral Natural law . governance. This means that the will must achieve moral governance in and through these powers: The moral nature of man is thus a concept of the power to will through forces controlled by the will. Because of this the physical nature of man is not rightly opposed to the moral nature of man, nor absolutely and nally to the intellectual [vernnftigen] or ratio- nal [verstndlichen] nature of man (FJN, i.:.8, .). Yet the will is never rational in the sense of acting on the basis of ideas, for these are the exclusive preserve of the understanding. For its part the understanding is capable of discerning the truly good that is, the conduct that pre- serves mans life and happiness but only on the basis of a prior calming of the passions. This tempering is a work of the will on the will, requir- ing the arousal of passions hope and fear to eect a restraint of the passions (FJN, i.:.6:, .6). With his Aektenlehre in place, Thomasius is ready to announce the end of the metaphysical moral philosophy and its replacement by a disci- pline for governing the passions. Arguing that if the will is governed by the balance of passional powers then it is meaningless to talk of freedom of the will in the sense of its freedom to choose on the basis of moral ideas Thomasius declares with an overly optimistic ourish: Now, if the will has no freedom to choose, then undoubtedly the whole of scho- lastic moral philosophy falls to the ground (FJN, i.:.qq, .). Nonetheless, while not itself free, the will can be restrained. This gives rise to actions that are free-willed in the sense of being chosen on the basis of a rec- ognition itself dependent on the calming of the passions of the conduct required to give man a long and happy life. This degree of freedom is enough for individuals to be held responsible for their actions (FJN, i.:.6q, .). Moral philosophy of the standard intellectualist kind must therefore be replaced by a moral discipline that will provide individuals with the capacity to moderate their passions, thereby allow- ing their reason to judge the conduct conducive to mans civil happiness (FJN, i.:.q, :). Thomasius thus uses his quasi-Epicurean anthropology in order to expunge the residual theological aspects of his construction of natural law in the Institutiones, and to ground the naturalistic construc- tion of the Fundamenta. At the heart of the Fundamenta lies the conception of man as a being whose civil happiness is dependent on the ethical and juridical restraint of his unruly passional nature. As we have already noted, constituting the moral self as a physiolog- ical phenomenon is Thomasius way of allowing it to be approached in a detranscendentalised manner, as something open to empirical obser- vation and practical control in accordance with worldly ends: For moral . Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics nature also belongs in a certain manner to physics, because it depends upon and is driven by the will, whose treatment belongs to physics [ie., the science of corporeal things] (FJN, i.:.q, .). Only thus could those who had been exposed to university metaphysics learn to refrain from approaching their moral self in a grandiloquent sacralising manner; as if it were the imago Dei or as the remnant spark of divine reason; as if it were something known only through the purifying contemplation of a priori concepts, and conformed to such exalted ends as purity of will, seless love, and union with God. Thomasius ethical naturalism is thus intended to detach the cultivation of civil duties from the self-exalting pursuit of ends akin to holiness, and to ensure instead that such duties would be acceded to through a practice of passional restraint geared to the ends of personal civility and social peace. Nonetheless, in failing to comprehend and follow Pufendorf s far more radical detranscendentalising of ethics via the doctrine of imposed oces Thomasius natural law remains closer to moral phi- losophy than his mentors. Pufendorf s argument is that mans natural goods only cross the threshold of morality through their conversion into duties through the imposition of oces, without which man is incapable governing his liberty in accordance with natural law. Thomasius argu- ment is that inner tranquillity is itself a natural good from which natural law duties may be derived. We cannot agree then with those commen- tators who see Thomasius attempt to provide an ethical basis for polit- ical commands as superseding Pufendorf s framework (Schneewind :qq8, :q66). In fact Thomasius naturalist anthropology of the pas- sions is an attempt to reach the same destination as Pufendorf s anti- naturalist doctrine of imposed oces: a secular deconfessionalised construction of natural law governed by the end of social peace. More to the point, in rejecting Pufendorf s radical divorce of the imposition of civil oces from the cultivation of moral personality, it seems likely that Thomasius makes his path to this end ever more circuitous and protracted. The problems encountered in this regard are focused in two related aspects of the construction of natural law duties in the Fundamenta. First, Thomasius passional anthropology leads him to establish a continuum between inner self-restraint and external juridical coercion, as steps on a single hierarchy of governance. In tying duties to mans passional nature, Thomasius is thus deviating markedly from Pufendorf. For, in regarding civil disturbance as the result of the unrestrained inner pas- sions breaking out into anti-social conduct, Thomasius treats legal Natural law . coercion as compensating for the failure of moral self-governance. In a reciprocal manner, he simultaneously treats inner self-restraint as a higher form of the civil governance exercised through external coercion. Despite a good deal of commentary to the contrary, then, the predom- inant construction of natural law in the Fundamenta is characterised not by a sharp break between morality and law but by a series of graduated steps linking moral self-restraint to legal coercion. There are, Thomasius argues (almost certainly against Pufendorf), two forms of obligation. Inner obligation arises from restraint of the pas- sions, gives rise to knowledge of what it is that makes for a long and happy life, and issues in the wise mans counsel. Outer obligation comes from the administration of fear and hope, compels the fools or those incapable of inner restraint to keep their conduct within the bounds of civil peace, and is embodied in the rulers command backed by sanc- tion (FJN, i...:, 8.). The two forms of obligation though are both directed to the same end securing inner and outer peace in accordance with the end of natural law which means that morality and law are joined on a single hierarchy of governance: Further, given that the fools show through their actions that they lack inner calm and are thus incapable of promoting or preserving outer calm in fact that they cause the disturbance of outer calm it follows that the norm of a wise man, whose purpose is to lead the fools from unhappiness to happiness, is oriented to three main points: to the achievement of inner calm, or, the restraint of the fool- ishness of the three main desires; to the promotion of external calm through peaceable actions; [and] to avoiding the disruption of outer [public] calm by refraining from actions that disturb the peace. (FJN, i.., 88) To achieve the right distribution of friendly counsel and coercive command across this hierarchy the wise man must have regard to the degrees of foolishness. The greatest fools, who disrupt outer peace and disturb the freedom of others, require command to the exclusion of counsel. The middling fools do not disrupt social peace but neither do they cultivate the good-will and friendship of others. Hence their governance can be largely based on counsel with a view to rectifying this defect, while not excluding command should their lack of winning ways give rise to social disturbance. The least foolish, though, because they neither disturb social peace nor lack the ability to win the good-will of others, require no commands and should be governed solely through counsel aimed at reinforcing their capacity for passional self-restraint (FJN, I..6, 88q). Actions can thus be divided into good, evil, and middling or indierent depending on whether they are oriented to .6 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics the attainment of inner calm, the disruption of external peace, or neither disturb nor promote social peace, but seek it without cultivating inner calm: here you have the sources of the three-fold good of the hon- ourable [ehrlichen], the decent [anstndigen] and the just [gerechten] (FJN, i..8, qo). The second obstacle to Thomasius full political desacralisation of natural law comes in the gure of the sage. Clearly, in situating legal coercion as compensating for the failure of moral self-governance, Thomasius establishes a hierarchical continuum between law and morality. The wise man is described as unifying the three kinds of good- ness: Nevertheless, this threefold good should not be separated and divided. Because he is not wise who does not live virtuously, decently and justly at the same time (FJN, i..q:, q:). Thomasius thus exhorts his stu- dents to govern themselves by beginning with the least perfect of the three goods, law-abiding conduct, and work their way up through civil- ity to the inner tranquillity arising from self-restraint of the passions (FJN, i.6., :.). Moreover, this way of relating lawand morality fails to avoid the political chiliasm that had been characteristic of moral-philo- sophical accounts of law and that would resurface again in Kants account of the lawmorality relation. For, if legal coercion is a compen- sation for the failure of moral self-governance, then it is possible that with the general attainment of the latter there might be no further need for the coercive legal governance of society. Finally, this secularised escha- tology haunts Thomasius construction of the relation between legal obligation and individual right in the Fundamenta. If the imposition of legal obligation is construed as merely clearing away the obstacles stand- ing in the way of rights arising from the capacity for moral self-gover- nance, then these rights to a long and happy life appear as grounded in the individual moral personality. This, of course, is quite unlike Pufendorf s view of themas reexes of the duties imposed by a superior for the governance of mans permanently dangerous liberty. Thomasius view of the state as the natural complement to mans capacity for moral self-cultivation is, we recall, precisely the teleological account that Pufendorf rejects, commenting that it presupposes a kind of civil state wherein citizens are without any fault and wickedness, when in fact states are a sort of remedy for human imperfection (DSH, ., :::). Nonetheless, despite the continuum that Thomasius moral anthro- pology introduces to the lawmorality relation, his conception of this relation is also informed by a second, more disjunctive treatment of it. This second construction is also focused in the relation between inner Natural law . and outer obligation, but here Thomasius treats the latter form of obli- gation imposed by a superior possessing the means of coercion as autonomous of inner moral obligation, rather than as conditional on its failure. He thus rejoins Pufendorf in arguing that all right comes from externally imposed obligation, as no-one can obligate themselves or claim a right over themselves, which means that: all right is external not internal (FJN, i..:6:, q). On this construction, rights in the sense of the performance of compellable duties arise wholly from the sphere of justice, now conceived as an autonomous domain of external obligations imposed by a political superior, while decorum and morality do not give rise to rights at all not even to imperfect ones (FJN, i...:, q8). At this point then the hierarchical relation between morality and law falls apart, as the dierent modes in which individuals accede to their obliga- tions no longer form a continuum and arise in fact from autonomous modes of governing human conduct: From this it follows that what a man does from inner obligation, and in accor- dance with the rules of morality and decorum, is specically governed by virtue; so that this man should be called virtuous [tugendhaft] rather than law-abiding [gerecht]. But that which a man does in accordance with the rules of justice, or from external obligation, is governed by justice, and on the basis of such actions he would be called law-abiding. (FJN, i..., q8) According to Thomasius second, Pufendoran, construction of natural law, then, the coercive character of justice or civil law arises not from its role in compensating for the failure of moral self-restraint but from a dierent source: the fact that these laws serve ends determined by rulers possessing the means of compulsion. Moral counsel and polit- ical command thus fall into dierent domains, as the end of civil peace is construed not as the outer expression of inner moral tranquillity, but as a purely public condition reached through the application of the means of politicaljuridical coercion to external conduct (FJN, i..6, :oo). On this construction, law is not a less perfect form of governance than morality and decorum but simply a dierent one, based in the autonomous end of social pacication. This construction is thus incom- patible with the doctrine of a continuum between law and morality, and with the eschatological conception of a society of self-governing individ- uals possessing individual rights. The manner in which politics and law are admitted to the domain of moral philosophy that is, the way in which moral philosophy is desacralised diers signicantly between these two constructions. For, according to the rst, the coercively imposed rules of outer peace .8 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics prescribed by political jurisprudence are extensions of the self-imposed rules for the inner restraint of the passions. This means that political command (Herrschaft) and moral counsel (Ratschlag) meet in a single subject. This is the political jurist as Epicurean sage, who is capable of calibrating the degrees of foolishness separating morality, decorum, and law, and thereby determining when the state should intervene to reinforce virtue or, conversely, when self-governing virtue makes the state redundant. In construing him as sage, Thomasius thus envisages the political jurist assuming the role once played by theologians in setting the moral parameters of political governance. According to the second construction, however, the compulsory duties prescribed by political jurisprudence arise solely from the states interest in social peace, inde- pendently of all concerns with inner ethical self-restraint. Here, then, the political jurist is not the integral wise man of moral philosophy but an adviser whose expertise is bound to the exercise of political command, so that the role of political jurisprudence is to set the politi- cal parameters of moral culture. We can see the role that he envisaged for the rst, ethically based, con- ception of the moralitylaw relation in Thomasius new treatment of marital duties in the Fundamenta. Here he revises the account of marital duties given in the Institutiones, repudiating his own earlier treatment of lust as symptomatic of fallen mans complete incapacity to govern himself in accordance with natural law. Lust, Thomasius now argues, is no more powerful than the passions of ambition and greed, and all can be controlled through the rules of morality, decency, and justice (FJN, iii...6, :6). There is thus no residue of indierent conduct awaiting determination by biblical law a strategy that Thomasius now denounces as papist. For those duties not determined by the rules of justice in the strict sense monogamy and permanent cohabitation, for example can certainly be determined by the rules of morality and decorum, as being necessary for the moderation of desire or the decent rearing of children (FJN, iii...:, :66). The problem with this solution, however, is that it assumes the existence of a civil society already in pos- session of a deconfessionalised capacity for moral self-governance, capable of cultivating its duties including its marital duties in a tol- erant and civil manner, in accordance with the secular ends of personal and civil tranquillity. We need only recall provost Mllers attack on inter-faith marriages, however which he treats as tantamount to pro- faning the sacrament through union with the indel to recognise that the German societies had not yet reached this pacied condition. Natural law .q It should not surprise us, then, that as soon as Thomasius is con- fronted by morality which is not in the required secularised civil form that is, as soon as he re-engages with the still-prevalent religious deter- mination of civil duties the posited continuum between moral counsel and political command, the teacher and the ruler, falls to pieces, and with it Thomasius conception of natural law in the broad sense. This happens most strikingly in the rst chapter of Book ii, On Mans Duties to God, where Thomasius is recasting his earlier account of natural law religious duties. For here, despite his wish to construct these duties by applying the rules of morality, decorum, and justice, Thomasius must confront the fact that the moraltheological and politicaljuridical determinations of religious duties are in conict, precluding the appeal to a single moral hierarchy of governance, and forcing the wise man to negotiate between conicting ethical ends: [The wise man] must explain the principles of the whole rights of princes in religious aairs together with the foresight enabling one to prevent a prince being oppressed by teachers or priests. [He must also explain] how one should take the middle path when a prince seeks to alter external religious worship, so that he neither tyrannises over conscience nor allows too much scope to those who under the pretext of their conscience foment disorder in the republic. (FJN, ii.:., :8) Rather than reconciling moral counsel and political command, teacher and prince in a unifying natural law hierarchy, the political jurist is now forced to establish a dierent and less harmonious kind of hier- archy: There must be a thorough demonstration of the agreement and dierence between political rule [Herrschaft], religious ministry and teaching, together with their necessary friendship and interconnection, that is nevertheless associated with the necessary dependence of minis- try and teaching on political rule (FJN, ii.:., :8). This fracturing of the lawmorality continuum, and the emergent dominance of the political over the clerical and academic estates, arises from the fact that, in relig- ion, the political jurist must deal with a morality that threatens the ulti- mate end of social peace: One must deal with the injustice of wars against other peoples on the grounds of religion or Reformation . . . The justice and injustice of civil wars caused by religion both in the case of authorities attempting to impose a new religion and in that of subjects wishing to preserve the old one must also be dealt with. One must show who may decide such a question, whether it is the religious or the secular scholars, whether theologians or jurists or both are entitled. .o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics One must treat of measures in a republic and of complaints [against them] arising from religion, whether and how far such [complaints] should be permit- ted. (FJN, ii.:.8:., :8q) Faced with the existence of moral communities conformed to inter- nally homogenous and mutually hostile religious anthropologies, the presuppositions of a general natural law ethics based on a secularised moral anthropology begin to buckle. In such circumstances, rather than providing it with an ethical basis, communal moral self-governance pro- vides political governance with one of its most intractable problems. Under this pressure, the unity of moral counsel and political command symbolised by the academic sage breaks down, and the political jurist begins to assume a dierent form, as the bearer of a political science formed in and for the state: But not all auditors are suitable for this doctrine. It is in fact a true state secret [Knigliches Geheimni]. Accordingly it is to be presented only to adults who are capable of discretion, who have given clear proof that they have progressed a certain way along the path of wisdom, and who are devoted not to the univer- sity but to government. (FJN, ii.:.:, :q) Moreover, Thomasius oers tacit acknowledgement of his own error in presuming that a science dealing with the political regulation of religion could be addressed to a general moral community. In this regard we should accordingly confess our own lack of circumspection, in that we have until now carelessly revealed many truths belonging to this science. For there are numerous examples to hand showing how irrationally they act who present counsel pertaining to religious matters in public writings, even when they are by no means unreasonable in other matters. (FJN, ii.:.:, :q) With this confession, though, we reach the limits of Thomasius natural law, whose attachment to a single moral anthropology nally renders it incapable of detaching the political jurist from the moral philosopher. . 6 rnox xon\r rni rosornv +o rori +i c\r tni srntnrxcr In the event, Thomasius uncoupling of law and politics from theology and moral philosophy of the exercise of civil power from the pursuit of moral truth nds its denitive formulation not in his natural law works but in his political jurisprudence, in particular his political juris- prudence of church law (Staatskirchenrecht). Here, in a series of works that are indeed addressed to adults who are capable of discretion . . . and From moral philosophy to political jurisprudence .: who are devoted not to the university but to government, he outlines a profound and ambitious dual programme for the desacralisation of the state, and the spiritualisation of religion. The inuence of Pufendorf s political and theological writing on Thomasius Staatskirchenrecht is clear in its central text, the posthumously published Vollstndige Erluterung der Kirchenrechts-Gelahrtheit oder Grndliche Abhandlung vom Verhltni der Religion gegen den Staat (Complete Explanation of the Jurisprudence of Church Law or Fundamental Treatise on the Relation of Religion to the State) of :8. The rst volume of the Vollstndige Erluterung consists of a reprint of Pufendorf s De Habitu Religionis Christianae ad Vitam Civilem (On the Nature of Religion in Relation to Civil Society, :68), in Latin and German, accompanied by Thomasius extensive commentary. The second volume appears to be an edited version of Thomasius lectures on Staatskirchenrecht. In addition to this compendium on church law and governance, Thomasius also published an important series of disputa- tions dealing with the states rights in religious aairs. We shall be con- cerned with two of these dissertations in particular: Vom Recht evangelischer Frsten in Mitteldingen oder Kirchenzeremonien (De Jure Principis circa Adiaphora, Of the Right of Protestant Princes in Middle-Things or Religious Ceremonies, :6q) and Das Recht evangelischer Frsten in theologischen Streitigkeiten (The Right of Protestant Princes in Theological Controversies, :6q6). Of these two disserta- tions only the latter is cited as co-authored with Thomasius student Enno Rudolph Brenneysen, despite the fact that Brenneysen also co- wrote the former, albeit under Thomasius professorial direction. In these works Thomasius addresses the concrete problem of how to construct a politicaljudicial programme for detaching the exercise of civil power from the forms of religious authority. Moreover, he did so under circumstances in which most citizens were still learning their civil duties through religious instruction, and in which most theologians and philosophers were still teaching that individuals acceded to their civil duties via their Christian moral personality. If, as we have suggested, its foundation in moral anthropology ultimately rendered Thomasius natural law incapable of dealing with these circumstances, this is because it meant that he continued to ground civil power in a particular way of acceding to moral truth. This is the lesson to be learned from the gure of the Epicurean sage in the Fundamenta, who sets the thresholds between morality and law through his own exemplary moral self- governance. Under historical circumstances, however, in which the linkage between political rule and communal moral culture continued to threaten social peace with religious civil war, Thomasius natural law .. Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics reached its limits as indeed did all the other forms of natural law that grounded civil duties in moral anthropology. For, in the sphere of polit- ical decision per se, what these circumstances demanded was not a better (deconfessionalised) moral culture for the ruler, but a radical uncoupling of political rule from moral culture, security from sanctity, the prince from the sage. This helps to explain why key Pufendoran doctrines that play no role in Thomasius natural law the doctrines of imposed oces and absolute sovereignty suddenly become central to Thomasius Staatskirchenrecht. In taking up Pufendorf s ocio doctrine in this new context, Thomasius uses it consign the pursuit of moral truth and the imposition of civil obligation to two distinct oces those of the teacher and the prince thereby suspending all moralphilosophical founda- tions for civil governance, including his own. He does so in order to con- struct a political jurisprudence capable of meeting the contingency in which all religious and moral doctrine true or false was capable of threatening social peace, and therefore had to be regulated indepen- dently of its veracity. We have already observed, however, that Thomasius political juris- prudence of church governance is not grounded in an all-embracing rationalist philosophy, designed to extirpate religion or to transform it into an expression of mans rational autonomy. On the contrary, Thomasius Staatskirchenrecht is grounded in two interrelated doctrinal elds a spiritualist theology and a statist politics designed to support a dual programme: the spiritualisation of religion and the desacralisa- tion of politics. The result of this dual formulation is a Staatskirchenrecht in which the visible church and the clerical estate are to be excluded from all exercise of civil power, but in which the state must exercise its power without concerning itself with the private pursuit of transcen- dent truth and moral regeneration. Given this remarkable outcome, we should discuss its two doctrinal sources in a little more detail. Thomasius conception of religion in the Vollstndige Erluterung is dominated by a spiritualistic and inwardist, typically Protestant, under- standing of moral renewal and salvation. Drawing in part on Gottfried Arnolds Unparteiysche Kirchen- und Ketzerhistorie (Impartial History of Religion and Heresy), Thomasius argues that moral regeneration can only occur when individuals, eschewing all sacerdotal and ceremonial assistance, acknowledge their misery and freely open themselves to the gratuitous grace of a loving but inscrutable God. None of the rites and ceremonies of the visible church, none of the metaphysical doctrines and articles of From moral philosophy to political jurisprudence . faith which have only served to promote religious discord and heresy- hunting can aect an individuals moral condition, which is deter- mined solely by the inner relation of the will to God. From this arises an ecclesiology grounded in a radical distinction between the visible and invisible church: The only precept that Christ has given us is the precept of love. All the rest is unnecessary and lacks the character of a true church . . . Christ said, though: By love you should know that you are my disciples; and Peter said: God has chosen some from among all peoples; because God is always gracious and sees into the heart of man. And so one nds nothing of the visible church in Christs teaching, which much more rebukes the Jews for this, that they concern them- selves with external ceremonies and holy days . . . Hence the distinction that when someone seeks the true church in external and visible things, they depart from the Scriptures. Because [the true church] is understood as the invisible community, and all predicates [of the church] apply to the invisible church, which is alone holy, and in which Christians are unied in God; and this church is eternally one. (VKR, ii...:, :6:) Like Pufendorf, Thomasius regards this spiritualistic form of religion, epitomised in the simple and loving relation between Christ and his dis- ciples, as the original or primitive form of Christianity (DHR, , ; VKR, i, .6o). In making this non-sacramental private faith the key to salvation, both thinkers distinguish it from natural religion, which is a minimalistic religion taught by the state for civil purposes but having no bearing on salvation. According to Thomasius Arnoldian religious history, primitive Christianity was traduced through the historical assimilation of two other traditions. As a result of the adoption of Jewish ceremonial and political law regarding such matters as baptism and Sabbath obser- vance Christianity developed into a religion claiming the capacity to save through sacramental rituals and, consequently, the right to a share in the political governance of a Christian state (VKR, i, 8::8). Next, through the absorption of Greek philosophy into its theology specically the metaphysical doctrine that man is a being who might be regenerated through the purication of his intellect Christianity gave birth to a speculative religiosity or religiose speculation. This in turn gave rise to the view that individual salvation depends on knowledge of specic intellectual doctrines and articles of faith (VKR, ii..., .o). We have, of course, already encountered this view of Greek philosophy in Thomasius Foreword to Grotius, where he treats Aristotelian and Platonic metaphysics as the source of a secret theology, teaching the . Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics possibility of moral regeneration through speculation and mystical ascent to the pure intellectual forms (VG, :o:). Thomasius leaves us in no doubt that Jewish ceremonial law and Greek philosophy are in fact stalking-horses for the ecclesiology and metaphysical theology of Lutheran orthodoxy, whose representatives he calls our papists. Indeed, the whole point of Thomasius Arnoldian ecclesiastical history is to demonstrate the illegitimacy of confessional religion: that is, religion claiming a share in civil authority on the basis of credal doctrines and saving ceremonies. Similarly, the object of Thomasius spiritualist theology is to deny that moral renewal is in any way dependent on the sacramental ceremonies of the Lutheran church or the metaphysical doctrines of its theology faculties. Salvation is wholly a matter of the private opening of the spirit to a God who sees into hearts: Whether we consider God or man, we will nd nothing from which reason could conclude that God demands such external forms of worship from us. For he has an exact knowledge of the heart and needs no external ceremonies for us to declare our will to him. And as for that which most pleases him in his service, this too is best known by him. From this our reason must conclude that there is nothing in the nature of God that commands us to an external worship of him. (RFM, :, 8.) The notion of compulsory forms of worship is thus entirely foreign to true religion, which consists in the free dedication of the will to God. Consequently, orthodoxys claims to theological truth and sacerdotal mediation must be treated as priestcraft, as a use of false doctrine to secure the clergys civil power. Similarly, in claiming a share in the governance of a Christian state through its jurisdiction over blasphemy and heresy and its claims to the power of the keys (ex-communication) the church must be seen as betraying its true role in opening souls to God, and as usurping coercive powers properly belonging to the civil sovereign alone (VKR, ii..., .o). In complementing this spiritualist theology with a desacralised con- ception of politics and the state, Thomasius Staatskirchenrecht draws directly on Pufendorf s doctrines of imposed moral oces and absolute sovereignty. No matter how alien it might be to the teachings of modern moral philosophy, Pufendorf s conception of sovereignty holds that the states rights and powers are not delegated to it on the condition that it realise mans moral being, but only so that it might preserve security, which is thus the only legitimate end of the state. In his discus- sion of the princes right to dispose over religious adiaphora all aspects From moral philosophy to political jurisprudence . of religion not necessary for salvation Thomasius follows Pufendorf to the letter: Because they concern the fundamental laws of particular republics, through which the exercise of sovereign territorial government is observed and limited, the rights to which a prince is entitled in religious matters, in accordance with the law of nature and the properties of sovereign government, can best be dis- cussed in relation to the ultimate end of republics and the causes from which they arise. The ultimate end of the republic in this ruined condition is that the subjects need it for protection against the evil and cunning attacks of other people, to which they were prey in the state of nature from their more power- ful neighbours. For apart from God there is no more powerful means to curb human evil and to attain security than this wise invention: that many men by means of a pact subordinate their will and their power to the will of another, for the common benet of the whole community of subjects. Without doubt, then, a prince must be entitled to as much power as is required for attaining the ultimate end of the republic; that is, for [attaining] its internal and external calm and peace. (RFM, 8, :o8q) To the extent that it now nds its end solely in preserving the security of a territorial population, all coercive power all right to make law and war belongs to the civil sovereign alone. Moreover, to the extent that it disturbs the republic, the prince is justied in using this power against all kinds of conduct, religious as well as worldly; for, as a recent period of religious civil war has shown, religious conduct can also cause great harm to the commonwealth: Is it not shown in Germany and all the kingdoms of Europe what kind of dis- aster and injury comes from religious conict and rebellion? Were the power to suppress such disturbance as arises from religion now to be removed from the prince, so the whole republic would certainly be ruined. Therefore, to my way of thinking, they reason correctly and prudently who say: That in so far as it stands in their free will, all conduct of subjects both natural and moral is subject to the power of the prince . . . Because damage to the republic can arise from all such conduct of subjects. (RFM, 8, ::o::) In combining statist sovereignty doctrine and spiritualistic theology, Thomasius political jurisprudence of church governance gives rise to a far-reaching programme for deconfessionalising the church and the state. In the rst place, by construing all religious ceremonies as middle- things or adiaphora that is, things neither commanded nor forbidden by divine or natural law he is able to bring the entirety of church law and liturgy within the supervision of the territorial sovereign, giving rise to a conception of church governance known as territorialism (Schlaich :q68). In the lengthy discussion that comprises the seventh .6 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics chapter of the second volume of the Vollstndige Erluterung, Thomasius applies the category of adiaphora to all the central sacraments of the church. Here he treats baptism, catechisation, the Eucharist, confession, exorcism, marriage, and ordination as ceremonies inessential to inner saving religion, hence as open to the sovereigns supervision, should they give rise to uncivil conduct (VKR, ii., ::q8). As for the compet- ing theological doctrines of the three major confessions and the various sects, the prince should endorse none of them; for their intellectual and compulsory nature make them all equally distant from the genuine relig- ion of those who seek salvation in simple active Christianity. Political prudence dictates, however, that the prince steer his public pronounce- ments mid-way between the extreme ritualism of the Catholics and orthodox Lutherans, and the equally extreme spiritualism of the Quakers and other illuminati. The only public religion suited to both true piety and the desacralised state is natural religion. This is a religion whose few simple propositions that there is a God, that Christ teaches us to love God and our neighbour both agree with true Christianity and are accessible to natural reason, yet do not give rise to any relig- iouscivil rights that might subtract from secular sovereignty. The spiri- tualisation of religion in Thomasius Staatskirchenrecht is thus reciprocally related to his secularisation of the visible church. At the same time, however, the prince may not exercise his supervi- sion of religion on the basis of his own insight into moral truth, or in order to make his subjects holy. Instead, in keeping with the rest of the states sovereign powers, the princes right over religion must be exer- cised solely in accordance with the end of civil security, against conduct threatening social peace. On the basis of this construction of the states religious neutrality, or indierence to transcendent truth, Thomasius was able to develop one of the most far-reaching of all the early modern doctrines of religious toleration. Using injury to civil peace as his sole criterion for state intervention in religious aairs, he is able to extend the threshold of toleration beyond the Protestant churches to include sects harbouring heterodox conceptions of the Trinity and mediation. Thomasius thus oers the following fundamental criticism of the demand by Leipzigs leading controversial theologian J. B. Carpzov that Socinians and Arians be treated as criminal heretics: Disagreement as such does not disturb the tranquillity of the republic even though the Socinians say that Christ is not truly God, or the Arians that Christ is not co-eternal with the Father . . . Of course it cannot be denied that here they err gravely, especially because they fail to recognise their own misery. But From moral philosophy to political jurisprudence . why should the prince force them into exile? Such people can still also be good and honourable citizens. They give the prince their taxes and obey his com- mands, make good soldiers, and so on. It is not they who disturb the republic but the intemperate geniuses [i.e., controversial theologians like Carpzov], who moan and complain about each other . . . . (VKR, i, p. 6) Further, on the same basis, Thomasius was able move beyond both Lockes refusal to extend toleration to atheists, and Lockes and Pufendorf s unwillingness to oer it to Catholics. Locke had claimed that atheists could not be trusted to honour oaths, and both he and Pufendorf argued that Catholics, in owing allegiance to a foreign monarch, could not be good citizens of the territorial state. Thomasius remarkable account of his own change of mind on these questions war- rants an extended quotation: Religions as such do not disturb external peace, and where their teachings are so disposed [to tranquillity], then the prince can well tolerate them. For those who deny the Trinity do not immediately disturb the state. Where, though, such people do disturb the state, then the princes duty (Ocium Principis) demands that he expel them from the republic. In fact, in the past I maintained that nothing could be more injurious to the republic than atheism. Now, though, I recognise this to be false. Who then may not be tolerated in the republic? Our author [Pufendorf] responds: the papists because they say that a prince belonging to another religion may be killed in good conscience, and that here- tics may not defend the faith. These principles are against the law and disturb the republic as one has seen in France which means that they should not be tolerated. For my part, I will not here inquire into the facts of the case, which are no doubt deserving of respect. Nonetheless, we must not impute the prin- ciples of the Jesuits to everyone. And if a prince were to act on the basis that disturbance could arise from a doctrine as a matter of probable consequence, he would tolerate no religion; for the Lutheran religion can also give occasion to turbulence as a matter of consequence. Those who say that true religion is contrary to state utility delude themselves, and we therefore maintain that no- one should be exiled on the grounds of [religious] disagreement. (VKR, i, qo) Through this dual strategy of spiritualising religion by secularising the visible church, and desacralising the state by establishing its religious neutrality Thomasius establishes a threshold for the states interven- tion in the church which varies with religions capacity to damage civil society. This marks an important advance on the threshold used in the De Habitu. Here Pufendorf had attempted to draw a rm line between the internal order of the church which should be left to the clergy (liturgy, sacraments), and the external order open to control by the .8 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics prince through the Consistory (appointment of priests, funding, and administration of church property) (DHR, :.o). The problem with this solution, Thomasius argues, is that it leads to irresolvable argument over whether a certain matter should be regarded as internal or external, thereby paralysing the states capacity for political action. The two cases that Thomasius uses to exemplify this argument in the Recht in Mitteldingen indicate both the kind of problem his oating thresh- old was intended to address and its success in doing so. Consider the case, says Thomasius, of a Catholic prince who, after the Treaty of Westphalia, nds himself ruling over a territory inside whose Lutheran churches the congregations are singing hymns extolling the Popes murder. The question of whether the prince has the right to suppress this conduct cannot be solved via the distinction between the internal and external governance of the church; for this case can be argued passion- ately on both sides, depending on how hymn-singing is classied. Using Thomasius threshold, however, the prince can readily be assigned this right, regardless of whether hymns are normally seen as belonging to the internal liturgical order of the church; for this is conduct that foments communal hatreds and thereby damages civil peace (RFM, ::, :.:). At the same time, however, the sovereign must not attempt to exercise this right on the basis of his religious persona or in a manner that coerces the conscience of his citizens. This is the point of the second example, which concerns the question much disputed by the doctors of whether Protestant princes have the right to compel their Jewish subjects to attend Christian worship. Again, this case had proved irresolvable using the internalexternal division, due to the lack of agreement over how to classify church services. And again, Thomasius oating thresh- old provides an unambiguous resolution, this time denying the right: The rule we have provided above decides the matter quite clearly. Since to attend the churches and participate in the worship of the Christians appears unjust and aggravating to the Jews, and since it is of no assistance to the peace and calm of the country, so one should not compel their conscience. Though their conscience is erroneous, it will not be helped from error through compul- sion, but only if one associates with them in a friendly manner, providing them with a good example so that they might better agree with reason and the teach- ings of Christ. (RFM, 8, ::.:) In short, given their indierence to salvation, all religious ceremonies are potential objects of political supervision. Yet whether they meet with tol- eration or suppression must in no way depend upon the states religious From moral philosophy to political jurisprudence .q or moral ideology, being determined instead by the sole criterion of civil disturbance. The mixture of spiritualist theology and statist politics informing Thomasius Pufendoran Staatskirchenrecht presents the post-Kantian history of moral philosophy with insurmountable diculties. Written from the standpoint of its own (neo-Kantian or neo-Aristotelian) moral anthropology, this historiography continues to derive political rights from a theory of moral personality or moral community, and it imagines that civil society resulted from the extension of reason and democracy. It is thus predisposed to assimilate Pufendoran Staatskirchenrecht to moral philosophy, either by treating it as the expression of a particular moral anthropology, or by criticising it for its unreconciled spiritualist and statist aspects. In her discussion of Pufendorf s construction of natural religion and religious toleration, Simone Zurbuchen ignores his doctrine of imposed moral oces, and, drawing on Denzer, interprets Pufendorf as advancing an Aristotelian conception of the state as the natural vehicle of mans moral perfection and moral community (Zurbuchen :qq:, o). On this basis, Zurbuchen makes Pufendorf s doctrine of natural religion into the foundation of his natural law instead of the other way around thereby treating political obligation as an expression of the commands of natural religion. Seen in this light, Pufendorf s doc- trine of religious toleration appears as the recognition of a subjective right to religious self-realisation, rather than as a means of desacralising the state by eliminating the civil power of the church. Consequently, Zurbuchen treats Pufendorf s statist defence of the sovereigns right to supervise the church as a deviation, induced by reason of state doctrine (Zurbuchen :qq:, ). We have already dealt with modern attempts to assimilate Pufendorf s construction of political authority to neo-Kantian and neo-Aristotelian moral anthropologies (..). Through his doctrine of imposed oces, Pufendorf was able to detach sovereignty fromits moral ties to self-leg- islating reason or the self-perfecting community and ground it instead in sovereign commands issued in accordance with the end of security. Far from representing an anomaly or contradiction in Pufendorf s and Thomasius thought, their simultaneous advocacy of religious toleration and the political supervision of religion indicates that these were recipro- cating strategies grounded in the end of security and oriented to the de- sacralisation of politics. In making Pufendorf s doctrine of imposed moral oces central to his Staatskirchenrecht, Thomasius was not attempt- ing to provide any kind of moral philosophical basis for the states super- .6o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics vision of religious authority. Rather, in using it to separate the oces of ruler and subject, teacher and auditor, he was attempting to combat the dominant Lutheran doctrines of church governance, which were designed to maintain the independent civil power of the church. We recall that, in contrast with Pufendorf s ocio doctrine, the neo- scholastic metaphysics of the person unites all oces and duties in a core rational substance or imago Dei, modelled on the unity of Christs natures and oces in his personal substance. In this regard at least, by continu- ing to ground civil power in moral personhood, modern moral philoso- phy remains aliated to the metaphysics of the person that Pufendorf and Thomasius set out to destroy. As we have already observed, in both neoscholastic and rationalist natural metaphysics, this Christian meta- physics of the person was used to support the merging of religious and political oces required to maintain clerical power in confessional soci- eties. This provides the setting in which Thomasius did battle with the central doctrines of Lutheran church law. This interdependency of Christian metaphysical personalism and confessional political theology is evident in the central doctrines of Lutheran ecclesiology and church law. Schlaich discusses several such doctrines, three of which are of particular importance for us (Schlaich :q68, .8q). First, the three-estate doctrine (Dreistndlehre) taught that the church consists of three Stnde or statuses: the princely, clerical, and popular estates (status politicus, ecclesiasticus und popularis). In thus superim- posing the three traditional social estates the governing, teaching, and popular estates on the order of the church, it forms a theory of the church that doubles as a theory of politics and society. In fact, in propos- ing that the three estates are unied in the church as Christs mystical body, this doctrine is a means of showing that civil and religious author- ity are harmonised in a single end the governance of the moral com- munity which has to be shared between the prince and the clergy. The Dreistndlehre was closely associated with the second doctrine, which elab- orated a sharp distinction between the inner and outer governance of the church. This, as we have already observed, was intended to reserve certain ecclesiastical powers preaching, administration of sacraments, the power of the keys solely to the clergy, while conning the princes role to the external administration and defence of the church. Finally, the two-person doctrine (Zwei-Personen-Lehre) taught that just as Christs person united his divine and human natures, so too the ruler united two personae, those of bishop and civil sovereign. This allowed legal theolo- gians to argue that the prince receives his rights from two dierent From moral philosophy to political jurisprudence .6: sources, Imperial canon law and territorial Staatsrecht. The princes epis- copal rights should therefore limit his exercise of territorial sovereignty, while this exercise should in turn be governed by the purpose of his epis- copal oce, the defence of the faith. In all three doctrines, by establish- ing the interdependency of civil and religious oces, the metaphysical conceptions of the integral person and the moral community (church) oered religious intellectuals a weapon to combat the complete absorp- tion of their estate powers into the summum imperium of the sovereign ter- ritorial state. In using Pufendorf s conception of dierentiated moral oces to crit- icise these doctrines, Thomasius Das Recht evangelischer Frsten in theologis- chen Streitigkeiten shows that civil philosophys attack on the Christian metaphysics of the person represents something far more momentous than a conict between rival moral philosophies. Written in response to Carpzovs attempt to restrict the states capacity to intervene in religious controversies, this disputation again reveals the degree to which the attack on university metaphysics was central not only to the desacralisa- tion of political culture, but also to the political subordination of the clerical estate to the territorial state. In arguing that, as part of the churchs teaching estate, orthodox theology faculties possess the civil jurisdiction to decide theological controversies and in further arguing that the prince, by virtue of his joint episcopal and civil personae, has a duty to compel church attendance Carpzov demonstrates typical orthodox uses of the Dreistndlehre and the two-persons doctrine. Thomasius attack on these arguments provides an object lesson in the historical role of Pufendorf s doctrine of imposed moral entities, and his natural law more generally. In the rst place, argues Thomasius, Carpzov is wrong to claim that the church consists of the political, clerical, and popular estates; for these statuses pertain to the civil state and not the spiritual community, which consists only of the statuses of teacher and auditor: Here all the other ends pertaining to man cease. Hence just as it would be illog- ical for me to take the Christian church which contains nobles and non-nobles in a spiritual community and wish to divide it into the noble and non-noble, so it is also inept if one says that the Christian church consists of the civil author- ity, teachers and subjects; because these are moral entities not regarded in the Christian church. And, in this respect and purpose, the rst and last of these persons would be relinquished, in that they pertain only to the worldly state, while on the other hand in the church they are considered only as auditors. (RFS, ) .6. Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics Given that the persons of subject and ruler do not exist in the church given that here there is no civil authority Carpzov has no grounds for claiming that theologians possess the civil authority to adjudicate public theological controversies. Next, the fact that the individual who is prince may also be a member of the church, does not mean that he represents his princely persona in the church. Citing Pufendorf as his authority, Thomasius insists that: It is a known fact that an individual may represent several personae in accordance with the dierent oces he bears (RFS, ). The doctrine that the prince unites a religious and a civil persona bishop and sove- reign within a single capacity is thus based on a confusion. Instead, the prince is the bearer of three statuses, each of which imposes its own duties. As a man, the prince is like all men in being bound by the natural law of sociable love for his fellow man. As a Christian the prince is bound to observe the laws of Christianity and, in recognising the common misery of the human race, to trust in the redeemer and hope to acquire a true living faith, which consists in the living of a good life. As a prince, however, the princes only duty is to maintain the public peace and security of his subjects, using appropriate means of compulsion (RFS, .6). This means that the princes sovereign right of religious supervi- sion may not be divided or limited, as if his religious persona had some share in it: If one observes that rights in religious matters are just as much a part of sovereign majesty as other regalia [royal rights], owing from the same source as the others, then one would not come to this two- fold consideration of the prince (RFS, ). At the same, however testifying to the liberal wing of Thomasius desacralising strategy this division of oces also means that the prince may not seek to full religious duties in his civil person. As subjects of a desacralising state, citizens should not be required to be holy, only law- abiding: From this end [social peace] one learns the duties of the prince quite clearly . . . And given this end it is not necessary that subjects ded- icate their whole hearts to the cultivation of virtue . . ., but it is enough for this that they refrain from external vice to the extent that it disturbs the peace (RFS, .8). Given that the states rights and powers reach no further than the preservation of external peace, then the prince must not attempt to rule in such a way as to make his subjects holy: Now it follows . . . that the duty of a prince goes no further than external peace; and if he preserves this among the subjects then he has fullled his duty. If therefore he wishes to go further, then he manifests himself in the person of a From moral philosophy to political jurisprudence .6 man or a Christian, in which capacities, though, a prince may use no coercive force, but only the sound reason and Christianity that each man and Christian may use in relation to those he seeks to lead to the right path. (RFS, 6:.) Hence, while the prince has the right to compel the termination of public theological disputes he may do so only in accordance with his political oce that is, only when they threaten civil order. This means that he must do so in complete disregard of the truth or falsity of the contending doctrines. Otherwise, he must leave his subjects to resolve such matters through their own reason, in their capacities as teachers and auditors; for, just as the laws of grammar lie beyond the princes civil authority, so too do religious truths (RFS, 8.). It should already be clear that the tremors from this reconstruction of the moral and political landscape would shake cultural precincts well beyond those of Lutheran orthodoxy. If transcendent truths play no role in the renovation of mans will, and if the legitimacy of political rule is dependent on the sovereign eschewing all interest in transcendent truths, then it is not only religious doctrine that must be excluded from the sphere of political authority. So too must metaphysical ethics and, indeed, the domain of academic practical philosophy more generally; for it also teaches that mans perfection is intellectual and that the end of politics is tied to mans moral completion. As we have seen, Thomasius was acutely aware that it was not just in moral theology that civil duties were held to be dependent on adherence to true intellectual doctrine and the doctrine of the true intellect. This also occurred in those rationalist philosophical doctrines which taught that man accedes to this civil duties through contemplation of pure concepts of goodness and justice, and that man could come to govern his own conduct through the perfection of his intellect (VKR, i, :o:). For, in teaching that the exercise of civil governance should be grounded in the pursuit of moral perfection, these doctrines continued to reserve a place for the morally perfect in the exer- cise of civil power. This accounts for the drive to harmonise the gures of the sage and the prince philosophy and government in the whole line of metaphysical philosophy that stretches from Leibniz through Wol to Kant and beyond. As the direct inheritor of this lineage, modern (neo-Aristotelian and neo-Kantian) moral philosophy continues to treat politics as grounded in and limited by the need to realise moral personality. In imagining that political society might one day converge with moral community, moral philosophy maintains the church as a political concept; and in insisting that the moral exercise of civil authority requires the co-operation of .6 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics philosophers and statesmen, it harbours the image of the political sage. As a result, while moral philosophy honours one half of Pufendorf s formula for civil society that there is no civil jurisdiction over truth it represses the other half: that truth should have no civil jurisdiction. This is because it continues to teach that the legitimacy of government depends upon realising the moral personality or moral community, which requires the political actualisation of moral philosophy. It has been argued that this failure to observe the separation of political and moral governance can imbue rationalist philosophy with an intolerant cultural and political demeanour (Koselleck :q8.). As we have noted (..), Leibnizs attack on Thomasius decriminal- isation of heresy in which he insists on error remaining punishable as the condition of building a society based on truth shows that this problem is more than just a theoretical possibility. If Leibniz continued to regard heresy as a crime that is because, for rationalist metaphysics, civil duties are acceded to through personal insight into moral ideas, and civil governance is conditional on moral self-governance. In thus grounding civil and transcendentalmoral duties in a single source the practice of contemplative self-governance metaphysical ethics prom- ises to redeem political compulsion through the recovery of its justifying moral principles; yet, in doing so, threatens to make these principles politically compulsory. As we shall now see, it was not Leibniz but Kant who rescued political metaphysics and political eschatology from the onslaught launched by Pufendorf s and Thomasius civil philosophy. It was Kant who showed moral philosophers how to re-enter the domain of political governance from which they had been expelled. They would return not as a clerical estate possessing its own share of civil authority, but as a clerisy of academic intellectuals, claiming powers from a source higher than the end of social peace critical reason. \r+rnvonn: +nox\si ts, vorrr, \xn +nr ri r+i s +s In :.o Christian Wol (:6q:) published his Vernnftige Gedanken von Gott, der Welt und der Seele des Menschen, auch allen Dingen berhaupt (Rational Thoughts on God, the World, the Human Soul, and all Things in General), usually referred to as the German Metaphysics. Occurring eight years before Thomasius death and four years before Kants birth, this publication signalled the return of a full-blooded metaphysical scholasticism to the Protestant university, in fact to the University of Halle where Thomasius remained a leading gure. Despite its occasional appeal to Cartesian Afterword: Thomasius, Wol, and the Pietists .6 method, Wols German Metaphysics represents an elaboration and systematisation of Leibnizs metaphysics. While paying less attention to Leibnizs monadology and doctrine of pre-established harmony, Wol draws directly on his mentors principles of contradiction and sucient reason, treating them as the means by which the philosopher abstracts from empirical appearances and ascends to the pure concepts or divine perfections that contain the possibility of things. The German Metaphysics thus possesses the same theo-rationalist char- acter as Leibnizs Discourse on Metaphysics, with Wol treating the world as the mirror of the divine perfections and its creatures as reections of the divine intellect: And after that nothing remains than that the world represents Gods perfections as in a mirror. This is the intention which God can realise through the world, and one is wont to call it the glorication or splendour of God: that one may therefore say, God has made the world for the sake of his glory (GM, :o, 68). Using a Scotist interpretation of the principle of contradiction as the law through which a divine intellect joins atomic possibilia into the concepts of empirically possible things Wol improvised his own version of the traditional scholastic conception of metaphysics, calling it the science of the possible as possible. For their part, the empirical or historical sciences represent a less exalted level of the metaphysical hierarchy. Like Albertus Magnus, Wol treats these sciences as apprehending the possi- bilia not as they issue timelessly from the divine intellect, but only in the obscure and fragmentary form in which they are given to the human senses in time. Moreover, by treating God, too, as bound by the laws of intelligible possibility, Wol could entertain the rationalist conjecture that the laws of the universe would remain whether God existed or not. We need to recall however that, despite the common interpretation of it as symptomatic of the secularisation of metaphysics, this conjecture was in fact a standard anti-voluntarist trope of theo-rational metaphysics (Tierney :qq, ::q). If Wols German Metaphysics represents the transformation of Leibnizs metaphysical sketches into a full-blown rationalist scholasti- cism, then the ethical, theological, and political outworkings of this doc- trine are also strikingly similar to those adumbrated by Leibniz. Wols German Ethics the Vernnftige Gedanken von der menschen Tun und Lassen zu Befrderung ihrer Glckseeligkeit (Rational Thoughts on Human Conduct, for the Promotion of his Happiness) may be regarded as an elaboration of Leibnizs metaphysical conception of morality. Like his predecessor, Wol treats the contemplation of the divine perfections or concepts as .66 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics the means by which humans perfect their intellectual natures, thereby aspiring to a condition of rational self-purication in which rational conduct and felicity are one and the same. He leaves us in no doubt as to the theo-rational character of this construction of morality: Because a rational man is a law to himself and apart from natural obligation needs no other, so neither rewards nor punishments motivate him to good actions and to the avoidance of evil ones. And therefore a rational [man] accomplishes the good because it is good, and refrains from the evil because it is evil: in which case he will be similar to God, who has no superior to obligate him to do the good and refrain from the evil, but does the former and refrains from the latter through the perfection of his nature. (GE, 8, pp. .8q) Even more so than Leibniz, Wol conceived rationalist metaphysics as an alternative religion. In treating the purifying ascent to the divine per- fections not just as the key to natural theology but also as the foundation of a civil religion one capable of overcoming confessional division and reunifying Christendom Wol rendered explicit the quasi-religious character of his mentors metaphysics. Finally, in his German Politics or Vernnftige Gedanken von dem gesellschaft- lichen Leben der Menschen und insonderheit dem gemeinen Wesen (Rational Thoughts on the Social Life of Man and in particular the Republic, :.:) Wol reveals the consequences of using Leibnizs metaphysics to interpret the politi- cal pact and the formation of the state. As might be expected, he treats the political pact as the contract through which men enter into society on the condition that the state will perfect their intellectual nature (GP, .::, ). Wol thus ignores Pufendorf s focus on the imposition of civil sovereignty as the means of achieving security, endorsing instead the moralteleological conception of the state mis-ascribed to Pufendorf by his neo-Aristotelian interpreters. In keeping with this conception of the state, Wol conceives civil authority as unifying the two persons of the sage and the prince, as outlined in his essay Von den Regenten, die sich Weltweisheit beeistigen, und von den Weltweisen, die das Regiment fhren (On Princes who Cultivate Philosophy, and on Philosophers who Direct Government, :o). Here Wol adduces two main arguments for grounding the exer- cise of civil sovereignty in philosophical knowledge and its transcendent truth. First, considering that like all empirical phenomena the state is merely the sensory appearance of transcendent concepts, and given that only the metaphysician has full access to these, then only the sage may determine the true end of the state namely, the perfection of mans intellectual nature (VRW, .q:). Second, as the true direction of government requires a ruler who has puried himself of all self-interest Afterword: Thomasius, Wol, and the Pietists .6 and thereby acts on the basis of rational insight alone, only the meta- physical sage is in a position to direct the government (VRW, 6). Having established the metaphysical continuum between the pursuit of moral perfection and the exercise of civil power, Wol is able to justify the use of civil coercion to compel this perfection, demanding not just that Deists and atheists be stripped of their citizenship, but also that books be censored and religious worship be made compulsory (Dreitzel :qq, ). Even more indicative of the neo-confessional character of Wols metaphysical programme is that fact that, in his natural law, he seeks to make natural religion itself politically compulsory (Link :q8, ::6). Unlike the natural religiondeveloped by Pufendorf and Thomasius, Wols is not a minimalist theology subordinate to the end of social peace. Rather it is a fully edged civil religion grounded in the truth of Wols natural theology, again fullling the tendency towards a compul- sory metaphysical religion that we noted in Leibniz. Given the completeness of the opposition between Thomasian civil philosophy and Wolan metaphysics beginning with their rival con- ceptions of philosophy and its relation to theology, reected in their fun- damentally dierent ethical and natural law doctrines, and issuing nally in radically opposed conceptions of the relation between politics and transcendent morality we should not be surprised that they came into conict at Halle. Despite their private animosity, however Wol describing Thomasius as a mathematical idiot in a letter to Leibniz this was a war carried out by proxy, through the followers rather than the masters themselves. As Arndt has shown, the conict between Halles Thomasians and Wolans occurred earlier than and indepen- dent of that between Wol and the Pietists, beginning in ::o, well before Wol ocially launched his metaphysical programme, and trig- gered by his defence of mathematical method in philosophy (Arndt :q8q). Still, even at this stage, it was the metaphysical grounding and claims of Wols mathematical method his treatment of it as an ars combinatoria capable of determining the possibilia of the objects of all the sciences that aroused the opposition of Thomasius followers. Yet, for all their interest as pointers to the ongoing struggle between the rival enlightenments, these skirmishes between the Wolans and Thomasians were only a curtain-raiser to the major attack on Wols metaphysics that launched by the Halle Pietists in :.: (Hinrichs :q:, 88.:). The Pietist campaign was led by Joachim Lange, an able con- troversialist, and Johann Francis Budde(us), who would become one of .68 Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics Pietisms leading theologians and a representative of the theological enlightenment (Bianco :q8q; Sparn :q8q). Despite the comprehensive nature of their attack on what they chris- tened the LeibnizWol philosophy, Lange and Budde singled out two aspects of Wols metaphysics for special attention. First, they targeted the fatalism of Wols metaphysical cosmology. According to Budde, in treating divine intellection as the source of the intelligible substances while simultaneously treating Gods will as bound by the logic of choos- ing the best possible set of relations between these substances the best possible world Wols metaphysics subordinates the divine will to cosmic necessity. Not only does this appear to make God responsible for the worlds evil, it also deprives human action of the freedom necessary for sin, responsibility, and justication (Budde :., 8:o, 68., :.). Secondly, the Pietists took issue with Wols metaphysical anthropology. Here, Budde argues, in adopting Leibnizs bifurcated doc- trine of the active intellectual soul and the passive senses, together with the associated doctrine of the pre-established harmony of soul and body, Wols anthropology is completely inimical to Christian morality. On the one hand, Wols anthropology continues the fatalism of his cosmol- ogy by denying the souls capacity to control the body, leading all its actions to be treated as predetermined through their prior harmonisa- tion with those of the body, and depriving man of the free will required for the imputation of sin. On the other hand, by treating the soul or intellect as perfecting itself through self-conformation to the laws of natural perfection, Wols metaphysics excludes divine will and grace from the determination of morality, allowing humans to regenerate themselves through their natural rational capacities (Budde :., :o:, :6, :86). In short, Lange and Budde were reactivating some of the classic argu- ments of Lutheran voluntarist theology, hostile to both monistic philo- sophical conceptions of Gods relation to the world, and to the Pelagian doctrine that man might regenerate himself through philosophical self- purication, without need of the means of grace provided by Christian faith. Moreover, they were directing these arguments against a metaphysical philosophy which, we have argued (..), was itself the product of a Platonistic modication of seventeenth-century Lutheran Schulmetaphysik. In the event, after a protracted intellectual and political battle involving both sides making representations to the court in Berlin, the appointment of an investigative commission, and the direct Afterword: Thomasius, Wol, and the Pietists .6q participation of the cabinet and Friedrich Wilhelm I the controversy ended in November :., with Wols dismissal from the university and exiling from Brandenburg-Prussia by royal decree (Hinrichs :q:, q:8). If the conict between Thomasians and Wolans oers us a further window onto the conict between civil and metaphysical philosophy, then Wols battle with the Pietists is indicative of the longstanding conict between Lutheranisms metaphysical and voluntarist wings. The Halle events thus provide us with a snapshot of the German academys intellectual civil war as this passed into the eighteenth century. With the notable exception of Hinrichs valuable study, however, the standard interpretations of these events fail to reveal their historical signicance. For a long time Wols exiling was interpreted as a victory of religious obscurantism over philosophical Enlightenment a victory soon to be reversed, with the great philosophers triumphant return to Halle in :o at the request of the enlightened Frederick II (Beck :q6q, .6:; Zeller :86.). The inadequacy of this interpretation should already be clear. In treating Wolan doctrine as grounded in secular reason as opposed to religious authority, it overlooks the cultural and religious dimension of Wols metaphysics, thereby misunderstanding the character of the Pietist opposition to it. In presenting his metaphysics as an integral anthropology and cosmology, holding the key to both personal regener- ation and socio-moral renewal, Wol was responsible for launching metaphysics as an academic religion. Attuned to the manner in which Leibnizs metaphysics transferred the formerly esoteric authority of metaphysical holiness to the secular philosopher, Wol took this adum- bration and actualised it at the level of the university curriculum. Far from representing the reaction of religious obscurantism to rationalist enlightenment, then, Lange and Budde were engaging Wol on a shared ground, countering his intellectualist anthropology and cosmology with their own voluntarist kind. Even though their doctrine was oriented to the inward search for the signs of grace and rebirth, while Wols was intended to induce self-purifying philosophical ascent to contemplation of the intelligibles, both were in fact spiritual disciplines administered to overlapping intellectual elites as exercises in moral regeneration. For this reason, we should also be sceptical of a second longstanding interpretation of the Halle events, which unites Thomasius and the Pietists in a line of ThomasianPietist philosophy Rdiger, Ho- mann, Crusius (Carboncini :q86; Tonelli :q:; Tonelli :q). There is of course some justication for this linkage, as Thomasian and Pietist .o Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics thought overlap through a common spiritualist anti-metaphysical theology, and in their shared hostility to metaphysical cosmology and anthropology, with its intellectualist conception of a philosophical path to moral regeneration. Nonetheless, it is misleading to treat this overlap as the source of a ThomasianPietist philosophy. As we have seen, Thomasius spiritualist theology has a quite dierent organisation and aim to the Pietist version, being partnered by a statist conception of political governance, and being directed towards the privatisation of faith, rather than the Pietists general reformation of society. To see this, we need only take note of the Pietists attack on Thomasius decorum doctrine; for in separating the cultivation of decorum from the pursuit of moral regeneration treating the former as suited to a decent public life in civil society and the latter as a matter of private faith and grace Thomasius was rejecting the claims of Pietist deism to provide a single foundation for civil and religious governance; just as he rejected the analogous claims made by the rationalist metaphysicians (Hinrichs :q:, .8). Further, we can observe that, unlike Crusius, Thomasius was not interested in harmonising academic philosophy and voluntarist theology. On the contrary, he explicitly rejected this programme, seeking to reduce theology to the status of an informulable private faith, and to return philosophy to its role as a propaedeutic training in the liberal arts. Thomasius was not a philosopher in this sense, but a political jurist who realised that Protestant scholasticism was wholly unsuited to the ethical and professional preparation of the young jurists and politici of a decon- fessionalised state. In this context we should recall our earlier discussion of the limits of post-Kantian dialectical treatments of the conict between the Thomasians and Wolans (pp. :.:). In treating Thomasius and Wol as representatives of reciprocally decient philosophical theories a voluntarism that leads to political utilitarianism and a rationalism lacking all grounding in empirical experience this approach uproots the rival intellectual cultures from their ascetic and institutional con- ditions, turning them into mere actors in the theatre of Kantian dialectics (Schmidt-Biggemann :q88a, ; Schmidt-Biggemann :qq; Schneiders :q8b; Schneiders :qqo, :::6). In fact, this tendency to remove the rival intellectual cultures from their institutional settings and political orientations is common to all three of the above interpretations of the Halle events. In addition to reducing the conicting institutional cultures to mere ideas, this deraci- nation has the eect of creating homogeneous epochs on the basis of the Afterword: Thomasius, Wol, and the Pietists .: rise and fall of theories. As we have already noted, this gives rise to the standard periodisation of early modern German philosophy. According to this periodisation, the philosophical dominance of Thomasian volun- tarism characteristic of the rst two decades of the century ends with its eclipse by Wolan rationalism in the :os. This is followed by a melding of Thomasian and Wolan perspectives in mid-century Popularphilosophie; which is in turn superseded by Kants denitive transcendence of the key oppositions in the :8os (Schneiders :q8b). We can conclude our discussion of Thomasius and open the door to our discussion of Kant by indicating the inadequacy of this intellectualist and epochalist treatment of the Halle conicts. First, we recall that Pufendoran and Thomasian civil philosophy did not undergo some kind of universal supersession in the :.os. In fact it remained powerful in Protestant Germanys leading law faculties Halle and Gttingen well beyond this epochal boundary, due to its role in the academic formation of jurists and political ocials (Hammerstein :q8; Rping :qq). In his illuminating account of the teaching of jurispru- dence at Knigsberg during the rst half of the century, Steven Lestition oers important pointers to the reasons for the continuing vitality of Pufendorf s and Thomasius natural law. In discussing the place of Grotius, Pufendorf, and Thomasius in the foundation programme of Reinhold Sahme and the Knigsberg jurists, Lestition suggests that their role was to encourage students (and political actors and state-ocials) to break free of tutelage by scholastic modes of thinking and above all to grasp the way in which the power of princely, territorialstate insti- tutions would end the heritage of religious strife and sectarianism. He further comments that this fostered the renewal of juristic modes of thought encouraging self-disciplining and a functional subordination to diverse roles on various levels below the prince (Lestition :q8q, ). If therefore Protestant Germanys leading law faculties continued to teach Pufendoran and Thomasian civil philosophy long after its supposed eclipse by Wolan metaphysics, this is because these rival philosophies interacted not as competing theories only one of which could be true but as rival intellectual cultures dedicated to the formation of partic- ular kinds of intellectual comportment. Next, we may observe that if Pietism and Wolan metaphysics also interacted as rival comportment formations rather than as opposed theories then neither was their historical relation characterised by a uniform epochal movement from the false to the true, or from religious obscurantism to secular Enlightenment. This helps to account for the .. Thomasius and the desacralisation of politics otherwise scarcely explicable fact that after the period of initial warfare at Halle in the :.os, Wolan metaphysics and Pietist theology under- went a culturally crucial process of convergence and hybridisation. Although we are not in a position to enter into a detailed discussion of this process here, we can shift the burden of proof back onto the stan- dard interpretation. For this argues that through its rationalist reconcil- iation of theology and philosophy, Wolan metaphysics opened the door to a form of Lutheran theology Neology seeking a rational or moral reinterpretation of the Christian mysteries (Aner :q.q, :6o; Beck :q6q, .88q6). As a consequence of our brief redescription of it, however, we may suggest that it was the cultural and religious character of Wolan meta- physics its capacity to function as a spiritual discipline for the pursuit moral regeneration and social reform that permitted its convergence with Pietism, which, unlike the new civil philosophy, was dedicated to just these ends. This interpretation nds some conrmation in the fact that the Knigsberg theologians and philosophers who pioneered the merging of Wolanism and Pietism particularly F. A. Schultz and Martin Knutzen did so by improvising a series of doctrines that mini- mised the dierence between Wols rationalist ascent to the divine intel- ligibles and the Pietist regimen for spiritual rebirth through the inner pursuit of grace (Erdmann :86; Hollmann :8qq; Malter :q). In this new cultural space formed when a metaphysics aspiring to be a relig- ion entered into an alliance with a religion seeking a purely rational moral form it would become possible to elaborate a metaphysical moral philosophy capable of functioning as pure moral religion and, on this basis, to once again propose to rebuild society in the image of the church. The architect of this next renewal of metaphysics was Immanuel Kant heir to Wol, protg of Schultz and Knutzen, and alien to the juristic civic consciousness Sahme and his successors were forging in a faculty nearby but intellectually so far away. Afterword: Thomasius, Wol, and the Pietists . cn\r+rn si x Kant and the preservation of metaphysics 6. : i x+nontc+i ox In this our nal chapter we discuss Immanuel Kants practical philoso- phy his metaphysics of morality, law, politics, and religion in relation to the conict between civil and metaphysical philosophy whose history we have been essaying. Kants philosophy, we shall argue, represents the decisive step in the modernisation of university metaphysics initiated by Leibniz, whose own embryonic programme had since been developed into a new and all-embracing form of Protestant scholasticism by Christian Wol. Despite its lack of direct engagement with the writings of Pufendorf and Thomasius, Kants philosophy thus remains deeply implicated in the intellectual civil war that continued to rage between university metaphysics and civil philosophy. Kants role in this conict, however, has become very dicult for us to discern, as the modern humanities academy is so saturated by Kantian styles of thought that we have come to treat them as timeless. This dehistoricising of Kant is reected in the debate over whether he may be regarded as a metaphy- sician at all, rather than as the philosopher who simply uncovered the subjective conditions of human thought and morality (Gram :q6). It is also reected in those histories that see Kants philosophy as transcend- ing religious, political, and cultural conict altogether as ushering in an epoch of Enlightenment in which all the old divisions would give way to a fully universal and autonomous conception of human reason, char- acterised by the virtues of Aufklrung, Selbstdenken, Perfektibilitt: enlighten- ment, intellectual autonomy, perfectibility (Beck :q6q; Beck :q8; Hinske :qqo; Schneiders :qqo). It is not dicult to demonstrate the prima facie implausibility of this kind of interpretation; for Kants practical philosophy is shaped at every point by a relentless and occasionally vehement rejection of the central tenets and direction of civil philosophy of the Pufendoran kind. This . rejection is manifest in Kants unstinting repudiation of all conceptions of virtue that treat it as a restraint of conduct in accordance with the ends of personal or civil happiness. The following attack on the concep- tion of virtue as outward conformation to prudential law taken from his Religion within the Boundaries of Reason Alone is typical: Virtue here has the abiding maxim of lawful actions, no matter whence one draws the incentives that the power of choice [Willkr] needs for such actions . . . But not the slightest change of heart is necessary for this; only a change of manners [Sitten]. A man here regards himself as virtuous whenever he feels himself fortied in the maxims of observing his duty, but not by virtue of the supreme ground of all maxims, namely duty itself. The immoderate man thus converts to moderation for the sake of health; the liar to truth for the sake of reputation; the unjust man to civil righteousness for the sake of peace or prot, and so on, all in conformity with the prized principle of happiness. (\i.; RRT, q:) This criticism is, of course, a direct echo of Leibnizs complaint that Pufendorf s ethics connes itself to merely lawful actions and ignores inner motives. It is also strikingly similar to the old theologians attack on Thomasius restriction of morality to management of the passions, in the course of which it is argued that the theory of the virtues (through which true happiness is attained) should also illuminate a mans immor- tal soul with the brilliance of the true light of virtue, and implant there these virtues so that the soul may turn to God . . . again ascending to reunite with him, once more able to appear worthy and capable before God (KTS, :..). Kants attack on prudential ethics should thus serve to remind us that it was the civil philosophers whohadinfact sought toconne ethics toout- wardly lawful actions, rejecting all concern with inner motives. Further, it shouldleadus torecall that Pufendorf andThomasius hadindeedcreated an ethics and politics designed to convert the unjust to civil righteousness for the sake of social peace, regardless of purityof heart. After all, we have just listened to Thomasius powerful argument against the political meta- physicians that, considering the end of civil rule is social peace, it is not necessary that subjects dedicate their whole hearts to the cultivation of virtue . . . but it is enoughfor this that they refrainfromexternal vice to the extent that it disturbs the peace (RFS, .8). Finally and above all, however, Kants attack should remind us that in restricting ethics to outward civil- ity regulated in accordance with the end of social peace, the civil philos- ophers were engaged in a profound struggle to desacralise politics and deconfessionalise society the struggle to uncouple civil authority from Introduction . moral truth, the public pursuit of happiness fromthe private striving for moral regeneration. In short, despite what the modern Kantians say, Kants attack onthe moral suciency of outwardlawfulness andpruden- tial ethics allows us to approach himas heir to the main line of German university metaphysics including its constitutional hostility to civil phi- losophy and hence as party to the ongoing attempt to resacralise the domain of civil governance. As in our discussions of Leibniz, Pufendorf, and Thomasius, in order to arrive at an historical understanding of Kants philosophy we must return it to the circumstances of cultural, political, and religious conict in which it was fashioned. Four features of Kants historical circum- stances lend plausibility to our treatment of him as a university meta- physician who was constitutionally opposed to civil philosophys detranscendentalising of ethics and desacralising of politics. In the rst place, after attending a Pietist preparatory school in Knigsberg, Kant was trained by Wolan philosophers at the university, and then spent his entire adult life in the precincts of the University of Knigsbergs phi- losophy faculty; rst as a student, then as lecturer (:o), and nally as professor of logic and metaphysics (:oq6) (Stark :qq). Unlike Leibniz, Kant did not know the life of the court savant. Unlike Pufendorf s, his philosophy was not shaped by the role of political or jurisprudential adviser to government. Further, we have already noted that Knigsbergs philosophy faculty was responsible for elaborating the modus vivendi between Pietist voluntarism and Wolan rationalism. In seeking to reconcile the cultures of moral rebirth and rationalist self- purication, Kants teachers, F. A. Schultz and Martin Knutzen, pro- vided the form in which he would inherit Schulmetaphysik (Erdmann :86; Hollmann :8qq; Malter :qq.). Secondly, if Kant was himself taught by Wolan metaphysicians, then his own teaching was also heavily indebted to the LeibnizWol inheritance. Kants lectures on metaphysics and moral philosophy were based on the same two Wolan compendia A. G. Baumgartens Metaphysica (:) and Initia Philosophiae Practicae Primae (:6o) through- out his long career. Kant was, of course, no slavish adherent of Wolan rationalism. In fact his commentary on Baumgartens texts, published in volumes x\ii and xix of the Akademie Ausgabe, shows that, while he expounded them for his students, he used their divisions primarily as a platform for his own metaphysical and moral philosophising. This is borne out by the surviving transcripts of Kants lectures. In all likelihood produced by professional amanuenses for student use, and now available .6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics in English as the Lectures on Metaphysics (LM) and Lectures on Ethics (LE), these transcripts reveal little if any deviation from Kants published doc- trines. Nonetheless, while criticising Leibnizian and Wolan metaphys- ics for its claims to immediate noumenal intuition and for the perfectionism associated with this knowledge Kants philosophy emerges as an elaboration, criticism, and modication of his metaphys- ical predecessors (Heimsoeth :q.q; Heimsoeth :q6; Schmucker :q6:; Wundt :q.). We shall return to this point below. Thirdly, we must take due note of the institutional centrality of meta- physics to the Knigsberg philosophy and theology faculties. Unlike their contemporaries at Halle, students at Knigsberg expressly the theology students were required to begin their course of six semesters and three years with a semester of metaphysics, the most famous teacher of which during the latter half of the eighteenth century was Professor Kant. The Methodological Instructions to Students, issued in the summer semester of :o, left them in little doubt about why: Metaphysics deals with the rst concepts and principles of all human knowl- edge, and without it nothing in any other science can be possibly explained or proven. It therefore facilitates the learning of all the other sciences because, unlike them, it treats of the world, of the nature of the body, of man and all his spiritual powers, and of God; thus it fosters fundamental insight in theology, jurisprudence and medicine. (Stark :qq, 6) Eighty years after the fact, then, Thomasius proposal to explode the metaphysical unity of the neoscholastic curriculum to separate philos- ophy from theology, replacing metaphysics with history, and moral phi- losophy with his Aektenlehre would seem to have fallen on deaf ears, at least in a faculty charged with the philosophical preparation of theolo- gians rather than jurists. Kant, who had himself been taught metaphys- ics by Knutzen, was in his turn required to teach it to the next generation of philosophy and theology students, which he did with great dedication. Finally, to understand the importance of metaphysics at Knigsberg, we need to take brief note of the universitys cultural and political setting. As the capital of East Prussia, Knigsberg was a frontier post of Lutheran German culture, adjacent to the religiously unreliable Baltic states and multi-religious Poland, and confronted by the vast unknown of Russian orthodoxy. It was in this setting that Knigsbergs law faculty took on the role of forming the juridical civic consciousness of a pro- vincial ruling elite, imitating the forms of legal education and legal governance that held sway in the Prussian centre, but adapting these to the culture and circumstances of the Baltic periphery (Lestition :q8q). Introduction . More importantly for our present concerns, it is also this frontier setting that accounts for the key role played by Knigsbergs philosophy and theology faculties. For it was their joint task to train the Lutheran clergy and schoolmasters of East and West Prussia, thereby functioning as a kind of cultural headquarters for the maintenance of Lutheran religious culture in the Baltic region (Hubatsch :q68). Salmonowicz thus points to the quasi-colonial character of Knigsberg culture when he reminds us that by lecturing in German from a Lutheran perspective, the philoso- phy and theology faculties were doubly excluding the towns Polish inhabitants (Salmonowicz :qq). For, in this way, a foreign language was joined to a foreign religion, forcing these residents to send their young men to Cracow for university education. If the brilliance of the Knigsberg Aufklrung thus failed to illuminate all its sons equally, then neither were the teachings of its sage suited to all hearts and minds. Just as he had been taught by Schultz and Knutzen, Kant taught moral phi- losophy and metaphysics in German to Protestant boys, whose average starting age was sixteen. The majority of these boys came from Prussia, were students of theology, and were destined to become Lutheran pastors, teachers, and academics (Stark :qq, 68). This, as we shall see, turns out to be an important pointer to the role of Kants metaphysics in the delineation and grooming of a certain kind of cultural deport- ment. In helping us to grasp the circumstances in which Kants attack on civil ethics took place, these four aspects of Kants role as a Protestant university metaphysician provide important pointers to the historical meaning and signicance of his philosophy. They indicate that the uni- versity where Kant received his education, and became a celebrated teacher, was one in which the philosophy and theology faculties fullled the same joint function as in other Lutheran confessional universities: namely, the cultural formation of the religious intelligentsia a role sharpened by Knigsbergs role in maintaining Lutheran religious culture at Prussias Baltic frontier. Further, they suggest that Kants elab- oration of a practical philosophy capable of harmonising rationalist Wolanism and voluntarist Lutheranism, undertaken within the frame- work of a curriculum ocially regulated by metaphysics, was the latest refurbishment of the discipline whose role had always been to eect the alliance of philosophy and theology: Schulmetaphysik. In short, despite the widespread view of Kant as a non-metaphysical philosopher who tran- scends the history of religious, political, and cultural conict, we have prima facie grounds for approaching Kants philosophy in a quite .8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics dierent manner: namely, from the viewpoint of its emergence in a uni- versity dedicated to preserving metaphysics as a comportment-educa- tion for religious intellectuals. Still, regardless of their prima facie signicance, unless we can show their relation to Kants central intellectual conceptions and doctrines, these features of his cultural and academic situation will remain only pointers to the historical signicance of his philosophy. To this end, this chapter undertakes a series of tasks. First having prepared the his- torical and methodological ground (6.., 6.) we essay an historical reconstruction of Kants moral philosophy, focusing on its moral anthro- pology and attendant spiritual exercises, and treating these as the key to understanding the manner in which this philosophy was embedded in historical and institutional reality (6.). In doing so, we will be perform- ing the same kind of historical reconstruction as already undertaken on Leibniz, Pufendorf, and Thomasius, approaching Kants moral anthro- pology, like theirs, as the programme for a particular way of relating to and shaping the self. We then discuss the formative role of Kants meta- physical paideia for his doctrines of law and politics (Rechtslehre and Staatsrechtslehre) (6.) and his philosophical theology and ecclesiology (6.6). Throughout, we shall maintain a running comparison between Kants doctrines in these areas and those of Pufendorf and Thomasius. The object of this undertaking is to redescribe Kants metaphysical phi- losophy as a specic historical intellectual culture, neither more nor less true to humanity than its civil rival, but, like it, constituting a particu- lar response to the problems of religious and civil governance confront- ing early modern states. 6. . +nr xon\rs or xr+\rnvsi cs The key to the historical signicance of Kants metaphysics lies in understanding the ascetic or self-formative role of his metaphysical anthropology. The central obstacle to this understanding arises from Kantian historiography for itself. By dividing Kants philosophy into so- called pre- and post-critical phases and by setting the threshold for the transition in Kants supposed rejection of noumenal intuition and the noumenal subject this historiography presumes that Kant transcended all merely historical moral anthropologies, thereby achieving a formal or transcendental recovery of the conditions of subjectivity (Beck :q6q, 6; Schilpp :q8; Schneewind :qq8, ::8; Wundt :q., :). This historiography acknowledges that Kants pre-critical philosophy The morals of metaphysics .q remained wedded to the metaphysical cosmology of a spiritual world and the metaphysical anthropology of man the intelligible being. But it repeats Kants own metaphors of illumination and rebirth of the great light of :6q followed by the awakening from dogmatic sleep during the :os in order to present Kants critical philosophy as indicative of a radical break with his metaphysical past. In this way, Kants later critical use of the metaphysical cosmology and anthropol- ogy is treated either as a leap to a post-noumenal philosophy grounded in experience (Beck, Schneewind), or as the restriction of the noumena to the moral domain (Wundt). This historiography thus ignores the remarkable continuity of concepts, themes, and preoccupations joining Kants so-called pre- and post-critical phases, a continuity rst demon- strated in Joseph Schmuckers unrefuted textual analysis (Schmucker :q6:). Even more importantly, it misunderstands the ground of this con- tinuity, which lies in Kants unwavering life-long cultivation of the disci- pline of university metaphysics. To grasp the nature of this cultivation we must return to our central characterisation of a metaphysical culture. If Kants metaphysical ethics is characterised by a strongly ascetic or self-formative character grounded in the anthropology of mans dual intelligiblesensible being this is because, like Leibniz and Wol, Kant inherited a university metaphysics that made access to its object conditional on the transfor- mation of its subject. This discipline and culture had been formalised in the great medieval scholastic systems, where it was tied to the life-form of a contemplative monasticism. We have already sketched the forms in which it reappeared in Protestant universities at the beginning of the seventeenth century (:.); and we have outlined the Platonistic modications through which Leibniz made possible the broader dis- semination of metaphysics achieved by Wol (..). Moreover, in drawing on Beroald Thomassens remarkable study of Albert the Greats Metaphysics Commentary, we were able to gain an insight into the inner nexus between the pursuit of metaphysical knowledge and the cultiva- tion of a certain kind of subjectivity (:.). This linkage, we recall, is focused in the dual characterisation of the divine intellect simple, immaterial, active, creative, intuitional and the complex human one, which appears as both intelligible and sensible, active and passive, crea- tive and reproductive, intuitional and discursive. In this anthropological dierentiation of rational being, we have located the self-formative dynamics of the culture of university metaphysics. Kants metaphysics is grounded in this same characterisation of the .8o Kant and the preservation of metaphysics divine and human intellects, emblematised in his version of homo duplex as sensitively aected rational being. This is a pointer to the fact that far more of Kants philosophy is pregured in the history of university metaphysics than is generally understood. This continuity takes place not so much at the level of exact doctrinal formulation although here too there are striking similarities but at the level of the intellectual grooming of the being who is to be the bearer of metaphysical knowl- edge. Given our prior analysis of the self-formative use of the metaphys- ical anthropology we have good reason for approaching Kants metaphysics of morals as a discipline for shaping the moral deportment of the metaphysician. In doing so we shall arrive at a new understand- ing of the relation between Kants pre- and post-critical philosophy, so- called, and thereby at a better understanding of his role as a university metaphysician. We have already noted that Kants characterisation of the noume- nonphenomenon relation is pregured by the longstanding metaphys- ical construction of the relation between divine and human intellection. In the Critique of Pure Reason, Kant thus characterises the noumena or pure intelligibles in terms of a simple active intellect that creates the noumena by intelligising them; and he characterises phenomena in terms of the appearance of the intelligibles to rational beings whose passive sensory apparatus cuts them o from divine intellectual intuition (CPR, A.6o, B.q:). Those who argue that Kants critical philos- ophy represents a fundamental break with university metaphysics do so by treating the inaccessibility of the noumena as indicative of Kants turn to an experience-based philosophy. It should already be clear that this reading of the history is premised on a fundamental misunderstand- ing. After all, metaphysicians from Albert to Leibniz also declare that the noumena or divinely intelligised substances are not directly accessible to a rational being possessing mans passive sensory apparatus. The point is that the inaccessibility of the noumena belongs to a particular spiri- tual paideia. In presenting the pure intellection of the substances as unavailable to a sensiblerational being such as man, this paideia is designed to induce and intensify the longing to behold such substances a pathos which in turn drives the self-purifying exercises of metaphys- ics as an intellectual ethos. In Wittgensteins succinct formulation, pre- senting limits to the human understanding satises a longing for the transcendent, because in so far as people think they can see the limits of human understanding, they believe of course that they can see beyond them (Wittgenstein :q8o, :). We can therefore shift the burden The morals of metaphysics .8: of proof onto those who presume that in proclaiming the inaccessibility of the noumena to human understanding Kant was eecting a radical break with Schulmetaphysik and its culture. In fact, there is every reason to conclude that this proclamation, like its Albertian prototype, is a means of inducing and intensifying the desire for metaphysical knowledge. Nonetheless, it might be said that Kants shifting of the goal of meta- physical knowledge from theoretical objects to moral laws itself marks a fundamental departure from the culture of university metaphysics. Those who take this stance usually treat Kants discovery or invention of the categorical imperative as marking such a departure. Their assump- tion is that, prior to this, university metaphysics had been consequen- tialist or committed to constructing morality in terms of some kind of good end generally the perfection of rational being rather than in terms of unconditional commands arising from mans practical reason or higher self. Not only is this view historically inaccurate, we shall now see that it is formulated in a language that is itself deeply embedded in the culture of university metaphysics; for all anti-consequentialist moral philosophy arises directly from the culture of metaphysical autarky. As the means of cultivating intellectual autonomy the complete freedom from all dependency on material outcomes that comes from contemplat- ing rational being metaphysics is constitutionally anti-consequential- ist, which makes Kants formulation of the categorical imperative far less epoch-making than it seems. We can clarify this point, and Kants rela- tion to the culture of metaphysics more broadly, by briey returning to Alberts metaphysics. According to Thomassen, Alberts metaphysics is intrinsically ethical because it is the discipline for cultivating the contemplative ethos required for metaphysical knowledge (Thomassen :q8, :oq:o). Albert, we recall (:.), constructs the contemplative life as the most virtuous via the Aristotelian dierentiation between the two ends of human life contemplative and civil happiness which is in turn grounded in the dis- tinction between activities whose end lies in themselves and those whose ends lie outside them. Contemplation, or rational beings action of thinking and realising itself, is the only activity that contains its own end or is good in itself ; for by being its own end or good it depends on no other goods or ends outside itself, thereby unifying all the goods and becoming autarkic. Civil happiness represents a lower form of life, however; for it arises from the prudential pursuit of extrinsic ends typ- ically those of commercial and political life whose morality is uncer- tain and whose realisation is always threatened by the contingency of .8. Kant and the preservation of metaphysics action in the material world. We have already noted that this subordina- tion of the civil to the intellectual life is grounded and shaped in the metaphysical anthropology. According to this, through speculative thought the active intellect enlightens mans higher rational being, per- mitting it to rise to the domain of the intelligences or noumena. Prudential virtue and civil activity, however, are viewed as products of the lower or unenlightened part of mans being, governed by the ends of useful actions in the civil world. If Kant needed no direct knowledge of Pufendorf or Thomasius in order to display contempt for those who cultivate civil righteousness for the sake of peace or prot . . . all in conformity with the prized princi- ple of happiness, this was because he could t their kind of civil philos- ophy into the hierarchy of forms of ethical life to which he had been inured through his own metaphysical enculturation. We glimpse the metaphysicalanthropological basis of Kants hostility to prudential ethics in the comments immediately following his display of contempt for those who cultivate civil righteousness in this consequentialist manner: But someone who wishes to become not merely a legally but a morally good man (pleasing to God); that is, virtuous in accordance with the intelligible char- acter [of virtue] (virtus Noumenon), and who needs no other incentive to acknowl- edge something as a duty than the idea [Vorstellung] of duty itself this, so long as the maxims remain impure, cannot take place through gradual reform, but must rather be eected through a revolution in the disposition [Gesinnung] of man (a transition to the maxim of holiness of disposition). And so a new man can come about only through a kind of rebirth, as it were through a new crea- tion (John, : ; compare with Genesis, :: .) and a change of heart. (\i.; RRT, pp. q:.) This suggests that, rather than representing an innovation symptomatic of a break with intellectualist metaphysics, Kants hostility to prudential ethics, and his anti-consequentialism more generally, are in fact improv- isations on longstanding doctrines whose role was to elaborate and val- orise the contemplative ethos. We gain further conrmation of this conjecture by briey consider- ing Alberts treatment of metaphysics as the path to moral autonomy. Albert elaborates moral autarky in his account of the way in which the unmoved rst substance moves the separated substances or intelli- gences that aspire to unity with it (Thomassen :q8, :66). The only way in which this can occur is if the rst substance constitutes the good, thereby motivating the intelligent beings through their desire for the The morals of metaphysics .8 good. Albert explicates this by dividing the desirable goods into those that are good in themselves and those only accidentally good. The acci- dental goods or ends are not chosen for their own sake but as Albert says in a formulation that will be immediately familiar to readers of Kant only because they promise to satisfy the utilitarian desires of the sensible world, which means that they are always only means to the satis- faction of other ends, ad innitum (:66, fn. 88). As the nal moving good, the rst substance cannot therefore belong to the domain of accidental goods and must rather be the good in itself, just as, in the course of con- structing the categorical imperative, Kant characterises rational being as something whose existence has in itself an absolute value . . . which as an end in itself could be a ground of determinate laws (i\..8; PP, 8). In the same manner, therefore, as theoretical contemplation that is, due to its freedom from extrinsic ends and purposes the prime moving good acquires the quality of autarky. Moreover, the moral autarky of Alberts rst substance is an expression of its intellectual nature. For the fact that there are no conicting ends in the intelligible world (spiritus mundi) means that the intellectual good is self-consistent and completely unied, unlike the accidental goods of the material world, which come into conict because of the diversity of desires they are meant to satisfy. Finally, the fact that intellectual good is realised immediately in self-con- templation means that, unlike material good, it is independent of all consequences in the temporal and spatial world. Readers of Kant will of course recognise here many of the central themes of Kants metaphysics of morals. In particular, we nd clear pregurations of Kants contemplative anti-consequentialism; his dis- tinction between categorical and prudential motivation; his associated distinction between the good in itself and the accidentally good; his doc- trine that morality consists inthe purely formal unity of moral ends rather than the diversity of material goods; the associated theme of a moral world consisting of a unity of intelligences oriented to a single intellec- tual good, which Kant calls the kingdomof ends; and, nally, we nd a clear preguration of Kants fundamental doctrine that morality arises fromthe manner in which a lower sensibly aected intelligence seeks its own purication through contemplation of a higher autarkic intellectual good the transition to holiness of disposition. Here though we can see these themes in their true historical light, as the doctrinal scaolding for a contemplative ethos focused in a special spiritual exercise. If the foundation of metaphysics depends on inducing the desire for metaphysical knowledge through the inculcation of its anthropology, .8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics then we must learn to approach German university metaphysics as a particular historical Lebensfhrung or culture of ethical life. Further, if the metaphysical conception of morality as the self-transformative appre- hension of an intellectual end that is good in itself is indeed only func- tional for an ethos of contemplative self-purication, then we shall have to change our view of Kants project to provide a foundation for the metaphysics of morals. Rather than seeing the elaboration of founda- tions as a theoretical prelude to the moral life, we shall see that, for the metaphysical ethos, the pursuit of foundations itself constitutes the highest form of ethical life; for it represents precisely that exercise of speculation through which the human intellect is puried and prepared for contemplative felicity. Metaphysical knowledge of morality, we shall now see, is not a theory of mans moral worthiness. Rather it is the goal or condition that man strives to become worthy of through theoretical activity, in accordance with a hierarchy of forms of ethical life that is internal to university metaphysics as an institutional ethos. 6. k\x+ s xr+\rnvsi c\r r+nos It is not dicult to show the centrality of the metaphysical anthropol- ogy to Kants work, from its earliest to its latest stages of development. Although he did not publish a work wholly dedicated to moral philoso- phy until the Groundwork of the Metaphysics of Morals in :8, the anthro- pology of homo duplex is vividly apparent in those parts of his early theoretical philosophy that deal with the moral domain. In the third part of his General Natural History and Theory of the Heavens (:), Kant sketches a theory of morality in the form of a speculative cosmogony a theory of the moral universe derived from its constitu- tive substances. There must, says Kant, be rational beings or intelli- gences on other planets because otherwise these planets would not be of the slightest use to the end of nature, namely the contemplation of rational being (i..). Turning to our solar system, he then constructs a moral cosmogony in which the capacity for theoretical contemplation varies with the moral physiologies of the dierent planetary beings, as a factor of their distance from the sun. The inhabitants of planets nearest to the sun have coarse and lethargic psychologies that mire them in their sensuous natures, making them incapable of theoretical understanding and moral self-governance. The beings dwelling on the outer planets though possess rened and active organic natures, perfectly suited to the activity of theoretical contemplation and the end of morality: Kants metaphysical ethos .8 To what progress in knowledge will the insight of those blessed beings of the highest heavenly spheres not reach! What beautiful consequences will this illu- mination of insight not have in their moral constitution! If they possess the proper degree of perfection and distinctness, the insights of the understanding have far livelier attractions than the sensuous lures, which they are capable of ruling victoriously, crushing them under foot. (i.6o) Man, as the resident of a planet mid-way between the inner and outer heavens, is the possessor of a duplex moral psychology. Tied to sensory knowledge and sensuous desire through the coarseness of his corporeal nature, yet capable of theoretical reection through the neness of his rational being, he must struggle to purify his ambivalent being in order to render himself capable of participating in moralising theoretical insight (i.q). Clearly this speculative moral cosmogony represent- ing man as the nexus of the spiritual and material orders whose duality he embodies in his own higher and lower nature shows Kant impro- vising on the scholastic metaphysical anthropology, attempting to adapt it to the Newtonian universe without compromising its role in program- ming the contemplative ethos. A decade later we see Kant nearing his goal. Here he develops a cos- mological version of the metaphysical anthropology that would remain powerfully present in his mature moral philosophy. Kant published the Dreams of a Spirit-Seer Elucidated by Dreams of Metaphysics in :66 in order to criticise Swedenborgian claims to visionary insight into the spirit world. In presuming the possibility of empirical experience of intelli- gible entities, Kant argues, such claims blur the boundary between mans sensory understanding and his intellectual reason, whose mainte- nance is the task of metaphysics (ii.:.; TP, 8q). Nonetheless, in the course of establishing this boundary, Kant elaborates an account of man as a rational being that remains rooted in the gure of his dual cit- izenship in two worlds, the intelligible and the material. We may imagine, says Kant, that there is an immaterial world or mundus intelligib- ilis. Following the standard pneumatology of university metaphysics, he declares that this world consists of all created intelligences, some of them united with matter so as to form a person, others not (ii..; TP, :q). Unencumbered by corporeality and passive faculties, the intelli- gences of this world are in immediate communication with each other, thereby forming a spiritual community unfettered by the media of space and time. Man, though, is also a member of a world of material entities governed by their causal relations in space and time, and, to the degree that his understanding is tied to this mundus sensibilis through his senses, .86 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics he may have no knowledge of his place in the spiritual community; although this is something of which he may nonetheless be obscurely aware (ii..q; TP, :6.:). Kants reason for insisting on the inaccessibility of spiritual commu- nity to mans empirical understanding is not, however, to foreclose knowledge of it. Rather, it is to shift the locale in which this insight must be struggled for, to the moral domain. The concepts through which Kant eects this shift those of the good in itself and moral autarky con- sidered as the unication of all ends or goods would have been imme- diately familiar to Albert. We are aware of moral impulses lying beyond our own sensible desires, says Kant, through our capacity to sacrice our self-interested ends to the ends of other wills. Through this capacity we acquire insight into the fact that our higher will forms a unity with all other such wills, the spiritual community thus constituting a single general will whose rule (Regel) gives unity to morality: As a result, we rec- ognise that, in our most secret motives, we are dependent on the rule of the general will. It is this rule which confers upon the world of all think- ing beings its moral unity and invests it with a systematic constitution, drawn up in accordance with purely spiritual laws (ii.; TP, ..). As in the Albertian version, the unity of the will is tied to its freedom via the gure of contemplative autarky. By engaging in the only activity whose end or good lies within itself contemplation of the intelligible world the private will frees itself from all ends whose satisfaction depends on consequences in the world of space and time. It thereby joins a cosmic unity or kingdom of ends, the spiritual community or general will. In this manner man apprehends his participation in the intelligible world, where his puried intentions are immediately ecacious throughout the entire community of spirits merely by being thought and are themselves reciprocally puried through this moral unity: For since the moral character of the deed concerns the inner state of the spirit, it follows that it can only naturally produce an eect, which is con- sonant with the whole of morality, in the immediate community of spirits (ii.6; TP, .). Heinz Heimsoeths comments on Kants spiri- tual anthropology and cosmology originally made in :q.. thus remain valid: A pluralistically constructed realm of spiritis, of immortal individuals (of the kind in Berkeleys world or in Swedenborgs), is the tacit background of [Kants] rational faith . . . Every interpretation of the categorical imperative (which com- mands me always to behave in such a way that the maxim of my will could serve as the principle of universal law) in an individualistic sense changes its meaning Kants metaphysical ethos .8 and essentially misinterprets Kants intent. For Kant, too, everything comes down to a community of rational beings, which is made possible by the fact that all of them will essentially the same thing and that in the spiritual-rational core of their being they are totally alike. Only empirical self is individual in the sense of something unique; the special character of individuals is merely a fact; it is not itself something of importance and value. (Heimsoeth :qq, .::6) The main dierence between the Dreams and Kants earlier and more Wolan cosmogony is his insistence that man is aware of his participa- tion in the general will not through a pure theoretical insight, but through an obscure yet immediate moral feeling. Kant introduces this feeling as the form in which mans material nature experiences the law of moral gravity acting on his intellectual nature in the spiritual commu- nity: If the phenomenon of moral impulses were represented in this way, the moral feeling would be this sensed dependency of the private will on the general will (ii.; TP, .). In fact Kant goes so far as to say that, given the dierent sources of knowledge of the two worlds intel- lectual intuition as opposed to sense-based discursive knowledge the individual subject of the intelligible and material worlds lacks personal unity: Accordingly, while it is true that there is one single subject which is simultaneously a member of the visible and the invisible world, it is nonetheless not one and the same person, for the representations of the one world are not, on account of their dierent constitution, the accom- panying ideas of the representations belonging to the other world (ii.; TP, .). Kant is thus able to insist on the illegitimacy of the illuminist claims to empirical experience of spirits. Yet he can simultaneously explain why, in his version of the two worlds, he, as a human being, may be morally aected by his membership of the spiritual community while having no clear recollection of it. But this is simply a pointer to the fact that in the Dreams Kant is putting the anthropology of homo duplex and the ethos of contemplative autarky to two distinct but associated uses. On the one hand, he uses these key elements of the metaphysical culture to defend it against its misuse by popularisers like Swedenborg, who threatened to discredit university metaphysics by turning it into a kind of popular religion. On the other hand, though, he continues to use the pathos of the inaccessibility of the intelligible world for its central self-formative purpose. Once again, its role is to induce and intensify the longing for metaphysical knowledge, here in the form of a moral feeling whose very obscurity incites the desire for insight into the intelligible world that it veils. .88 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics The Dreams thus provides us with good prima facie evidence that Kants moral philosophy emerged as an improvisation within the culture of university metaphysics. Kant, too, ties the founding insight of the metaphysics of morals to an anthropology of the being capable of bearing this insight, and he does so as a means of inducting his students and readers into metaphysics as a contemplative form of life. Why then do we nd so little discussion of the crucial role of the metaphysical anthropology in modern accounts of Kants moral philosophy? For the most part such accounts either pass over the anthropology in embar- rassed silence or, if they do discuss it, treat it as part of Kants pre-crit- ical metaphysical stage, consigned to the past by his great critical discovery of the subjectivity of reason. This discovery, it is claimed, allowed Kant to found his moral philosophy in a principle open to formal construction or available to ordinary consciousness, thereby ren- dering the metaphysical anthropology redundant. This was the view taken by such earlier commentators as Wundt and Schilpp (Schilpp :q8; Wundt :q.). But it is also the view of those more recent commentators who, like Henry Allison, defend what has been called the two-viewpoints interpretation of Kant against the two- worlds reading (Allison :q8, :o). Here it is argued that as a result of his supposed critical rejection of the metaphysical reality of noumenal entities, Kants subsequent use of the distinction between the intelligible and sensible worlds was only to provide a single subject (person) with two perspectives on their moral conduct as intellectually self-generated and as causally determined (Allison :qqo, q66, :o:). While coming from a dierent theoretical quarter, the manner in which Allison transmutes Kants metaphysical anthropology into the transcendental conditions of experience has much in common with Henrichs way of burying the anthropology in an indefeasible phenomenological insight (Henrich :qq, 88). Both are in fact attempts to remove Kants anthropology of spiritualrational being from the domain of competing historical moral anthropologies, in eect by appealing to the kind of insight that such a being would have, were the metaphysical anthropology to be true. Finally, this strategy in turn underlies J. B. Schneewinds treatment, which both acknowledges that Kant possesses an anthropology compar- able with its rivals, yet simultaneously identies Kants with something known to everyone as an indefeasible fact of reason: Kant embeds his conception of autonomy in a metaphysical psychology going beyond anything in Hume or Rousseau. Kantian autonomy presupposes that we are rational agents whose transcendental freedom takes us out of the domain Kants metaphysical ethos .8q of natural causation. It belongs to every individual, in the state of nature as well as in society. Through it each person has a compass that enables common human reason to tell what is consistent with duty and what is inconsistent. Our moral capacities are made known to each of us by the fact of reason, our aware- ness of a categorical obligation that we can respect against the pull of desire. (Schneewind :qq8, :) In treating Kants metaphysical anthropology of noumenal man (on the one hand) as a fantasmatic construct and (on the other hand) as the chrysalis from which mans nal recovery of his true rational being would emerge, this commentary misses the register in which Kants anthropology operates that of ethical self-formation. It is true that Kant is himself uncertain regarding the kind of belief he has in the metaphysical anthropology and cosmology employed in the Dreams. This uncertainty does not indicate however that Kant regards the anthropol- ogy and cosmology as a joke or plausible fantasy, as Schneewind argues (Schneewind :qq8, o). Our analysis suggests that, rather than signifying his incipient relegation of the esoteric anthropology in favour of a common human reason, Kants ambivalence is symptomatic of a quite dierent historical circumstance. If Kant felt called on to defend the metaphysical ethos against its Swedenborgian popularisation into fanatical belief in an empirical spiritus mundi, then he was also acutely aware that Newtonian cosmology threatened to rob the spiritual (intel- ligible) world of all anchorage in the material one (Wundt :q., ::::q). Far from leading Kant to repudiate belief in the cosmology and anthro- pology of the intelligible world, however, this set of circumstances resulted in his elaboration of a new way of assenting to this belief. According to his new mode of assent, the intelligible world should be acceded to not as a hypothesis capable of empirical conrmation, but as a doctrine recommended to us by its moral consequences: If one concedes to these thoughts enough plausibility to justify the eort of measuring them against their consequences, one may perhaps nd oneself, because of their charm, being imperceptibly prejudiced in their favour. For in this case, the anomalies seem to vanish which are normally so embarrassingly conspicuous in the contradiction between the moral and the physical circum- stances of man here on earth. All the morality of actions, while never having its full eect in the corporeal life of man according to the order of nature, may well do so in the spirit-world, according to pneumatic laws. (ii.6; TP, .) This modication of the mode of acceding to metaphysical belief points towards Kants new way of justifying faith in immortality and a divine creator in terms of a moral need of reason rather than as a .qo Kant and the preservation of metaphysics conrmable truth. Moreover, it shows why the modern debate between the two-worlds and two-viewpoints interpretations is beside the point. In constructing a moral plausibility for the doctrine of man as the inter- nally divided inhabitant of the intelligible and sensible worlds, Kant was developing neither an objective moral cosmology nor a subjective moral theory. He was in fact improvising a new way for his students and readers to assent to the anthropology through which their desire for metaphysi- cal knowledge would be induced and their practice of metaphysical speculation impelled. Next we may observe that this elaboration of a moral means of assenting to the metaphysical anthropology was both the eect and the instrument of an ongoing renegotiation of the relation between the eso- teric and exoteric dimensions of the metaphysical culture. For Albert, while all individuals possess the higher part of the soul open to enlight- enment by the active intellect, only a minority possess the organic con- stitution that permits this to occur. This, we may suggest, is a doctrine appropriate to historical circumstances in which only a monastic elite will pursue metaphysical self-transformation. In Kants Natural History of the Heavens, however, all of the inhabitants of planet earth possess the kind of mixed sensibleintelligible natures that propel them towards the joy of contemplation. This, we may conjecture, is a result of the extraor- dinary spread of metaphysical Christianity during the period of confes- sionalisation and early modernity. As a result of this spread, and in order to preserve metaphysical faith against its marginalisation by an anti- metaphysical civil philosophy committed to detranscendentalising phi- losophy and treating religion as a simple private faith university metaphysics was driven to attach its esoteric doctrines to more readily accessible ones. Kants construction of moral feeling in the Dreams is one such strategy, removing the metaphysical anthropology and cosmology fromthe pres- sures of speculative belief by treating them as only accessible via the feeling of right and wrong that we all experience in daily life. We have just seen that Kants argument that we should accede to a purely moral belief inthesedoctrines is asecondsuchstrategy, whichwouldowintohis treat- ment of the belief in God and immortality. For our present concerns, however, the most important of these exoteric representations of the metaphysical anthropology is Kants construction of the sense of duty; for it is this strategy that takes us to the heart of his metaphysics of moral- ity, revealing it in fact to be another version of the morality of metaphys- ics. Kants conception of doing ones duty for its own sake regardless of Kants metaphysical ethos .q: all external rewards or threats, merely out of regard for duty itself has something in common with the unconditional duty ethics of monastic and military orders. Yet Kant is able to use this conception as a surrogate for the central gure of metaphysical moral autarky, treating action in accordance with duty for its own sake as a worldly correlate for the con- templative self-conformation of rational being. In the Preface to the Critique of Practical Reason we thus nd Kant com- menting that in this work he has been able to graft his philosophy onto an available (moral) language and a popular (moral) consciousness, thereby avoiding the charges of unintelligibility levelled at the First Critique: I have no fear, with respect to this treatise, of the reproach that I want to introduce a new language, because here the kind of cognition itself approaches popularity (\.:o; PP, :). He explains his procedure in the accompanying footnote, where he comments that in the Critique of Practical Reason he uses the concepts of duty and contrary to duty to signify the metaphysical notion of action that agrees or conicts with a law actually present in reason as such. Kant further remarks that this distinction in meaning is not altogether foreign even to popular usage, although it is somewhat unusual (\.::; PP, :). Remembering, however, that the law actually present in reason as such is in fact the rule of the general will or spiritual community, and considering that Kant is attempting to graft this conception onto the popular ideal of acting in accordance with the duty for its own sake, we have here a striking insight into his programme for providing metaphysics with an exoteric anchor- age in an available ethical culture. In fact Kants objective is to treat the sense of duty as the obscure feeling of the unconditional laws governing individuals as members of a purely spiritual community, leading them to measure all prospective maxims and duties via philosophical reection on those that could be willed by a transparent community of intelligences. One can scarcely imagine a conception of duty more opposed to Pufendorf s conception of it as the imposition of obligations by the civil authority in the inter- ests of social peace. As the exoteric face of Kants metaphysical ethos, his ethics of duty is centrally responsible for carrying the metaphysical anthropology into the modern period. Here, many commentators accept it as a fully rational exposition of the moral law whose force we are all supposed to feel. We have suggested, however, that the indefea- sible experience of duty that is supposed to ground Kants philosophy as a moral theory is actually produced by the use of this philosophy as a discipline for the spiritual grooming of moral theorists. If this is so then, .q. Kant and the preservation of metaphysics like its Albertian predecessor, Kantian ethics must be regarded not as an attempt to pursue the metaphysical foundations of human moral life, but as an attempt to inculcate the pursuit of metaphysical foundations as the highest form of moral life. It is now time to conrm this conjec- ture by considering the manner in which Kant himself grounds his ethics, in the Groundwork of the Metaphysics of Morals. 6. xon\r rni rosornv \s xr+\rnvsi c\r pai de i a We can begin by observing that the three parts of the Groundwork are organised as an ascending series of steps. This intellectual ladder requires the reader or student to pass from common moral rational knowledge to philosophic, thence from popular moral philosophy to the metaphysics of morals, leading at last to the nal step from the metaphysics of morals to the critique of pure practical reason (i\.q.; PP, 8). Through these steps Kant wants to show, rstly, that the meta- physical idea of morality is contained in ordinary moral consciousness; next, that clear insight into this principle requires relegating prudential moral philosophy in favour of metaphysical; and, nally, that the need for this principle arises from mans dualistic nature as an intelligible being bound to the sensible world. Kant regards the three steps as stages in the analytical clarication of the supreme principle of morality that is given in ordinary consciousness (i\.q.; PP, ). Moreover, despite widespread disagreement over his degree of success, modern Kantians accept this claim. Henrichs formulation is representative: [The Groundwork] begins from ordinary moral knowledge and at rst grounds its argument wholly in evidences [that this consciousness] demonstrates to itself. This is explicable on theoretical grounds; at the time of the Groundwork Kant had already seen, and a little later resolutely empha- sised, that all understanding of moral consciousness had to begin from its facticity (Henrich :q, 8). We shall show, however, that the three steps in fact form the architecture of an elaborate spiritual exercise, designed to lead the reader through ascending levels of speculative self- questioning and self-purication. The character of this exercise can be claried by looking at its crucial opening phase, designed to induct the reader (or Kants students) into a sense of the need for a metaphysical ethics. This occurs in the Preface and, signicantly, takes place via Kants claim to separate the metaphys- ics of morals from all moral anthropology. Kants central contention that there must be an a priori knowledge of the grounds of morality, Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia .q independent of all ethics derived from mans empirical nature and his- torical circumstances is usually treated as a purely methodological dis- tinction, between a pure and an applied ethics. What this standard interpretation fails to understand, however, is that, in university meta- physics, theoretical purity is always the instrument of moral purity. Consequently, this interpretation fails to observe that in imposing the methodological distinction between the metaphysics and anthropology of morals, Kant is actually introducing his core metaphysical doctrine: namely, that morality is grounded in the autarky of the pure intelligences as a community of rational beings, rather than in mans lower empiri- cal human nature. His central argument that to capture the uncondi- tional character of moral obligation one must posit metaphysical knowledge of the law of a community of pure intelligences occurs rapidly and with little supporting argument, in the form of a step from popular moral consciousness to its pure philosophy: For that there must be such a philosophy [cleansed of everything that may be only empirical and that belongs to anthropology] is clear of itself from the common idea of duty and of moral laws. Everyone must grant that a law, if it is to hold morally, that is, as a ground of an obligation, must carry with it abso- lute necessity; that, for example, the command thou shalt not lie does not hold only for human beings [Menschen], as if other rational beings [vernnftige Wesen] did not have to heed it, and similarly with all other genuine moral laws; that, therefore, the ground of obligation must not be sought in the nature of the human being or in the circumstances of the world in which he is placed, but solely a priori in concepts of pure reason; and that any other precept, which is based in principles of mere experience even if it is universal in a certain respect insofar as it rests in the slightest part on empirical grounds, perhaps only in terms of motive, can indeed be called a practical rule but never a moral law. (i\.8q; PP, ) The metaphysics of morals outstrips all moral anthropology because the universe of rational beings, existing outside space and time, outstrips the world of man, which consists only of those rational beings attached to bodies in the spatio-temporal world. Despite Kants claim that it is presupposed in the common idea of duty, the notion that moral obliga- tion is absolutely unconditional in the sense of applying uncondition- ally to the commercium of pure intelligences in which man participates is evidently the product of the esoteric metaphysical anthropology. Ludwig Siep is one of the few modern commentators to note the conse- quence of this notion: namely, that the metaphysical moral law is grounded not in man as such, but in that part of his nature that belongs to the world of the vernnftige Wesen or pure intelligences (Siep :q8q, 6). .q Kant and the preservation of metaphysics But Siep is so disconcerted by this discovery commenting that Kants methodological distinction might conceal the secularisation of a relig- ious morality that he fails to observe that here Kant is drawing on a standard doctrine of early modern university metaphysics. This, we recall, is the doctrine that the true bearer of metaphysical knowledge is not the sensibleempirical human being, but the intellect whose purity and simplicity allowit to participate in the community of non-embodied intelligences or rational beings. In other words, the true bearer of meta- physical knowledge is not man as a rational being but, as Kant has it, rational being in man. The following remark, fromKants reections on his Observations on the Feeling of the Beautiful and the Sublime, captures his way of formulating the relevant distinction: There is a great dierence between being a good man [Mensch] and a good rational being [vernnf- tiges Wesen]. To be perfect as the latter involves no other limits than nitude, [to be perfect] as the former involves many limitations (xx..). We recall that this doctrine performs the ascetic function of induc- ing the desire for metaphysical knowledge, representing it as the perfec- tion of mans highest or best part his rational intellect and as conditional on the purication of his lower sensible nature through spec- ulation. Only the fact that Kant, too, is using the doctrine in this way that is, as a means of tying the theoretical purity of metaphysics to the spiritual purity of the metaphysician can explain the fact that he treats empirical moral anthropology not just as philosophically mistaken but as morally corrupting: A metaphysics of morals is therefore indispensably necessary, not merely in order to investigate, from speculative motives, the source of the practical prin- ciples that lie a priori in our reason, but also because morals themselves remain subject to all sorts of corruption as long as we lack the guiding thread and highest norm for their correct judgment. For, in the case of what is to be morally good it is not enough that it conform with the moral law but it must also be done for the sake of the law . . . Now the moral law in its purity and genuineness . . . is to be sought nowhere else than in a pure philosophy; hence this (metaphysics) must come rst, and without it there can be no moral philosophy at all. That which mixes up these pure principles with empirical ones does not even deserve the name of philosophy . . . much less does it deserve the name of a moral phi- losophy, since by this very confusion it actually damages the purity of morals themselves and acts against its own end. (i\.8qqo; PP, 6) Kants claim to elevate the metaphysics of morals above all moral anthropology is thus wholly dependent on his own metaphysical anthro- pology, which he uses to induct his readers into a particular kind of rela- tion to themselves. Through the metaphysical anthropology Kants Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia .q students learn to relate to themselves as beings whose true selves lie in a higher rational being, to which they may accede only through the purifying activity of metaphysics. Moreover, they come to recognise prudentially oriented empirical moral anthropologies for example, Pufendorf s quasi-Stoic political anthropology and Thomasius quasi- Epicurean Aektenlehre not just as philosophically erroneous but as morally corrupting, as a threat to their cultivation of a true pure self. If therefore Kant is widely seen as oering an a priori metaphysics of morals rather than a material moral anthropology, this is only because of the religious intensity with which the Kantian paideia welds its practi- tioners to its anthropology, impelling them to identify it as their true self. Intense and exclusivist adherence to pure practical philosophy as opposed to the plurality of moral anthropologies is thus itself an outcome of the manner in which the Kantian school inculcates its par- ticular moral anthropology. By presenting the metaphysical anthropol- ogy as the path to a higher moral self, the Groundworks Preface envisages readers who will adhere to the philosophical purity of metaphysics as the key to their spiritual purity as metaphysicians. ... Inducing the desire for metaphysics As we have already noted, Kant presents the rst transition of the Groundwork that from common rational moral knowledge to philo- sophic, undertaken in Section i as an analytical recovery of the supreme moral principle from a popular consciousness already dimly aware of it. Given our redescription of the Preface, however, we can expect that this analytical procedure will in fact take place as an initia- tory spiritual exercise. This will be an exercise designed to induct readers (or students) into the speculative ethos by presenting it as the key to a pure and purifying principle of morality, present, but only weakly, in their ordinary consciousness. This expectation is not disappointed. Kant purports to show the presence of his metaphysical moral prin- ciple in ordinary moral consciousness by leading the reader through four stages of argument. First, he claims that his readers already know that the only unconditionally good thing is a good will (i\.q6; PP, q.). The good will is an incomparably higher good than all the ends we asso- ciate with happiness Power, riches, honour, even health and all the virtues to which the ancient philosophers aspired: Moderation in aects and passions, self-control, and tranquil reection. Next, Kant moves to elucidate this still somewhat esoteric concept by showing that it is already contained in the popular idea of doing ones duty for its own sake .q6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics (i\.qoo; PP, .). Given that the moral worth of an action done from duty arises not from any desired consequences, this worth must depend solely on the purity of the rule (maxim) or principle of its willing. It must depend, that is, on whether the action is willed in a formal or a priori manner, independent of all gratifying consequences as opposed to being willed in a material or empirical manner, in accordance with some self-interested desire. Thirdly, he argues that his concept of duty must be understood as the determination of the will through the mere idea or thought of duty (i\.o:.; PP, 6). If the goodness of the will is not determined by the consequences that follow from its rules, then it must be the mere idea or thought (Vorstellung) of the rule itself that deter- mines the will and constitutes its moral goodness. Finally, Kant claims that in constructing this conception of the moral principle he has done nothing more than clarify a principle already present in ordinary moral consciousness (i\.o; PP, 86o). Given the simplicity of this princi- ple, which requires no sophisticated calculation of the empirical conse- quences of actions, it may be used even by the untutored mind, which need only reect on whether one if its maxims to lie out of self-inter- est, for example could be willed as a universal law for all rational beings. Moreover, Kant already claims to have shown that the principle of enactment of universal law is actually revered by everyone felt sub- jectively as respect for the law for its own sake even if only philosophers have clear insight into its grounds. It should already be clear that there are striking similarities between Kants eliciting of the moral law from ordinary consciousness and Alberts grounding of metaphysics in mans desire for a knowledge that will perfect his intellectual being. In the rst place, Kants opening appeal to the readers existing knowledge that only the good will is unconditionally good, actually takes place in the form of an evocation of the superiority of the contemplative over the active or prudential life. In proclaiming that the ends of happiness and the virtues of self-control are not the highest good, Kants justication is not grounded in any argument against the rival doctrines, but in something quite dierent: an evocation of the gure of contemplative autarky or intellectual auton- omy. This, we recall, is the conception of an activity governed by no external end or good, hence containing all goods, and obtaining thereby the status of the good in itself: A good will is not good because of what it eects or accomplishes, because of its aptness for attaining some pro- posed end, but simply through its willing; that is, it is good in itself and, beheld for itself, is of incomparably greater worth than anything it could bring about merely in favour of some inclination or, if you like, the sum Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia .q of all inclinations (i\.q; PP, o). As in the Albertian version, the infe- riority of the prudential ethos arises from the fact that it seeks happiness in fallible empirical consequences, to which it is tied by mans lower sen- sible nature; while the superiority of the good will is that, beheld for itself , it is freed from such consequences, thereby obtaining the autarky that in fact constitutes goodness for the contemplative ethos: Even if . . . this will should wholly lack the power to carry out its intentions . . . if with its greatest eorts it should yet achieve nothing and only the good will were left . . . then it would still shine like a jewel for its own sake, as something containing its entire worth in itself (i\.q; PP, o). Through his depiction of the autarkic will, therefore, Kant is not reminding his readers of what they already know, for otherwise even the civil philoso- phers would have known it. Rather, he is oering them an image of the being they might become, if only they will turn away from external pru- dential concerns with power, riches, honour, even health he does not include civil peace on this occasion and begin the speculative purication of their inner wills. Secondly, we are now in a position to see Kants appeal to the idea of duty in its proper historical light. It appears here not as the explication of a dicult concept (the autarkic will) through one available to popular moral consciousness, but in its true pedagogical form. Through this appeal, Kant ties the esoteric culture of contemplative autarky to the exoteric one of duty for its own sake, in order to reshape popular con- sciousness. Here the crucial thing to attend to is Kants initial character- isation of duty: We shall therefore take up the concept of duty, which contains that of a good will though under certain subjective limitations and hindrances, which, however, far from concealing it and making it unrecognisable, rather bring it out by contrast and make it shine more brightly (i\.q; PP, .). Lying behind this soft-focus formulation is of course the entire anthropology of homo duplex, according to which the good will, as determined by pure self-active intellection, is mans mode of participating in the kingdom of self-governing rational beings, while his lower sensible faculties the inclinations that attach him to the world of practical ends constitute the subjective limitations and hindrances that give rise to the sense of duty. Like its prototype the concept of moral feeling in the Dreams the concept of duty as respect for the law in the Groundwork is constructed in terms of mans sensed dependency as a material being on the self-rule of the community of intelligences in which he participates through his rational being. Kants formulation of the unconditional or categorical character of moral obligation so [setting aside inclinations] there is nothing left to determine the will .q8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics except objectively the law and subjectively pure respect for this practical law (i\.oo; PP, 6) thus cannot be understood as the mere clarication of a mode of moral subjection that man is already (univer- sally) under. Rather, drawing on the full weight of the metaphysical anthropology, it is a means of putting individuals under the mode of subjection peculiar to metaphysics as a particular moral culture. It is the means by which Kant compels his readers and students to relate to their moral strivings not as impulses that might be satised through the attain- ment of worldly ends, but as the obscurely immediate commands of a higher intelligence within them. In short, Kants explication of the autarkic will through the concept of duty as the feeling of respect for the law is a means of enforcing a relation to the self suited to the prac- tice of speculative self-purication. Third, in this light, one of the most obscure parts of Kants moral phi- losophy the conception of the moral law as one the mere idea of which determines the will, independently of all incentives becomes a good deal clearer. The idea or thought (Vorstellung) of the moral law cannot be understood on the model of concepts in the empirical or mathematical sciences. For, like the thought of the non-embodied substances in uni- versity metaphysics from Albert to Leibniz, this idea is of a pure intel- lectual order the thinking of which requires the purication of the being who thinks it. It is Kants distinction between the formal and material principles of the will the former determining the will through its mere idea, the latter through external empirical ends that holds the key to the interdependency of theoretical and moral purity in his ethics. For to have insight into the mere idea or form of the moral law, independently of all the material ends it might have, means to have abstracted from the sensible ends that tie the will to the empirical world, thereby realising the higher active intellect whose thinking of the moral law is simultaneously self-knowledge and self-completion. As we shall see in more detail below, Kants initial formulation of the moral principle I ought never to act except in such a way that I can also will that my maxim should become a universal law (i\.o.; PP, ) is thus the exoteric instrument for a practice of speculative self-purication. For the conversion of (material) maxims to (formal) universal laws requires the conversion of the sensu- ous (sinnliches) subject of the maxims into the intelligible (holy) subject of the law governing a world of intelligences. Finally, we are now in a position to reinterpret Kants triumphant con- clusion to the rst stage of the Groundwork: Thus, through the moral knowledge of common human reason, we have arrived at its principle which, admittedly, it does not thus think abstractly in a universal form, Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia .qq but which it does have always before its eyes and uses as a norm of judg- ment (i\.o; PP, 8). In fact the true state of aairs is that through the manner in which he interpellates them as subjects of common moral knowledge that is, positions them as bearers of the obscure sensible insight into their rational willing as intelligible beings Kant impels his readers to pursue an abstract universal principle of morality. For this is the means by which they will purify their insight and come to full partic- ipation in the community of rational beings; or, more concretely, acquire the intellectualsocial prestige attaching to those initiated into this puricatory rite. It is not surprising therefore that the metaphysical anthropology should make its rst explicit appearance here in the con- clusion to Part I, after its important work of induction has been done: The human being feels in himself a powerful counterweight to all the com- mands of duty presented to him by reason as so worthy of esteem the counter- weight of his needs and inclinations, the entire satisfaction of which he sums up under the name of happiness . . . [And] from this arises a natural dialectic, that is, a propensity to rationalise against those strict laws of duty and to cast doubt on their validity, or at least upon their purity and strictness, and, where possible, to make them better suited to our wishes and inclinations, that is, to corrupt them at their basis and to destroy all their dignity . . . In this way the common human reason is impelled, not by some need of speculation (which never touches it so long as it is content to be mere sound reason) but on practical grounds themselves, to leave its own sphere and take a step into the eld of prac- tical philosophy. (i\.o; PP, q6o) It should now be clear that any impulse that readers might feel to under- take Kants practical philosophy comes not from any natural dialectic in the human being. Instead, it arises from the manner in which Section i of the Groundwork has taught them to relate to themselves as beings whose true or higher intellectual selves are in constant danger of corrup- tion by their lower sensible inclinations, thereby inducing the desire for pure practical philosophy as the key to their self-purication and self- completion. In short, like both Albert and Leibniz, Kant founds the metaphysics of morals as theory in a desire for pure knowledge that has been induced by the metaphysics of morals as paideia. ..: Formal insight and spiritual purity In ascending from popular moral philosophy to the metaphysics of morals, Part ii of the Groundwork begins by returning to the theme of the corrupting eect of bad philosophy (i\.o6:.; PP, 6:6). It is not the shortcomings of ordinary moral consciousness as such that necessitate the step into metaphysics, Kant argues, but the manner in which this oo Kant and the preservation of metaphysics consciousness is perverted by a popular moral philosophy whose cor- rupting eect springs from its empirical character. We are back on the terrain of competing paideia. According to Kant, in teaching the people through empirical moral examples, and in deriving moral rules from the ends of empirical hap- piness Power, wealth, honour, even health popular moral philoso- phy ruins the capacity for a priori insight into the idea of the moral law. We learned in Part I that this capacity is not only the foundation of a true moral theory, but is also the means of attaining the only uncondi- tionally good thing, a pure will. In limiting itself to moral rules suited to empirical human beings which, we recall, was the limit that Pufendorf and Thomasius imposed on their ethics popular moral philosophy fails to see that the moral law is universal and a priori. In fact it fails to under- stand that this law rules a community of rational beings existing outside space and time, while being felt as an imperative by human beings in the empirical world. In order to combat the corrupting eects of empirical moral philosophy, then, it is necessary to pass from anthropology to metaphysics. Knowledge of the moral law must therefore be derived from an a priori idea which, because it is to apply to rational beings in general, must not be an idea limited to human understanding: All moral concepts have their seat and origin completely a priori in reason . . . they cannot be abstracted from any empirical, and therefore merely contingent, knowledge. In this purity of their origin is to be found their very worthiness to serve as supreme practical principles . . . We ought never, as is permitted and even occasionally necessary in speculative philosophy, to make the principles depend upon the particular nature of human reason. Since moral laws should hold for all rational beings [vernnftige Wesen] as such we should instead derive them from the general concept of a rational being as such. In this way, we should rst completely expound morality as pure philosophy, that is, as meta- physics, independent of the anthropology required for its application to man as can be readily done in this wholly abstract [abgesonderter] type of knowledge. We have already shown that this proclamation of an anthropology-free metaphysics is wholly dependent on the metaphysical anthropology here, closer to an angelology. In keeping with this anthropology, Kant treats metaphysics as the conduit through which the pure will of intelli- gible beings ows into the impure nature of human beings, which ties pure moral knowledge to a pure moral being that must descend into human being: We know well that without possessing such a metaphysics it is vain I will not say to arrive at a speculative judgment of the moral element of duty in every- thing dutiful but that it is impossible, even in ordinary and practical usage, Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia o: particularly that of moral instruction, to ground morals on their genuine prin- ciples and thereby to create pure moral dispositions [Gesinnungen], grafting them onto human souls [Gemthern] for the highest good of the world. (i\.:::.; PP, 66) Kant then proceeds to demonstrate the necessity of metaphysics. Metaphysics, he argues, is the only means by which humans can think the notion of a moral law that necessitates the will unconditionally, merely by the idea of it. (i\.:..; PP, 666). He stipulates that: The idea [Vorstellung] of an objective principle so far as it is necessitating for a will, is called a command (of reason), and the formula of this command is called an imperative (i\.:; PP, 66). The moral law is thus an unconditional or categorical imperative, and the need for metaphys- ics is tied to its capacity to show how a categorical imperative is possible. We can show the possibility of technical imperatives the rules of geom- etry, for example by showing their analytic necessity for achieving a particular technical end, such as the construction of a mathematical gure. Further, we can show the possibility of prudential imperatives as empirically necessary for certain kinds of happiness although these imperatives, being only the (hypothetical) means to realise empirical ends, lack the unity and unconditionality of moral laws. How then, asks Kant, can we show the possibility of the categorical imperative, given that it may not be derived from, or made conditional on, any empirical end or experienced good? Only metaphysics provides the requisite entirely a priori means of investigating this possibility. Further, it takes the crucial rst step in this direction by asking whether the mere thought or concept of the categor- ical imperative might not itself show, if not the imperatives complete possibility, then at least its propositional content: In this task we want rst to inquire whether the mere concept of a categorical imperative may not also provide its formula, containing the only proposition that can be a categorical imperative (i\..o; PP, .). Like the pure con- cepts that Albert and Leibniz behold directly emanating from the divine mind, the idea of the categorical imperative is envisaged as self-inter- preting as revealing its rational content to a creature whose own higher rational being permits it to participate in immediate intellectual intui- tion. The idea of the categorical imperative is thus one that has already been thought prior to its appearance in the human understanding, where it appears in the form of a self-revealing idea: When I think of a hypothetical imperative in general I do not know in advance what it will contain, until I am given its condition. But when I think of a categor- ical imperative I immediately know what it contains. For, since the imperative o. Kant and the preservation of metaphysics contains, beyond the law, only the necessity that a maxim conform to the law, while the law contains no condition to limit it, there is nothing remaining to which the maxim should conform except the universality of a law as such; and it is this conformity alone that the imperative properly asserts to be necessary. There is therefore only a single categorical imperative and it is this: Act only in accordance with that maxim through which you can at the same time will that it should become a universal law. (i\..o:; PP, ) In other words, Kant takes the crucial step towards showing the possibil- ity of the categorical imperative and, with it, the necessity for metaphys- ics, by demonstrating that through a mere a priori thinking of its idea, independent of all empirical ends and experiences, he has immediate insight into its content. This content is in fact the necessity that all sub- jective ends or wills be conformed to a universal law or general will. The rst thing to observe regarding Kants step into metaphysics in Part ii is that it formalises a transition that has already taken place. The idea of rational being as the ground of an autarkic will has been out- lined in the Preface. Moreover, this idea governs Kants extraction of his moral principle from ordinary moral consciousness in Part i, which, we have argued, should be seen as a programme for inducing the desire for metaphysical knowledge in the reader. Part ii thus presumes a reader who has already identied his true self with a hidden capacity for self- determination through the mere thought of the moral law. Further, this is a reader who regards all attempts to derive maxims for the will from external empirical ends such as civil peace and prosperity not merely as philosophically erroneous but as morally corrupting. It is not so sur- prising, then, that Kants hierarchical division of the moral world into just two orders the prudentialempirical and the categoricala priori should be supported by no signicant argumentation. Kant, though, does oer two arguments for the inadequacy of pru- dential ethics: namely, that disagreement over the nature of happiness arising from mans empirical desires robs this ethics of unity; and that the fallibilities of worldly realisation rob it of certainty (.::q; PP, o:). But these standard topoi presume the superiority of metaphysics as an ethos presume, that is, autarkic contemplation as the highest form of life. In fact their role is only to intensify the desire for participa- tion in that ethos, as we have already observed with regard to Alberts use of the same arguments. From this position, had Kant actually encountered Pufendorf s solutions to these problems, then, we may con- jecture, he would have found them morally unintelligible. For Pufendorf, we recall (.), rejects the whole idea of a contemplatively unied moral personality, replacing it with his doctrine of a plurality of functionally Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia o dierentiated oces and personae. Moreover, he secures agreement over the nature of happiness in the one area where this mattered the civil happiness of social peace by delegating its determination to the political sovereign, who could enforce it if needs be. Finally, Pufendorf was of course fully aware of the fallibility besetting the worldly realisa- tion of social peace. He proposes to deal with this, however, not by with- drawing into a self-actualising contemplative felicity, but by equipping the ruler with irresistible powers of political decision and action. For his part, were Pufendorf to have encountered Kants arguments for the insuciency of prudential ethics and the necessity of a priori insight into a universal moral principle and it is likely that he would have been familiar with earlier versions of these he would have immediately rec- ognised them as intellectual instruments internal to the metaphysical ethos. If Kants treatment of prudentialempirical ethics thus reveals no signicant intellectual engagement with its most powerful civil-philo- sophical instances, this is not because he had transcended all merely anthropological forms of ethics by recovering the pure form in which rational being reveals its will to man. Rather it is because his own meta- physical anthropology one might say his own metaphysical encultura- tion at Knigsberg pre-commits him to repudiate prudential empirical ethics as a corrupting reinforcement of mans lower sensible nature. The prudentialempirical ethics discussed in Part ii of the Groundwork is actually internal to Kants metaphysics, and to his meta- physical anthropology in particular. The central role of Kants presen- tation of this ethics is thus actually exhortatory and pedagogical. It is designed to turn his readers away from this cultural rival sight-unseen, as a corrupting threat to the a priori grounding of morality, on which the completion of their true intellectual selves depends: Against this laxity or even ignoble cast of mind, which seeks its principle among empirical motives and laws, we cannot give too many or too frequent warnings; for human reason in its weariness gladly rests on this pillow and in a dream of sweet illusions . . . it substitutes for morality some misbegotten mongrel patched up from limbs of very diverse ancestry and looking like anything you please, only not like virtue, to him who has once beheld her in her true shape. (i\..6; PP, ) In fact, this misbegotten mongrel ethics was, we recall, being taught just around the corner from the lecture hall in which Kant denounced it, in Knigsbergs law faculty. Here Sahme and his successors used Pufendorf s and Thomasius natural law ethics governed by the merely o Kant and the preservation of metaphysics empirical happiness of social peace to grasp the way in which the power of princely, territorial-state institutions would end the heritage of religious strife and sectarianism, and to renew juristic modes of thought encouraging self-disciplining and a functional subordination to diverse roles on various levels below the prince (Lestition :q8q, ). In short, the persistence of detranscendentalised civil ethics in the face of Kants reinvention of metaphysical ethics is symptomatic of the fact that they represent autonomous moral cultures, grounded in divergent a- rational life-orders. The manner in which Kant presents prudentialempirical ethics, however, does play an integral role in his formal demonstration of the possibility of the categorical imperative and hence of the necessity for metaphysics. In fact Kant motivates assent to his apodeictic demonstra- tion of the categorical imperative by presenting the rival pruden- tialempirical derivation of moral rules as both philosophically and morally impure by presenting it, that is, both as a theoretical obstacle to pure (formal) insight into the categorical imperative, and as a moral hindrance to the speculative purication of the rational being who is to bear this insight. This presentation allows Kants discovery of the cat- egorical formula to assume a powerful self-validating rhetorical form: namely, the form of a sudden illuminating breakthrough to a higher order of pure intellection an apodeictic insight into a self-interpreting concept which could of course only be achieved by a puried rational being: When I think of a hypothetical imperative in general I do not know in advance what it will contain, until I am given its condition. But when I think of a categorical imperative I immediately know what it contains (i\..o; PP, ). In this way, the validity of Kants demonstra- tion of an imperative whose meaning and necessity lies in the mere thinking of its idea, comes from his own exemplary performantial think- ing of this idea. Through this intellectual performance he presents himself to his readers and students as a being possessing the moral and theoretical purity required to be the bearer of such an insight. This pro- vides the appropriate light in which to view Kants otherwise enigmatic statement: that perhaps the mere concept of a categorical imperative may . . . also provide us with the formula containing the only proposi- tion that can be a categorical imperative (i\..o; PP, .). If this is so, then the acceptability of the categorical imperative is internal to the paideia of university metaphysics. In addition to providing an appropriate historical interpretation of Kants construction of the categorical imperative, our account also Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia o provides a clear explanation for the double formal and ascetic char- acter of the formula itself, which has been a longstanding topos of Kant commentary (Paton :q6; Williams :q68). For, on the one hand, Kant presents the categorical imperative Act only on that maxim through which you can at the same time will that it should become a universal law as a formal test of morality. As such, the formula is open to all sub- jects, who may determine the morality of their actions merely by reecting on whether their maxims could be willed as universal law, without the need of any erudite analysis of possible consequences (i\..:; PP, 6). On the other hand, it must be observed that Kant construes maxim as the determination of a will distracted by the subjects empirical nature, often his ignorance or again his inclinations, while law signies an objective principle valid for every rational being (i\..o; PP, , fn.). In other words, it becomes clear that to will a maxim as a universal law means to purify the intellect of its sensuous limitations so that it can will in accordance with the mere idea of the law, which means that the categorical imperative is also a formula for the spiritual grooming of the particular being who is to be its subject. In short, only someone who has undergone the ascetic transformation prescribed by the imperative as metaphysical paideia that is, someone who is pre- sumed to have purged their empirical inclinations and prudential ends, and can contemplate the law as the rule of a universe of rational beings will judge in the manner prescribed by the imperative as formal test. This analysis of the categorical imperative is conrmed by, and in turn elucidates, the manner in which Kant exemplies its use as a test, the most well-known of the examples being those of lying and false- promising. Kant repeatedly uses these examples in his ethics lectures, where he tells his students that while it may be possible to will ourselves to lie out of self-interest, it is incoherent and self-defeating to will that everyone should lie, by making lying into a universal law (xxix.6oq; LE, .:.). As Kant says, such examples are not intended as empirical justications for the categorical imperative, whose grounding must never come from experience, but as external indications of the fact that all men do have the imperative in their reason. This, remarkably, is how modern Kantian academics continue to present the examples to under- graduates today. This way of presenting the examples, however, presumes a student or reader already disposed to see himself as a member of a community of intelligences in transparent communication with each other. This o6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics concrete way of relating to the self both drives the test of universalisa- tion (because intellectual beings will identically) and ensures that lying must fail it (because it is contradictory for a being whose nature is pre- disposed to spiritual communio to dissemble). For an ethics grounded in a dierent anthropology and cosmology, therefore, the test of universal- isation need make no sense, and lying can have a quite dierent moral signicance. In Thomasius detranscendentalised ethics grounded not in the Platonic anthropology of rational beings in transparent communio, but in the Epicurean one of passional beings in civil conict there is no imperative to test the morality of lying by universalising it. Thomasius can thus oer a limited prudential justication of dissem- bling, to the extent that this is necessary for personal safety or the secur- ity of the state (KPK, i\.6q, q8:oo). In other words, the categorical imperative is not something contained a priori in everyones reason, but something installed in the reason of certain individuals, as part of their initiation into the moral culture of metaphysics. Perhaps this is enough to show that Kants construction of the moral law in Part ii of the Groundwork cannot be understood as the metaphysi- cal recovery of the principle of pure morality contained in all rational beings. This construction is properly understood as a use of metaphys- ics as a particular kind of spiritual grooming, one whose role is to form subjects who will accede to moral principles as if they were commands of a higher rational being within them. Kant treats the other three prin- ciples discussed in Part ii the principles of humanity (rational being as an end in itself), autonomy, and the kingdom of ends as ways of bring- ing the asbstract moral law closer to intuition without recourse to anthropology. Given, however, our argument that the formulation of the moral law is itself wholly dependent on the metaphysical anthropology and paideia, then we should expect the same of these three further prin- ciples. A few remarks on each of them will be enough to suggest that this is indeed the case. Kants formula for humanity or rational being as an end in itself something whose existence has in itself an absolute value, something which as an end in itself could be a ground of determinate laws is, of course, one we have already seen pregured in Alberts metaphysics, as the formula for the autarky of the divine being. This gure of an intel- lectual being containing its end in itself therefore intelligising and willing solely to realise itself, governed by no external goods and there- fore the subject of all good, existing as pure self-contemplation or pure Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia o self-willing is absolutely fundamental to the metaphysical anthropol- ogy. Its role is to model the life of self-contemplative intellectual being as the highest possible form of life. Kant and his modern followers make much of the fact that for him it is man rather than God who bears this rational being. Kant marks this change by calling this being humanity, declaring that it is the human- ity in us that is good in itself and that, as an end in itself, may never be used as a means to any extrinsic end (i\..8; PP, q). As we have seen, however, it is not the ontological location of rational being that is rele- vant to its function in the metaphysical paideia Albert was indierent as to whether this being was thought of as outside or inside man but its use as a model for the contemplative deportment. In this regard the important point is that Kant loads humanity with all the attributes of the metaphysical God, specically those of self-contemplating and self- willing intellectual being. He thereby establishes a dierence between humanity and human beings similar to that between divine and human being in traditional university metaphysics. As a result of this metaphysical distinction, the Kantian sacralising of pure humanity in oneself and others can be associated with a quite callous attitude to empirical human beings. In declaring suicide to be absolutely and unconditionally immoral, for example, Kant treats it as the violation of humanity as a holy being by the lower order of empiri- cal human beings, intent merely on relieving their own suering: But suicide is contrary to the concept of humanity in my own person; and humanity is in itself an inviolable holiness, wherein my personhood, or the right of humanity in my person, is no less inviolably contained. In fact the sacredness of Kantian humanity is the mark of its dierence from man, providing us with a new and faintly chilling insight into Kants subordination of happiness to morality: It [humanity] demands the duty of morality, and it is only man who demands happiness, which must be unconditionally subordinated to morality. The metaphysi- calanthropological basis for the dierentiation then follows: Personhood, or humanity in my person, is conceived as an intelligible substance, the seat of all concepts, that which distinguishes man in his freedom from all objects under whose jurisdiction he stands in his visible nature. It is thought of, therefore, as a subject that is destined to give moral laws to man, and to deter- mine him: as occupant of the body, to whose jurisdiction the control of all mans powers is subordinated. (xx\ii.6.; LE, 6q) By locating morality in the rational being who is in man in order to defeat all attempts to ground it in worldly happiness Kants principle o8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics of humanity as an end in itself thus gives rise to a purism capable of inicting real suering and indignity on empirical human beings. Kants principle of autonomy bears similar relations, of liation and modication, to the great gure of contemplative autarky. His prime construal of autonomy reads like a paraphrase of Alberts construction of the autarky of the divine intellect. As an end in itself, rational being renounces all interest or ends outside itself and thereby becomes the uni- versal subject of all ends which, in turn, qualies it to prescribe law for all beings, universally: From this there now follows our third practical principle of the will, as supreme condition of the wills conformity with universal practical reason, the idea of every rational being as a will giving universal law (i\.:; PP, 8:). At the same time, Kant again appears to humanise this formerly divine capacity of intellectual being, ascribing it to man, who thereby becomes the author of the law to which he himself is unconditionally subject. In fact, with this emendation, Kant claims to have solved the problem that had defeated all previous moral philosophies. This is the problem of how to obligate subjects to the moral law, other than by determining their wills through incentives and threats which, on his view, rob ethics of the universality and uncon- ditionality proper to rational being: For if one thought of man merely as subject to a law . . . the law had to carry with it some interest by way of incentive or constraint, because it did not spring as a law from his own will . . . This meant that all the labour spent in trying to nd a supreme principle of duty was irretrievably lost. For, one never discov- ered duty, only the necessity of acting from a certain interest. This interest might be ones own or anothers; but on such a view the imperative was bound to be a conditioned one and could not possibly serve as a moral law. I will there- fore call this fundament the principle of the autonomy of the will in contrast with all others, which I consequently class under heteronomy. (i\..; PP, 8.) Despite all talk of autonomy being Kants way of honouring man, however, this construction is not intended to cancel the ontological gap between empirical man and the pure rational being whose self-willing makes it into the universal subject of all ends. For it is only Personhood, or humanity in my person . . . conceived as an intelligible substance that is in fact capable of governing itself through self-imposed universal law. Sensible man, however, driven by transgressive inclinations, must remain subject to incentives and sanctions capable of regulating his desires and preparing him for the rule of his rational self. The principle of autonomy the idea of man as a creature whose intellectual nature Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia oq prescribes universal law to his sensible self is thus not an idea that simply occurs to anyone. Rather, it is an idea which those undergoing the metaphysical paideia are induced to think; for this is how they learn to renounce their attachment to external ends and interests, thereby constituting the autarkic intellect to which they aspire as the legislative source and supreme principle of all duties. Seen in this light, the claim that civil philosophers like Pufendorf and Thomasius did not solve the metaphysical problem the problem of how to make the moral law obligatory without recourse to incentives and sanctions appears in its true form: as a symptom of the chasm separ- ating radically dierent ethical cultures. It is not just that Pufendorf and Thomasius were uninterested in this problem. In fact, as we have seen (., .), they actually attempted to obliterate the metaphysical culture in which it plays a self-formative role. This was why the civil philosophers repudiated the metaphysical gure of God as a self-contemplating self- willing intelligence, and attacked the idea that human beings could be the source of their own duties by sharing in divine intellection. It is also the reason they proposed instead their own anthropology and ethical culture, based on the gure of man as a fractious empirical being whose need for civil peace could only be satised through duties imposed on him by a sovereign will possessing supreme political powers. Far from failing to solve the problem of moral autonomy, Pufendorf and Thomasius expounded an ethical culture that was explicitly and actively inimical to this metaphysical ideal, treating it as symptomatic of the desire of a spiritual elite to place itself above civil governance. Similar remarks apply to Kants nal principle, that of the kingdom of ends. Once again, Kant presents this concept of a pure moral com- munity as one that all rational beings will arrive at a priori, merely by reecting on the idea of the moral law. If each rational being is the self- legislating source of a universal law, then all rational beings, regarding each other as ends in themselves, must form a totality of rational wills. For each is the source of the law to which it is subject through the recip- rocal willing of the others, thereby forming a single general will (i\.; PP, 8). Yet this idea that lies at the heart of Kants notion of the kingdom of ends the idea of a totality of intelligences organically united through reciprocal intellection is clearly a version of the meta- physical notion of the community of separated intelligences already seen in the Dreams: For Kant, we recall Heimsoeth saying, everything comes down to a community of rational beings, which is made possible by the fact that all of them will essentially the same thing and that in the :o Kant and the preservation of metaphysics spiritualrational core of their being they are totally alike (Heimsoeth :qq, .:6). Mans full democratic participation in this community in no way lessens the self-transformative gap between his intelligible and sensible natures. For participation in the self-governing community of intelli- gences is actually conditional on the speculative purication of mans sensible nature. This, as we shall soon see, has striking consequences for Kants theories of law and politics. For these theories are in fact grounded in this gure of a community of reciprocally determining intelligences forming a single general will. Yet they maintain a utopian and potentially dangerous distinction between the ideal intelligible and the actual historical community. For the moment we can again observe that considering themselves as reciprocally determining members of a community of intelligences or general will is not something that all men harbour in their reason. Rather, it is the gure of thought through which metaphysicians imagine their participation in the spiritual community. Kants notion of equal participation in the kingdom of ends the idea of each rational being issuing the laws to which all are subject is thus not a preguration of political democracy, but a thought-gure used in the grooming of a spiritual elite. .. Belief in metaphysics Kant takes the third and nal step of the Groundwork from a meta- physic of morals to a critique of pure practical reason and, with it, the nal step in his demonstration of the possibility of the categorical imper- ative, by formulating and resolving a problem arising from the prior two steps. Reecting back on his discourse, Kant observes that he has pro- vided a grounding for the moral law by invoking the idea of freedom as rational autonomy; that is, the idea of a rational beings capacity to determine its will purely on the basis of self-generated laws. But, while this grounding has permitted him to show the internal relation between freedom and the moral law for the categorical imperative is the only one that expresses the self-legislative spontaneity of the rational will it does not, he says, appear to show why anyone should take an interest in the moral law or subject themselves to it (i\.6q; PP, q). According to Kant, this problem arises from the apparent circularity of the relation between the idea of freedom and that of the moral law: We take ourselves as free in the order of ecient causes in order to think ourselves under moral laws in the order of ends; and we afterwards think Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia :: ourselves as subject to these laws because we have ascribed to ourselves freedom of the will (i\.o; PP, q). As a result: If someone asked us why the universal validity of our maxim as a law must be the limiting condition of our actions, and on what we base the worth we assign to this way of acting a worth so great that there can be no higher interest any- where and asked us how it happens that a human being believes that only through this does he feel his personal worth, in comparison with which that of an agreeable or disagreeable condition is to be held as nothing, we could give him no answer. (i\.qo; PP, q) There is a way out of this problem, however, and it lies nowhere else than in the metaphysical anthropology, which Kant is now prepared to call on explicitly. Man, says Kant, belongs to the sensible world, to which he is attachedby his passive sensibility, andinwhichhe knows himself and his actions only as phenomenal appearances given to the understanding. At the same time, though, he also belongs to the intelligible world, in which he participates through the spontaneous activity of his reason, which he must suppose is the transcendental ego underlying his empiri- cal subjectivity. It is through this image of homo duplex as the nexus of the intelligible and sensible worlds, microcosmically reected in the relation between the individuals higher and lower intellectual natures, that Kant claims to solve the apparent circularity between the concepts of freedom and the moral law: For we now see that when we think of ourselves as free we transfer ourselves into the intelligible world [Verstandeswelt] as members of it and recognise the autonomy of the will along with its con- sequence, morality; whereas when we think of ourselves as under obliga- tion, we regard ourselves as belonging to the sensible world and yet to the intelligible world at the same time (i\.; PP, :o:). According to Kant, then, the circle between intelligible freedom and the moral law which threatens to make it impossible to explain why anyone would take an interest in the law or submit to its commands is broken by the gap between mans intelligible and sensible natures. For this gap is the source of the dynamic tension that leads man to take an interest in the pure moral law and, in fact, to regard himself as bound by it: Hence, in spite of regarding myself from one point of view as a being that belongs to the sensible world, I shall recognise that, as intelligence, I am subject to the law of the intelligible world that is, to the reason that contains this law itself in the idea of freedom, and so to the autonomy of the will; consequently I must look on the laws of the intelligible world as imperatives for me, and on the actions conforming to this principle as duties. (i\.; PP, :oo) :. Kant and the preservation of metaphysics The key to the possibility of the categorical imperative, therefore, lies in the idea of a world of intelligences and our higher selves as members of it. For, in the dierence between this viewpoint and his knowledge of himself as the passive member of the sensible world, man experiences his sensed dependency on the intelligible world, thereby taking an interest in it, feeling himself bound by its laws. This explanation, though, says Kant, marks the outermost limit of philosophical reection on the possibility of the moral law. For, while it may be thus shown that we take an interest in the moral law through the idea of the intelligible world, we are unable to know how we come to take this interest or just what the reality of the intelligible world and its freedom might be. On the one hand, Kant claims that the idea of his membership in the intelligible world is just one that naturally occurs to man: This kind of conclusion must be drawn by a thinking man from all the things that are presented to him (i\.:.; PP, qq). This means that the dierence between his intelligible and sensible natures the dierence that impels him to take an interest in the moral law and to feel his subjection to it simply occurs to the thinking man as the result of spontaneous self-reection. On the other hand, through this same spon- taneous insight, the thinking man becomes aware that he may have no direct knowledge of the intelligible world, owing to the passive charac- ter of sensibility, which connes human understanding to the domain of empirical appearances. We cannot agree therefore with those modern commentators who treat the practical (as opposed to the theoretical) interest in the intelli- gible world as arising from the epistemological critique of this worlds metaphysical reality in the Critique of Pure Reason (ONeill, :q8q, 88). On the contrary, it seems clear that Kant constructs the practical interest by requiring belief in the metaphysical reality of the intelligible world, but as something inaccessible to mans empirical understanding, and there- fore as something that induces and orients his desire for speculative self- purication. For this strategy which is already present in the Dreams is the basis of Kants argument that while it is possible to think such nou- menal ideas as that of the intelligible world, these must never be treated as objects of theoretical knowledge, being acceded to instead only for the moral transformation that they work in us: In any case, the idea of a pure intelligible world, as a totality of intelligences to which we ourselves belong as rational beings (although on the other side we are also members of the sensible world), always remains a useful and permitted idea for the purposes of a rational faith [vernnftigen Glaubens], even if all knowledge Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia : stops at its boundary useful and permitted for producing in us a lively inter- est in the moral law by means of the noble ideal of a universal kingdom of ends in themselves (rational beings), to which we can belong as members only when we carefully conduct ourselves in accordance with the maxims of freedom as if they were laws of nature. (i\.6.; PP, :o8) Like the university metaphysicians who preceded him, Kant thus uses the metaphysical anthropology to induce belief in the world of rational beings and its laws. He does so by treating the gap between mans higher rational and lower sensible nature as the source of his interest in a pure and purifying metaphysical knowledge of morality, which can only be satised through a priori knowledge of the categorical imperative. In treating the motivating idea of membership in the intelligible world as one that just occurs to the ordinary intelligence and in simultaneously blocking further inquiry into this idea by treating it as beyond the reach of theoretical inquiry, thereby converting it into an object of moral faith Kant thus folds his account of the foundations of the metaphysics of morals in on itself. He treats the idea that induces the interest in meta- physics as one in which human beings are already interested, transmit- ted to them via moral feeling from a world lying outside knowledge but therefore beyond doubt hence the object of a philosophical faith admitting of no further explanation or inquiry. We, however, have oered further explanation and inquiry. In discuss- ing Part I of the Groundwork we discovered that, far from just occurring to the ordinary intelligence, the idea of mans dual intelligible and sen- sible nature is one that Kants philosophy is designed to inculcate in its students. It does so by grafting this idea onto their existing moral culture through the intermediate (exoteric) idea of respecting the law for its own sake, and then using it to intensify the desire for the contemplative intel- lectual self-transformation that constitutes metaphysics as an ethos. Further, in our discussion of Part ii we showed that the categorical imperative is not a formal test of morality, immanent in a universal subject by virtue of the transcendent nature of moral reason. We discov- ered instead that it is the formula for a practice of speculative self- transformation, through which the members of a contemplative estate subject themselves and others to the imperative as a distinctive moral viewpoint, renouncing worldly prudential ethics as morally corrupting, and constituting themselves as the subject of all ends. In short we have shown that the idea of mans membership in the community of intelli- gences arises not from his natural desire for metaphysical moral purity, but from the metaphysical paideia that uses this idea in order to induce such a desire. : Kant and the preservation of metaphysics As the central instrument of this paideia, Kants metaphysical anthro- pology shares the same mode of historical existence as those other anthropologies that we have investigated: Pufendorf s doctrine of man as a being whose fractious yet weak nature drives him to sociability; and Thomasius anthropology of passional man, who must practice self- restraint in order to achieve tranquillity. From a suitably indierent scholarly standpoint, neither the metaphysical nor the civil anthropol- ogy can be regarded as representing a true human nature or experience. Each is a means of shaping a particular comportment of the person in accordance with the objectives of a specic ethical culture. Historical scholarship must therefore give up the idea that Kantian ethics is, as metaphysics, superior to these rival empirical anthropologies, by virtue of its grounding in a priori insight into the moral law. This idea, through which modern scholarship remains tied to Christian transcendentalism, is, as we have seen, itself a product of Kants metaphysical anthropol- ogy. It results from the representation of the moral law as the rule of a world of autarkic rational beings, and from the use of this representa- tion to induce an intense desire to repudiate all prudential ethics in order to attain the telos of speculative self-transformation. The idea of the intrinsic theoretical superiority of moral metaphysics over moral anthro- pology may thus be regarded as symptomatic of the religious intensity with which Kantian initiates adhere to their particular anthropology, holding to it as the key to their personal moral purity and insight. We have thus achieved the rst of our objectives, the reconstruction of Kants metaphysics of morals as one of the historically available of ethical cultures. In the process we have shed some light on what it was about this culture that suited it to the teaching of metaphysics in a uni- versity like the one at Knigsberg. In transposing the old metaphysical gure of mans participation in the intelligible world into a new moral register where it could be acceded to for its transformative eect rather than its theoretical objectivity Kant had eected a major adaptation of metaphysical culture to its new, post-Newtonian and post- Westphalian, circumstances. On the one hand, through this new moral grounding, he completed the secularisation of metaphysics begun by Leibniz and advanced by Wol. In making the idea of the spiritual com- munity into an object of moral faith or felt need alone, Kant loosened the ties of university metaphysics to its theological partner which con- tinued to require literal belief in the spiritual community thereby allowing a wider circle of intellectuals to cultivate metaphysical wisdom and authority. On the other hand, he simultaneously preserved Schulmetaphysik as a culture of self-sanctication used in the formation of Moral philosophy as metaphysical paideia : a religious intelligentsia; that is, a group of intellectuals whose wisdom and authority is grounded in the (moral and theoretical) purity of their intellectual ethos. In doing so he maintained the hostility of the meta- physical ethos to its civil alternative. In presenting the latters lack of theoretical formality not just as philosophically erroneous but as morally corrupting, Kant heightened the intensity with which his students would renounce prudentialcivil ethics that misbegotten mongrel patched up from limbs of very diverse ancestry and looking like anything you please, only not like virtue and turn inwards towards the speculative purication of the will. Through his moral philosophy Kant thus pursued the reciprocal goals of secularising metaphysics and spiritualis- ing civil knowledge. We are now in a position to investigate the eects of this programme in two further areas of Kants practical philosophy: his metaphysics of law, and his metaphysics of religion and politics. 6. +nr xr+\rnvsi cs or r\v Kants Rechtslehre variously translated as theory of justice or doctrine of right is a direct extension of his metaphysics of morals. It uses the gure of man as a physically embodied intelligence in order to construct an account of the rights and obligations of such intelligences as they interact through the possession of material things. In this regard, Kants Rechtslehre represents a continuation of Protestant scholasticism which, we recall from our discussion of Leibniz and the Lutheran legal meta- physicians (..:), sought to maintain natural law and politics as branches of moral philosophy, hoping thereby to forestall the autonomy of law and politics as scientia civilis of the security state. Like Leibnizs, Kants metaphysics of law is closed and inimical to all the civil sciences that Pufendorf and Thomasius had sought to admit to the ethical domain through their reconstruction of natural law. Apart fromoccasional expressions of disapproval, Kants Rechtslehre thus allows no room for reason of state doctrine, Bodinian sovereignty theory, Helmstedtian political science or, indeed, the whole tradition of positive political jurisprudence (Staatsrecht) that had emerged as a means of secu- larising the governance of confessionally divided communities. Indeed, in purporting to subsume positive Staatsrecht within a philosophical reection on its formal conditions of possibility conditions ultimately grounded in the gure of the community of rational beings Kants metaphysics of lawmay be regarded as a direct attack on the desacralisa- tionof politics that hadbeenachievedby Germanpolitical jurisprudence :6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics andformalisedinPufendorannatural law. For, as we have seen, a central condition of this desacralisation is that law be regarded as coming from a source no higher than the positive commands of the civil sovereign, issued solely for the purposes of maintaining social peace. This is not to suggest, however, that Kants legal philosophy is back- ward looking in any absolute sense. On the contrary, considering its long future, Kants treatment of law and politics has just as much right to be considered progressive as Pufendorf s, even though they were headed in opposite directions. Indeed, Kants grounding of law and politics in inalienable natural rights clearly strikes many modern intellectuals as far more progressive and enlightened than its civilphilosophical alterna- tive. For Pufendorf and Thomasius, it will be recalled, focus on political obligations and treat rights as creations of positive law, instituted for the purposes of civil governance. The modern viewpoint may, however, be indicative of a moral forgetting of the work of the state in pacifying fratricidal religious and ethnic communities. Here, perhaps we should again recall Pufendorf s remark regarding states, that their force is not realised by children or the unlearned, or their advantages by those who have never experienced the losses consequent upon their non-existence, leading the latter to live in [the state] in such a way as not to value its excellence (DJN, \ii.:., q.). In any case, Kants unapologetic treat- ment of justice or right (Recht) as a branch of metaphysical ethics shows that the civilphilosophical treatment of jurisprudence as an autono- mous discipline grounded in the positive legislation of the territorial state remained locked in intellectual combat with its metaphysical rival. If Kants Rechtslehre did indeed look back to a curriculum in which law and politics had been integral parts of a metaphysically unied prac- tical philosophy, then it simultaneously found a new and durable means of anchoring the legal and political in the moral: namely, the language of inalienable subjective rights. ... Morality and law At rst appearing separately from the Tugendlehre (Doctrine of Virtue), to which it would later be added to form the Metaphysics of Morals, Kants Metaphysische Anfangsgrnde der Rechtslehre (Metaphysical Principles of the Theory of Justice) was published in :q, hence late in his career; although Schmucker and Ritter have argued that its central gures of thought can be found in Kants writings and Reexionen from the mid :6os (Ritter :q:; Schmucker :q6:). Kant opens the Rechtslehre with his The metaphysics of law : version of the relation between law and ethics, elaborated through the extension and subdivision of the central concepts of his moral philoso- phy: law, duty, obligation, and freedom. Law and ethics, Kant argues, are both ultimately grounded in the rational will (Wille) of the intelligible being. The medium in which they interact, however, and are related and dierentiated, is not the rational will as such, but a specic use of it: namely, the free power of choice (Willkr): The faculty of desiring in accordance with concepts, insofar as the ground determining it to action lies within itself and not in its object, is called a faculty to do or refrain from doing as one pleases. Insofar as it is joined with ones con- sciousness of the capacity to bring about its object by ones action it is called choice [Willkr]; if it is not joined with this consciousness its act is called a wish. The faculty of desire whose inner determining ground, hence even what pleases it, lies in the subjects reason is called will [Wille]. The will is therefore the faculty of desire considered not so much in relation to action (as choice is) but rather in the ground determining choice to action. The will has no determining ground as such but, in determining choice, is practical reason itself. (\i..:; PP, pp. ) Through the faculty of choice, therefore, the will of rational beings (beings whose substance is reason) is connected to objects external to their pure autotelic willing for the sake of willing. As the external use of freedom, choice is the gateway through which an otherwise self- enclosed and self-willing community of intelligences comes to desire external objects or material goods, thereby giving force to the inclina- tions that aect them as sensibly embodied rational beings. The meta- physical character of Kants treatment of the relation between law and morality thus starts to emerge. Unlike Pufendorf, Kant does not con- struct this relation in terms of the need to uncouple civil authority from inner purity, the pursuit of security from the pursuit of moral regenera- tion. Rather, he constructs it as a particular metaphysical problem grounded in the anthropology of homo duplex: namely, how to relate the governance of mans external (material) choices to his internal (intelli- gible) ones. Kants exposition of the dierence and relation between law and ethics in the Introduction to the Metaphysics of Morals is not immediately perspicuous, although this may in part be due to the possible corruption of this part of the text (Ludwig :q88, 8:). Nonetheless, the central point is clear enough. Unlike Pufendorf and Thomasius, Kant does not treat law and ethics as independent spheres of duties one grounded in :8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics the states maintenance of security, the other in the private pursuit of moral regeneration. Instead, he treats them as dierent uses of a single subjective faculty, the power of free choice (Willkr). Jurisprudence thus concerns a use of freedom that is external, both in the sense of being oriented to outer public actions rather than to the inner condition of the will, and in the sense of being governed by external lawgiving; that is, by lawgiving designed coercively or pathologically to determine the will to a certain action, through rewards and punishments. Ethics, however, even if it may involve external actions, concerns the internal use of free choice that is, its orientation to the purity of willing as such, rather than to the outcome of actions. For ethics is governed by lawgiv- ing that is internal in the sense of arising from the mere thinking of the law, or rational beings capacity to govern its will through the mere idea of duty: All lawgiving can therefore be distinguished with respect to the incentive (even if it agrees with another kind with respect to the action that it makes a duty, e.g., these actions might in all cases be external). That lawgiving which makes an action a duty and also makes this duty the incentive is ethical. But that lawgiv- ing which does not include the incentive of duty in the law and so admits an incentive other than the idea of duty itself is juridical. (\i..:8:q; PP, 8) Juridical laws thus pay no heed to the inner condition of the will, and ethical duties may not be subject to coercive juridical lawgiving. Nonetheless, as dierent dispositions of the single capacity for free choice, juridical and ethical laws share a common ultimate ground in the moral law, responsible for the pure rational determination of the will: So whether one considers freedom in the external or internal use of choice [Willkr], its laws, as pure practical laws of reason for free choice in general, must at the same time be the inner determining grounds of this choice; although they may not always be considered in this regard (\i..:; PP, 6). It is necessary to clarify why Kant argues that the laws of pure prac- tical reason underlie even the external use of freedom constituting its inner determining grounds but that they may not always be regarded as doing so. In his discussion of this problem, Wolfgang Kersting argues that Kants juridical and moral laws share a common grounding, as both are instances of the Vernnftgesetz or rational law governing mans transcendental freedom (Kersting :q8, :6:8). For Kersting, as a result of the formalrational unity of the subject of (moral) action, juridical law is simply the means of enforcing the moral law, under circumstances where external hindrances to it require their coercive removal. The metaphysics of law :q Consequently, it is only because of these circumstances that the moral law may not always be considered the inner determining ground of external choice. There are several reasons for rejecting Kerstings formalrational interpretation of Kants construction of the lawmorality relation. First, it is unacceptable to construe juridical law as arising to redress the exter- nal obstruction of moral action; for, given that the morality of an action consists in the mode in which it is willed rather than its successful execu- tion then, as Kant insists in the Groundwork, it is impossible to obstruct morality from the outside: Even if . . . this will should wholly lack the power to carry out its intentions . . . if with its greatest eorts it should yet achieve nothing and only the good will were left . . . then it would still shine like a jewel for its own sake, as something containing its entire worth in itself (i\.q; PP, o). Next, and conversely, actions give rise to wrongs redressable by juridical law only in so far as they are facts or deeds, signifying, as Kant puts it in the Rechtslehre, the capacity of persons to impinge externally on each other: The concept of right [justice], insofar as it is related to a corresponding obligation (i.e., the moral concept of right), concerns . . . only the external and indeed prac- tical relation of one person to another, insofar as their actions, as facts, can have (direct or indirect) inuence on each other (\i..o; PP, 8). In other words, if morality is incapable of external obstruction because it is independent of external deeds, and if only external deeds as facts are capable of giving rise to wrongs redressable by juridical law and right, then we cannot accept Kerstings argument that the wrongness of legally sanctionable actions arises from their obstruction of inner morality. These problems are pointers to a more fundamental aw in the kind of interpretation of the lawmorality relation oered by Kersting. In attempting to construct a non-anthropological account of the relation between law and morality grounded in a formalrational law of transcendental freedom such interpretations fail to grasp the degree to which Kants construction of this relation is embedded in the meta- physical anthropology of homo duplex. For Kant, if man is subject to two kinds of law, moral and juridical, that is because he harbours a dual moral nature, which means that his exercise of choice (Willkr) assumes two dierent forms: That choice which can be determined by pure reason is called free choice. That which can be determined only by inclination (sensible impulse, stimulus) would be animal choice (arbitrium brutum). Human choice, however, is a choice that can indeed by aected but not determined by impulses, and is therefore of itself .o Kant and the preservation of metaphysics (apart from an acquired prociency of reason) not pure, but can still be deter- mined to actions by pure will. Freedom of choice is this independence from being determined by sensible impulses; this is the negative concept of freedom. The positive concept of freedom is that of the capacity of pure reason to be of itself practical. (\i..::; PP, ) There may indeed be only a single subject of choice, but the fact that this subject possesses dual moral natures means that it must be governed by two kinds of law. With regard to mans rational or intelligible being, choice may be governed by the moral law; for rational being governs the exercise of its will by merely thinking the law. As a sensibly aected ratio- nal being, however, whose choice is subject to the force of the inclina- tions, man must be subject to juridical laws designed to overmatch these inclinations with a countervailing pathological force. In Kant, therefore, juridical law is related to moral law not as the spe- cialised coercive form of a single law of transcendental freedom, but by virtue of the fact that it governs the lower sensible level of mans dual metaphysical nature. Far from treating juridical law as arising from exer- cises of choice that transgress morality, Kant argues that, regarded as a noumenal or intelligible being, man is incapable of transgressing moral- ity by choosing in opposition to the law. The capacity to deviate from the moral law thus arises from man as a sensible or phenomenal being, whose sensible desires for external goods permit him to deviate from the autotelic willing of that which is good in itself the rational being in him. At the same time, however, drawing on the standard Christian metaphysical treatment of evil as privative that is, in terms of failure of good being to realise itself, as opposed to the positive existence of evil Kant insists that bad choices reect only sensible mans incapacity. Despite appearances, man cannot freely choose against the moral law, as freedom arises only from mans inexplicable self-activity as an imma- terial intellectual being, and the moral law is just the law of this activity (\i...6; PP, 8o:). In other words, the reason juridical law may not be understood in terms of the coercion required to redress breaches of the rational moral law is that the rational being who is the subject of this law is incapable of breaking it. Conversely, human beings may appear to act against this law in the phenomenal world, but in reality this transgression represents only an incapacity for intelligible action arising from mans lower sen- sible self. Here, we need only recall what it is that gives rise to juridical wrongs that is, mans external choices as facts through which persons infringe each others rights in order to obtain a clearer picture of Kants The metaphysics of law .: construction of the relation between law and morality. Now we can see that Kant regards juridical law as necessary to regulate the relations into which human beings enter when, governed by their sensible inclinations, they choose external objects. For in this way they enter the material world of scarcity and conict over goods, displaying their incapacity for rational moral self-governance, and requiring juridical coercion in order to compensate for this. In other words, we may propose that Kant regards juridical law not as a direct compensation for a rational agents failure to obey the moral law that is, not as a specialised coercive form of the law of transcendental freedom but as a distinct kind of legis- lation, suited to rational beings whose sensible nature condemns them to interact through possession of material goods. Kants treatment of the juridical law as an indirect form of the moral law is thus not grounded in the posit of a common underlying formal law of reason. Rather it arises from the fact that he regards the juridical as a degenerated legislative domain, formed in order to regulate the conicts arising from mans (inescapable) choice to interact through material goods, rather than through the transparent commercium of the community of intelligences. If, therefore, the gap between morality and law arises from the dierence between mans two natures, then their rela- tion cannot be understood by treating the law as a direct compensation for moral failure. In fact, Kant presents a quite dierent view of the rela- tion between law and morality: namely, that organised by the gure of a metaphysical ascent from mans lower to his higher nature. Taking place when man becomes capable of making the mere idea of (external) laws into the only incentive for obeying them that is, when man rises from his sensible to his intelligible nature Kant envisages a process in which juridical laws are elevated and absorbed (aufnehmen) into ethical duties: But just because ethical lawgiving includes within its law the internal incentive to action (the idea of duty), and this determina- tion must not ow into external lawgiving, ethical lawgiving cannot be external . . .; although it does elevate [absorb] duties resting on external lawmaking into the incentives of its own [internal] lawgiving (\i..:q; PP, 8). In short, for Kant the relation between morality and law is not governed by the continuum of a formalrational law of transcendental freedom, but by the gap between the intelligible and sensible natures of the metaphysical homo duplex. This gap is not to be closed through the philosophical grounding of law in morality, but only through the meta- physical transformation of mans sensible nature, which would make .. Kant and the preservation of metaphysics juridical law redundant, as in Leibnizs treatment of the same theme. Of course, the fact that Kant envisages a closure of any kind entirely separ- ates his conception of law from Pufendorf s. ..: The principle of right and noumenal possession In keeping with this metaphysical construction of it, Kant treats justice as arising from a principle, rather than from existing legal systems or from the positive legislation of actual governments. He thus proceeds to construct the Princip des Rechts the principle of right or justice as the second great principle governing human conduct, alongside the categor- ical imperative. Anglophone readers need to keep in mind that the German Recht does not distinguish between right as a legitimate claim to exercise a personal capacity and justice as an impersonal body of laws governing action especially in Kants hands. Invoking the standard metaphysical hierarchy of the sciences, Kant argues that the principle of justice may not be discovered by professional jurists generalising from existing laws. Like Leibniz, he insists that this principle is not to be found in empirical statutes, whose justness it must in fact determine: [The jurist] can indeed state what is legal [Rechtens]; that is, what the laws in a certain place and in a certain time say or have said. But whether what these laws prescribed is also just [recht], and what the universal criterion is by which one could recognise the just as well as the unjust (iustum et iniustum), this would remain hidden from him unless he leaves those empirical principles behind for a while and seeks the sources for such judgments in reason alone, so as to establish the basis for any possible giving of positive laws (although positive laws can serve as excellent guides to this). (\i...qo; PP, 86) Like neoscholastic and Leibnizian natural law and in radical opposi- tion to Pufendorf s Kants principle of right is thus intended as a higher rational principle of judgment to which the states positive laws must be subordinated. To leave his empirical principles behind, the jurist must turn away from his concern with the material ends governing mans choice of things. Kant thus grounds his principle of justice in a purely formal consideration of the totality of reciprocal choices: in this reciprocal relation of choice no account at all is taken of the matter of choice, that is, of the end each has in mind with the object he wants (\i..o; PP, 8). Arrived at in this way, Kants formula for the principle of justice is: Any The metaphysics of law . action is just [recht] if, through it or its maxim, the freedom of choice of each can coexist with the freedom of all, in accordance with a universal law (\i..o; PP, 8). Kant unfolds this principle in four stages. First, and fundamentally, he treats the principle of right as grounded in the specic metaphysical anthropology of man as a sensibly embod- ied pure intelligence. Like the moral principle, the legal one is grounded in the metaphysical gure of the reciprocal determination and unication of a community of rational wills. In the legal domain, however, the reciprocal acts of will are not mediated through the instan- taneous transparency of intelligible substances in intellectual commu- nity. Instead, here the exercise of will is oriented to and mediated by the choice of material things, whose opacity and nitude means that the choosing intelligences may infringe on each others choices, thereby giving rise to wrongs. This is because, to the extent that rational beings will in accordance with the moral law, they are incapable of conicting with each other, constituting in eect a single spiritual community (kingdom of ends), devoid of all the conicting personal ends arising from sensuous inclinations. To the extent, however, that they choose material things, in accordance with their sensuous inclinations, human beings are dierentiated and governed by material ends that can conict with each other. Second, given that someone who hinders anothers external choice coerces them, and that it is right to resist this through a counter-coercion, then the reciprocal coexistence of choices that constitutes the principle of justice is actually a universal reciprocal coercion: Strict justice [Recht] can also be represented as the possibility of a fully reciprocal use of coer- cion that is consistent with everyones freedom in accordance with uni- versal laws (\i...; PP, 88). The externality that dierentiates justice from ethics thus arises from the human choice of material things that is, the desires of sensibly aected rational beings for things lying outside their own rational willing. This in turn necessitates that such choices be unied through external juridical coercion: Even as justice [Recht] in general has as its object only what is external in actions, so strict justice, namely that which has nothing ethical mixed with it, requires only purely external determinations for the power of choice [Willkr]; for only then is it pure and not mixed with any prescriptions of virtue. Only a completely external justice can thus be called strict (narrow). This is indeed based on every- ones consciousness of obligation in accordance with a law; but if it is to remain pure, this consciousness may not and cannot be appealed to as an incentive to determine his choice in accordance with this law. Strict right rests instead on . Kant and the preservation of metaphysics the principle of its being possible to use external coercion that can coexist with the freedom of everyone in accordance with universal laws. (\i...; PP, 8q) A community of rational beings would have no need of external law and would not be subject to strict justice. Third, Kants principle of justice is in its turn grounded in the idea of intelligible possession (possessio noumenon), which is the central concept of his legal metaphysics and forms the somewhat idiosyncratic core of his treatment of private law (Privatrecht). In fact, like the concept of duty for its own sake in his ethics, the notion of intelligible possession forms the exoteric link that permits Kant to tie the idea of the community of intelligences to an available civil culture here to the legal culture of private property rights. Kants central intellectual strategy in the Rechtslehre is thus to allow the notion of intelligible or non-physical pos- session to embrace two very dierent capacities: the capacity of non- physical (intelligible) beings to possess physical things; and the capacity for juridical ownership of something, as distinct from its mere physical possession. Through this structural ambiguity in the notion of non-phys- ical possession, Kant attempts to solve two problems at the same time. On the one hand, he seeks to provide a metaphysical basis for the prin- ciple of justice, in the gure of a community of immaterial intelligences interacting through their possession of material things. On the other hand, he seeks to provide exoteric (juristic) plausibility for the notion of noumenal possession that is, of beings who exist outside space and time possessing physical things by anchoring it in the notion of legal ownership: Something external is my property if I would be wronged by being disturbed in my use of it even though I am not in possession of it (not holding the object). I must be in some sort of possession of an external object if it is to be called mine, for otherwise someone who aected this against my will would not also aect me and so would not wrong me. So . . . intelligible possession (possessio noumenon) must be assumed to be possible if something external is to be mine or yours. Empirical possession (holding) is then only possession in appearance (pos- sessio phenomenon) . . . (\i..q; PP, o) Fourth, given that the idea of intelligible possession by denition lies beyond all empirical experience, it must, like the idea of the community of intelligences itself, be postulated as a need of reason, again for moral reasons. Kant thus deduces this postulate by observing that, were such possession not possible, then the person would not be able to rightfully choose objects. This, however, would annihilate [usable objects] from a The metaphysics of law . moral viewpoint [praktischer Rcksicht] and make them into res nullius [ownerless things], which would be a contradiction of outer freedom with itself . Further, given that intelligible possession does not require actual physical disposal of the object, then, in order to think of some- thing simply as an object of my choice [Willkr] it is sucient for me to be conscious of having it within my power. As a result: It is therefore an a priori presupposition of practical reason to regard and treat any object of my choice as something which could objectively be mine or yours (i\..6; PP, o6). Kant completes his construction of the principle of justice simulta- neously making the shift from private to public law ( jus publicum, Staatsrecht), or from law to politics by stipulating that intelligible posses- sion remains merely provisional in the state of nature, requiring the civil state for its actualisation. We will return to this construction of the civil state in the following section. For the moment, we must clarify the his- torical signicance of Kants principle of justice, by contrasting the interpretations of some modern Kantian commentators with our own. Despite certain dierences of emphasis, Hinske, Kersting, and Gregor argue that Kant provides a formalphilosophical basis for the principle of justice that is, one transcending all moral anthropologies and political purposes. As a result, he may be regarded as grounding justice in human reason itself, and as showing that only a law grounded in the rational general will is agreeable to humanity (Gregor :qq; Hinske :q8; Kersting :q8). Kersting, for example, argues that Kants legal postulate of practical reason It is possible for me to have any external object of my choice as mine is the subject of a purely formal deduction, analogous to the deduction of the categories in the Critique of Pure Reason. Without attempting to capture the detail of this argument, it is enough to say that it largely repeats Kants own procedure in this regard, which we have already summarised. In short, Kersting rehearses Kants arguments that the possession of external objects by intelligible beings must be possible, because without it such objects would be reduced to the moral nullity of being ownerless things, and because a prohibition on ownership would be a contradiction of freedom with itself (Kersting :q8, :.). Kersting acknowledges the indebtedness of this gure of thought to the theological doctrine that God made the world for mans use, but he fails to link this doctrine to the metaphysics of intelligible possession. Similarly, he also acknowledges the interdependency between Kants .6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics notions of law and the spiritual commercium between rational beings, citing Kants comment that all legal relation is a purely intelligible rela- tion of rational beings to each other (xxiii..:). Yet Kersting treats this relation between rational beings as expressive of a formal law of transcendental freedom, insisting that this may be known in a formal anthropology-free manner. As a result he ends up treating the relations of universal reciprocal coercion, established between intelligible beings possessing material objects, as something known in a purely a priori manner, independent of all anthropological presuppositions. Finally, with this formalrational determination of the need for a general will in place, Kersting, like Hinske and Gregor, can proceed to treat Kants con- ception of an anti-statist popular sovereignty as founded in reason itself. We have already observed, however, that Kants metaphysical anthro- pology and cosmology are central to his construction of the principle of justice. They permit him to treat the legal principle as a devolved form of the moral principle, needed to govern sensibly embodied intelligences who interact through their choice of external objects, rather than in the transparent medium of rational willing. In this regard one of the most remarkable and least understood aspects of Kants construction of legal possession is that it is congured by the longstanding metaphysical dis- cussion of how a timeless intelligible being can occupy the spatio-tem- poral world. Deeply embedded in the anthropology of Christs one person and two natures, and in the cosmological individuation of intel- ligible being through its embodiment in material things, Kants discus- sion of intelligible possession is grounded in the gures of incarnation, ensoulment, and the souls (non-spatial) habitation of the body. The wrongs informing Kants notion of juridical right, the wrongs that jurid- ical law must redress, are thus above all those to which pure intelligences become susceptible through their choice and occupancy of material things. Through this external embodiment, intellectual community loses its spontaneity and transparency; for wills individuated by their choice of material things and goods enter into conict, subordinating each other, and thereby losing the intelligible freedom responsible for their dignity. Kants view of coercion is, thus, that it is an unfortunate consequence of the dierentiation of wills attending the sensible inclinations and choices of rational beings. Among the comments that Kant wrote on his own work, Observations on the Feeling of the Beautiful and the Sublime, during :6, we nd the following: The metaphysics of law . A will that is subject to the will of another is imperfect and contradictory, because man possesses spontaneity. If he is subject to the will of a man (even though he chooses this himself) then he is hateful and contemptible. Only his subjection to Gods will is in accordance with nature. One must not perform actions from obedience to a man that one could perform from inner motiva- tion; and to demand obedience where everything could have been done through inner motivation is to make slaves. The possibility of subordination and legal coercion arises from the manner in which rational beings claim possession of the material world: The body is mine because it is a part of my self and is moved through my power of choice [Willkr]. The whole animate and inanimate world that lacks the power of choice is mine in so far as I can control it and move it in accordance with my choice. The sun is not mine. Other men are in the same position, which means that no property is a proprietary or exclusive property. In so far though as I want to appropriate something exclusively, at least I will not assume that anothers will opposes mine or that his deed conicts with mine. I will therefore perform actions that signify my ownership, cut down the tree, make it into something, etc. The other man tells me that this thing is his because, through the actions of his choice, it belongs, as is it were, to his self. The will that is to be good, if it is taken as universal and reciprocal, must not cancel itself for the sake of the other; and the other [person] must not claim as his own that which I have worked, because in this case he would be assuming that his will moved my body. (xx.66) Here Kant pregures the concept of intelligible possession and the principle of right that would be elaborated in the Rechtslehre nearly thirty years later. Yet here their construction is unambiguously metaphysical, carried out in terms of the degeneration of spiritual community attend- ing its necessary material embodiment, and in terms of the partial or analogical restitution of this community through the establishment of universal and reciprocal rights of external possession. Moreover, despite all attempts to conne this metaphysical construction to Kants pre-critical stage, we nd the same construction at the heart of the Rechtslehres so-called formal treatment of the concept of original posses- sion: In this way, taking possession of a separated piece of land is an act of private choice without being arbitrary. The possessor bases his act on the inborn common possession of the earths surface and on the a priori general will cor- responding to it, which permits private possession of it (since otherwise unoc- cupied things would in themselves and in accordance with a law become ownerless things). The possessor thus originally acquires a piece of land through rst possession and resists by right (iure) [mit Recht] anyone else who would hinder .8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics him in his private use of it; although in the natural condition he cannot do so by legal proceedings [rechtswegen] (de iure), because there is yet no public law in this condition . . . Merely physical possession of land (holding it) is already a right to a thing, though admittedly not of itself sucient for regarding it as mine. Relative to others, since (as far as one knows) it is rst possession, it is consistent with the law of external freedom and is also involved in original possession in common, which provides a priori the basis on which any private possession is possible. Accordingly, to interfere with the use of a piece of land by the rst occupant of it is to wrong him. Taking rst possession has therefore a rightful basis [Rechtsgrund] (titulus possessionis), which is original possession in common. (\i..o:; PP, o, fn. s) Despite various attempts to treat these paragraphs as corrupt, or as a throwback to Kants pre-critical thought, this guration of intelligible beings occupancy of the material world remains central to Kants con- struction of noumenal possession in the Rechtslehre. In Chapter . of Part i on Privatrecht, we thus nd Kant returning to the account of the inborn common possession of the earths surface and . . . the a priori general will corresponding to it, in order to ground his concept of original or rst acquisition: All human beings are originally (i.e., prior to any act of choice that establishes a right) in legitimate possession of land, that is, they have a right to be wherever nature or chance (apart from their will) has placed them. This kind of posses- sion (possessio) which has to be distinguished from residence (sedes), a chosen and therefore an acquired lasting possession is possession in common, because the spherical surface of the earth unites all the places on its surface; for if its surface were an unbounded plane, people could be so dispersed on it that they would not come into any community with one another, and community would not then be a necessary consequence of their existence [Dasein] on the earth. The possession by all human beings on the earth which precedes any acts of theirs that would establish rights (as constituted by nature itself) is an original possession in common (communio possessionis originaria), the concept of which is not empirical and dependent on temporal conditions . . . Original possession in common is, rather, a practical rational concept which contains a priori the prin- ciple in accordance with which alone people can use a place on the earth in accordance with principles of right. (\i..6.; PP, ::) In other words, even in the Rechtslehre, Kant continues to use the gure of the spiritual communitys occupation of the material world in order to construct the notion of legal possession. He does so by treating the spherical nature of the earth as providing the conditions of material contiguity and scarcity through which the spiritual devolves into the legal community; that is, a community characterised by universal The metaphysics of law .q reciprocal coercion rather than universal reciprocal intellection. Even if Kant wishes to treat this gure as non-empirical, and as a practical rational concept containing the principle of legal possession a priori, we can see that it is not formal in the sense of anthropology free. On the contrary, returning to his anthropology and cosmology of the spiritual communitys devolution into a worldly community, Kant uses it as the basis of the formal construction of his practical rational concept of intelligible possession. Indeed, if we return to the two arguments that Kersting identies as crucial to the formal deduction of intelligible pos- session namely, that external objects would be morally null without such possession, and that to prohibit it would be a contradiction of freedom with itself then we can see that these arguments are them- selves desiderata of this metaphysical anthropology and cosmology. For it is only in accordance with a moral cosmology of spiritual beings occu- pancy of the material world that ownership of things becomes morally redemptive of them. Further, it is only in accordance with the anthro- pology of intelligibly free rational being that the prohibition on posses- sion is self-contradictory. A pair of Reexionen from c. :: shows us the role of the metaphysical cosmology and anthropology in constructing these supposedly a priori insights: The world is of no value where there are no rational beings [vernnftige Wesen] to make use of it (not merely to contemplate it). The purely willful use of the world arises from the pleasures of life. Therefore, as the only natural end of all rational creatures, this is the only purpose for which the world is good, not merely for consumption, but also for use. The highest condition of this purpose is solely the good use that [rational beings] make of themselves and the things of the world. Everything in nature is good only in so far as it is useful, and everything is nonetheless subordinated to the power of choice. Nature agrees with freedom when the ends of the former are supported by the latter. (xix..o, 6qo8 and 6qoq) The formalphilosophical character of Kants principle of justice the notion of things chosen independently of all empirical objects of choice is thus dependent on the gure of noumenal beings choosing external things in order to rescue them from moral nullity and to give themselves a place in the world. In short, Kants formal construction of natural rights through the principle of right to choose things in a manner compatible with the choice of all others in accordance with a universal law is actually grounded in the substantive metaphysical doc- trine of the moral occupation of the material globe by rational beings seeking worldly communion. o Kant and the preservation of metaphysics Kants argument for the superiority of the metaphysicians theory of the a priori principle of justice over the jurists empirical knowledge of existing laws now appears in its proper historical light. Like the idea of spiritual community in the Groundwork, the principle of a totality of reciprocating free choices in the Rechtslehre may be regarded as a self- formative device impelling intellectuals to repudiate prudentialempir- ical (juridical) constructions of justice. It does so by presenting laws imposed for the ends of civil welfare and security as radically incompat- ible with the exercise of free choice by rational beings. We can see this conguration of ideas in the following reection, written somewhere between :6 and :68: It is not benets that determine the law [Recht], but the wills of each and every individual. Given that, in accordance with the rule of freedom, each must decide what is benecial on the basis of his own thought, then the authority for judging others applies not to their benets, only to their wills. The multitude can form a political body through rules of prudence, although this [body] in no way arises from the rules of justice [Rechts]. No-one can cede to another the power to execute his own judgment of rights, unless he reserves the same power to hold the other to their obligation; because that would be to give another the right to do what he wanted (licentiam). If though the other can do nothing unjust [unrecht] through his action, then his actions are based only in his power and not in his right [Recht]. (xix.:oo, 6q) The prime role of Kants formalisation argument is to induce meta- physicians to renounce the civilprudential rationale for the enactment of laws, providing them instead with an image of themselves as giving laws and possessing rights purely as sensibly embodied intelligences. With Kants subordination of the empirical legal order to a theory of its principle, the metaphysical attack on the autonomy of the civil jurispru- dence rst encountered in Leibnizs critique of Pufendorf s empirical natural law appears in its modern form, as anti-positivism. In the light of our discussion of Kants dierentiation between metaphysical and empirical ethics, however, we may propose that the ultimate source of the anti-positivist principle of justice is not its a priori concept, but the speculative self-purication of the philosopher who is to think it. For this is the way the philosopher demonstrates his moral and theoretical purity in relation to the jurist, whose empirical concepts mortgage his thought to worldly benets and powers. In short Kants anti-positivist critique of empirical law is in fact an anti-juridical attack on historical legal cul- tures and their bearers. Given this, we may suggest that viewing the historical legal order as the expression of natural rights is actually an historical projection of the The metaphysics of law : ethos of philosophical intellectuals. This helps to explain the radical inversion of the history of rights that seems to have taken place in Germany at the end of the eighteenth century. It was at this point that popularphilosophical journals began to argue that liberal rights had been extended through the struggle for individual freedom against the encroachments of government. This was an argument supported by a new version of natural law actually a revival of the old Christian legal metaphysics claiming that men entered political society in order to pre- serve natural rights, rather than to obtain security (Bdeker :q8). In fact, as we saw in the case of the rights associated with religious tolera- tion, the creation and extension of rights typically depended on the expansion of the new territorial governments and their legal systems (Schiera :qq.). That is because these rights had been fashioned in the crisis of religious civil war as instruments for the states political neutral- isation of religion and pacication of society, giving them, as Dreitzel has argued, a degree of independence from their philosophical justications (Dreitzel :qqa). .. Kants political metaphysics The metaphysical guration of Kants Rechtslehre provides the key to understanding his theory of the state, displaying the intellectualhistor- ical basis of its divergence from Pufendorf s. Kant necessitates the civil state conceived as an all-powerful collec- tive will as the means of realising an original noumenal act of appro- priation. Were it not for the relations of universal reciprocal coercion that the civil society establishes between this act and all other such acts, then rightful choice and natural rights would remain in their merely pro- visional natural condition. Now, with regard to external and therefore contingent possession, a unilateral will cannot serve as a coercive law for everyone, since that would infringe upon freedom in accordance with universal laws. So it is only a will putting everyone under obligation, hence only a collective general (common) and powerful will, that can provide everyone this assurance. But the condition of being under a general external (i.e., public) lawgiving accompanied with power is the civil con- dition. So only in a civil condition can something external be mine or yours. (\i..6; PP, oq) Kant thus construes legalpolitical order the states realisation of the coercive reciprocity of wills as a lower-level approximation of the transparent intellectual reciprocity of wills in the moral order. For this . Kant and the preservation of metaphysics reason he rejects the Pufendoran origination of the state; that is, through the pact in which individuals give up their will to decide matters pertaining to collective security, allowing the formation of a supreme agency of political decision and action. Instead, Kant regards the civil state as arising from a real ideal unication of individual wills into a general will, for the purpose of realising natural right, or, allowing intel- ligible beings to form a community through the moral use of things: The act by which the people constitutes itself as a state more precisely, the idea of this act, which is the only means by which the legitimacy of the state can be thought is the original contract. In accordance with the original con- tract, everyone (omnes et singuli) within the people gives up his external freedom in order to take it up again immediately as a member of a commonwealth, that is, of the people considered as a state (universi). And one cannot say the human being in a state has sacriced a part of his inborn outer freedom for the sake of an end, but rather, he has relinquished his wild lawless freedom in order to nd his freedom as such undiminished, in a dependence on laws, that is, in a right- ful condition, since this dependence arises from his own lawgiving will. (\i.::6; PP, q) If therefore the people is sovereign in the Kantian state, this is because the role of public law (Staatsrecht) is to realise the rightful condition that is, rule of rational beings exercising free choices (natural rights) in the external world and this is a rule that such beings can only impose on each other. Kants democratic construction of the people as refus- ing all status hierarchies and obeying only those laws they could pre- scribe for themselves is thus neither more nor less than a transposition of the metaphysical image of the spiritual community into the political register. Here we reach the point of sharpest contrast between Kants concep- tion of the state and Pufendorf s; for Pufendorf, we recall (.), rejects all forms of popular sovereignty indeed all forms of sovereignty arising from moral or transcendental sources independent of the state as a polit- ical artice. Instead, he treats civil sovereignty as the outcome of a pact whose function is not to realise the natural rights of a collective will, but to impose the dierentiated oces the subject who obeys in exchange for security, and the ruler who protects in exchange for obedi- ence required to realise a single political end: social peace. We have observed that this dierentiation of civil personae holds the key to Pufendorf s distinction between sovereignty and form of government. For sovereignty is a moral personality that may be occupied by the several forms of government monarachy, aristocracy, democracy as The metaphysics of law long as they full the duties of the oce by exercising supreme power in accordance with the end of social peace. This in turn holds the key to the liberal dierentiation of state and society in Pufendorf, for it is only conduct capable of threatening social peace that is subject to politi- callegal regulation, even if it is the sovereigns prerogative alone to determine what is to count as such. Finally, we can recall that Pufendorf elaborated these distinctions in order to shape a political and legal culture suited to the governance of a desacralised state. In fact, he used them to sever the state from all imperatives to represent a prior moral community or will a view central to the political theology of the con- fessional state treating the state rather as a will formed articially for the sole purpose of security. In unifying ruler and subject in the gure of the all-powerful self-leg- islating general will, Kant therefore collapses the desacralising distinc- tion between sovereignty and form of government and, nally, the liberal one between state and society. Rather than seeing monarchy, aris- tocracy, and democracy as optionally equivalent forms in which politi- cal sovereignty can be exercised, Kant treats them as physical correlates of the spiritual community the united will of the people. As such they are required only as long as the actual will of the empirical people falls short of rational self-governance, being destined for subsumption by the only form of government capable of realising this condition, the pure democratic republic: The dierent forms of states are only the letter (littera) of the original legislation in the civil condition . . . But the spirit of the original contract (anima pacti origi- narii) involves an obligation on the part of the constituting authority to make the form of government suited to the idea of the original contract. Accordingly, even if this cannot be done all at once, it is under obligation to change the form of government gradually and continually so that it harmonises in its eect with the only legitimate constitution, that of a pure republic. [This must occur] in such a way that the old (empirical) statutory forms, which served merely to bring about the political subjection [Unterthnigkeit] of the people, are dissolved into the original (rational) form. [This is] the only form which makes freedom the principle and indeed the condition for any exercise of coercion, as is required by a rightful constitution of a state in the strict sense of the word, nally leading [the spirit of the constitution?] to become the letter. (\i. o; PP, 8o) Under these circumstances, any gap between the ideal collective person- ality of the people and the actual moral person of the sovereign must be seen as a sign that the people has yet to form the self-governing general will needed to make the ideal but provisional rightful condition actual. Kant and the preservation of metaphysics Only the pure republic, therefore, possesses the moral personality capable of representing the peoples will in person. It thereby closes the gap between the empirical exercise of civil power and the self-gover- nance of a community of rational beings, and, with it, the gap between political representation and its subject: All true republics are and can only be a representative system of the people, in order to protect the peoples rights in its name, through all the citizens united, by means of their delegates (deputies). But as soon as the head of state (whether this be king, nobility, or the whole population, the democratic union) also allows himself to be represented in person, then the united people does not merely rep- resent the sovereign, it is the sovereign itself. For in it (the people) is originally found the supreme authority from which all rights of individuals as mere sub- jects (and in any case as ocials of the state) must be derived. (\i.:; PP, 8:) Kants legitimation of civil sovereignty in terms of the peoples self-gov- ernance in the pure republic is, therefore, grounded neither in the formal principle of justice nor in a political philosophy borrowed from Rousseau, but in something he shared with the Genevan philosopher: the Christianmetaphysical conception of the state as the means by which the spiritual community governs its worldly commercium. We rst encountered this conception, it will be recalled (:.), in Althusius notion of sovereignty arising from the universal symbiosis responsible for the communitys spiritual and physical perfection. This image of the pure republic, as the means by whichthe moral com- munity realises its worldly self-governance, is responsible for Kants deeply ambivalent attitude to the legitimacy of the state, which has been observedby commentators since the Rechtslehre was rst published. Onthe one hand, to the extent that it is regarded as the pure expression of the general will, then the state is hyper-legitimate. By representing the people in person, the pure republic collapses the distinction between ruler and subjects, who, because they are only obeying their own will, must obey it unconditionally: For, in order for the people to judge the supreme polit- ical authority (summumimperium) withrightful force [rechtskrftig], they must already be viewed as united under a general legislative will; which means that they cannot and may not judge otherwise than the present head of state (summus imperans) wills them to (\i.:8; PP, 6:.). Here Kant thus joins Pufendorf in denying the right of active political resistance, although on quite dierent grounds and for quite dierent ends. For Pufendorf, the sovereign is an articial construct created by individuals giving up their political wills to another; and this means that while they may privately disagree withthe sovereigns political commands, they may The metaphysics of law not dissent fromthemin public, unless they are to dissolve the state alto- gether. For Kant, though, inthe sovereignof the pure republic, the people confront the manifestation of their own lawgiving will. These moral origins give the sovereigns laws aquasi-holystatus andmakes evendoubt- ing thema crime: Alawthat is so holy (inviolable) that it is already a crime even to call it in doubt in a practical way, and so to suspend its eect for a moment, is thought as if it must have arisen not fromhuman beings but from some highest, awless lawgiver; and this is what the saying All authority is fromGod means (\i.:q; PP, 6.). Far fromrepresenting an aberrant concession to political absolutism, Kants denial of the right of resistance, grounded in a secularised version of divine right, is in fact an integral expression of the political metaphysics that Pufendorf s political absolutismwas designed to destroy. On the other hand, because he regards the state as coming into exis- tence only to protect the exercise of pre-civil free choices or natural rights as they are more commonly known Kants politicallegal order lacks autonomous legitimacy altogether. Kant thus treats positive stat- utory laws as legitimate only in so far as they do not infringe natural rights (\i..6; PP, oq). He insists, as we have just seen, that the only legitimate form of the state is a pure republic conceived of as the trans- parent expression of rational community (\i.::; PP, 68). This means that the legitimacy of the state resides neither in the welfare of its citizens for happiness can perhaps come to them more easily . . . in a state of nature . . . or even under a despotic government nor in their security, but only in that condition in which its constitution conforms most fully to principles of justice; that is, the condition that reason through a categorical imperative obligates us to strive after (\i.:8, :; PP, 6:, ). As a result, Kant treats crime as a breach of the moral order rather than the states positive legal order hence as something that must be punished in an absolute retributive manner, rather than therapeutically in accordance with the ends of public safety (\i.:; PP, .). In each of these regards, Kants theory of the state represents an anti-political reduction of civil to moral governance. With this observation of his ambivalence over the legitimacy of the state, we reach the limits of Kants legal and political thought as expounded in the Rechtslehre. For the doctrine that underpins both the states hyper-legitimacy and its chronic illegitimacy the doctrine that the Rechtsstaat exists only to make it possible for intelligible beings to form a worldly community through reciprocating free choices reminds us that, after all, Kants theory of law and state is a manifestation of his 6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics metaphysical ethics. Kant provides us with a striking formulation of his anti-juridical, anti-political social metaphysics in the following reection, written between :6 and :68: The best condition of man in accordance with the rule of law is the social con- dition; and the best condition of social man with regard to his security is the irresistible power that compels him to act in accordance with this rule of law. The sciences and arts make him less resistant [to it]. In this way he becomes not better but tamer. One can easily capture him through a small appeal to his pleasures or his honour. He becomes in fact weaker because each such need, even were it to be chosen [willkrlich], is a bond that ties him to the law. (xix.q, 68) We might say that for Pufendorf and Thomasius the legal and politi- cal orders taming of man its pacication of the moral conicts that had torn Germany to pieces during the seventeenth century signies not its inferiority to, but its hard-won independence from the moral order. For, when states had joined with their confessional churches in attempting to make man better, they had only intensied the destructive powers of these conicts. For Kant, however, the key to the separation of the law and morality the fact that the law controls mans external conduct without attempting to transform his inner disposition is nally a sign of the degree to which the legal and political order falls short of the moral one. Hence, while Kant too regards the Rechtsstaat as unsuited to mans moral regeneration, he, unlike the civil philosophers, does not renounce the project of building a state in which such regeneration will take place. On the contrary, like Leibniz and the Christian natural jurists of the seventeenth century, he continues to pursue this project through a conception of social order older but no less powerful than the idea of the sovereign territorial state: namely, the idea of the church as the model for a general social order in which men can achieve moral regen- eration on earth. Surprising, then, as it might at rst appear, Kants most consequential social and political thought occurs not in his Rechtslehre but in his philosophical theology, where, like other political metaphysi- cians, he uses the gure of the church as a blueprint for the moral state. 6. 6 +nr rtnr nrri oi ox or nr\sox Almost all of the modern discussion of Kants Religion Within the Boun- daries of Reason Alone is organised around two interdependent conten- tions. First, it is widely held that the Religion represents the extension of Kants autonomous ethics into the theological domain. This is taken to The pure religion of reason signify the emergence of a conception of religion purged of all statutory or credal bases, grounded instead in the rational religious postulates required to realise the moral law the postulates of intelligible freedom, immortality, and God as the creator of the intelligible world (Ltzsch :q6; Troeltsch :qo; Wood :qo). Despite the dierences in their approaches, these accounts all claim that in building on his autonomous ethics that is, on the basis of his purely formal account of the moral law as the rule of mans rational self-governance Kants Religion is able to propose a moral purication of Christian theology and religion. As a result, religion appears as the external vehicle for the unfolding of the rational moral law in history and society. The second contention informing modern interpretations of the Religion concerns the historical context inwhichit appeared. If the Religion represents the moral enlightenment of orthodox Christianity then, sothis argument goes, its publicationin:q coincidedwitha concertedattempt by the Prussian state to stemthe tide of the so-called Aufklrung. Relying for the most part on Diltheys original reconstruction of the events, most accounts tie the onset of this periodof reactionto the ascensionof a relig- iously conservative Frederick WilliamII to the Prussianthrone in :86. In :88, Fredericks reactionary Minister of Education and Religious Aairs, JohannChristophWllner, issuedanedict commandingreligious and secular teachers to cease public religious experimentation and to adhere to the creed they are employed to teach, whichever creed that was (Dilthey :8qo). Kants intellectual trajectory intersectedwiththe path of Prussian Religionspolitik when the second of the four essays that would be published as the Religion was rejected by the Berlin Censorship Commission in :q.. After securing the agreement of the Knigsberg theology faculty that this was indeed a philosophical rather than theolog- ical essay, Kant responded to the state censors by claiming the privilege of academic jurisdiction. At the same time, he sent the manuscript to the philosophy faculty of the non-Prussian University of Jena, whose impri- matur saw the book published the following year. Kants evasion of the Prussian censors had its sequel on October :q, when he received an ocial letter, signed by Wllner on behalf of the king. This charged that he had abused his philosophy for the purpose of distorting and dispar- aging several principal and fundamental doctrines of Holy Scripture and of Christianity, enjoining himto desist fromsuch conduct (Di Giovanni :qq6). This way of situating Kants religious philosophy in its historical circumstances that is, viewing it as an inherently progressive rational enlightenment of orthodox Christianity, temporarily blocked by the 8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics forces of political and religious reaction has now become standard in the editorial introductions (Gregor :qq; Wood :qq6). In the light of our reconstruction of Kants metaphysics of morals, however, we have good reason to be sceptical about this whole approach to his philosophy of religion. Firstly, our account shows that Kants con- struction of the principle of moral autonomy cannot be understood as giving rise to an autonomous morality that is, to an ethics whose central principle is independent of revealed religious doctrine, being grounded in free individual reason. Kant provides the following formu- lation of the theological disclaimer in the Critique of Practical Reason: Nevertheless, the Christian principle of morals itself is not theological (and so heteronomy); it is instead autonomy of pure practical reason itself, since it does not make cognition of God and his will the basis of these laws, but only the attainment of the highest good subject to the condition of observing these laws, and since it places even the proper incentive to observing them not in the results wished for but in the representation of duty alone, faithful observance of which alone constitutes worthiness to acquire the latter. (\.:.q; PP, .) While it might serve to separate pure practical reason from the revealed theology of the church, this disclaimer cannot separate it from the revealed theology or anthropology of university metaphysics. On the contrary, having observed that Kants notion of moral autonomy is actu- ally an improvisation on the gure of contemplative autarky and having seen, as Kant himself acknowledges throughout his Reexionen, that this autarky is grounded in the gure of God as pure self-acting intelligence then we may say that the concept of moral autonomy is itself based in a revealed religious doctrine: namely, the doctrine of God as autarkic intellectual substance as inculcated in Christian university metaphysics. The autonomy of Kantian moral reason is grounded in the revealed autarky of the metaphysical intellect. We have further argued that the formality of Kants moral principle the notion that it may be arrived at through a priori reection on its idea, independent of all material anthropology and cosmology is itself dependent on the metaphysical anthropology of autarkic intelli- gible being. For we have seen that Kants conception of formal moral reason the notion of an idea capable of determining its own contents, independent of all experience is actually grounded in the thought- gure of an intellectual being whose objects of knowledge are created by pure intellection of them. In other words, far from signifying the emergence of an ethics independent of revealed Christian doctrine, Kants conception of the autonomy of moral reason is actually a means The pure religion of reason q of modelling the ethical subject in accordance with the gure of divine intellectual autarky transmitted in Christian metaphysics. We may propose, therefore, that Kants reconciliation of reason and religion entailed a sacralisation of reason no less powerful than its rationalisation of religion. This reciprocity is captured in a contemporary text, bearing the apt title of Predigten nach kantischen Grundstzen (Sermons on Kantian Principles): Religion is innocent [of the charge of superstition] as its precepts are purely moral, and are compatible with human reason because reason itself is holy (Anonymous :q, :8). Kant, of course, provides many declarations of the priority of moral philosophy over Christian theology, such as this one from the Groundwork: But where do we get the concept of God as the highest good? Solely from the idea of moral perfection that reason frames a priori and con- joins inseparably with the concept of a free will (i\.o8q; PP, 6). But this is not the declaration of the rational independence of morality that it rst appears. For, given what it takes to think the a priori idea of the moral law the need to purify the will of all empirical ends and incen- tives in order to realise the capacity for pure intellectual self-determina- tion then human beings have to imitate the concept of God, which remains central to Kants moral philosophy. While true enough in its own terms, the claim that Kant generates the practical religious postu- lates from reason alone thus turns out to be quite unrevealing; for the intellectual exercises that count as reason in this regard are actually internal to metaphysics as a quasi-religious culture of the self. Kants claim that the interest in intelligible freedom arises from an idea natu- rally present in the ordinary consciousness the idea that man is both a spontaneous intellect in an intelligible world and a passive sensibility in a material one only makes sense, we discovered, if this idea is seen as the pedagogical means of inducing the interest. Given that they are grounded in the same gure of thought, then we may treat the so-called need of reason for the postulates of immortality (required to reconcile intelligible virtue and phenomenal happiness) and God (as creator of the intelligible world in which this reconciliation can take place) as arising in the same way that is, as a need induced through the inculcation of the metaphysical anthropology. The threshold that Kant establishes to distinguish rational ethics and revealed religion that the former is grounded in laws internal to human reason while the latter assumes laws originating in a divine being outside human reason is thus itself an instrument internal to metaphysical o Kant and the preservation of metaphysics culture. Considering that Kant regards the inner moral law as issuing from a divine autarkic intelligence or holy will, and given that this idea is one imposed through a metaphysical paideia rather than naturally occurring to the ordinary consciousness, then the question of whether the law is regarded as internal or external to human reason is not deci- sive for the distinction between moral philosophy and revealed theology. Kants distinction between rational ethics and revealed religion should thus be seen as a purely programmatic means of distinguishing and relating two adjacent moral cultures. We have seen that the culture of university metaphysics requires its initiates to relate to the divine intelli- gising of the moral law as if it were the command of a higher self to which they might accede through speculative self-sanctication. The religious culture in which this metaphysics was embedded, however, requires its community to relate to the moral law as if it arose from a divine being whose renovating grace might be obtained through various sacramental rites. Intellectual historians must therefore learn to see the Kantian distinction between autonomous morality and heteronomous religion in a new way. For this distinction is in fact a device through which Kantian metaphysics, as the ethos of a speculative elite, maintains its spiritual superiority over the broader culture of sacramental Christianity, while simultaneously anchoring itself within this broader religious culture, as the instrument of its moral enlightenment. From the standpoint of uncommitted intellectual history, therefore, the events surrounding the publication of Kants Religion cannot be understood as a clash between a rational philosophy committed to the progressive moral enlightenment of credal Christianity, and an irra- tional state bent on blocking this enlightenment in order to preserve religious orthodoxy as an instrument of political repression. There are two factors to consider here. On the one hand, the theological enlight- enment, to which the Religion was intended as a contribution, was actu- ally a Protestant theological movement dedicated to reforming or rebuilding the sacramental church on the basis of a pious empirical subjectivity (Bohatec :q8; Sparn :q8; Sparn :q8q). In publishing the Religion in this context, Kant was thus actually endeavouring to embed his rational theology in a powerful institutional religious culture, centred in a network of higher clergy and academic theologians known as the Neologians (Aner :q.q). On the other hand, given that Wllners edict was not in fact an attempt to impose a state-sanctioned religious orthodoxy demanding rather that priests and teachers expound the The pure religion of reason : doctrines of whatever church employed them and refrain from public religious experimentation then we may conjecture that it was driven not by religious conservatism as such but by something quite dierent. In fact the edict would seemto be a typical instrument of the Prussian states longstanding policy of supervising the religious peace while remaining neutral between the rival confessions. This was a policy that permitted each confession to proclaim its doctrines, while discouraging proselytising, and insisting that theological speculation capable of dis- turbing the peace take place in private (Heckel :q6; Steiger :qq). The question of the degree to which the Wllner edict conforms to this policy is of course a matter for historical investigation, but several factors at least give us reason to doubt that this measure was grounded in simple religious conservatism. First, the kings personal religious beliefs seemto have been radical rather than conservative, being inclined to freema- sonry and Rosicrucianism rather than Lutheran orthodoxy (Schultze :q6). Next, as we have noted, the edict was not directed at mandating a particular confession but at restraining religious enthusiasm by control- ling public experimentation and proselytising. The edict repeats the post- Westphalian toleration of the three main confessions and in fact extends this to all sects not engaged in public proselytising. Finally, the culturally and politically ambivalent character of the edict is shown by the manner in which it was attacked and defended. As Epstein has shown, its most powerful critic was Lutheranisms central governing body, the Berlin Superior Consistory, which regarded the measure as state interference in the church. Conversely, among its defenders were many desacralising intellectuals who regarded it as a statist measure for the political man- agement of religious enthusiasm (Epstein :q66, :.). This at least allows us to oer an alternative historical interpretation of the attempt to censor Kants Religion. Rather than representing a reactionary politi- calreligious attempt to repress the so-called Aufklrung, this act can be seen as an instance of the states longstanding policy of forestalling public religious controversy and managing religious enthusiasm here the enthusiasmof rationalist religious intellectuals. In any event we have perhaps said enough to reorient the approach of historical scholarship to Kants religious philosophy and to his Religion in particular. This work is not indicative of the manner in which an autonomous moral philosophy sought the rational purication of credal religion, nding the path of historical progress temporarily blocked by a reactionary state. Rather, it signies the manner in which Kant . Kant and the preservation of metaphysics attempted to graft his version of the metaphysical paideia onto the ratio- nalist wing of Protestant theology (Neology). Through this strategy he sought to reshape theology from within in accordance with his meta- physics, while simultaneously using theology as a social vehicle for his metaphysics. This vehicle would be the gure of the church as a morally perfecting civil society. This is the way, then, in which we shall approach the Religion, treating Parts i and ii as elaborating a philosophical theol- ogy in the form of the metaphysical purication of biblical doctrine (6.6.:), and Parts iii and i\ as using this theology to shape a conception of the church as a civil society under metaphysical moral governance (6.6..). ... Metaphysical hermeneutics The doctrine through which Kant eects the transition from moral phi- losophy to philosophical theology is that of radical evil. This doctrine, whose elaboration forms the centrepiece of Part i of the Religion, plays no role in the Groundwork of the Metaphysics of Morality or in the Critique of Practical Reason. It was, however, a standard topic in Kants lectures on philosophical theology, and it is not dicult to see how he could use it to give a biblicalChristian inection to his metaphysics of mans nou- menal and sensible natures. Some modern commentators regard Kants discussion of evil as a uniquely profound contribution to intellectual life, in providing a rational account of mans relation to God (Wood :qo, .oq:o). Others approach Kants treatment of radical evil as if it were a forensic analysis of the nature of sin and justication, to be judged in accordance with the canons of assertoric argument (Quinn :q86; Quinn :q88). It quickly becomes clear, however, that Kants discussion of radical evil is neither unique nor rational in any absolute sense. In fact, Kants treatment of the doctrine takes the form of the recon- ciliation of an apparent antinomy or contradiction between two dif- ferent conceptions of evil, aspects of both appearing necessary to the understanding. Evil for Kant consists in the choice to act on the basis of maxims satisfying the sensible inclinations, rather than the maxim of duty or respect for the moral law. On the one hand, Kant argues, if we are to forestall an innite regress of such choices we must be able to posit the presence in the subject of a common ground, itself a maxim, of all particular morally evil maxims; and this subjective ground for the choice of evil maxims can be regarded as natural in the sense of being The pure religion of reason ultimate and ineradicable (\i..o; RRT, o). On the other hand, though, if man is to be held responsible for his own moral condition, then this subjective ground may not, as the pagans held, be considered as inher- ent in mans sensuous nature. It must itself be regarded as an act free choice: Hence the ground of evil cannot lie in any object determining the power of choice through inclination, not in any natural impulses, but only in a rule that the power of choice [Willkr] itself produces for the exercise of its freedom (\i..:; RRT, o). In order to stop the regress that would begin were we to ask for the ground of this ultimate choice of the maxim underlying all other such choices Kant argues that we must treat it as a priori. It must thus be regarded as timeless and inscrutable to the empirical understanding, which accounts for it being to all appearances innate, while nonetheless remaining intelligibly free and imputable: But since the rst ground of the adoption of our maxims, which must itself again lie in the free power of choice, cannot be any fact possibly given in expe- rience, the good or evil in the human being is said to be innate (as the subjec- tive rst ground of the adoption of this or that maxim with respect to the moral law) only in the sense that it is posited as the ground antecedent to every use of freedom given in experience (from the earliest youth as far back as birth) and is thus represented as present in the human being at the moment of birth not that birth itself is its cause. (\i...; RRT, :) Far from being uniquely Kantian, this resolution of the problem of evil in which man is regarded as freely choosing the evil nature that corrupts all his choices was standard in seventeenth-century Lutheran metaphysics, as we learned from Walter Sparn (:.). Sparn, we can recall, argues that this gure of thought served a particular end within Christian apologetics: namely, that of subsuming the pagan philosophi- cal conception evil (as arising from mans sensuous nature) within the Christian theological doctrine of sin (as ur-transgression of divine law). In this way the doctrine permitted the subordination of pagan ethical naturalism to Christian moral transcendentalism, thereby eecting a harmonisation of philosophy and theology typical of Protestant Schulmetaphysik (Sparn :q6, :o8o). From Josef Bohatecs still-unsurpassed study of Kants theological sources we learn that, in late-eighteenth-century Knigsberg, it was pos- sible for a Protestant metaphysician to put the same gure of thought to a remarkably similar use. Bohatec argues that Kant uses this gure to reconcile Wolan moral naturalism which attributed evil to mans error-inducing senses and the Pietist conception of evil as the free Kant and the preservation of metaphysics transgression of divine command. Moreover, he shows that, in doing so, Kants use of this doctrine of radical evil closely follows that of a number of contemporary Neologians Heilmann, Schultz, Stapfer, and Baumgarten whose programme involved just this synthesis of Wolanism and Pietism into a philosophical religion (Bohatec :q8, .86). We have already observed that reconciling the rationalist and Pietist models of spiritual regeneration was a central preoccupation of the Knigsberg philosophy and theology faculties during Kants forma- tive years. If Kants was the latest in a long line of metaphysical arguments designed to reconcile philosophical moral naturalism and Christian moral transcendentalism nature and freedom then it is important to observe that, like its predecessors, Kants version also has a circular character. Here we use this term in an historical and descriptive, rather than a forensic and normative manner; for our aim is to show that the circularity of Kants argument regarding radical evil is actually the con- dition of it fullling its role in the metaphysical paideia. Kant expounds his theme of a freely chosen evil nature through a discussion of the pro- pensity to evil, building a good deal of his argument into the denition of propensity (Hang) itself: By propensity (propensio) I understand the subjective ground of the possibility of an inclination (habitual desire, concupiscentia), insofar as this possibility is contin- gent for humanity in general. It is distinguished from a predisposition [Anlage] in that a propensity can indeed be innate yet may be represented as not being such: it can rather be thought of (if it is good) as acquired, or (if evil) as brought by the human being upon himself. (\i..8q; RRT, 6) It is the propensity to substitute the maxims of the inclinations for the law of duty that explains mans (empirical) predisposition to evil and that nds expression in the notion of his depraved or corrupt nature: The depravity (vitiositas, pravitas) or, if one prefers, the corruption (corruptio) of the human heart is the propensity of the power of choice [Willkr] to maxims that subordinate the incentives of the moral law to others (not moral ones) (\i.o; RRT, 8). If, however, it is to remain imputable to us, this propensity must itself be considered as a deed. Kant himself emphasises the apparent contra- diction involved in treating propensity meant to explain our evil acts as itself an evil act: And yet by the concept of a propensity is understood a subjective determining ground of the power of choice that precedes every deed, and hence is itself not The pure religion of reason yet a deed. There would then be a contradiction in the concept of a simple pro- pensity to evil, if this expression could not somehow be taken in two dierent meanings, both nonetheless reconcilable with the concept of freedom. (\i.:; RRT, q) It is at this point that Kant moves to solve the problem, by constructing two dierent senses for deed: rst, as signifying mans timeless nou- menal choice of the subjective nature that will predispose him to act from the maxims of sensibility; and, second, as signifying the empirical acts performed by this nature in accordance with such maxims: Now the term deed [Tat] can in general apply just as well to the use of freedom through which the supreme maxim (either in favour of, or against, the law) is adopted in the power of choice [Willkr], as to the use by which the actions themselves (materially considered, i.e. as regards the objects of the power of choice) are performed in accordance with that maxim. The propensity to evil is a deed in the rst sense (peccatum originarium) [original sin], and at the same time the formal ground of every deed contrary to law in the second sense, which materially resists the law and is called vice (peccatum derivatum) [derivative sin]; and the rst oence remains even though the second may be repeatedly avoided (because of incentives that are not part of the law). The former is an intelligible deed, cognisable through sheer reason apart from all temporal condition; the latter is sensible, empirical, given in time (factum phenomenon) [phenomenal deed]. (\i.:; RRT, q) Not even a commentator as erudite and sympathetic as Bohatec regards this as solving the problem. If the corruption of the heart is regarded as a propensity in order to explain our tendency to evil acts, and is then regarded as an evil act in order to remain imputable, then this simply sets up a circle between propensity and deed and, conse- quently, the original corruption of our nature remains unexplained (Bohatec :q8, o6q). But Bohatecs careful analysis of this circularity misses the point of Kants procedure. For Kant establishes the circle between disposition and deed in order to present the original choice of an evil nature incomprehensible to human reason and, in fact, to ground the ultimate or natural character of human evil in the very incompre- hensibility of this choice: Now the former [intelligible deed] is said to be a bare propensity especially when compared with the second [phenomenal deed], and to be innate, because it cannot be eradicated (since for this to occur the supreme maxim would have to be of the good, whereas in this propensity this maxim has been assumed to be evil). But the chief reason [why the intelligible deed must be regarded as an ineradicable propensity] is that we are just as incapable of assigning a further 6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics cause for why evil has corrupted the very highest maxim in us, though this is our own deed, as we are for any fundamental attribute that belongs to our nature. (\i.:.; RRT, q) Far from indicating a weakness in Kants metaphysical theology, this way of grounding the ultimate and ineradicable character of human evil that is, grounding it in the incomprehensibility of mans ur-choice of an evil nature actually holds the key to its considerable power. In the rst place, it enables Kant to repudiate all naturalistic conceptions of moral character. This applies particularly to the Epicurean anthropolo- gies of the civil philosophers. These, it will be recalled, treat mans evil disposition as arising from his empirical nature (the passions and aects) or circumstances (bad upbringing, corrupting environment), and con- strue ethics as a practice of self-restraint designed gradually to improve mans conduct. Against all such doctrines Kant insists that the corrup- tion of moral character is a complete and instantaneous transformation of mans moral nature, occurring outside time. This means that there can be no empirical explanation or mitigation of mans evil actions, each one of which must be regarded as if he had just stepped out of the state of innocence into evil (\i.:; RRT, 86). In other words, by using the circle between propensity and deed to place evil beyond all empirical explanation thereby establishing it as a metaphysical mystery Kant seeks to place mans moral conduct beyond the reach of all those who treat it as a phenomenon to be managed in accordance with worldly civil imperatives. Had he lived to see it, Thomasius would of course have regarded this as an instance of secret theology and philosophical priestcraft. For Kant is not only breaching the civil philosophers injunc- tion on philosophical explications of matters of faith, he is doing so to preserve morality and religion as mysteries, ultimately open only to metaphysicians. Secondly, Kant uses the incomprehensibility gure as the bridgehead for taking his philosophical theology onto the terrain of biblical exege- sis. Kant rst explicitly introduces the biblical history of the Fall, on whose language he has been implicitly drawing, by appealing to it as far more suited to the transcendent rational origins of evil than any of the naturalistic accounts. For the Christian history treats evil not as a natural endowment but as the corruption of an originally innocent nature through sin, the ur-transgression of the moral law (\i.:.; RRT, 88). At the same time, however, by portraying this fall into sin as something that occurs in time rather than as a timeless event manifesting itself in The pure religion of reason all temporal actions the biblical narrative seems to imply that this cor- ruption can be given an empirical explanation, even if it does this only to make allowances for the weakness of human reason: We must not however seek a temporal origin for a moral nature for which we are to be held accountable, even if this is unavoidable when we want to explain the contingent existence of this nature (hence the Scriptures, in accor- dance with this weakness of ours, have perhaps so pictured its temporal origin) (\i.; RRT, 88). Kant thus uses the gure of the incomprehensibility of radical evil as the means of merging his (already tacitly Christian) metaphysical ethics with the central biblicalChristian doctrines of sin, justication, and redemption. He achieves this end by elaborating a structurally ambiva- lent position for revealed doctrine, treating it as both required to com- pensate for the limits of human reason, yet sharing in these limits. On the one hand, therefore, the biblical story of the Fall answers to and compensates for the inability of natural philosophical reason to compre- hend the original corruption of mans moral nature: Evil can have orig- inated only from moral evil (not just from the limitations of our nature); yet the original predisposition (which none other than man himself could have corrupted, if this corruption is to be imputed to him) is a pre- disposition to the good; for us, therefore, there is no conceivable ground from which moral evil could have rst come into us (\i.; RRT, 88). On the other hand, the fact that the Bible compensates for the limits of tem- poral human reason via a temporal analogy the story of the Fall as a singular historical event rather than as an ever-present timeless occur- rence means that it too must be puried, if reason is to overcome its temporalsensible limits and rise to its highest pure form. The instrument of this purication is a specic metaphysical herme- neutics. Through this hermeneutics Kant treats biblical history as the analogical vehicle of metaphysical truths, thence proceeding to winnow the temporal husks of the history in order to reveal its rational kernel, as Kant exemplies in the following remarkable passage: The Scriptures express this incomprehensibility [of mans original corruption], together with a more accurate specication of the depravity of our species, in the historical narrative thus: it projects evil into the beginning of the world, not, however, within man, but in a spirit of an originally more sublime destiny. The absolutely rst beginning of all evil is thereby represented as incomprehensible to us (for whence the evil in that spirit?); man, however, is represented as having lapsedinto it only throughtemptation, hence not as corruptedfundamentally . . . but, on the contrary, as still capable of improvement, by contrast to a tempting 8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics spirit, i.e. one whomthe temptation of the esh cannot be accounted as a miti- gation of guilt. And so for man, who despite a corrupted heart yet always pos- sesses a good will, there still remains hope of a return to the good fromwhich he has strayed. (\i.; RRT, 88q). Despite the neglect of it in many modern commentaries, Kants phil- osophical biblical hermeneutics is actually the intellectual method or spiritual exercise through which his rational theology performs the core task of university metaphysics; that is, reconciling moral philosophy and revealed theology within a single discipline in accordance with the apol- ogetic purposes of Christian metaphysics itself. Hence, if Kant places his philosophical interpretation of the Bible outside the bounds of scrip- tural exegesis, he does so in order to raise it above the latter, treating his metaphysical hermeneutics as the means by which human reason puries itself of the historical conditioning in which orthodox exegesis remains mired. That this is so is clear from the remarks Concerning the restoration of its power of the original predisposition to the good, with which Kant concludes Part i. For these remarks, organised as a mirror image of the metaphysical analogy of the Fall into moral evil, are intended to show how the doctrine of divine grace may be incorporated in a philosophy of religion that yet remains within the boundaries of reason alone. Like the original corruption of human nature, the means by which humans can restore their lost good disposition are quite incomprehensible to them: How it is possible that a naturally evil man should make himself into a good man surpasses all our concepts (\i.; RRT, qo). The cor- ruption of our disposition occurs outside time, and this means that none of the improvements that we make to ourselves as temporal beings can restore our good disposition. For this requires a complete and instanta- neous revolution in our disposition, not the kind of gradual improve- ment in conduct recommended by the civil philosophers, which occurs in accordance with the ignoble desire for happiness; for example, when an unjust man [converts] to civic righteousness for the sake of peace or prot (\i.; RRT, q:). At this point, having demonstrated both the necessity and the incom- prehensibility of mans revolutionary moral renovation, Kant begins to use the biblical language of spiritual rebirth: And so a new man can come about only through a kind of rebirth, as it were a new creation (John, :; compare with Genesis, ::.) and a change of heart (\i.; RRT, q.). This provides the avenue through which Kant introduces the The pure religion of reason q doctrine of grace into his pure rational religion. For, although man is incapable of saving himself as an empirical being his temporal ethical progress always falling short of a timeless moral disposition still, if by a single unalterable decision a man reverses the supreme ground of his maxims . . . and thereby puts on a new man, he may render himself receptive to a renovation of his nature coming from a higher source. This occurs when a noumenal being, possessing the capacity for a-tem- poral intellectual intuition, intelligises the incomplete unfolding of tem- poral mans deeds as an instantaneous unity, thereby completing them and rendering them adequate to the timeless disposition. For him who penetrates to the intelligible ground of the heart (the ground of all maxims of the power of choice), for him to whom this progress is a unity, i.e. for God, this is actually the same as actually being a good man (pleasing to him); and to this extent the change can be considered a revolution. For the judgment of human beings, however, who can assess themselves and the strength of their maxims only by the upper hand they gain over the senses in time, the change is to be regarded only as an ever-continuing striving for the better, hence as a gradual reformation of the propensity to evil, of the perverted cast of mind [Denkungsart]. (\i.8; RRT, q.) The full elaboration of this philosophical version of justication and salvation, however, is reserved for Section ii of the Religion, where it takes place via the gure of Christ. Here Kant establishes a complex analogical interplay between his own metaphysical anthropology of mans intelligible and sensible natures, and Christian metaphysics of Christs two natures and one person. On the one hand, he argues that the gure of Christ as the incarnation of the divine being in human nature provides an appropriate analogy for the incomprehensible pres- ence of the idea of the pure moral disposition the archetype of a humanity pleasing to God in sensible man. Kant thus executes a Christological reconguration of the central idea of his moral philoso- phy the notion of the moral principle as rational being in man which he can do because this humanity is already conceived as a quasi- divine being resident in the human: In the practical faith in this Son of God (so far as he is represented as having taken up human nature) the human being can thus hope to become pleasing to God (and thereby blessed). In other words, the only human being who is enti- tled to consider himself as something not unworthy of divine pleasure is the one conscious of such a moral disposition in himself as enables him to believe and self-assuredly trust that, under similar temptations and aictions (so far as these o Kant and the preservation of metaphysics are made the touchstone of that idea), he would unswervingly cleave to the archetype [Urbilde] of humanity and, by faithful emulation, remain true to his exemplar. (\i.6.; RRT, :o) On the other hand, we must not think of the gure of Christ as literally signifying the embodiment of God in man at some point in time; for this would result in a Godman whose holiness is so far above the human that it could serve no moral purpose for us. We must therefore regard the incarnation as an analogical representation of Christs personication of the pure moral disposition through his teachings and actions, which occurs in us at all times. This practical representation of the moral prin- ciple in Christ the human teacher thus makes divine righteousness avail- able for human appropriation, even though this righteousness is not our own, and rendering this appropriation comprehensible to us is still fraught with great diculties (\i.66; RRT, :o8). In fact there are three such diculties (\i.66.; RRT, :o8:.). First, how can man become adequate to the personied image of the holy law in him given that the distance between the goodness which we ought to eect in ourselves and the evil from which we start is . . . innite, and, so far as the deed is concerned . . . is not exhaustible in any time? Next, given that we can have no empirical insight into our moral condition and moral fate such as the images of heaven and hell appear to provide those seeking incentives for their conduct how can we nd the assu- rance and comfort that heartens us to maintain a good way of life? Finally, given that each man is responsible for fullling the commands of duty, yet that mans corrupt condition means that he must depend on anothers righteousness to render him adequate to the holy law, how can he atone for his own corruption through the goodness of another? In posing and resolving these problems Kant seeks to incorporate the central doctrines of Protestant theology rebirth, justication through Christ, and vicarious satisfaction into his hermeneutic metaphysics. Kant has already sketched an answer to the rebirth problem in his metaphysics of grace, given at the end of Part i. The only dierence between that discussion and this one is that here Kant uses the gure of Christs two natures and one person in order to show how the grace required for moral rebirth can be both supranatural yet internal to the person. In combining a divine (noumenal) and a human nature, the gure of Christ oers an analogical image of the manner in which pure intellectual intuition renders the deed adequate to the disposition within a single person (\i.668; RRT, :o8q). For its part, the problemof nding The pure religion of reason : comfort in Christ can be solved if we treat the images of heaven and hell not as objective incentives, but as practical analogies for the steadfastness with which we should hold to the moral disposition by living a good life (\i.6:; RRT, :oq:.). Finally, Kant makes the most elaborate use of his metaphysical hermeneutics to oer a rational religious interpreta- tion of the doctrine of vicarious atonement. This obstacle to the human appropriation of divine goodness can be overcome if we treat Christs suering and atonement as an analogy for the suering that all men must undergo during the process of moral regeneration. Through this analogy, the relation between mans noumenal and phenomenal selves is regarded as simulating the relation between Christ and man: The emergence from the corrupted into the good disposition is, in itself (as the death of the old man, the crucifying of the esh), a sacrice and entrance into a long train of lifes ills. These the new man undertakes in the disposition of the Son of God, that is, simply for the sake of the good, yet they are really due as punishments to someone else, namely the old man (who morally is another being). Although physically (considered in his empirical character as a sensible being) he is still the same human being liable to punishment and must be judged as such by a moral tribunal and hence by himself; yet, in his new disposition (as an intelligible being), in the sight of a divine judge for whom the disposition takes the place of the deed, he is morally another being. And this disposition which he has incorporated in all its purity, like unto the purity of the Son of God or (if we personify this idea) this very Son of God bears as vicarious substitute the debt of sin for him, and also for all who believe (practically) in him. (\i.; RRT, :::) Far from being a rational purication of revealed theology, therefore, Kants philosophical theology is the means by which he attaches the elite metaphysical paideia to the broader culture of biblical Christianity. Through his improvisation on the gure of the incomprehensibility of mans moral corruption and regeneration, Kant eects both a religious reconguration of his metaphysical anthropology and a metaphysical reinterpretation of the central Christian doctrines of rebirth and justication. If he thereby achieves a philosophical rationalisation of the revealed doctrines, then he simultaneously makes their sacralising powers of conversion and purication available for his practice of spec- ulative self-transformation. Both dimensions of the change are present in Kants insistence that, while the puried doctrines of radical evil, rebirth, and justication do not increase our theoretical understanding, they nonetheless play a crucial role in moral ascetics (\i.o:; RRT, q). They do so by destroy- ing condence in the naturalistic ethics of moral self-restraint. For those . Kant and the preservation of metaphysics who learn to govern only their external conduct for example, presum- ably, the Knigsberg law students undergoing a Pufendoran or Thomasian (quasi-Epicurean) ethical formation remain evil at heart. In this way Kants students, destined to sta the Lutheran churches and schools of East and West Prussia, are compelled to seek moral salvation in a profound and total transformation of the inner self, to be achieved through the self-purifying method of Kants own metaphysical herme- neutics (\i.68; RRT, ::6). In other words, Kants moral religion emerges not as a rational purication of revealed Christian doctrine, but as a use of such doctrine to recongure the metaphysical paideia in a manner that would better allow it to function as the religion of a specic intellectual elite. Kant and his modern followers regard his rational theological doc- trines as ultimately grounded in a fully rational principle the formal idea of the moral law hence as supplements to an autonomous ethics. We have shown, however, that his moral principle is itself a Christian metaphysical construct whose ultimate role also lies in the domain of moral ascetics. Here it forms part of a spiritual exercise designed to turn individuals away from worldly prudential ethics towards an ethos of contemplative self-purication. Kants religious reconguration of this construct, via the rationalised doctrines of radical evil, rebirth, and justication, is thus designed to allow his metaphysics itself to function as the vehicle of self-sanctication and moral renewal. Seen in this light, Kants philosophical theology like his moral phi- losophy more broadly must be regarded as a powerful renewal of metaphysical ethics against the detranscendentalising doctrines of the civil philosophers. Through his philosophical simulacra of the doctrines of sin, justication, and moral regeneration, Kant seeks to destroy all ethics grounded in mans indierent or passionate nature that is, all ethics whose horizon is the management of mans external conduct in civil life. Further, through this synthesis of philosophy and theology, uni- versity metaphysics is able to resume its long campaign to resacralise pol- itics, insisting that the state serve an end far higher than security in fact the end of mans moral regeneration. Kant provides his blueprint for the resacralised state in the second half of the Religion. ..: Building the moral state The transition from Kants metaphysical hermeneutics (rational theol- ogy) to his metaphysics of the church (philosophical ecclesiology) occurs The pure religion of reason in the opening pages of Part iii of the Religion. The doctrine through which he eects this transition the doctrine of the corrupting inuence of human society might be described as Rousseauean, were it not for the likelihood that, in formulating this doctrine, both philosophers were drawing on the same metaphysical conception of an ideal moral community. In Kants version, as soon as human beings begin to associate with each other, they are assailed by envy, addiction to power, avarice, and the malignant inclinations associated with these; for, given their predis- position to satisfy their sensuous inclinations, human beings simply as human beings will mutually corrupt each others moral disposition and make one another evil (\i.q; RRT, :.q). Individual moral striving is incapable of combating this social corruption. Bearing in mind the inca- pacity of the Rechtsstaat to touch the inner disposition, human beings are therefore duty-bound to form a society that is both founded on the laws of virtue and is capable of making men virtuous. The fact that these laws must be publicly proclaimed and adhered to means, however, that this moral union will also be a civil society, consisting in fact of the members of the polity, but organised in accordance with virtue rather than coer- cion: In accordance with its leitmotif, a union of human beings merely under the laws of virtue can be called an ethical society and, so far as these laws are public, an ethico-civil (in contrast to a juridico-civil) society, or an ethical commonwealth [gemein Wesen]. It can exist in the midst of a political commonwealth and even be made up of all the members of the latter (indeed, without the foundation of a political commonwealth, it could never be brought into existence by human beings). It has however a special unifying principle of its own (virtue) and hence a form and constitution essentially distinct from those of the other. There is nevertheless a certain analogy between the two . . . and with respect to this analogy the ethical commonwealth can also be called an ethical state, i.e. a kingdom of virtue (of the good principle). (\i.q; RRT, :o) In marked deviation from Pufendorf s collegial and Thomasius ter- ritorial conception of the church, Kant does not regard this ethico-civil society as one of several such associations, existing as private corpora- tions inside the state and under its control. Rather, he treats it as the one true form in which the people may be morally governed, as a hidden moral state co-extensive with the political state, and dedicated to remoulding the latter in its own image. For, from the metaphysical stand- point, human beings in the political state are in an ethical state of nature, ceaselessly corrupting and preying on each other. This means Kant and the preservation of metaphysics that they must leave the political state, submitting their wills to a ruler who governs not just their conduct but their inner dispositions: Hence an ethical commonwealth is conceivable only as a people under divine commands, i.e. as a people of God, and indeed in accordance with the laws of virtue (\i.qq; RRT, :). Here we see the nucleus of Kants pro- gramme to resacralise the state, which takes shape as an anti-political enclave politics, eroding the desacralised state of the civil philosophers from within in fact from within the state-pacied zone of civil society (Koselleck :q88). Just as all societies under public laws entail the subordination of their members, so too does the ethical society, whose members constitute a congregation under the direction of teachers and spiritual shepherds. Adapting the Protestant topos of the invisible and visible church to his own metaphysical ends, Kant stipulates that the intelligible ideal of a moral community under divine law constitutes the church invisible, while the existing church visible is to be seen as the empirical approxi- mation of this ideal. Given the need to the close the gap between the empirical and the ideal, then: The true (visible) church is one that dis- plays the (moral) kingdom of God on earth so far as the latter can be realised through human beings (\i.:o:; RRT, :). Accordingly, says Kant improvising on the standard formula of the one, holy, catholic and apostolic church the true visible church must be universal (sub- suming all confessions); pure (grounded in morality alone); free (inter- nally and with regard to the state); and unchanging (grounded in a priori principles which may be publicly proclaimed as it were through a book of laws) (\i.:o:.; RRT, :6). Kants conception of a metaphysical reunication of the faith may thus be regarded as an updating of Leibnizs reunion project. Kants use of the topos of the visible and invisible church diers signicantly from that of Pufendorf and Thomasius, this dierence pointing to the gulf separating the metaphysical and civil conceptions of the governance of civil society. For Pufendorf and Thomasius, we can recall (., .6), the invisible church consists of an unspeciable commu- nity of teachers and auditors, held together by bonds of love and emu- lation, and by a faith incapable of philosophical formulation or public proclamation. For its part, the visible church consists of the plurality of historical confessions, tolerated by the state as voluntary associations in civil society, but precluded from even the smallest share in civil author- ity through the states constitutional indierence to the truth of their teachings. As far as the civil philosophers are concerned, the notion of a The pure religion of reason true visible church or an ethico-civil commonwealth that is, a civil society purporting to make men moral as well as law-abiding is a dan- gerous contradiction in terms. Arguing that the political neutralisation of religion and society required the segregation of the kingdom of truth and the civil state, Pufendorf and Thomasius reject the gure of the church as a model for civil society, justifying state control of the visible churches as secular institutions subordinate to the end of social peace. Kants way of separating church and state But woe to the legisla- tor who would want to bring about through coercion a polity directed to ethical ends! (\i.q6; RRT, ::) thus points in a dierent direction to Pufendorf s and Thomasius. Like the Lutheran ecclesiastical jurists who preceded him, Kant draws this distinction primarily to protect the true visible church from political governance, thereby preserving its role as a (non-coercive) polity directed to ethical ends (Schlaich :q68, .8q). The civil philosophers, however, draw this distinction in order to defend the state from religious inltration, and to protect individual Christians from confessional coercion (Heckel :q6, .; Wiebking :q, :66). Kants use of the gure of the church to conceive of a morally governed civil society is thus inimical to the central theological, juridi- cal, and political postulates informing the civil philosophers strategy for the descralisation of the state. We shall now see that this is because Kants moral communitarianism is the direct expression of his rational theology; that is, of his metaphysical hermeneutics as an intellectual dis- cipline designed to recongure the culture and role of the university metaphysician. Kant constructs his conception of a faith capable of founding a moral society or universal church the pure religious faith or pure rational faith via the distinction between statutory and purely moral laws. Unlike Thomasius use of this Protestant distinction, however, Kants is designed not to divorce private morality from public religious creeds but, in fact, to reconcile the two. This is because Kants distinction is gov- erned by his metaphysical anthropology rather than by a political- jurisprudential analysis of confessional religion and is oriented to the harmonisation of moral philosophy and religion. Kant thus treats credal religion that is, the religion grounded in revealed historical doctrines and oriented to gaining Gods grace and favour through public ritual as arising from mans lower sensible nature. The moral laws though are grounded in each individuals reason, and may be acceded to without any invocation of God save that of course that which comes through mans awareness of the holiness of the laws themselves, and from his 6 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics need for the Divinity to procure their full realisation in the world (\i.:o; RRT, :6). This way of drawing the distinction between revealed statutory and pure moral laws sets the scene for its overcoming through Kants central speculative exercise the posing and reconciling of an antinomy or contradiction. On the one hand, the moral law requires no statutory rites for the worship of God: For in pure religious faith it all comes down to what constitutes the essence [Materie] of Gods veneration, namely the observance of all duties as his commands, which occurs in the moral dis- position. For citizens in a divine state on earth, though, things are dierent: A church, on the other hand, which is the union of many human beings with many dispositions in a moral commonwealth, needs a public mode of obligation a certain kind of experience-based eccle- siastical form, which, being contingent and manifold, cannot be recog- nised as a duty without divine statutory laws (\i.:o; RRT, :8). Far from leading Kant to follow Thomasius in repudiating the very idea of a public statutory religion of divine dispensation a move Kant calls arrogant this antinomy points him in a quite dierent direction. In fact it leads him to seek a credal religion that contains the revealed stat- utes required for the moulding of men into an ethical commonwealth, but that also harbours the pure moral religion within it, in a form that allows for its rening over time, as men themselves are rened. He does not have to look far aeld. Given that men must be moulded into an ethical commonwealth through ecclesiastical statutes before they can accede to the pure moral meaning contained in these statutes, then, Kant argues, only a scriptural religion could possess the required histor- ical durability and powers of diusion. Further, among the religions of the book, only (New Testament) Christianity contains the pure moral religion within it. This means that the Christian Scriptures and the church founded on them are providential: How fortunate, when one such book, fallen into human hands, contains com- plete, besides its statutes as laws of faith, also the purest moral doctrine of relig- ion [reinste moralische Religionslehre] a doctrine which can be brought into perfect harmony with those statutes (which are the vehicles of its introduction). In this event, both because of the end thereby to be attained, and the diculty of making intelligible through natural laws the enlightenment of the human race proceeding from it, the book can command the same regard as a revelation. (\i.:o; RRT, :o) The pure religious faith capable of grounding a universal moral society is thus not biblical Christianity as such. Rather, it consists in the herme- neutic recovery of the pure moral faith from the empirical religion in The pure religion of reason whichit was rst introducedas a compensationfor mans sensuous under- standing: Now to unite the foundation of a moral faith . . . with such an empirical faith which, to all appearances, chance has dealt us, we require an interpretation of the revelation we happen to have, i.e. a thorough- going understanding of it in a sense that harmonises with the universal practical rules of a pure religion of reason [reinen Vernunftreligion] (\i.::o; RRT, :.). In this audacious move Kant thus grounds the historical purication of Christian statutes, responsible for creating moral society, in the ratio- nal purication of revealed doctrine through his own metaphysical her- meneutics. In doing so he not only precludes the state interpreting the Bible for its ends (contra Hobbes), he also accords priority to the meta- physical hermeneut (the scriptural interpreter) over the biblical exegete (the scriptural scholar). For the former opens the door to humanitys moral future by forcing the religion of reason from its historical vehicle, whereas the latters task is only to present the historical doctrine that contains mans moral past: There is, therefore, no norm of ecclesiastical faith except Scripture, and no other expositor of it except pure religion of reason and scriptural scholarship (which deals with the historical side). And of these two, the rst alone is authen- tic and valid for the whole world, whereas the second is merely doctrinal; its aim being the transformation of the ecclesiastical faith for a given people at a given time into a denite and self-maintaining system. (\i.::; RRT, :) Kant regards this programme for the progressive metaphysical purication of biblical Christianity as resolving what he takes to be the central cultural antagonism of his time roughly that between Protestant religiosity and civil ethics. On the one hand, says Kant, there are those who, conscious that the renovation of mans corrupt nature requires a transcendent inux of righteousness, maintain faith in the vicarious justication revealed in Bible, but thereby slight the imperative to live a good life. On the other hand, there are those who cultivate a good way of life but, in refusing to accept the need for a vicarious reno- vation of their moral natures, lack the faith required to realise their moral end: The rst principle is accused (often not unjustly) of ritual superstition, which knows how to reconcile a criminal life conduct with religion; the second, of naturalistic unbelief, which combines indierence, or, indeed, even antagonism to all revelation with an other- wise perhaps exemplary conduct of life (\i.::8:q; RRT, :q). According to Kant, only his metaphysical hermeneutics shows the way out of this cultural impasse. It does so, as we have already seen, by 8 Kant and the preservation of metaphysics insisting (against naturalistic unbelief ) that faith in the revealed gure of the Saviour is indeed necessary for the renovation of mans moral dis- position. But it simultaneously argues (against ritual superstition) that Christ is actually an archetype of reason in us, which means that we qualify for grace only through living the good life. It is therefore meta- physical hermeneutics itself that controls the passage from credal eccle- siastical religion to pure moral faith, thereby constituting the religion required for the ethical society in which man will reach his highest moral destiny the perfection of his moral disposition through the kingdom of God on earth: The basis for the transition to the new order of things must lie in the principle of the pure religion of reason, as a revelation (though not an empirical one) per- manently taking place within all human beings, and this basis, once grasped after mature reection, will be carried to eect, inasmuch as it is to be a human work, through gradual reform . . . We have reason to say, however, that the Kingdom of God is come into us, even if only the principle of the gradual tran- sition from ecclesiastical faith to the universal religion of reason, and so to a (divine) ethical state on earth, has put down roots universally and, somewhere, also in public though the actual setting up of this state is still innitely removed from us. (\i.:..; RRT, :.) It is clear from this passage that Kant regards his hermeneutic metaphysics as diering fundamentally from both orthodox biblical Christianity and naturalistic ethics. He presumes this metaphysics to be dependent neither on inculcated doctrine nor on mans empirical moral nature, representing instead the self-revelation of divine reason occur- ring timelessly within all human beings. In fact Kant constructs an explicit argument to this eect in the fourth and nal part of the Religion. He does so through one last antinomy, this time between natural religion and erudite or learned religion. Learned religion is dependent on the transmission, by a clerical elite, of a set of historically revealed doctrines held to be necessary for salvation. It is therefore always the religion of a particular people and lacks the univer- sal communicability necessary to qualify as the universal religion of a world ethical society. Natural religion, however, because it can be arrived at by all individuals reecting on their own moral natures, is in a dierent position: Natural religion, as morality (with reference to the freedom of the subject), combined with the concept of that which can actualise its ultimate end (the concept of God as moral originator of the world), and referred to a duration of the human being proportionate to the entirety of this end (immortality), is a The pure religion of reason q pure practical concept of reason which, despite its innite fruitfulness, yet pre- supposes only so little a capacity for theoretical reason that, practically, we can suciently convince every human being of it and everyone can expect its eect at least, as duty. (\i.:; RRT, :q8o) In this formulation we can of course recognise an elliptical presenta- tion of core concepts common to Kants metaphysics of morals and religion. In comparison with Pufendorf s and Thomasius conception of natural religion which reduces to the bare maxims of loving God and ones neighbour Kants thus conceals a sophisticated doctrinal specicity, focused in the intellectualist conception of the moral law and the three religious postulates required for its realisation. Moreover, unlike theirs, Kants natural religion is not intended to be a non-salvic social pedagogy, radically distinct from ecclesiastical religion, and under state control. On the contrary, it is envisaged as a morally regenerative pure rational faith destined to be reconciled with ecclesiastical faith in a religion that will outstrip all political supervision. For, Kant argues, while erudite religion can indeed degenerate into a sacramental clerical prac- tice lacking all inner moral ecacy, the limits of mans sensuous under- standing mean that he nonetheless requires the inculcation of public doctrines in order to begin the task of moral self-transformation. This need not be a problem, however, if the doctrinal formulas simply intro- duce an intellectual discipline that men would have eventually imposed on themselves: Accordingly a religion can be natural, yet also revealed, if it is so constituted that human beings could and ought to have arrived at it on their own through the mere use of their reason, even though they would not have come to it as early or as extensively as is required. Hence a revelation of it at a given time and place might be wise and very advantageous to the human race, for then, once the thereby introduced religion is at hand and has been made publicly known, everyone can henceforth convince himself of its truth by himself and his own reason. (\i.:6; RRT, :8) Once again Kant both poses and resolves the antinomy through his metaphysical anthropology. For this is what allows him to treat revealed Christian doctrine as the empirical form in which mans divine intelli- gible being reveals itself to his material self, still mired in the prudential life of corrupt society. This revelation triggers the process of speculative hermeneutic purication that will eventually, at the end of historical time, make revealed doctrine redundant. Once again, Kant uses this anthropology to induce the desire for a profound reshaping of the self this time carried out through the hermeneutic exercise itself, and 6o Kant and the preservation of metaphysics designed to form a specic inner deportment towards both public sac- ramental Christianity and personal everyday conduct. Indeed, it is only through the formation of this deportment that the antinomy between revealed credal and natural moral religion is resolved. For this allows those undergoing the metaphysical paideia to participate in such sacraments as baptism, holy communion, and public prayer as morally edifying contemplative occasions, rather than as mag- ically transformative rituals. Yet it also allows them to treat everyday actions as an occasion for religious observance. All such actions, it will be recalled, are to be regarded as repeating the fall from innocence to corruption, and thus as oering the opportunity for the renovation of sensible mans moral nature through self-transcending participation in his higher intelligible being (\i.:qo.o.; RRT, .o6:). This is of course in sharp contrast to Thomasius Staatskirchenrecht which treats the sacra- ments, one and all, as indierents or adiaphora. According to the civil philosopher, the state may tolerate sacramental religions for the pur- poses of maintaining religious calm, but it must never grant any of them public recognition, or allow them to dictate the terms of civil ethical governance. We have already seen that, far from being something that ordinary consciousness arrives at of its own accord independent of doctrinal inculcation, and therefore rationally and universally awareness of Kants inner moral principle is induced through a powerful metaphysi- cal paideia. This is a spiritual pedagogy that requires individuals to relate to their true selves as pure intelligible beings, tied for the moment to their impure sensible natures, but destined for purifying self-recovery through the speculative exercises of metaphysics. In making his moral principle into the core of his conception of natural religion, Kant was not there- fore showing how revealed sacramental religion would be puried through progressive recovery of a rational principle already contained within all human beings. Rather, confronted by a biblical Christianity unleashed from controlling orthodoxy through the desacralisation of the state and the broader dissemination of religious writings he was outlining a programme that would allow university metaphysics to defend its claim to provide an account of the meaning of religion which alone is authentic and valid for the whole world. Under these changed cultural circumstances this would no longer be achieved through the proclamation of denitive and binding doctri- nal interpretations. Instead, Kant argues, the unication of the faith will take place by qualifying metaphysicians now in the guise of the The pure religion of reason 6: philosophicalhistorical hermeneut to undertake the continuous reinterpretation of doctrine in accordance with their diagnosis of humanitys current level of spiritual development. The genius of Kants hermeneutic metaphysics is that it allows the elite religion of the univer- sity (Kants own metaphysical paideia) and the broader biblicalreligious culture to be continuously adjusted in relation to each other. This adjust- ment, of course, remains under the control of metaphysical hermeneut himself who, through his own speculative reinterpretation of Scripture, displays the current stage of the ongoing revelation of intelligible being in empirical history. We should be sceptical then of those accounts that treat Kants metaphysics as occupying a higher philosophicalhistorical level than other such late-eighteenth-century religiousintellectual movements as Neology. Stephen Lestition, for example, has argued that Kants formal moral philosophy allowed him to grasp the philosophicalhistorical underpinnings of these rival movements, and that his mastery of antin- omy allowed him to understand the historical dialectic governing their future reconciliation (Lestition :qq). In fact, this kind of interpretation bears an uncanny resemblance to Kants own claim to discern the rela- tive historical maturity of human reason. We have shown, to the con- trary, that Kants formal philosophy may itself be regarded as a spiritual exercise competing with other such (religious) exercises. Further, we have seen that Kants antinomies such as those between external orthodoxy and inner moral faith, and between ecclesiastical and natural religion far fromcapturing an intrinsic historical dialectic, in fact seek to impose such a dialectic as a means of absorbing and neutralising the rivals to Kantian metaphysics. In this regard, Kants religious philosophy fell quite naturally under the Wllner edict, concerned as it was to prevent sectarian theologians and intellectuals from public proselytising. In developing his intellectual and cultural strategy, Kant was simulta- neously attacking the rival strategy that had been elaborated by Pufendorf and Thomasius. For theirs was premised on partitioning a religion beyond all reach of philosophical formulation and public proc- lamation, from a politics whose singular end of security dictates its indierence to religious truth and ensures its immunity to moral critique. Kants Religion, though, is dedicated to elaborating a metaphysical her- meneutics capable of functioning as the public theology of an ethical commonwealth, and thereby evading the desacralisation of politics sought by Pufendorf and Thomasius. Kants programme thus preserves the longstanding role of university metaphysics as the intellectual archi- 6. Kant and the preservation of metaphysics tect of confessional society; that is, society conceived of as a single true visible church, or, as the morally perfecting kingdom of God on earth. Given the actual post-confessional religious indierence of the state, though, Kant conceives the ethical state in a new way. He construes it not in terms of the political enforcement of the true religion, but as rational religions gradual displacement of the state altogether, through the creation of a people no longer in need of political coercion. From here arose the anti-political enclave politics so central to modern dialectical history and critical social theory. These disciplines could take over Kants philosophical hermeneutics and use it to diagnose the historical signs of progress towards a moral or rational society, typi- cally congured in terms of non-coercive intellectual communication and community, or a rational public sphere. This is one of the main forms in which university metaphysics has been carried into the nine- teenth and twentieth centuries, allowing the Christianmetaphysical demand for the resacralisation of politics to be voiced in the registers of dialectical philosophical history and anti-positivist social theory. The pure religion of reason 6 Postscript: the kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom We began this book by contesting the view of early modern German intellectual history as a dialectical progression leading to Kant. We have since discovered that this historiography is anything but a mistake. It is, in fact, a central weapon in the ongoing intellectual civil war between civil and metaphysical philosophy. This historiography rst appeared in the dialectics through which Kant represents his own transcendence of the philosophies that pre- ceded his. In using the gure of homo duplex to organise his intellectual antinomies, Kant was able to reduce the colliding cultural worlds seen at Halle to a series of neatly paired intellectual oppositions between rationalism and voluntarism, idealism and empiricism which could be resolved through the cultivation of a particular intellectual deportment. This method was then used by his early adherents such as the theolo- gian Carl Friedrich Studlin to write Kant-centred histories of philos- ophy (Hochstrasser .ooo, .o6:.). Like Kant, Studlin was centrally preoccupied with reconciling moral philosophy and Christian theology; and he was among the rst to use the metaphysical hermeneutics of Kants Religion to marginalise Pufendorf for failing to achieve this goal (Studlin :8o8). Never forgiven for its detranscendentalising of ethics and desacralising of politics, at the end of the eighteenth century civil philosophy was driven from Protestant arts faculties by Kants renewal of Schulmetaphysik, nding itself increasingly restricted to the teaching of law and politics. If, at the beginning of the twenty-rst century, many historians still treat the civil philosophers as failing to reconcile rational- ism and voluntarism in a morally grounded politics, this is surely testi- mony to the long hegemony of post-Kantian philosophical history, which is perhaps only now beginning to break down. In making its own contribution to this disintegrative process, this book has oered a redescription of Kants practical philosophy, including its dialectics. Kants philosophy is best understood as a modication of a 6 longstanding metaphysical paideia, grounded in the pathos of homo duplex, and dedicated to the ethos of intellectual self-purication. By presenting human experience as governed by a realm of pure intelligences, while simultaneously insisting that this realm lies beyond human understand- ing, Kants metaphysical anthropology is the programme for a particu- lar kind of intellectual grooming. This is one that requires its bearers to maintain faith in the metaphysical noumena, but only as regulative ideas of reason or as deontological moral laws. At the same time, those undergoing this formation must accept the independence of empirical experience, but only as the mode in which the noumena appear to a being with our human kind of sensibility. The grooming of this critical intellectual deportment surely a modern form of Hadots Platonic exercises in mental concentration and renunciation of the sensible world holds the key to understanding the cultural role and historical signicance of Kants philosophy. In forming an intellectual estate capable of both entertaining the positive sciences (of law, politics, theology), while simultaneously treating them as mani- festations of a recessive power of creative intellection, this philosophy was responsible for a momentous double transformation of intellectual culture: the simultaneous rationalisation of religion and sacralisation of reason. With this transformation, German university metaphysics was able to reassert its claim to moral oversight of civil ethics, law, and poli- tics. These sciences would now all be subject to the imperious gaze of a personage who claimed privileged access to the pure laws from which they devolved on the basis of his own intellectual purity the critical intellectual. It was this reincarnation of the metaphysical personage that recom- mended Kants philosophical theology to modernising theologians like Studlin. Not only did the critical deportment permit the reconciliation of moral philosophy and Christian theology through the subordina- tion of civil conduct to a quasi-divine intellectual self-governance it also sealed the cultural settlement that Neology sought between meta- physical rationalism and theological voluntarism. It did so via the anthropology of self-legislating rational being; for this assimilated theo- logical voluntarism while simultaneously transposing moral regenera- tion into the philosophical register, where it could be administered by metaphysicians. In this way, the Kantian settlement allowed university metaphysics to re-attach itself to the cultural power of ecclesiastical Protestantism, by providing rational explications of biblical doctrines for the religious intelligentsia. At the same time, it allowed Christian The kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom 6 metaphysics to penetrate civil ethics, law, and politics. Here metaphysics would appear in the form of the critical recovery of the pure moral law, the pure principle of justice, and the ideal general will that would even- tually lead to the withering away of the state. This transformation in our understanding of Kants practical philos- ophy lies at the centre of the essay that we now bring to a close. It was in order to eect this change that we sketched the history of metaphys- ics as an academic Lebensform (:.), tracing its modications through Leibniz (..) and Wol to Kant, whose formaltranscendental ethics we described as an elaboration of the metaphysical paideia (6., 6.). At the same time, through a parallel reconstruction by treating its anthropol- ogy as an alternative irrefutable mode of spiritual grooming we have been able to rescue civil philosophy from its present marginalisation in the history of moral philosophy (.., .., ..). In stepping outside the engrossing but self-enclosed theatre of dialectical philosophical history, we have been able to encounter the rival enlightenments of civil and metaphysical philosophy in their true unreconciled forms. Each, we have argued, may be regarded as an attempt to recongure the relations between religious and civil governance in the wake of their politi- caljurisprudential separation, but in divergent forms and in accordance with conicting interests. Each executed this reconguration via a reshaping of the academic disciplines through which religious and civil intellectuals acquired their characteristic ethical deportments and intel- lectual expertise. Herein lies the signicance of their two fundamentally dierent atti- tudes to the relation between theology and philosophy. In continuing to hybridise the two elds whether via Leibnizs monadology, Wols rational psychology and theology, or Kants metaphysical ethics and philosophical theology early modern university metaphysics main- tained its demand for the resacralisation of politics, in the form of a morally grounded state. It did so by treating the political community as the devolved sensible form of the moral or spiritual community. As a result, in rationalist political metaphysics, political and legal rule appear as a debased mode of governance, required only until the moral com- munity regains its capacity for reciprocal collective self-governance, which will appear in the form of the general will of a total or unlimited society. At this point the need for law and state will wither away, dis- placed by the moral sovereignty of the community of rational beings, who, in accordance with a revivied political ecclesiology, will form an ethico-civil society or kingdom of God on earth. 66 Postscript Conversely, in partitioning theology and philosophy via their spir- itualist theology and statist natural law Pufendorf and Thomasius were seeking to separate the pursuit of moral regeneration from the exercise of civil sovereignty. Their object was to reshape the academic intelligibility of civil authority, treating it in terms of the maintenance of social peace by a government exercising supreme power in a religiously or morally indierent manner. In making this task central to his natural law, Pufendorf was giving philosophical expression to the desacralisation of politics that had been achieved by the political jurists seeking a way out of religious civil war. The civil philosophers were thus not attempt- ing to institute a new integral moralpolitical governance of a total society one based on a secular political philosophy but to separate the maintenance of political order from the pursuit of moral regenera- tion. From now on these were to belong to dierent moral personae the sovereignsubject and the teacherauditor inhabiting incommen- surate moral worlds: the civil kingdom and the kingdom of truth. The latter would be unconditionally free unless it disturbed social peace; the former would be governed absolutely, on the condition that the sove- reign power remained indierent to all transcendent truths. Given our fundamental concern to demonstrate the intellectual and institutional autonomy of civil and metaphysical philosophy, we shall not, of course, be closing this book by anticipating their future harmon- isation. There is no shortage of such anticipations. Rather we shall con- clude by reprising our prime object, to contribute to a chastened historical understanding of these cultures in their unreconciled state. We do so by sketching four themes for further research. Our rst theme is that of the statist or authoritarian character of early modern liberalism. We have touched on this theme several times and, of course, the notion of an authoritarian liberalism is familiar to readers of Carl Schmitt (Cristi :qq8). Pierre Manent and Blandine Kriegel have also illuminated our understanding of this issue (Kriegel :qq; Manent :qq). Despite this, to the extent that it remains committed to a politics founded in rational moral self-governance, much modern moral and political philosophy remains uncomprehending of the statist character of early modern liberalism. As we have seen, however, Pufendorf and Thomasius did not derive the founding liberal rights to security of the person and freedom of religion from the moral capacities of rational individuals or moral communities. Rather they grounded them in the states capacity to pacify such communities, by withdrawing civil power from the moral domain and concentrating it solely in the maintenance The kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom 6 of external order (., .6). Conversely, early modern doctrines of popular sovereignty were typically not liberal, as we saw in the case of Althusius (:.). In grounding the exercise of civil sovereignty in a com- munal moral will a will that could only be formed through the avail- able religious pedagogies these theories were incapable of making the separation between moral and political governance on which the rst liberal rights depended. Under these circumstances, in which the legiti- macy of civil power is held to depend on the general will of a self-per- fecting moral community, it is always possible to envisage such power being exercised to ensure the existence of this will. After the Kantian cultural settlement, the statist character of early modern liberalism vanished from sight in post-Kantian arts and theol- ogy faculties. At this point, the central reality of historical liberalism that personal security and religious toleration depended on the pacica- tion of fratricidal moral communities by a desacralised state passed into the metaphysical looking-glass. On the other side of this inverting mirror held up to society by the new alliance of rationalist philosophy and enlightened theology security and toleration appeared as rights against the state, achieved by self-governing moral communities. From the end of the eighteenth century onwards, the states liberal withdrawal from the moral domain would thus be subject to a profound and system- atic misunderstanding. It would appear in post-Kantian histories of lib- eralism not as the means by which the state achieved the religious neutrality required to govern confessionally divided moral communities not, that is, as the exclusion of the church from the exercise of civil power but as an expression of the moral communitys transcendent resistance to the state. In considering Jacobis wide-eyed claim that it was the ceaseless striv- ing of reason, not law and state, that put an end to the wars of religion and in recalling his Kantian relegation of all externally imposed laws in favour of those self-imposed by free rational beings we obtained a snapshot of the self-deluding history that critical intellectuals would entertain in the wake of Kants inversion of the dependency of freedom on security (Jacobi :8., .o). For it was not philosophical reason that put an end to religious civil war but, in fact, law and politics, and the forms of reason peculiar to them. Specically, as Heckel has argued, it was positive Staatsrecht that permitted the formation of a non-confes- sional or supra-confessional order of coexistence between the two great confessional blocks (Heckel :q8, o). This was achieved, ironically enough, by treating law as externally imposed for the sake of peace, 68 Postscript hence as neutral with regard to inner moral truth. Only inside this polit- ically imposed jurisprudential order of coexistence would the rst liberal rights appear. Our second theme that of the historical independence and persis- tence of civil philosophy is one to whose exploration we have contrib- uted in this book. We have done so by arguing that there was no dialectical supersession of metaphysical rationalism and civil voluntar- ism Leibniz and Pufendorf, Wol and Thomasius except in the minds of Kantian philosophers and historians. They of course under- take the dialectical exercises precisely in order to achieve this superses- sion in thought. The fact that PufendoranThomasian natural law and political jurisprudence survived its recurrent metaphysical critiques continuing to form jurists and politici for the Brandenburg-Prussian state throughout the eighteenth century is a longstanding theme of his- torical research (Rping :q68; Rping :qq; Wiebking :q). We have also taken note of Stephen Lestitions more recent exploration of a similar theme, in his timely account of the continuing role of civil phi- losophy in the formation of a juristic civic consciousness in the law faculty of Kants own university during the mid-eighteenth century (Lestition :q8q). To the extent that we have contributed to this theme, it is by clarifying the radical autonomy of civil philosophy as an instituted intellectual paideia from all projects for its philosophical (metaphysical) critique. Grounded in its own Epicurean anthropology, and self-con- sciously opposed to the Platonic recovery of transcendental grounds for knowledge and morality a recovery which it regarded as the danger- ous illusion of a rival intellectualist anthropology Pufendoran and Thomasian civil philosophy was immune to all attempts to reveal its transcendental grounds. To the extent, then, that statist natural law and positive political juris- prudence did undergo philosophical critique and transformation, this was not the outcome of any weakness in its intellectual foundations. Rather, it resulted from the erosion of the institutional boundary between political jurisprudence and critical philosophy, brought about by the spread of Kantianismas an academic enclave-culture. This is the lesson to be learned from accounts of the manner in which a group of Kantian legal philosophers Hufeland, Feuerbach, Thibaut domi- nated the Jena lawfaculty during the :qos (Lingelbach :qq). For in their core doctrines their insistence on the centrality of the moral law to jurisprudence, their refusal to derive justice fromexisting law, their insis- tence on the sanctity of the person as an end in itself, their relegation of The kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom 6q politicallegal utility in favour of Kantian moral autonomy we identify not the philosophical critique of positive jurisprudence, but something quite dierent: the institutional subordination of jurisprudence to the prestigious culture of Kantian philosophical critique. This subordina- tion, we recall, is precisely what Kants Rechtslehre is designed to inict, reserving insight into the pure principle of justice for intellectuals pre- pared to purify themselves of all positive jurisprudence. The Kantian cri- tique of positive jurisprudence thus represents the anti-juridical revenge of a metaphysics dedicated to reversing the laws desacralisation of civil governance. Moreover this is howseveral anti-Kantian popular philoso- phers saw the matter, as is clear in Friedrich Nicolais attack on the Rechtslehre for substituting moral philosophy for jurisprudence (Nicolai :q8). The continuing importance of Pufendoran natural law and positive Staatsrecht in other environs devoted not to the university but to gov- ernment indicates their grounding in an autonomous institu- tionalintellectual culture. In the early :qos, at the very moment when the Jena Kantians were insisting that the state conform itself to the inner moral autonomy of its citizens and when Kant himself was publishing his account of a future ethical state bearing the form of the true visible church the privy councillor Carl Gottlieb Svarez was instructing the Prussian crown princes in a very dierent conception of the states rela- tion to the religious and moral cultures of its citizens: Insofar as we regard the Regent simply as the head [Oberhaupt] of civil society, all his rights over religious associations ow solely from the rights of general supervision, through which he must ensure that no associations are tol- erated in the state that are contrary to the ends of the state and endan- ger public peace and security. On this basis, Svarez builds the states rights of religious supervision: the right of the state to examine religious systems with a view to determining their impact on public tranquillity and security; to ensure that religious teachers are also well disposed to the state; to ensure that religious associations attempt to exercise no cor- porate rights apart from those enunciated by state law; and to prevent the controversies of opposed religious parties from breaking out into dis- turbances of civil order. If Svarezs construction of the states supervi- sory right is thus immediately reminiscent of Thomasius defence of the religious rights of Protestant princes, then so too is the manner in which the statesman limits this right: The state can never and under no circumstances be justied in prescribing what a religious association should teach or how it should order its form of worship. Further, The o Postscript state can never prohibit the practice of a religion merely on the grounds of its dogmatic principles . . . Purely dogmatic concepts and opinions of God and divine things, of the relation of man to the Godhead, of his condition after death, no matter how false and incorrect, can never have a harmful inuence on civil life and the duties that a man owes to his neighbour or the state (Svarez :q6o, o6). In other words, a century after Pufendorf s death, and regardless of its metaphysical critique, civil philosophy continued its task of forming the deportment of those charged with governing the desacralised state. The third theme we have identied as worthy of further exploration is that of the quasi-religious character of enlightenment rationalism. We have seen that German civil and metaphysical philosophy were both deeply rooted in Protestant religious culture, which each nonetheless sought to recongure for its own ends. In referring to the quasi-religious character of early modern rationalism, we are thus indicating the re- conguration characteristic of rationalist metaphysics. This recon- guration imbues rational metaphysics with a religious function by treating reason as that part of human being linking it to its divine intel- lectual archetype; for, in doing so, it deploys philosophy as an exercise in self-purifying, self-transcending moral regeneration. At the heart of the religious function of metaphysical rationalism lies the metaphysical anthropology of homo duplex the guration of man as a pure intelligence temporarily embodied in a sensible being. This anthropology is responsible for the inward intellectualist character of the whole line of metaphysical philosophies, from Leibniz through Wol to Kant and beyond. In requiring its initiates to view themselves as sen- sibly aected rational beings, the anthropology induces the pathos of metaphysical longing, driving them to renounce their civil surroundings and begin the endless task of intellectual self-purication. Yet this quasi- religious function of metaphysics is simultaneously the source of its rational scientic claims; for it is through self-purifying abstraction that certain individuals gain access to the pure a priori concepts of which empirical things are the supposed manifestation. Both functions of metaphysical rationalism the religious and the scientic are captured in Leibnizs conception of transcendent concepts as perfections whose knowledge perfects the beholder. This is a knowledge promising access to the divine intellection of the pure concepts of things, of morality, of justice, of regeneration prior to their impure embodiment in the empirical prudential world (PW, 8; Gr, ii, 8o:). This privileged par- ticipation in a quasi-divine pure thinking holds the key to the moral and The kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom : epistemological authority of the metaphysician, which is in turn the source of this personages claims to exert inuence in a variety of intel- lectual and social domains, including those of law, politics, and religion. Modern Kantians generally argue that Kant achieved the rational emancipation of philosophy by eecting the nal transition from a quasi-religious metaphysics to a fully formal transcendental philosophy. In the case of Kants moral philosophy, this transition is supposed to entail the relegation of all substantive metaphysical anthropology and cosmology in favour of a formal concept of morality derivable from ordinary consciousness. Nonetheless, in our reconstruction of Kants Groundwork (6.), we have shown that the process of deriving the formal concept from ordinary consciousness is itself a spiritual exercise, one deeply informed by the self-formative use of the anthropology of sen- sibly aected rational being and the cosmology of the spiritual commu- nity. Even at its most formal indeed, especially here Kants practical philosophy retains its metaphysical anthropology and quasi-religious ethos. For it is through their self-formative use of this anthropology through their renunciation of prudential ethics and purgation of all sen- sible inclinations and ends that Kantian philosophers presume to accede to a universally binding (holy) rational moral law; presume, that is, self-transcending access to a universe of rational beings whose commu- nio is the moral law. Moreover, through this turning inwards away from externally imposed civil duties and towards an absolute inner human- ity bearing all the features of the metaphysical God Kantian ethical rationalism inherits the religious purism of its neoscholastic and Leibnizian predecessors. The faint chill of zealotry thus surrounds Kants treatment of suicide as sensible mans sacrilegious assault on his own humanity, which is conceived as an intelligible substance . . . as a subject that is destined to give moral laws to man, and to determine him: as occupant of the body, to whose jurisdiction the control of all mans powers is subordinated (xx\ii.6.; LE, 6q). Rather than accepting the modern account of Kants supposed for- malisation of a quasi-religious metaphysics, we should in fact begin to look for the quasi-religious aspects of modern Kantian formalism. Were we to consider John Rawlss theory of justice in this light, for example, then we might well adopt a dierent view of the supposedly formal char- acter of his central methodological strategies in particular the veil of ignorance required to enter the so-called original position needed for the choice of principles of justice (Rawls :q., :6.). In requiring the philosopher to abstract from all forms of knowledge relevant to extant . Postscript civil ends and personally interested desires in stipulating the philoso- phers ignorance of his or her social position, natural abilities, moral beliefs, historical and cultural location might not the veil of ignorance simulate Kants spiritual exercise in self-purication and ascent to the spiritual community? After all, what is a community of mutually dis- interested beings beings whose rational calculations of interest come to form a reciprocating totality through abstraction from their personal and social embodiment if not a simulacrum of Kants community of intellectual beings? In other words, to the degree that knowledge of Rawlss pure principles of justice requires the intellectual purication of those charged with knowing them, we have prima facie reasons for inves- tigating whether modern Kantian formalism might not conceal the same quasi-religious metaphysics as its prototype. Further, might not the intellectual and moral prestige of the modern formal philosopher owe something to the religious deportment of the metaphysical personage? For how else does this philosopher accede to formal principles of justice except via the cultivation of a self-purifying transcendence of all instru- mental social ends and positive laws? These at least are questions for further research. Finally, our last theme draws attention to what might be called the neo-confessional character of rationalist political metaphysics. By neo- confessional we mean the preparedness to declare metaphysical philos- ophy necessary for living a good life and, sometimes, the willingness to make assent to this philosophy compulsory, as the condition of forming a good society. The neo-confessional character of early modern politi- cal metaphysics is grounded in its intellectualist ethics. In modelling ethical conduct in terms of the self-legislating self-governance of an intellectual being rather than, for example, in terms of the capacity to restrain external behaviour in accordance with public decorum or pos- itive law there is a tendency to treat the doctrine held to be responsible for intellectual self-governance as necessary for the good life. For as long as the metaphysics of morals is understood as a formal theorisation of a moral law in principle available to the ordinary consciousness, then the problem of a metaphysical confessionalism remains invisible. As soon, however, as we uncover the self-formative role of the metaphysical paideia the moment we see that metaphysics programmes the exercises in abstraction and self-purication required to deport oneself as a self- governing intelligence then its neo-confessional character becomes starkly apparent. For, if it is only intellectually self-governed conduct that is going to count as moral and if metaphysics contains the doctrine and The kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom discipline required to become a self-governing intellectual being then metaphysics itself must be necessary for living a good life. It is only a short step from here to making metaphysical ethics compulsory and to declaring other forms of ethics not just erroneous but morally corrupt- ing, hence deserving of prohibition or even of punishment. We rst encountered this chain of consequences in Leibnizs remarks on the issue of whether heresy is a crime (..), written, it will be recalled, as a criticism of Thomasius negative answer to this question. The twin grounds of Thomasius answer his voluntarist denial that ideas can aect the will, and his statist insistence that only external civil actions be punishable encapsulate the religious and political disposi- tion of civil philosophy. Conversely, it is Leibnizs rationalist insistence that the goodness of the will is determined by the purity of the minds ideas his fundamental teaching that humans are perfected through contemplation of the intellectual perfections that leads him to regard heresy as culpable and punishable. For, in establishing a continuity between intellectual purity and civil conduct without which, says Leibniz, we would be forced to the absurd Pufendoran conclusion that good acts may come from bad dispositions the way is open to exercise civil force to achieve the required intellectual purity. In Wols discussion of the relation between the sage and the prince, we encountered an even more pronounced tendency to give civil force to metaphysical doctrine. Wol treats metaphysics as both the key to knowledge of the true end of the state the perfection of mans intellectual nature and as the means of acquiring the pure disinterested disposition required to direct govern- ment to this end. In other words he collapses the distinction between the sage and the prince metaphysics and politics and, on the basis of the continuum between the pursuit of moral perfection and the exercise of civil power, envisages his own natural theology forming the basis of a state religion (Link :q8, ::6). As we have seen (6...), Kant also regards metaphysics as necessary for leading the good life, treating prudentialempirical ethics not just as erroneous but as morally corrupting, and metaphysics as both true and morally purifying: We know well that without possessing such a meta- physics it is . . . impossible . . . to ground morals on their genuine prin- ciples and thereby to create pure moral dispositions, grafting them onto human souls [Gemthern] for the highest good of the world (i\.:::.; PP, 66). Like its Leibnizian and Wolan precursors, Kantian meta- physics may thus also be regarded as neo-confessional. Despite his attempt to open a gap between ethical cultivation and juridical coercion, Postscript in treating the latter as a devolved version of the former Kant leaves the way open for juridical laws to be elevated and absorbed into moral ones. Once this pathway has been opened, then it is possible to envisage a state governed by ethical laws. In Kants account of this ethical state or kingdom of God on earth whose blueprint is sketched in the Religion, the essays on world peace and cosmopolitan citizenship, and the Conict of the Faculties we see the full and nal neo-confessional character of his metaphysics. For, unlike Pufendorf and Thomasius, who treat all moral societies or churches as voluntary associations permanently encased in a morally indierent political state, Kant envisages the emergence of an ethico-civil society that is co-extensive with the political state and destined eventually to dis- place it from within. There must be, Kant argues, a publicly proclaimed religious doctrine in order to form individuals into an ethico-civil society, even if such a public historical doctrine threatens to straitjacket the inner freedom of the moral law and corrupt the purity of rational faith. In fact, it is in overcoming this threat via the progressive hermeneutic rev- elation of the rational faith contained in historical religion that Kants metaphysics inherits its full confessional role, constituting itself as the rational theology of a true visible church or emergent ethical state. Kants political metaphysics thus resiles from the ideological neutral- ity of the desacralised state not by directly giving this state moral ends, but by envisaging its progressive withering in favour of the moral state hidden within, giving rise to a union of human beings merely under the laws of virtue . . . an ethical commonwealth [gemein Wesen] (\i.q; RRT, :o). In proposing a state run on laws of virtue Kant is of course adopt- ing a position antithetical to Pufendorf s fundamental separation of the kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom, which entails that: there need not be established a particular state in order to propagate and preserve truth, no more than it is necessary to set up a separate commonwealth where philosophy and the other sciences are to be taught (DHR, ). For Pufendorf and Thomasius there can be no ethical state, because the con- dition of bringing tranquillity to religiously divided communities was the radical moral indierence of the state and the equally radical privatisa- tion of religion. Hence, despite his insistence that the members of the ethical state are united by non-coercive moral laws, Kants political metaphysics compromises both the religious neutrality of the state and the political neutralisation of religion. It is here that the neo-confessional character of Kantian metaphysics is most fully evident and its dierence from civil philosophy most fully The kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom apparent. This dierence approaching incommensurateness is given symptomatic expression in the dierent uses that the two cultures make of the distinction between private and public. For Pufendorf and Thomasius it is religionandmorality that dene the private domain, their inward and unenforceable character dening the kingdom of truth inhabited by the teacher and auditor; just as use of coercion to preserve social peace denes the civil kingdominhabited by sovereign and subject there being no interstitial world or persona. In Kants Conict of the Faculties, however, it is the individuals ocial duties that dene the private domain, while the public domain is constituted by scholars in free intellectual exchange. Moreover, it is envisaged that one day the free exchange of ideas will itself make the ocial exercise of power redun- dant, as the persona of the scholar displaces that of sovereignandsubject. This inversion of the usual conception of private and public has understandably struck many commentators as anomalous. It makes perfect sense, however, as soon as the community of scholars or repub- lic of letters is seen as an avatar of Kants spiritual community and as an analogue of his ethical state. Under these circumstances, the ocial use of reason, for the purposes of church and state, indeed appears limited and restricted private in comparison with the spontaneous and trans- parent public communications of the community of pure intelligences. It is, therefore, in envisaging the moral renovation of political govern- ance through the gure of the rational community the gure known today as rational communication in the public sphere that Kantian metaphysics assumes its full neo-confessional form. For here, an anti- political enclave politics, grounded in the metaphysics of rational com- munity, envisages its own expansion into the true visible church. In this setting, under such intense pressure to make the state ethical and accountable, the hard-won separation of the pursuit of moral regeneration and the exercise of civil authority threatens to collapse, at least in thought. Here too the gap between civil and metaphysical cul- tures is at its widest. For, while the former treats this separation as the condition of governing a liberal society, the latter regards it as something to be overcome, in order to facilitate the self-governance and self-per- fection of a democratic moral community. At this boundary, where, from one side, the division of the kingdom of truth and the civil kingdom appears as the fundamental condition of a pluralistic liberal society and, from the other, as the unleashing of an instrumental repressive state, the rival intellectual cultures remain as far apart as they did in the eighteenth century. 6 Postscript References Ahnert, T. (:qqq). Christian Thomasius Theory of Natural Law in its Religious and Natural Philosophical Context. Unpublished PhD thesis, University of Cambridge. Albrecht, M. (:qq). Eklektik. Eine Begrisgeschichte mit Hinweisen auf die Philosophie- und Wissenschaftsgeschichte. Stuttgart-Bad Cannstatt: Frommann-Holzboog. Allison, H. E. (:q66). Lessing and the Enlightenment: His Philosophy of Religion and Its Relation to Eighteenth-Century Thought. Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press. (:q8). Transcendental Idealism: The Two Aspect View. In B. den Ouden and M. Moen (eds.), New Essays on Kant. New York: Peter Lang, pp. :8. (:qqo). Kants Theory of Freedom. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Althusius, J. (:qq). Politica: An Abridged Translation of Politics Methodically Set Forth and Illustrated with Sacred and Profane Examples (trans. Frederick S. Carney). (rd edn). Indianapolis: Liberty Press. Aner, K. (:q.q). Die Theologie der Lessingzeit. Halle: Niemeyer. Annas, J. (:qq). The Morality of Happiness. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Anonymous. (:q). Predigten nach kantischen Grundstzen. Brussels: Culture et Civilisation. Armstrong, A. H. (ed.) (:q86). Classical Mediterranean Spirituality: Egyptian, Greek, Roman. (Vol. x\). London: SCM Press. Arndt, H. W. (:q8q). Erste Angrie der Thomasianer auf Wol, in Schneiders (ed.), Christian Thomasius, pp. .86. Barbeyrac, J. (::8). Les devoirs de lhomme et du citoien, tels quils lui sont prescrits par la loi naturelle (trans. Jean Barbeyrac). (th edn.) Amsterdam: Pierre de Coup. Barnard, F. M. (:q6). Christian Thomasius: Enlightenment and Bureaucracy. American Political Science Review, q, o8. (:q8q). Rightful Decorum and Rational Accountability. A Forgotten Theory of Civil Life, in Schneiders (ed.), Christian Thomasius, pp. :8q6. Barreau, H. (:qq). Leibniz, prcurseur de la conception universelle des droits de lhomme dans sa conception morale et religieuse du droit naturel. In Leibniz und Europa: VI Internationaler Leibniz-Kongress. Hanover, pp. o. Baumgart, P. (:q8). Die Grndung der Universitt Helmstedt. In Baumgart and Hammerstein (eds.), pp. .:o.
Baumgart, P., and Hammerstein, N. (eds.) (:q8). Beitrge zu Problemen deutscher
Universittsgrndungen der frhen Neuzeit. Nendeln: KTO Press. Baur, J. (:qq.). Lutherische Christologie. In Rublack (ed.), pp. 8:.. Beck, L. W. (:q6q). Early German Philosophy: Kant and His Predecessors. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press. (:q8). What Have We Learned from Kant? In A. W. Wood (ed.), Self and Nature in Kants Philosophy. Ithaca: Cornell University Press, pp. :o. Bianco, B. (:q8q). Freiheit gegen Fatalismus: Zu Joachim Langes Kritik an Wol. In N. Hinske (ed.), Zentren der Aufklrung I. Halle: Aufklrung und Pietismus. Heidelberg: Verlag Lambert Schneider, pp. :::6. Bdeker, H. E. (:q8). Menschenrechte im deutschen publizistischen Diskurs vor :8q. In G. Birtsch (ed.), Grund- und Freiheitsrechte von der stndischen zur sptburgerlichen Gesellschaft. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, pp. q.:. Bohatec, J. (:q8). Die Religionsphilosophie Kants in der Religion innerhalb der Grenzen der bloen Vernunft. Mit besonderer Bercksichtigung ihrer theologisch-dogmatischen Quellen. Hamburg: Homann & Campe. Brecht, M. (:qq). August Hermann Francke und der Hallische Pietmus. In M. Brecht, Geschichte des Pietismus. Bd. .: Der Pietismus vom siebzehnten bis zum frhen achtzehnten Jahrhundert. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, pp. qq. Brown, P. (:q8). The Saint as Exemplar in Late Antiquity. In R. C. Trexler (ed.), Persons in Groups: Social Behaviour as Identity Formation in Medieval and Renaissance Europe. New York: Medieval and Renaissance Texts and Studies, pp. :8q. (:q88a). Power and Persuasion in Late Antiquity: Towards a Christian Empire. Madison: The University of Wisconsin Press. (:q88b). The Body and Society: Men, Women, and Sexual Renunciation in Early Christianity. New York: Columbia University Press. Brckner, J. (:q). Staatswissenschaften, Kameralismus und Naturrecht: Ein Beitrag zur Geschichte der Politischen Wissenschaft im Deutschland des spten .,. und frhen .8. Jahrhunderts. Munich: C. H. Beck. Budde, J. F. (:.). Bescheidener Beweis, da das Buddeische Bedencken noch fest stehe, wieder Hrn. Christian Wolens Nthige Zugabe aufgesetzet. Jena: Meyerischen Buchladen. Burns, J. H., and Goldie, M. (eds.) (:qq:). The Cambridge History of Political Thought .o.,oo. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Carboncini, S. (:q86). Christian August Crusius und die Leibniz-Wolsche Philosophie. In A. Heinekamp (ed.), Beitrge zur Wirkungs- und Rezeptionsgeschichte von Gottfried Wilhlem Leibniz. Stuttgart: Franz Steiner, pp. ::o.6. Cristi, R. (:qq8). Carl Schmitt and Authoritarian Liberalism. Cardi: University of Wales Press. Dahm, K.-W., Krawietz, W., and Wyduckel, D. (eds.) (:q88). Politische Theorie des Johannes Althusius. Berlin: Duncker and Humblot. Denzer, H. (:q.). Moralphilosophie und Naturrecht bei Samuel Pufendorf. Eine geistes- 8 List of references und wissenschaftliche Untersuchung zur Geburt des Naturrechts aus der Praktischen Philosophie. Munich: C. H. Beck. Di Giovanni, G. (:qq6). Translators Introduction. In A. W. Wood (ed.), Immanuel Kant: Religion and Rational Theology. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. :. Dilcher, G. and Sta, I. (eds.) (:q8). Christentum und Modernes Recht: Beitrge zum Problem der Skularisierung. Frankfurt am Main: Suhrkamp. Dilthey, W. (:8qo). Der Streit Kants mit der Zensur ber das Recht freier Religionsforschung. Archiv fr Geschichte der Philosophie, , :8o. Dring, D. (:qq.). Pufendorf-Studien. Beitrage zur Biographie Samuel von Pufendorfs und zu seiner Entwicklung als Historiker und theologischer Schriftsteller. Berlin: Duncker and Humblot. (:qqa). Leibniz als Verfasser der Epistola ad amicum super exercitationes posthumas Samuelis Puendori de consensu et dissensu protestantium. Zeitschrift fr Kirchengeschichte, :o, :6q. (:qqb). Skularisierung und Moraltheologie bei Samuel von Pufendorf. Zeitschrift fr Theologie und Kirche, qo, :6. (:qq6). Samuel von Pufendorf s Berufung nach Brandenburg-Preuen. In Palladini and Hartung (eds.), pp. ::.8. (:qq8). Samuel von Pufendorf and Toleration. In J. C. Laursen and C. J. Nederman (eds.), Beyond the Persecuting Society: Religious Toleration Before the Enlightenment. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, pp. :8q6. Dreitzel, H. (:qo). Protestantischer Aristotelismus und absoluter Staat: Die Politica des Henning Arnisaeus (ca. .,.). Wiesbaden: Franz Steiner. (:q:). Das deutsche Staatsdenken in der Frhen Neuzeit (ii). Neue Politische Literatur, :6, .6:. (:q). Vom Verfall und Wiederaufstieg der Praktischen Philosophie. Neue Politische Literatur, :8, :6o. (:q8o). Ideen, Ideologien, Wissenschaften: Zum politischen Denken in Deutschland in der Frhen Neuzeit. Neue Politische Literatur, ., :.. (:q8). Hermann Conring und die Politische Wissenschaft seiner Zeit. In M. Stolleis (ed.), Hermann Conring (.o.8.). Beitrge zu Leben und Werk. Berlin: Duncker and Humblot, pp. :.. (:q88). Der Aristotelismus in der politischen Philosophie Deutschlands im :. Jahrhundert. In Keler, Lohr, Sparn (eds.), pp. :6q.. (:qq:). Zur Entwicklung und Eigenart der Eklektischen Philosophie. Zeitschrift fr Historische Forschung, :8, .8:. (:qqa). Gewissensfreiheit und soziale Ordnung. Religionstoleranz als Problem der politischen Theorie am Ausgang des :. Jahrhunderts. Politische Vierteljahresschrift, 6, . (:qqb). Die Staatsrson und die Krise des politischen Aristotelismus: Zur Entwicklung der politischen Philosophie in Deutschland im :. Jahrhundert. In Aristotelismo Politico e Ragioni di Stato. Florence: L. Olschki, pp. :.q6. (:qq). Christliche Aufklrung durch frstlichen Absolutismus. Thomasius List of references q und die Destruktion des frhneuzeitlichen Konfessionsstaates. In Vollhardt (ed.), pp. :o. Epstein, K. (:q66). The Genesis of German Conservatism. Princeton, N.J.: Princeton University Press. Erdmann, B. (:86). Martin Knutzen und seine Zeit: Ein Beitrag zur der Wolschen Schule und insbesondere zur Entwicklungsgeschichte Kants. Leipzig: Verlag Leopold Voss. Eschweiler, K. (:q.8). Die Philosophie der spanischen Sptscholastik auf den deutschen Universitten des seibzehnten Jahrhunderts. Spanische Forschungen der Grresgesellschaft, :, .:.. Fischer, K. (:8.). Geschichte der neueren Philosophie. Berlin: C. Winter. Foucault, M. (:q8). The Use of Pleasure (trans. R. Hurley). Harmondsworth: Penguin Books. Fouke, D. C. (:qq.). Metaphysics and the Eucharist in the Early Leibniz. Studia Leibnitiana, ., :q. Friedeburg, R. v. (:qq8). Reformed Monarchomachism and the genre of the politica in the Empire: The Politica of Johannes Althusius and the meaning of hierarchy in its constitutional and conceptual context. Archivo della ragion di Stato, 6, :.q. Friedrich, C. J. (ed.) (:q.). Politica Methodice Digesta of Johannes Althusius. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press. Gram, M. S. (ed.) (:q6). Kant: Disputed Questions. Chicago: Quadrangle Books. Gregor, M. (:qq). Kant on Natural Rights. In R. Beiner and W. J. Booth (eds.), Kant and Political Philosophy: The Contemporary Legacy. New Haven: Yale University Press, pp. o. Gregor, M. J. (:qq). Translators Introduction. In M. J. Gregor (ed.), Immanuel Kant: The Conict of the Faculties. Lincoln and London: University of Nebraska, pp. viixxxiv. Grnder, K. and Rengstorf, K. H. (eds.) (:q8q). Religionskritik und Religiositt in der deutschen Aufklrung. Heidelberg: Verlag Lambert Schneider. Grunert, F. (:q8q). Bibliographie der Thomasius-Literatur :q:q88. In Schneiders (ed.), Christian Thomasius, pp. . (:qq6a). Bibliographie der Thomasius-Literatur :q8q:qq. In Vollhardt (ed.), pp. 8:q6. (:qq6b). Zur aufgeklrten Kritik am theokratishcen Absolutismus. Der Streit zwischen Hector Gottfried Masius und Christian Thomasius ber Ursprung und Begrndung der summa potestas. In Vollhardt (ed.), pp. :8. Haakonssen, K. (:qq6). Natural Law and Moral Philosophy: From Grotius to the Scottish Enlightenment. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. (:qq). Christian Thomasius. In E. Craig (ed.), The Routledge Encyclopedia of Philosophy. London: Routledge, vol. ix, pp. 6b8ob. Hadot, I. (:q86). The Spiritual Guide. In Armstrong (ed.), pp. 6q. Hadot, P. (:q86). Neoplatonist Spirituality :: Plotinus and Porphyry. In Armstrong (ed.), pp. .oq. 8o List of references (:qq). Philosophy as a Way of Life: Spiritual Exercises from Socrates to Foucault (trans. Michael Chase). Oxford: Blackwell. Hammerstein, N. (:q.). Jus und Historie: Ein Beitrag zur Geschichte des historischen Denkens an deutschen Universitten im spten .,. und im .8. Jahrhundert. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck and Ruprecht. (:q8). Die Universittsgrndungen im Zeichen der Aufklrung. In Baumgart and Hammerstein (eds.), pp. .6q8. (:q8q). Jurisprudenz und Historie in Halle. In Hinske (ed.), Zentren, pp. .q. Heckel, M. (:q6). Paritt. Zeitschrift der Savigny-Stiftung fr Rechtsgeschichte, 8o (Kanonistische Abt. q), .6:.o. (:q68). Staat und Kirche, nach den Lehren der evangelischen Juristen Deutschlands in der ersten Hlfte des .,. Jahrhunderts. Munich: Claudius Verlag. (:q8). Deutschland im konfessionellen Zeitalter. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck and Ruprecht. (:q8). Das Skularisierungsproblem in der Entwicklung des deutschen Staatskirchenrechts. In G. Dilcher and I. Sta (eds.), Christentum und mod- ernes Recht. Beitrge zum Problem der Skularisation. Frankfurt am Main: Suhrkamp, pp. q. (:q8qq). Gesammelte Schriften: Staat, Kirche, Rechte, Geschichte. Tbingen: J. C. B. Mohr. (:qq.). Religionsbann und landesherrliches Kirchenregiment. In Rublack (ed.), pp. o6.. Heimsoeth, H. (:q.). Metaphysische Motive in der Ausbildung des kritischen Idealismus. Kant-Studien, .q. (:q.q). Metaphysik der Neuzeit. Berlin: R. Oldenbourg. (:q6a). Studien zur Philosophie Immanuel Kants: vol. i, Metaphysische Ursprnge und Ontologische Grundlagen. Kln: Klner Universitts-Verlag. (:q6b). Persnlichkeitsbewutsein und Ding an sich in der Kantischen Philosophie. In H. Heimsoeth, Studien zur Philosophie Immanuel Kants: vol. i: Metaphysische Ursprnge und Ontologische Grundlagen. Kln: Klner Universitts-Verlag, pp. ... (:q6). Metaphysical Motives in the Development of Critical Idealism. In Gram (ed.), pp. :8qq. (:qo). Atom, Seele, Monade. Historische Ursprnge und Hintergrnde von Kants Antinomie der Teilung. In H. Heimsoeth, Studien zur Philosophie Immanuel Kants II. Methodenbegrie der Erfahrungswissenschaften und Gegenstzlichkeiten spekulativer Weltkonzeption. Bonn: H. Bouvier, pp. :.. (:qq). The Six Great Themes of Western Metaphysics and the End of the Middle Ages (trans. Ramon J. Betanzos). Detroit: Wayne State University Press. Heinrich, G. (:q8). Frankfurt und Wittenberg. Zwei Universittsgrndungen im Vorfeld der Reformation. In Baumgart and Hammerstein (eds.), pp. :::.q. Henrich, D. (:q). Die Deduktion des Sittengesetzes. Uber die Grnde der Dunkelheit des letzten Abschnittes von Kants >Grundlegung zur List of references 8: Metaphysik der Sitten<. In A. Schwan (ed.), Denken im Schatten des Nihilismus. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, pp. ::.. (:qq). The Unity of Reason: Essays on Kants Philosophy. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press. Hinrichs, C. (:q:). Preuentum und Pietismus: Der Pietismus in Brandenberg-Preuen als religis-soziale Reformbewegung. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck and Ruprecht. Hinske, N. (:q) (ed.). Was ist Aufklrung? Beitrge aus der Berlinischen Monatsschrift (.nd edn.) Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft. (:q8). Staatszweck und Freiheitsrechte. Kants Pldoyer fr den Rechtsstaat. In G. Birtsch (ed.), Grund- und Freiheitsrechte von der stndischen zur sptburger- lichen Gesellschaft. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck and Ruprecht, pp. q:. (:q8q) (ed.). Zentren der Aufklrung I. Halle: Aufklrung und Pietismus. Heidelberg: Lambert Schneider. (:qqo). Die tragenden Grundideen der deutschen Aufklrung. Versuch einer Typologie. In R. Ciafardone (ed.), Die Philosophie der deutschen Aufklrung. Texte und Darstellung. Stuttgart: Philipp Reclam, pp. o8. Hochstrasser, T. J. (.ooo). Natural Law Theories in the Early Enlightenment. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Hollmann, G. (:8qq). Prolegomena zur Genesis der Religionsphilosophie Kants. Altpreussische Monatsschrift, 6, :. Holzhey, H. (:q8). Philosophie als Eklektik. Studia Leibnitiana, :, :q.q. Holzhey, H. (:qq8). Das metaphysische Bedrfnis. In F. Grunert and F. Vollhardt (eds.), Aufklrung als praktische Philosophie. Werner Schneiders zum . Geburtstag. Tbingen: Max Niemeyer Verlag, pp. :8.. Honnefelder, L. (:qqo). Scientia transcendens: Die formale Bestimmung der Seiendheit und Realitt in der Metaphysik des Mittelalters und der Neuzeit (Duns Scotus-Surez- Wol-Kant-Peirce). Hamburg: Felix Meiner. Hubatsch, W. (:q68). Geschichte der evangelischen Kirche Ostpreussens. (Vol. I.) Gttingen: Vandenhoeck and Ruprecht. Ischreyt, H. (ed.). (:qq). Knigsberg und Riga: Zentren der Aufklrung II. Tbingen: Max Niemeyer Verlag. Jacobi, F. H. (:8.). Something Lessing Said: A Commentary on Journeys of the Popes. In J. Schmidt (ed.) (:qq6), pp. :q:.::. Jasinowski, B. (:q.). Leibniz und der Ubergang der mittelalterlichen in die moderne Philosophie. Studia Leibnitiana, , .:6. Jordan, G. J. (:q.). The Reunion of the Churches. London: Constable. Kahl-Furthmann, G. (:qo). Der Satz vom zuriechenden Grunde von Leibniz bis Kant. Zeitschrift fr Philosophie und Philosophische Forschung, o, :o... Kaufmann, T. (:qq). Universitt und lutherische Konfessionalisierung. Die Rostocker Theologieprofessoren und ihr Beitrag zur theologischen Bildung und kirchlichen Gestaltung im Herzogtum Mecklenburg zwischen .o und .,. Gtersloh: Gtersloher Verlaghaus. Kelley, D. R. (:q8). Civil Science in the Renaissance: The Problem of Interpretation. In Pagden (ed.), pp. qq8. 8. List of references (:q6). Vera Philosophia: The Philosophical Signicance of Renaissance Jurisprudence. Journal of the History of Philosophy, :, .6q. (:qq:). Law. In Burns and Goldie (eds.), pp. 66q. Kersting, W. (:q8). Wohlgeordnete Freiheit. Immanual Kants Rechts- und Staatsphilosophie. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. Keler, E., Lohr, C. H., and Sparn, W. (eds.) (:q88). Aristotelismus und Renaissance: In memoriam Charles B. Schmitt. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz. Kimmich, D. (:qq). Epikureische Aufklrungen. Philosophische und poetische Konzepte der Selbstsorge. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft. (:qq). Lob der ruhigen Belusting: Zu Thomasius kritischer Epikur- Rezeption. In Vollhardt (ed.), pp. qq. Klippel, D. (:qqo). Von der Aufklrung der Herrscher zur Herrschaft der Aufklrung. Zeitschrift fr Historische Forschung, :, :q.:o. (:qq). Naturrecht und Rechtsphilosophie in der ersten Hlfte des :q. Jahrhunderts. In O. Dann and D. Klippel (eds.), Naturrecht Sptaufklrung Revolution. Hamburg: Felix Meiner, pp. .oq.. Kobusch, T. (:qq). Die Entdeckung der Person: Metaphysik der Freiheit und modernes Menschenbild. Freiburg: Herder. (:qq6). Pufendorfs Lehre vom moralischen Sein. In Palladini and Hartung (eds.), pp. 68.. Kondylis, P. (:q8:). Die Aufklrung im Rahmen des neuzeitlichen Rationalismus. Stuttgart: Klett-Cotta. Koselleck, R. (:q8.). Aufklrung und die Grenzen ihrer Toleranz. In T. Rendtor (ed.), Glaube und Toleranz: Das theologische Erbe der Aufklrung. Gtersloh: Gtersloher Verlagshaus Mohn. (:q88). Critique and Crisis: Enlightenment and the Pathogenesis of Modern Society. Oxford: Berg. Kriegel, B. (:qq). The State and the Rule of Law. Trans. Marc LePain and Jerey Cohen. Princeton: Princeton University Press. Krieger, L. (:q). The German Idea of Freedom: History of a Political Tradition. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. (:q6). The Politics of Discretion: Pufendorf and the Acceptance of Natural Law. Chicago: Chicago University Press. Kusukawa, S. (:qq.). Law and Gospel: The Importance of Philosophy at Reformation Wittenberg. History of Universities, ::, 8. Kusukawa, S. (:qq). The Transformation of Natural Philosophy: The Case of Philip Melanchthon. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Lestition, S. (:q8q). The Teaching and Practice of Jurisprudence in :8th Century East Prussia: Knigsbergs First Chancellor, R. F. von Sahme (:68.:). Ius Commune, :6, .8o. (:qq). Kant and the End of the Enlightenment in Prussia. Journal of Modern History, 6, ::.. Lewalter, E. (:q). Spanisch-jesuitische und deutsch-lutherische Metaphysik des .,. Jahrhunderts. Ein Beitrag zur Geschichte der iberisch-deutschen Kulturbeziehungen und List of references 8 zur Vorgeschichte des deutschen Idealismus. Hamburg: Ibero-Amerikanisches Institut. Lieberwirth, R. (:q). Christian Thomasius Leipziger Streitigkeiten. Wissenschaftliche Zeitschrift der Martin-Luther-Universitt Halle-Wittenberg (Gesellschafts- und sprachwissenschaftliche Reihe), , :q. Lingelbach, G. (:qq). Vernunft-Wahrheit-Freiheit: Zur frhen Kantrezeption in der Rechtswissenschaft an der Jena Universitt. In N. Hinske, E. Lange, and H. Schrpfer (eds.), Der Aufbruch in den Kantianismus: Der Frhkantianismus an der Universitt Jena von .,8.8oo und seine Vorgeschichte. Stuttgart-Bad Cannstatt: Frommann-Holzboog, pp. :q:.:. Link, C. (:q8). Christentum und moderner Staat. Zur Grundlegung eines frei- heitlichen Staatskirchenrechts im Aufklrungzeitalter. In Dilcher and Sta (eds.), pp. :::.8. (:q8). Naturrechtliche Grundlagen des Grundrechtsdenkens in der deuts- chen Staatsrechtslehre des :. und :8. Jahrhunderts. In G. Birtsch (ed.), Grund- und Freiheitsrechte von der stndischen zur sptburgerlichen Gesellschaft. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck and Ruprecht, pp. .:. Lohr, C. H. (:q88). Metaphysics. In C. B. Schmitt (ed.), The Cambridge History of Renaissance Philosophy. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 66. Ltzsch, F. (:q6). Vernunft und Religion im Denken Kants. Lutherisches Erbe bei Immanuel Kant. Kln: Bhlau Verlag. Ludwig, B. (:q88). Kants Rechtslehre. Mit einer Untersuchung zur Drucklegung Kantischer Schriften von Werner Stark. Hamburg: Felix Meiner. Luther, M. (:q8q). Disputation Against Scholastic Theology. In T. F. Lull (ed.), Martin Luthers Basic Theological Writings. Minneapolis: Fortress Press, pp. :.o. Malter, R. (:q). Zeitgenssische Reaktionen auf Kants Religionsphilosophie: Eine Skizze zur Wirkungsgeschichte des Kantischen und reformatorischen Denkens. In A. J. Bucher, H. Dre, and T. M. Seebohm (eds.), Bewut Sein. Bonn: Herbert Grundmann, pp. :6. (:qq.). Knigsberger Gesprchskultur im Zeitalter der Aufklrung: Kant und sein Kreis. Aufklrung. Interdisziplinre Halbjahresschrift zur Erforschung des .8. Jahrhunderts und seiner Wirkungsgeschichte, , .. Manent, P. (:qq). An Intellectual History of Liberalism (trans. Rebecca Balinksi). Princeton: Princeton University Press. Mautner, T. (:qq6). Carmichael and Barbeyrac: The Lost Correspondence. In Palladini and Hartung (eds.), pp. :qo.o8. Meinecke, F. (:q). Die Idee der Staatsrson in der neueren Geschichte. Werke Bd. .. Munich: R. Oldenbourg. Merlan, P. (:q6). Monopsychism, Mysticism, Metaconsciousness: Problems of the Soul in the Neoaristotelian and Neoplatonic Tradition. The Hague: Martinus Nijho. Mhle, H. (:qq6). Wille und Moral. Zur Voraussetzung der Ethik des Johannes Duns Scotus in ihrer Bedeutung fr die Ethik Immanual Kants. In L. 8 List of references Honnefelder, R. Wood, and M. Dreyer (eds.), John Duns Scotus: Metaphysics and Ethics. Leiden: E. J. Brill, pp. q. Moore, J., and Silverthorne, M. (:q8). Natural Sociability and Natural Rights in the Moral Philosophy of Gershom Carmichael. In V. Hope (ed.), Philosophers of the Scottish Enlightenment. Edinburgh: Edinburgh University Press, pp. ::.. Nicolai, F. (:q8). Vorrede. In J. C. Schwab, Neun Gesprche zwischen Christian Wol und einem Kantianer ber Kants metaphysische Anfangsgrnde der Rechtslehre und der Tugendlehre. Berlin: Editions Culture et Civilisation, pp. .. Nizolius, M. (:q8o). Vier Bcher ber die wahren Prinzipien und die warhre philosophis- che Methode Gegen die Pseudophilosophen (trans. Klaus Thieme). Munich: Wilhelm Fink. Nussbaum, M. C. (:qq). The Therapy of Desire: Theory and Practice in Hellenistic Ethics. Princeton, N.J.: Princeton University Press. Oestreich, G. (:qq). Die Bedeutung des niederlndischen Spthumanismus fr Brandenburg-Preuen. In H. Thieme (ed.), Humanismus und Naturrecht in Berlin-Brandenburg-Preussen. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, pp. :6.8. (:q8.). Neostoicism and the Early Modern State (trans. David McLintock). Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. ONeill, O. (:q8q). Reason and Autonomy in Grundlegung III. In O. He (ed.), Grundlegung zur Metaphysic der Sitten: Ein Kooperativer Kommentar. Frankfurt am Main: Vittorio Klostermann, pp. .8.q8. Osler, M. J. (ed.) (:qq:). Atoms, Pneuma, and Tranquility: Epicurean and Stoic Themes in European Thought. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Othmer, S. C. (:qo). Berlin und die Verbreitung des Naturrechts in Europa. Kultur- und sozialgeschichtliche Studien zu Jean Barbeyracs Pufendorf-Ubersetzung und eine Analyse seiner Leserschaft. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. Pagden, A. (ed.) (:q8). The Languages of Political Thought in Early-Modern Europe. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Palladini, F. (:q8). Discussioni seicentesche su Samuel Pufendorf. Scritti Latini: ..,oo. Bologna: Mulino Palladini, F. and Hartung, G. (eds.) (:qq6). Samuel Pufendorf und die europische Frhaufklarung: Werk und Einu eines deutschen Brgers der Gelehrtenrepublik nach oo Jahren (..). Berlin: Akademie Verlag. Paton, H. J. (:q6). The Categorical Imperative. (th edn.) London: Hutchinson. Petersen, P. (:q.:). Geschichte der aristotelischen Philosophie im protestantischen Deutschland. Leipzig: Felix Meiner. Pocock, J. G. A. (:q). The Machiavellian Moment: Florentine Political Thought and the Atlantic Republican Tradition. Princeton, N.J.: Princeton University Press. (:q8). Virtue, Commerce, and History: Essays on Political Thought and History, Chiey in the Eighteenth Century. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. (:q88). Religious Freedom and the Desacralisation of Politics: From the English Civil Wars to the Virginia Statute. In M. D. Peterson and R. C. Vaughan (eds.), The Virginia Statute for Religious Freedom: Its Evolution and List of references 8 Consequences in American History. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. . (:qq). Edward Gibbon and the Diversities of Enlightenment. Paper presented at the Three conferences on Edward Gibbon at the Ecole des Hautes Etudes and Institut Raymond Aron, Paris. Quinn, P. L. (:q86). Christian Atonement and Kantian Justication. Faith and Philosophy, , o6.. (:q88). In Adams Fall, We Sinned All. Philosophical Topics, :6, 8q::8. Rabbow, P. (:q). Seelenfhrung: Methodik der Exerzitien in der Antike. Munich: Ksel-Verlag. Rachel, S. (:q:6). De Jure Naturae et Gentium Dissertationes/Dissertations on the Law of Nature and Nations ( J. P. Bate, Trans.). (Vol. ii). Washington: Carnegie Institution. Rawls, J. (:q.). A Theory of Justice. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Riley, P. (:qq6). Leibniz Universal Jurisprudence: Justice as the Charity of the Wise. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press. Ritter, C. (:q:). Die Rechtsgedanke Kants nach den frhen Quellen. Frankfurt am Main: Klostermann. Ritzel, W. (:q.). Studien zum Wandel der Kantauassung. Die Kritik der reinen Vernunft nach Alois Riehl, Hermann Cohen, Max Wundt und Bruno Bauch. Meisenheim/Glan: Anton Hain. Rd, W. (:q6q). Erhard Weigels Lehre von den entia moralis. Archiv fr Geschichte der Philosophie, :, 88. (:q:). Erhard Weigels Metaphysik der Gesellschaft und des Staates. Studia Leibnitiana, , .8. Rosenkranz, K. (:8o). Geschichte der Kantschen Philosophie. Berlin: Akademie- Verlag. Rublack, H.-C. (ed.) (:qq.). Die lutherische Konfessionalisierung in Deutschland. Gtersloh: Gerd Mohn. Rping, H. (:q68). Die Naturrechtslehre des Christian Thomasius und ihre Fortbildung in der Thomasius-Schule. Bonn: Ludwig Rhrscheid. (:qq). Thomasius und seine Schler im brandenburgischen Staat. In Thieme (ed.), pp. 68q. Salmonowicz, S. (:qq). Knigsberg, Thorn und Danzig: Zur Geschichte Knigsberg als Zentrum der Aufklrung. In Ischreyt (ed.), pp. q.8. Santinello, G. (:qq). Jakob Thomasius (:6..8). In F. Bottin, L. Malusa, G. Micheli, G. Santinello, and I. Tolomio (eds.), Models of the History of Philosophy: From Its Origins in the Renaissance to the Historia Philosophica Dordrecht: Kluwer, vol. i, pp. oq.. Scheibler, H. (:q8). Grndung und Ausbau der Universitt Wittenberg. In Baumgart and Hammerstein (eds.), pp. ::. Schiera, P. (:qq.). Polizebegri und Staatlichkeit im aufgeklrten Absolutismus. Der Wandel des Staatsschutzes und die Rolle der Wissenschaft. Aufklrung. Interdisziplinre Halbjahresschrift zur Erforschung des .8. Jahrhunderts und seiner Wirkungsgeschichte, , 8:oo. 86 List of references Schilling, H. (:q88). Die Konfessionalisierung im Reich: Religiser und gesells- chaftlicher Wandel in Deutschland zwischen : und :6.o. Historische Zeitschrift, .6, :. (:q8q). Sndenzucht und frhneuzeitliche Sozialdisziplinierung: Die calvi- nistische, presbyteriale Kirchenzucht in Emden vom :6. bis :q. Jahrhundert. In G. Schmidt (ed.), Stnde und Gesellschaft im Alten Reich. Stuttgart: Franz Steiner Verlag, pp. .6o.. (:qq). Confessional Europe. In T. A. J. Brady, H. A. Oberman, and J. D. Tracy (eds.), Handbook of European History .oo.oo: Latin Middle Ages, Renaissance and Reformation. Volume II: Visions, Programs and Outcomes. Leiden: E. J. Brill, pp. 6:8.. Schilpp, P. A. (:q8). Kants Pre-Critical Ethics. Evanston, Ill.: Northwestern University Press. Schindling, A. (:qq). Die protestantische Universitten im Heiligen Rmischen Reich deutscher Nation im Zietalter der Aufklrung. In N. Hammerstein (ed.), Universitten und Aufklarung. Gttingen: Wallstein Verlag, pp. q.o. Schlaich, K. (:q68). Der rationale Territorialismus. Die Kirche unter dem staatsrechtlichen Absolutismus um die Wende vom :. zum :8. Jh. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte, 8, .6qo. Schmidt, J. (:qq6a) (ed.). What is Enlightenment? Eighteenth-Century Answers and Twentieth-Century Questions. Berkeley: University of California Press. Schmidt, J. (:qq6b). Introduction: What is Enlightenment? A Question, Its Context, and Some Consequences. In Schmidt (ed.), pp. :. Schmidt, W. (:qq). Ein fast vergessener Rebell. Leben und Wirken des Christian Thomasius. Mnchen: Diedrichs. Schmidt-Biggemann, W. (:q88a). Theodizee und Tatsachen: das philosophische Prol der deutschen Aufklrung. Frankfurt am Main: Suhrkamp. (:q88b). Althusius Politische Theologie. In Dahm, Krawietz and Wyduckel (eds.), pp. .::. (:qq). Aufklrung durch Metaphysik. Zur Rolle der Theodizee in der Aufklrung. In W. Malsch and W. Koepke (eds.), Herder Jahrbuch/Herder Yearbook .. Stuttgart: J. B. Metzler, pp. :o:. (:qq6). New Structures of Knowledge. In H. d. Ridder-Symoens (ed.), A History of the University in Europe: Volume II: Universities in Early Modern Europe (.oo.8oo). Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, vol. ii, pp. 8qo. (:qq8). Pietismus, Platonismus und Aufklrung: Christian Thomasius Versuch von Wesen des Geistes. In F. Grunert and F. Vollhardt (eds.), Aufklrung als prak- tische Philosophie: Werner Schneiders zum . Geburtstag. Tbingen: Max Niemeyer, pp. 8q8. Schmitt, C. (:qo). Der Nomos der Erde, im Vlkerrecht des Jus Publicum Europaeum. Cologne: Greven. (:q86). Political Romanticism (trans. Guy Oakes). Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press. (:qq6). The Concept of the Political (trans. George Schwab). Chicago: University of Chicago Press. List of references 8 Schmucker, J. (:q6:). Die Ursprnge der Ethik Kants in seinen vorkritischen Schriften und Reektionen. Meisenheim a. G.: Anton Hain. Schneewind, J. B. (:q8). Pufendorf s Place in the History of Ethics. Synthese, ,:, :.. (:qq6). Barbeyrac and Leibniz on Pufendorf. In Palladini and Hartung (eds.), pp. :8:q. (:qq8). The Invention of Autonomy: A History of Modern Moral Philosophy. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Schneider, H.-P. (:q6). Justitia Universalis. Quellenstudien zur Geschichte des Christlichen Naturrechts bei Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz. Frankfurt am Main: Klostermann. Schneiders, W. (:q68). Vorwort. In C. Thomasius, Ausbung der Sittenlehre. Hildesheim: Georg Olms. (:q:). Naturrecht und Liebesethik. Zur Geschichte der praktischen Philosophie im Hinblick auf Christian Thomasius. Hildesheim: Olms Verlag. (:q). Die wahre Aufklrung: Zum Selbstverstndnis der deutschen Aufklrung. Freiburg and Munich: Alber. (:q8a). Vernnftiger Zweifel und wahre Eklektik. Zur Entstehung des mod- ernen Kritikbegries. Studia Leibnitiana, :, :6:. (:q8b). Der Philosophiebegri des philosophischen Zeitalters. Wandlungen im Selbstverstndnis der Philosophie von Leibniz bis Kant. In Vierhaus (ed.), pp. 8q.. (:q86a) (ed.). Christian Wol .,.,: Interpretationen zu seiner Philosophie und deren Wirkung, mit einer Bibliographie der Wol-Literatur. Hamburg: Felix Meiner. (:q86b). Deus est philosophus absolute summus: Uber Christian Wols Philosophie und Philosophiebegri. In Schneiders (ed.), Christian Wol, pp. qo. (:q8q) (ed.). Christian Thomasius ..,:8: Interpretationen zu Werk und Wirkung mit einer Bibliographie der neueren Thomasius-Literatur. Hamburg: Felix Meiner. (:qqo). Honung auf Vernunft. Aufklrungsphilosophie in Deutschland. Hamburg: Felix Meiner. Schorn-Schtte, L. (:qq.). Lutherische Konfessionalisierung? Das Beispiel Braunschweig-Wolfenbttel (:8q:6:). In Rublack (ed.), pp. :6q. Schrder, P. (:qq). Thomas Hobbes, Christian Thomasius and the Seventeenth Century Debate on the Church and State. History of European Ideas, ., qq. Schrder, R. (:q8). Johann Gerhards lutherische Christologie und die aristotelische Metaphysik. Tbingen: J. C. B. Mohr. Schubart-Fikentscher, G. (:q). Christian Thomasius: Seine Bedeutung als Hochschullehrer am Beginn der deutschen Aufklrung. Berlin: Akademie Verlag. Schultze, J. (:q6). Die Rosenkreutzer und Friedrich Wilhelm II. In Forschungen zur brandenburgischen und preussischen Geschichte. Berlin: Verentlichungen der Historischen Kommission zu Berlin, vol. xiii, pp. .o6. 88 List of references Sve, R. (:q8q). Leibniz et lEcole moderne du droit naturel. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France. (:qq). Leibniz: Le droit de la raison. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France. Shank, M. H. (:q88). Unless you believe, you shall not understand: Logic, University and Society in Late Medieval Vienna. Princeton N.J.: Princeton University Press. Siep, L. (:q8q). Wozu Metaphysik der Sitten? In O. He (ed.), Grundlegung zur Metaphysik der Sitten: Ein kooperativer Kommentar. Frankfurt am Main: Vittorio Klostermann, pp. :. Skinner, Q. (:q8). Foundations of Modern Political Thought. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. (:q8o). The Origins of the Calvinist Theory of Revolution. In B. C. Malament (ed.), After the Reformation. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, pp. oqo. (:qq). Scientia civilis in Classical Rhetoric and in the Early Hobbes. In N. Phillipson and Q. Skinner (eds.), Political Discourse in Early Modern Britain. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. 6q8. (:qq6). Reason and Rhetoric in the Philosophy of Hobbes. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Sparn, W. (:q6). Wiederkehr der Metaphysik: Die ontologische Frage in der lutherischen Theologie des frhen .,. Jahrhunderts. Stuttgart: Calwer Verlag. (:qq). Doppelte Wahrheit? Erinnerungen zur theologischer Struktur des Problems der Einheit des Denkens. In F. Mildenberger and J. Track (eds.), Zugang zur Theologie. Fundamentaltheologische Beitrge. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck and Ruprecht, pp. 8. (:q8). Vernnftiges Christentum. Uber die geschichtliche Aufgabe der theo- logischen Aufklrung im :8. Jahrhundert in Deutschland. In Vierhaus (ed.), pp. :8. (:q86). Das Bekenntnis des Philosophen. Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz als Philosoph und Theologe. Neue Zeitschrift fr Systematische Theologie, .8, :q8. (:q88). Politik als zweite Reformation: Die historische Situation der Politica des Johannes Althusius. In Dahm, Krawietz and Wyduckel (eds.), pp. ... (:q8q). Auf dem Wege zur theologischen Aufklrung in Halle: Von Johann Franz Budde zu Siegmund Jakob Baumgarten. In Hinske (ed.), Zentren, pp. :8q. (:qq.). Die Krise der Frmmigkeit und ihr theologischer Reex in nachrefor- matorischen Luthertum. In Rublack (ed.), pp. 8.. Stark, W. (:qq). Kant als akademischer Lehrer. In Ischreyt (ed.), pp. :68. Studlin, C. F. (:8o8). Geschichte der Christlichen moral seit dem Wiederaueben der Wissenschaften. Gttingen: J. F. Rower. Steiger, H. (:qq). Neutrality in Religionssachen. In O. Brunner, W. Conze, and R. Koselleck (eds.), Geschichtliche Grundbegrie. Historisches Lexikon zur List of references 8q politisch-sozialen Sprache in Deutschland. Stuttgart: Klett-Cotta, vol. i\, pp. 6. Stolleis, M. (:qqo). Staat und Staatsrson in der frhen Neuzeit: Studien zur Geschichte des entlichen Rechts. Frankfurt am Main: Suhrkamp. Stuke, H. (:q.). Aufklrung. In O. Brunner, W. Conze, and R. Koselleck (eds.), Geschichtliche Grundbegrie: historisches Lexikon zur politisch-sozialen Sprache in Deutschland. Stuttgart: Klett-Cotta, vol. i, pp. ... Svarez, C. G. (:q6o). Vortrge ber Recht und Staat. Kln: Westdeutscher Verlag. Thieme, H. (:qqa) (ed.). Humanismus und Naturrecht in Berlin-Brandenburg-Preussen. (Vol. xr\iii). Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. (:qqb). Humanismus und Naturrecht in Berlin-Brandenburg als Aufgabe der Geschichtsforschung. In Thieme (ed.), pp. :. Thomassen, B. (:q8). Metaphysik als Lebensform. Untersuchungen zur Grundlegung der Metaphysik im Metaphysikkommentar Alberts des Grossen. Mnster: Aschendorrf. Tierney, B. (:qq). The Idea of Natural Rights: Studies on Natural Rights, Natural Law and Church Law, ..o.:. Atlanta: Scholars Press. Tonelli, G. (:q:). The Weakness of Reason in the Age of Enlightenment. Diderot Studies, :, .:. Tonelli, G. (:q). Conditions in Knigsberg and the Making of Kants Philosophy. In A. J. Bucher, H. Dre, and T. M. Seebohm (eds.), Bewut Sein. Bonn: Herbert Grundmann, pp. :.6. Troeltsch, E. (:qo). Das Historische in Kants Religionsphilosophie: Zugleich ein Beitrag zu den Untersuchungen ber Kants Philosophie der Geschichte. Berlin: Reuter and Reichard. Tuck, R. (:q8). The Modern Theory of Natural Law. In Pagden (ed.), pp. qq:... (:qqa). Philosophy and Government .,:... Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. (:qqb). The Civil Religion of Thomas Hobbes. In N. Phillipson and Q. Skinner (eds.), Political Discourse in Early Modern Britain. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. :.o8. Tully, J. (:qq:). Editors Introduction. In J. Tully (ed.), Samuel Pufendorf: On the Duty of Man and Citizen According to Natural Law. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. xivxl. Vierhaus, R. (ed.) (:q8). Wissenschaft im Zeitalter der Aufklrung. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck and Ruprecht. Vollhardt, F. (ed.) (:qq). Christian Thomasius (..,:8): Neue Forschungen im Kontext der Frhaufklrung. Tbingen: Max Niemeyer. Weigel, E. (:6). Arithmetische Beschreibung der Moral-Weiheit von Personen und Sachen, worauf das gemeine Wesen bestehet. Jena: J. Bielckens. Wiebking, W. (:q). Recht, Reich und Kirche in der Lehre des Christian Thomasius. Unpublished Ph.D thesis, Eberhard-Karl University of Tbingen. Wiedeburg, P. (:q6.). Der Junge Leibniz: Das Reich und Europa. Wiesbaden: F. Steiner. Williams, T. C. (:q68). The Concept of the Categorical Imperative: A Study of the Place qo List of references of the Categorical Imperative in Kants Ethical Theory. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Wittgenstein, L. (:q8o). Vermischte Bemerkungen/Culture and Value (trans. Peter Winch). Oxford: Basil Blackwell. Wood, A. W. (:qo). Kants Moral Religion. Ithaca: Cornell University Press. (:qq6). General Introduction. In A. W. Wood (ed.), Immanuel Kant: Religion and Rational Theology. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, pp. xi-xxxiv. Wundt, M. (:q.). Kant als Metaphysiker: Ein Beitrag zur Geschichte der deutschen Philosophie im .8. Jahrhundert. (:q8 Reprint edn.). Stuttgart: Ferdinand Enke. (:qq). Die deutsche Schulmetaphysik des .,. Jahrhunderts. Tbingen: J. C. B. Mohr. (:q). Die deutsche Schulphilosophie im Zeitalter der Aufklrung. Tbingen: J. C. B. Mohr. Wyduckel, D. (:qq6). Die Vertragslehre Pufendorfs und ihre rechts- und staats- theoretischen Grundlagen. In Palladini and Hartung (eds.), pp. :6. Zeeden, E. W. (:q8). Konfessionsbildung: Studien zur Reformation, Gegenreformation und katholischen Reform. Stuttgart: Klett-Cotta. Zeller, E. (:86.). Wols Vertreibung aus Halle. Der Kampf des Pietismus mit der Philosophie. Preuische Jahrbcher, :o, q.. Zurbuchen, S. (:qq:). Naturrecht und natrliche Religion. Zur Geschichte des Toleranzproblems von Samuel Pufendorf bis Jean-Jacques Rousseau. Wrzburg: Knigshausen and Neumann. List of references q: absolutism, 6, q; and the desacralisation of politics, 8q; and liberalism, :, 8., :q, .6, :., 6q; in Pufendorf, :8:, :q. adiaphora (indierents), ::6, ., .6, 6: Ahnert, Thomas, :o, :., ..8 Albert the Great (Albertus Magnus), .8, :, .8o, .8. Alberti, Valentin, , .8, :o., :., :, :6, .oo:, .o6, . Albrecht, Michael, :6; Eklektik, 66, 6q Allison, Henry, .8q; Lessing and the Enlightenment, :6 Alsted, Johann, 6, Althusius, Johannes, .8, q6., 8, :8, , 68; Politica, q anamnesis, 6, ... Arnauld, Antoine, ::6 Arnisaeus, Henning, 6, , , .oo Arnold, Gottfried, Unparteiysche Kirchen- und Ketzerhistorie, . Augsburg, Peace of, :, 8., :: Barbeyrac, Jean, 8, q, :.8, :q8 Barreau, Herv, :6 Baumgarten, A. G., Metaphysica, .6; Initia Philosophiae Primae, .6 Bayle, Pierre, 8 Beck, Lewis White, , , 6o, :o; Early German Philosophy, :6 Bernard, Jacques, Nouvelles de la Republique des Lettres, :.8q Bodin, Jean, q, 6 Bohatec, Josef, 6 Brckner, Jutta, Staatswissenschaften, Kameralismus und Naturrecht, 66q Budde(us), Johann Francis, .68q Buhle, J. G., :6 Caritas ordinata (doctrine of well-ordered love), .oq, ..8 Carmichael, Gershom, :q8 Carpzov, Johann Benedict, .o6, .6. civil philosophy, ix, q:, qo:; and civic republicanism, ; and deconfessionalisation, .8, 6, , 88q, 6q:; and electicism, 6q; histories of, ix, 66, 88; and jurisprudence, ::, 6, 6, 88q; and natural law, 6, 8q.; and politics, :, 6, 6; marginalisation of, :6, 6, 66, :8, 6; rivalry with metaphysics, x, ::, .8, 6., 6, , q8, :6:, :68, :., .o:, .:6, ..6q, .6; as self-culture (paideia), .oq, ..:, ..6q, 6qo; Thomasius and, 66, 88, .:. church, .6:; and state, :, .6, o:; as model for society, .6, 6., .6:, ., , 6, 6 confessionalisation, ., :; and the confessional state 86., q8, .; and religious civil war, 6, :68, .6 Conring, Hermann, , 8 communitarianism, 68, :, 6, 68, 6; and confessionalism, 6:., .:; theological origins of, q6o (see also, public sphere) Cramer, Daniel, 6 deconfessionalisation, xi, 6q, 8., :8q, 68q, .o:, .6; and the desacralisation of politics, 6, ::, , 68, 8qqo, q8, :o:, :o, :o, :68, .o, .6, 6., 6; and the resacralisation of politics, xi, :., q6o, q:., q8, :o., :::, :o:, :, .o6, .6, :6:, 6, 66 Denzer, Horst, 6, :, :8, :88 Dring, Detlef, ., q, :o, :q Dreitzel, Horst, :, 6, ., , 8:, :o Duns Scotus, Johannes, q q. Index ecclesiology: Lutheran, .6:.; Thomasius, .6. eclecticism, ; and civil philosophy, 6q; and scholasticism, .::q; Thomasius and, , ., .::q; history of, 6q Enlightenment (Aufklrung), :, :., :6; civil, q, :, .; debate over, , :., :6; Kant and, ., .8; metaphysical (philosophical), ., ::, ., 6, :oo, ::; multiple forms of, :, , ::, ::, .:, .-; periodisation, :8:q, .o:, .:.; and theology, .6, :., :. Eschweiler, Karl, 8 Fischer, Kuno, :6 Foucault, Michel, .: Friedeburg, Robert von, q Gerhard, Ephraim, Gerhard, Johann, 6 Gener, Salomon, : gnoseomonism, qq Goclenius, Rudolf, 6 Gregor, Mary J., .6 Grotius, Hugo, ., 88, :8; De Jure Belli ac Pacis, 6, Grunert, Frank, :q Haakonssen, Knud, :o, :66 Habermas, Jrgen, 6 Hadot, Pierre, .., :oq, 6 Heckel, Martin, ::, 6, 8:, :: Hegel, G. W. F., :, :q Heimsoeth, Heinz, :6, qq:oo, .88, :: Henrich, Dieter, .8q, .q heresy, , .6, ; and the desacralisation of politics, 8, .oo:, .; Leibniz on, :6, ., ; Thomasius on, , :6, .oo:, ., Hinrichs, Carl, .o Hinske, Norbert, ., 8, :q, .6 history, .::; Begrisgeschichte (conceptual history), :., 66, o; Kantian (dialectical), ix-x, :6.:, 6q, .o:, .o.q, .:., 6, 6; and metaphysics, :q.o, ::.:, :6:., .::, .66 Hobbes, Thomas, .; and Pufendorf, :., :8., :88, :q. Hochstrasser, T. J., , :o, :6, 86 Hofmann, Daniel, :qq; and the two truths doctrine, ; De Usu et Applicatione Notionum Logicorum ad Res Theologicus, Horn, J. F., :88qo; De Civitate, :8. Hotman, Francis, 6 Huguenots, q, :.8 humanism, 8 intellectuals, :o, .8q, 66; critical, :q.o, :o., .6, :, 6, 6, 6qo; juristic, :o, .oo, .., .., :; metaphysical, :o:, :::, :8q, :., ::6, :, . Jacobi, F. H., , 68 Jasinowski, Bogumil, q8q Jesuits (Society of Jesus), .; and metaphysics, 8o justice, .; Kant on, ..; Leibniz on, q6, :::; Pufendorf on, :66 Kant, Immanuel, ix, :q6, .; anti- consequentialism, 8, .8., .q; ascetic (self-transformative) character of his philosophy, .q, .8o, .8, .q:6, , ., 6; autonomy in, .8., oq:o; on the Bible, q; categorical imperative, .8., o., o6; his Christology, ., o.; on the church (philosophical ecclesiology), , 6, ; and civil philosophy, .6, .8, ::6, :, , 6; Conict of the Faculties, 6; on crime and punishment, 6; and the critical intellectual, :q.o, ::6, :, 6, 66; Critique of Pure Reason, .8:, :; Critique of Practical Reason, .q., ; Dreams of a Spirit Seer Elucidated by Dreams of Metaphysics, .86q:, :; on duty (obligation), .q:., .q, .q8q; General Natural History and Theory of the Heavens, .86, .q:; on the general will, :8, .8, .; on the good will, .q68; Groundwork of the Metaphysics of Morals, .8, .q:6, .o, o, ; hermeneutics, ; on humanity (and personhood), .88, .q, oq; kingdom of ends, .8, :o::, .; and Leibniz, :o6, :o8q; .6, :; on lying, o6; as metaphysician, .q, .8:, .8q, ::6; metaphysics of law, :6.; metaphysics of morality, .8., .q:, .q6, oo; Metaphysische Anfangsgrnde der Rechtslehre, :6; moral anthropology, .o, ., .q8:, .8q:, .q6, :.:6, .o:, .q, o, 6o; on moral feeling, .88, .q:, .q8; morality and law, ., :.; morality and religion, 8, q:; on natural religion, q6:; on natural rights, :, o:, 6; and Neology, :, , 6.; noumena (and phenomena), , .8:., .:; on noumenal possession, .q; philosophical theology, 6; on Index q Kant, Immanuel (cont.) political legitimacy, ; on the principle of right/justice, ..; and prudential ethics, ., .8, .q8, o; his purism, .qq, o8q, :6, :, .; on radical evil, o, 8; Religion within the Boundaries of Reason Alone, ., 6; Remarks on Observations on the Feeling of the Beautiful and the Sublime, .q, .8; and the resacralisation of politics, .6, :6:, :, 6, 6, 6; his sectarianism, .q6; on sovereignty, .; spiritual community, .88, o6, :o::, ., .; spiritual exercises in, .q, .q6; on the state, .; on suicide, o8, .; and Swedenborg, .868, .qo; and university metaphysics, :q.o, .q8, .8q, .q, ::6; and Wol, .6, :; and the Wllner edict, 8q, :., 6. Keckermann, Bartholomaeus, 6, , q Kelley, Donald J., :o Kennet, Basil, :q8 Kersting, Wolfgang, :q.o, .6, o Kimmich, Dorothee, .: Klippel, Diethelm, : Knutzen, Martin, ., .6 Kobusch, Theo, :6 Koselleck, Reinhart, ::: Kriegel, Blandine, :.:, 6, 6 Lange, Joachim, .68q law: church (Kirchenrecht), ::, 8, .:6; Imperial, 8:; and juridication, 8:, ::; and morality, , ::, .o.q, .., :6:; and politics, ., 8q; Roman, 8:, 8, 8, :o., .:; teaching of, 8:, .oo, .:o: (see also, political jurisprudence, jus publicum, Staatsrecht) Leibniz, Gottfried Wilhelm, xi, q; abstraction in, :o::, :6.; attack on Pufendorf, q8, :.8:, :, .; Catholic Demonstrations, ::; and Christian philosophy, :oo, :o., ::::, :.6, :.q, :; and Christian natural law, :o., :.8, ::6; and Christian unity, 8q, q, :::6; Confessio Philosophi, ::, ::6; Discourse on Metaphysics, ::6, :.8, :, .66; on the Eucharist, 8q; on evil, o, :::q, :.6; on heresy, :.6, :6; and Hobbes, :.q; on justice, q6, :::, :6.; and Kant, :o6, :o8q; Meditation on the Common Concept of Justice, :6; Monadology, :o, ::6, :., :.8, :; moral anthropology, xii, ., qq, :o:, :o; natural law, q8, :.6:; Opinion on the Principles of Pufendorf, q6, :.8o; philosophical theology, :o., ::.6, :; principles of reason, :o::; and the resacralisation of politics, xi-xii, q8, :o., :::, ::, :o:, :; Roman law in, :o.; the sage (and the prince), q8, ::::, :8, :; and scholastic metaphysics, q, q8:o., ::o; spiritual exercises in, :oo, :o, ::o, :6; and the spiritualisation of law, :6.; and Steno, :.o; on the state, :o6, :; Systema Theologicum, 8, ::; Theodicy, ::, ::6 Lestition, Steven, :o, .., 6., 6q Lewalter, Ernst, 8q liberalism, 8, :.; and absolutism, :, 8., :8:, :q, .6, 6q; Pufendorf s, :6:, :8:, :q; Thomasius, .6; Link, Christoph, : Lohr, Charles, qo, Lombard, Peter, 6, :: Luther, Martin, Disputation Against Scholastic Theology, Manent, Pierre, 6 Martini, Cornelius, 6, q Martini, Jacob, 6, Meisner, Balthasar, 6, , :. Melanchthon, Philip, 6 Merlan, Philip, qq metaphysics, .; abstraction in, , :o::; Albert the Greats, .8, :o6, .8.; anthropology of (homo duplex), .o, .8, :, 6, :o:, :o, :., .8o, :; and anti-consequentialism, 8, .8., .q; Aristotles, q; Calvinist, 6, qq; and Christology, , 6; and confessionalism, o, :6, 8q, ., ::q.o, :., :6, :., :68, .o:, 6; and the contemplative life, 8, .:::.; enlightenment, , 6, q8:o., ::., :8; of the Eucharist, q; of evil, qo, :.o, 8; of God, q, , :o, .66; history of, , o; Jesuit, 8o; Kants, .q, .8o; Leibnizs, q8:o., :o:, :.6; Lutheran, , q8, :.6, .6q; Luthers attack on, 6, .68q; of morality, qo; and ontology, q, , .:; Protestant, , o., qq:o:, :.6; and the prudential life, 8; rationalist, qo, 6, q8:o., ::., :.o; rivalry with civil philosophy, , q8, :o:., :.8:, .o, .o, .6, ; sacral character of, .6, , o:, q8, ::q.o, :8, .:., ., 8, :.; q Index scholastic, ., q8, :o6; Scotist, q, 6, .66; as self-culture (paideia), .8, , :., .8, :o, :o6, ::o::, :68, .o, ..6, .8:, .8, .qqoo, 6; as spiritual discipline, :, , 8, :o; and the subjectivity of space and time, 8q; and theology, 6, qo, .6, q:, :.; Thomasius attack on, :, 8, .o8, .:.; Thomist, q; university (Schulmetaphysik), , :., :oo:, ::., :., ., .8, ::6; Wols, .66 Mevius, David, :., : moral philosophy, :6, .6; Aristotelian, 8, :, .:.:6; civil reconstruction of, ., 8, 88q, :8, .:.:6, .., .:., .6; history of, :6.:, .o:., .oq; Kantian, :; metaphysical, qo; and political jurisprudence, :6, .., .:6, 6qo Mller, Philipp, .:, .q natural law, .q; Christian (metaphysical), :, .8, 6o, :o:., :.6, ::6; civil, , :, .8, 8q., :., :q; as civil philosophy, 8q., :o; and the desacralisation of politics, , :, .6, q8, :o:, :::, :o:, :qo, .; Leibnizs, q6, :.6:; and moral philosophy, 8, :q, :6, :66; and politics, q8o; and positive law (Staatsrecht), , :, ., 6o:, 8; Pufendorf s, , q6, :., :q, ::8o, :6; rationalist, .; and sovereignty, ., 6o, 8, :o., :.6, :6; Thomasius, :., .:; transformation of, ., 8, 88q, :., :o:; voluntarist, . Neology, .., :, , 6 Nicolai, Friedrich, o Nicolas of Cusa, q Nizoli(us), Mario, .::q obligation (duty), :.qo, :6, :66 Oestreich, Gerhard, .., .:o Othmer, Sieglinde, :.8o pancosmism, qq pantheism, qq person (and personae), ., 6; Christian conception of, :, :, :6, .6:.; and Christology, :, :6, .6:; and imago Dei, , :o, :, :6, :, ., .6:; Kant on, :6, .88, .q, oq; Leibniz on, :o8, :6; and moral anthropology, .; Pufendorf on, xi, :, :68; Thomasius on, .6o (see also, subject) Petersen, Peter, , philosophical ascesis (ascetic philosophy), .:; civil philosophy as, .8, :6, :o, :, .oo, ..q; as deportment formation (paideia), 8, ., .8, .8, :o:, :o, :o, ::::, :8, :o, :, .oo:, .::, ..:, ..6q, ::6; and epistemology, :o8q; and the history of philosophy, x-xi, .:..; Kants Groundwork as, .q:6; metaphysics as, q, .8, , :, .8, :o:, :o6, :8, .q8; role of moral anthropology in, x, 8q, ., :o:, :o6; and self-transformation, ., :o, :o; and spiritual exercises, .:, :, :o, :o::, ..8 philosophical theology (natural theology), .6, 6o, q:, :; civil attack on, qo:, ::; Kants, 6; Leibnizs, :o., ::.6, :; Wols, .68 philosophy, :; Christian, :oo., ::.:, :., .:8, .., :, q:, 6; history of, :; rival conceptions of, :; and theology, 6, ., 8, qo:, :.6, .:q.:, .., q:, 6, Thomasius reform of, 8, .:., in the university, . (see also, philosophical ascesis) Pietism, at Halle, :qq, .68; and Kant, ., .6; and Thomasius, .o:; and Wol, .68 Placcius, David Vincenz, .8, :o., :. Pocock, J. G. A., :o:: political jurisprudence (public law) (jus publicum, Staatsrecht), , 8o, 8; Kant and, :6:, ; Imperial, :, 8.; and juridication (secularisation) xi, ::, 8:, ::; and natural law, :, 8, ::, .q; and religious conict, :::., :, 8:, 68q; Thomasius on, 8:, .::, ., .:, .q, .:6 politics, 8; desacralisation of, 6, ::, , 68, 8qqo, q8, :o:, :o, :o, :68, .o, .6, , 6; and law, q8o; and morality, 8q, :6:; resacralisation of, xi, :., q6o, q:., q8, :o., :::, :o:, :, .o6, .6, :6:, 6, 66, o Prasch, Johann Ludwig, :o., :., :, ..8 public sphere (entlichkeit), 66q, .:, 6, 6 (see also, communitarianism) Pufendorf, Samuel, ix, 6, ., q6, :8; and absolutism, :8:, :q.; church law (Staatskirchenrecht), 8, .:; citizen (and sovereign), :8:., :8, :86; De Habitu Religionis Christianae ad Vitam Civilem, :8, :6:, :q, .., .8; De Jure Naturae et Gentium, q6, :.8, :8, :, :6; De Ocio Hominis et Civis, q6, :.8, :8, :6; and the desacralisation of politics, xii, 8qqo, :8, :o, :6:., :68, :8:., :q; De Index q Pufendorf, Samuel (cont.) Statu Hominum Naturali, :8; government, :qo:, ; and Grotius, :8; and Hobbes, :., :8., :88, :q.; Jus Feciale Divinum, q; and liberalism, :6:, :8:, :q; on metaphysics, :., :6:, :68, :., :88qo; and modern moral philosophy, 6, :8, :6, :66, :68o, :q6; moral anthropology, xii, ., :., :8, :66; on moral entities, :6o, :6., :6, :66; natural law, , :., :q, :., ::8o, .8:; on natural rights, :66, :88; obligation (duties), :q, :6, :8o; on oces, :6; on person and personae, xi, :, :6:., :68, :88; political legitimacy, :q6o; political pact, :, :q6o, :6, :8:, :8; and the privatisation of religion, qo, :., :6:, :q; and reason of state, :q.; on security, :., :, :6o:, :6, :88, :q, :q; sociability, :., :6, :8q, :8., on sovereignty, :q, :6o, :8:, :8.q6, ; and Spinoza, :.; state of nature, :o.; voluntarism in, :6qo, :; on resistance, :q; on toleration, :q, .6:; on utility, :q Rachel, Samuel, .8, ::, :., ::; De Jure Naturae et Gentium Dissertationes, : rationalism, , :., :; and the history of philosophy, .6; Kants, .; Leibnizs, q, :.o; metaphysical, , q; Wols, .668; religious character of, :; theological grounds of, .6, , :, ::., .6 (see also, voluntarism) Rawls, John, . reason of state (Staatsrson), , :q. Reformation (see confessionalisation) religion: credal, qo, .; natural, ., ., .68, q6:; and politics, 86., :o:; privatisation of, .6, 8qqo, :o:, .; wars of, xi, , ::, , :.8, ::, .6 rights, ; against the state, :, :., 68; Kant on, :, o:, 6; natural, ., 6o, ., o:, 6; as state creations, :, .8, ., 68 Riley, Patrick, qq:oo, :o6, :.8, :6, :, .o Rd, Wolfgang, :6 Rousseau, Jean Jacques, :8, Sahme, Reinhold, .., o Salmonowicz, Stanislaw, .8 Scheibler, Christoph, 6, ::8; Opus Metaphysicum, Schilling, Heinz, 6. Schlaich, Klaus, .6:. Schmidt, James, Schmidt-Biggemann, Wilhelm, :6:q, .o:, 8, 6o: Schmitt, Carl, :::, 6 Schmucker, Joseph, .8o, : Schneewind, J. B., :, :8, .8qqo; The Invention of Autonomy, :6 Schneider, Hans-Peter, :. Schneiders, Werner, :6:q, .o:, 6, ..q; Naturrecht und Liebesethik, .oq scholasticism, .; :o6; Luthers attack on, ; and metaphysics, 8 Protestant, .8, 8, .oq:o, .6; second-wave, ., 8; Thomasius attack on, 6, 8, .oq:; Wolan, .68 Schrder, Peter, :o Schultz, F. A., ., .6 secularisation, ., :.; of the church, .6o, dierent forms of, .6, 6; as juridication, ::, 8:, ::; of politics, :o:, 8 Sve, Ren, : Siep, Ludwig, .q Skinner, Quentin, :o society, :, :, :; as church, .6, 6:., :, .6:, , 6, 6; deconfessionalisation of, 68q, .o:, .., .; and the state, :., ::6, 6o.,
sovereignty, .; Althusius on, q6o; divine,
:88qo; Kant on, ; popular, q6o, 8, :88; Pufendorf on, :8.q6, ; territorial, .8, q, .: Sparn, Walter, q, q8q, ::q.o, :., ; Wiederkehr der Metaphysik, . state, ::6; and church, :, .6o, .; civil conception of, :8.q6, .6, .6.; confessional, :, 6:., .68; ethical, :, , , ; legitimacy of, :::., qo, :q6o, ; metaphysical conception of, :o6, :, .68, ., 6; religious neutrality of, :, qo, ., .6., ., 6; and society, :., ::6, 6o., ; and sovereignty, ., 6o, 8q, .:, :8:, :8.q6, state of innocence (status integritatis), :., :6, .6 state of nature, :o. Stadlin, Carl Friedrich, :6, 6 Steno, Nicolaus, ::6, :.o Stolleis, Michael, 8o Strimesius, Samuel, :., : Stuke, Horst, :. Sturm, Johann, o q6 Index Surez, Francisco, ., , 8o, , 6, , 8 subject, the, :q, .:, :o8, :66, .88 Svarez, Carl Gottlieb, o: Tennemann, W. G., :6 theology, Calvinist, ., ::8, :.; Catholic, ., :.o, :.; Christological, :, 6, :6; and confessionalism, .:; Eucharistic, o; Lutheran, ., :., .68q, ..; and philosophy, 6, ., 8, :.6, .:q.:, .., q:, 6; spiritualistic, 8qqo, ..8q, .., . (see also, philosophical theology) Thirty Years War, xi, 8:, :., :, :8, .: Thomasius, Christian, ix, 6, 6, :q; anti- clericalism, 6, .; anti- scholasticism, 6, 6, :, :qq, .oq:, ..6; attack on metaphysics, 68, 6, ., 8, .o:, .o8, .:6, .:., .:.; Ausbung der Sittenlehre, .o, .., .., ., church law (Staatskirchenrecht), 6, 8, .oq, .:6; church and state, 6, .6:; Das Recht evangelischer Frsten in theologischen Streitigkeiten, .., .6.; and deconfessionalisation, 68q, .o:, .., ., ..; decorum, .:6, .q, .o:; and Descartes, ..:., ..6; and the desacralisation of politics, .o, .:, .o, ., .6, .6.; and the detranscendentalising of ethics, .:.:; ..; doctrine of oces, ., ., .6.; doctrine of the passions (Aektenlehre), q, .oo, .o6, .oq, .:, .., .; and electicism, , ., .:; Einleitung zur Sittenlehre, .o, ..; Einleitung zur Vernnft-Lehre, ..6; ethical therapeutics, .., ..8, ..q:; Foreword (to Grotius De Jure Belli ac Pacis), 6, 88, .o, .:q, .; Fundamenta Juris Naturae et Gentium, .o, ., .::; Frstlichen Personen Heirat, .:; and Grotius, .:8, .q; on heresy, 6, :6, .oo:, .6; his history of philosophy, .:8:q; on Hobbes, .:q; on the indierents (adiaphora), ., .6, 6:; Institutiones Jurisprudentiae Divinae, 6, :q8, .:, .:; Introductio ad Philosophiam Aulicam, :, .:o, .:.; Kleine Teutsche Scriften, .:o; on law (and morality), .o.q, .6q; and Locke, .8; on lying, o6; on marriage law, .o:, .qo; and modern moral philosophy, :6.:, 68, .o.q, .6o:, .6; moral anthropology, q, :q, ., ..:., ..6, ., .6; natural law, 6, :., .:; on natural rights, .8; and the Pietists, .o:; on philosophical sectarianism, q, .:8:q; Preliminary Dissertation (to the Institutiones Jurisprudentiae Divinae), , .oo:; on priestcraft, 6, 86, .; and Pufendorf, 6, :6, :q8.o:, ., .8:, .., .; on the sage (and the fools), .6q; spiritualist theology, ..8q, .., .; Summarischer Entwurf der Grundlehren, q; on toleration, ..q, .6:; Vollstndige Erluterung der Kirchenrechts-Gelahrtheit, ..; voluntarism in, ., .., ., .8q; Vom Recht evangelischer Frsten in Mitteldingen oder Kirchenzeremonien, .., .q6o; Von den Mngeln der aristotelischen Ethik, .:.:6; Wie ein junger Mensch zu informieren sei, .:::.; and Wol, .68 Thomasius, Jacob, .: Thomassen, Beroald, .8, :o:, :o6, .8o Timpler, Clemens, 6, toleration, 8, :., .6: Tooke, Andrew, :q8 Tuck, Richard, q, 6; Philosophy and Government .,:.., ::, Tully, James, ::, :q, :88, :qo universities, xi-xii, .8; and confessionalisation, 6, .:; Frankfurt an der Oder, .:o; Gieen, ; Gttingen, ..; Halle, :., :qq, .., .6; Helmstedt (Academia Julia), q; Jena, 8, 6qo; Knigsberg, .., .68, 8; Leipzig, , ::., ..; and state-building, 6, q, .o.; Wittenburg, 6 Veltheim, Valentin, .8, :o., :., : Velthuysen, Lambert, :6 Versor, Johann: Epitome Metaphysicae Aristotelicae, : Vitoria, Franciso de, ., 8 voluntarism, .6, q, :.:, :; civil, .,:.q, :6qo, .oo, ., .8q; as ethos, .oo, ..; theological, , :qq.oo, ., .8q, .68q (see also, rationalism) Weigel, Erhard, :6 Westphalia, Treaty of, :, 8:, 8., :., :8, ::, .:, .: Wol, Christian, o:, .6; civil religion, .68, ; ethics, .66; and Leibniz, .66; metaphysics, .66; natural theology, .68, ; and Neology, .., ; and the Pietists, .68; politics, .68; on the sage (and the prince), .68, ; and the return of scholasticism, .68; and Index q Wol, Christian (cont.) Thomasius, .68, ..; Vernnftige Gedanken von dem gesellschaftlichen Leben der Menschen und insonderheit dem gemeinen Wesen, .6; Vernnftige Gedanken von Gott, der Welt und der Seele des Menschen, auch allen Dingen berhaupt, .6; Vernnftige Gedanken von der menschen Tun und Lassen zu Befrderung ihrer Glckseeligkeit, .66; Von den Regenten, die sich Weltweisheit beeiigen, und von den Weltweisen, die das Regiment fhren, .68 Wittgenstein, Ludwig, :, .:, .8: Wllner, Johann Christoph, 8, :. Wundt, Max, :6, , .8q Zurbuchen, Simone, :8, .6o q8 Index i nr\s i x cox+rx+ Edited by Qtrx+i x Ski xxrn (General Editor) Lonn\i xr D\s +ox, Dono+nv Ross, and J\xrs Ttrrv : ni cn\nn non+v, . n. scnxrrvi xn, and trx+i x ski xxrn (eds.) Philosophy in History Essays in the historiography of philosophy pb: o .: .o . . o. \. rocock Virtue, Commerce and History Essays on political thought and history, chiey in the eighteenth century pb: o .: .66o 8 x. x. oornsxi +n Private Vices, Public Benets Bernard Mandevilles social and political thought hb: o .: oo6 \x+noxv r\onrx (ed.) The Languages of Political Theory in Early Modern Europe pb: o .: 8666 n\\i n stxxrns The Judgment of Sense Renaissance nationalism and the rise of aesthetics pb: o .: 86: 6 r\tnrxcr ni ckrv Hegel: Religion, Economics and the Politics of Spirit, :o:8o pb: o .: 8q:. x\noo +onn Christian Humanism and the Puritan Social Order hb: o .: :.q 8 rvxx stxi n\ ov Gassendi the Atomist Advocate of history in an age of science hb: o .: o:. q rnxtxn rri +rs (ed.) Conscience and Casuistry in Early Modern Europe hb: o .: o:: o :o vorr rrrrxi rs Between Literature and Science: The Rise of Sociology pb: o .: 8:o :: +rnrxcr n\rr, \xrs r\nn, and ntssrrr r. n\xsox (eds.) Political Innovation and Conceptual Change pb: o .: q8 :. ornn oi ornrxzrn et al. The Empire of Chance How probability changed science and everyday life pb: o .: q88 x : rr+rn xo\i ck That Noble Dream The objectivity question and the American historical profession pb: o .: : n\\i n ri rnrnx\x The Province of Legislation Determined Legal theory in eighteenth-century Britain hb: o .: .q. : n\xi rr ri ck Faces of Degeneration A European disorder, c. .88c. ..8 pb: o .: x :6 kri +n n\krn Inventing the French Revolution Essays on French political culture in the eighteenth century pb: o .: 88 : i \x n\cki xo The Taming of Chance pb: o .: 888 8 :8 oi srr\ nock, trx+i x ski xxrn, and x\tni zi o \i nori (eds.) Machiavelli and Republicanism pb: o .: 8q :q nono+nv noss The Origins of American Social Science pb: o .: .86 x .o kr\ts cnni s +i \x konxkr The Rise of Neo-Kantianism German Academic Philosophy between Idealism and Positivism hb: o .: 6 o .: i \x x\crr\x Interpretation and Meaning in the Renaissance The Case of Law hb: o .: :6 . .. x\tni zi o \i nori From Politics to Reason of State The Acquisition and Transformation of the Language of Politics .:o.oo hb: o .: :q 8 . x\n+i x \\x orrnrnrx The Political Thought of the Dutch Revolt ::qo hb: o .: q.o . xi cnor\s rni rri rsox and trx+i x ski xxrn (eds.) Political Discourse in Early Modern Britain hb: o .: q.. x . \xrs +trrv An Approach to Political Philosophy: Locke in Contexts pb: o .: 68 q .6 ni cn\nn +tck Philosophy and Government :.:6: pb: o .: 88 . ni cn\nn n. vro Dening Science William Whewell, Natural Knowledge and Public Debate in Early Victorian Britain hb: o .: :8. .8 x\n+i x v\nxkr The Court Artist The Ancestry of the Modern Artist hb: o .: 6 6 .q rr+rn x. xi rrrn Dening the Common Good Empire, Religion and Philosophy in Eighteenth-Century Britain hb: o .: .q : o cnni s +ornrn . nrnnv The Idea of Luxury A Conceptual and Historical Investigation pb: o .: 66q: : : r. . ntxnrn+ The Enlightenments Fable Bernard Mandeville and the Discovery of Society hb: o .: 6o8. . tri \ s +\rrr+ox Englishness and the Study of Politics The Social and Political Thought of Ernest Barker hb: o .: 6:. : kri +n +ni nr Strategies of Economic Order German Economic Discourse, .,o.o hb: o .: 6.q: 6 s\cni ko ktstk\v\ The Transformation of Natural Philosophy The Case of Philip Melancthon hb: o .: o n\\i n \nxi +\or, \nx\xn ni xv, and trx+i x ski xxrn (eds.) Milton and Republicanism pb: o .: 668 o 6 x\nkkt rrr+oxrx Classical Humanism and Republicanism in English Political Thought .,o.o hb: o .: q6q o rni ri r i noxsi nr The Social and Political Thought of Bertrand Russell The Development of an Aristocratic Liberalism hb: o .: 8 8 x\xcv c\n+vni on+, onni c\+, ror\ rrrck, and +nox\s r. trnrr Otto Neurath: Philosophy between Science and Politics hb: o .: : q nox\rn vi xcn Riches and Poverty An Intellectual History of Political Economy in Britain, .,o.8 pb: o .: q.o o o rxxi rrn rr\++ A History of Sociological Research Methods in America pb: o .: 66q q : kxtn n\\koxssrx (ed.) Enlightenment and Religion Rational Dissent in Eighteenth-Century Britain hb: o .: 6o6o 8 . o. r. n. rrovn Adversaries and Authorities Investigations into Ancient Greek and Chinese Science pb: o .: 6q norr ri xnxrn The Reportage of Urban Culture Robert Park and the Chicago School hb: o .: o. : \xx\nrr nnr++ Liberty, Right and Nature Individual Rights in Later Scholastic Thought hb: o .: 6.q . s +rv\n+ . nnovx (ed.) William Robertson and the Expansion of Empire hb: o .: o8 . 6 nrrrx\ nosrxnr\++ Rousseau and Geneva From the First Discourse to the Social Contract, :q:6. hb: o .: oo . n\\i n ntxci x\x Pluralism and the Personality of the State hb: o .: :q: q 8 \xx\nrr r\++rnsox Early Modern Liberalism hb: o .: q.6o q n\\i n vri xs +ri x Equal Freedom and Utility Herbert Spencers Liberal Utilitarianism hb: o .: 6..6 6 o vtx rrr +oo and xi \rr ri \i xos +oxr (eds.) Pedagogy and Power Rhetorics of Classical Learning hb: o .: q q : nr\i rr xr+z The Shaping of Deduction in Greek Mathematics A Study in Cognitive History hb: o .: 6..q . x\nv xono\x and x\no\nr+ xonni sox (eds.) Models as Mediators pb: o .: 6: orr xi cnrrr Measurement in Psychology A Critical History of a Methodological Concept hb: o .: 6.:.o 8 ni cn\nn \. rni xts The American Language of Rights hb: o .: 6.o . nonrn+ \rtx oxrs The Development of Durkheims Social Realism hb: o .: 6o 6 \xxr xcr\nrx Political Culture in the Reign of Elizabeth I Queen and Commonwealth .8.8 hb: o .: 6: : \xrs n\xki xs (ed.) Renaissance Civic Humanism Reappraisals and Reections hb: o .: 8oqo x 8 +. . nocns +n\ssrn Natural Law Theories in the Early Enlightenment hb: o .: 66:q q n\\i n \nxi +\or The Ideological Origins of the British Empire hb: o .: qo8: 6o i \x ntx+rn Rival Enlightenments Civil and Metaphysical Philosophy in Early Modern Germany hb: o .: q.6
(International Library of Critical Essays in The History of Philosophy) Haakonssen, K. (Ed.) - Grotius, Pufendorf and Modern Natural Law-Dartmouth (1999) PDF